This is a modern-English version of The Story of Moscow, originally written by Gerrare, Wirt. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.


Every attempt has been made to replicate the original as printed.

Every effort has been made to reproduce the original as it was printed.

Some typographical errors have been corrected; a list follows the text.

Some typos have been fixed; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

The author's spelling/misspelling of German has not been corrected.

The author’s spelling/misspelling of German has not been fixed.

In certain versions of this etext, in certain browsers, clicking on this symbol will bring up a larger version of the image.

In certain versions of this ebook, on specific browsers, clicking on this symbol will show a larger version of the image.

(etext transcriber's note)

(etext transcriber's note)

The Story of Moscow
 
 
 

The Story of Moscow
 
 

All rights reserved

All rights reserved



Ikon of the Holy Virgin of Vladimir

Ikon of the Holy Virgin of Vladimir



Ikon of the Holy Virgin of Vladimir

Icon of the Holy Virgin of Vladimir

The   Story   of   Moscow
by  Wirt     Gerrare     Illustr-
rated  by  Helen   M.   James



London:            J.   M.   Dent   &   Co.
Aldine House, 29 and 30 Bedford Street
Covent Garden W.C.               1900



London: J. M. Dent & Co.
Aldine House, 29 and 30 Bedford Street
Covent Garden WC 1900

PREFACE

READERS of the modern histories of Russia may wonder by what right Moscow is included among MEDIÆVAL TOWNS, for it is the fashion of recent writers to ignore the history of the mighty Euro-Asian empire prior to the eighteenth century and the reign of Peter the Great. It is at that period this story of the old Muscovite capital ends. To many, then, this account of the town and its vicissitudes during the preceding five centuries may have the charm of novelty; perchance to others, who have wrongly concluded that the old buildings were all destroyed during Napoleon’s invasion, the few typical antiquities chosen for illustration out of many like, will attract to a closer acquaintance with memorials of a past that was but little influenced by the art of the west.

READERS of modern histories of Russia might question why Moscow is listed among MEDIÆVAL TOWNS, since many recent writers tend to overlook the history of this vast Euro-Asian empire before the eighteenth century and the reign of Peter the Great. This story of the old Muscovite capital culminates in that period. For many, this account of the town and its struggles over the previous five centuries may seem fresh and intriguing; and for others, who mistakenly believe that all the old buildings were destroyed during Napoleon’s invasion, the selected few typical antiquities showcased from a larger collection may draw them to a better understanding of a history that was minimally influenced by Western art.

Moscow, where the east merges with the west but remains distinct and unconquered, has a fascination all its own; the town not only has been great, but is so yet; its influence pervades the Russian empire and is still mutable and active; its story therefore comprises more than the legends and associations of an ordinary city, but, if confined merely to an enumeration of the facts and traditions of the past will not be void of interest, and however fully given, must fall far short of what the imaginative reader may reasonably expect. Of the meagre character of this present account I am fully aware; of its positive errors I am, at present, unhappily ignorant, but I trust that those who discover mistakes will not only forgive, but notify me of them, that later readers may be as grateful for the favour as I myself shall be. Of place names I have given the idiomatic, instead of the usual literal translation; where I have attempted an equivalent reproduction of the original the transliteration will be comprehensible to those who know nothing of either French or German. That I may not be charged with inconsistency in this, I may explain that where a foreign spelling—as rouble—has become familiar I have used the Anglicism. To most readers the names will, I fear, be unpronounceable however spelled; but only the expert will regret that I have not given the original Russian. To them the excuse I offer is, that to everyone ignorant of the tongue Russian names are absolutely undecipherable, being apparently composed of an alphabet in spasms made up into words of poly-syllabic length.

Moscow, where the East meets the West but remains unique and unconquered, has a charm all its own; the city has been great and still is. Its influence spreads throughout the Russian Empire and remains dynamic and alive. Its story includes more than just the legends and associations of an ordinary city; if we only focus on listing the facts and traditions of the past, it won't lack interest, but even with all the details, it will fall far short of what an imaginative reader might hope for. I know that this account is quite limited, and I'm unfortunately unaware of its specific mistakes, but I hope that those who find any errors will not only forgive me but also let me know, so that future readers can appreciate the effort as much as I will. I have used the idiomatic names instead of the usual literal translations; where I've tried to create an equivalent version, the transliteration should be understandable for those who know nothing of French or German. To avoid seeming inconsistent, I should clarify that when a foreign spelling—like "rouble"—has become familiar, I've opted for the Anglicized version. I fear that, regardless of how they are spelled, the names will be unpronounceable to most readers; only experts might regret that I haven't provided the original Russian. My excuse for this is that, for anyone unfamiliar with the language, Russian names are completely indecipherable, resembling words formed from a frantically arranged alphabet that results in long, complex syllables.

It is difficult for one not of the Eastern Church to write justly of Russian Ecclesiasticism; an alien, however carefully he may observe, is liable to obtain faulty impressions and make erroneous deductions; so to me any criticism seems an impertinence. I have tried to present its artistic phases fairly, but am conscious that the ninth chapter is the least satisfactory of all that I have written.

It’s tough for someone outside the Eastern Church to accurately discuss Russian Ecclesiasticism; as an outsider, no matter how carefully I observe, I might end up with wrong impressions and make mistakes in my conclusions. So, to me, any criticism feels rude. I’ve aimed to present its artistic aspects fairly, but I realize that the ninth chapter is the least satisfying of everything I’ve written.

For the rest, my task has been easy: I have had but to examine, compare, and judge the work of others and from their stored treasures make my selection. I have produced little that is really original: others have delved amid ruins for vestiges of the earlier Moscow; have unearthed ancient monuments; transcribed illegible manuscripts; ransacked archives, measured walls, calculated heights, weighed bells and counted steps; formed theories and found evidence to support them; so have rendered my labour light and pleasant. I regret that I, who at best am but an intelligible interpreter, cannot acknowledge more particularly the hundred and more authorities from whom I have drawn; in the same inadequate, general fashion I must thank many friends, English and Russian, for the kindly interest they have taken in the work and the intelligent assistance they have rendered me in its compilation. For direction to valuable sources of information, and other services, I am conscious of particular indebtedness to the Rev. F. Wyberg, of the English Church, Moscow, and to Mr V. E. Marsden, the correspondent of the Standard there—either of whom might have written a much better book about the town they know so well. The object of this volume I shall consider to be achieved if its perusal gives to anyone pleasure equal to that its compilation has brought me; or awakens even a few readers to a greater interest in Moscow, and a better understanding of the Russian people.

For the most part, my job has been straightforward: I’ve just had to review, compare, and evaluate others' work and choose from their accumulated treasures. I haven't created much that’s truly original; others have explored ruins for remnants of old Moscow, uncovered ancient monuments, transcribed hard-to-read manuscripts, scoured archives, measured walls, calculated heights, weighed bells, and counted steps; they've developed theories and found evidence to support them, making my work easier and more enjoyable. I regret that, as someone who is mainly a clear interpreter, I can't specifically acknowledge the hundred or so sources I've drawn from; in the same vague way, I want to thank many friends, both English and Russian, for their thoughtful interest in this work and the valuable help they've given me during its preparation. I owe a particular debt of gratitude to Rev. F. Wyberg of the English Church in Moscow and to Mr. V. E. Marsden, the correspondent for the Standard there, either of whom could have written a much better book about the town they know so well. I’ll consider the purpose of this book fulfilled if it brings anyone as much pleasure in reading it as I’ve had in putting it together, or if it sparks even a few readers’ interest in Moscow and leads to a deeper understanding of the Russian people.

WIRT GERRARE.

WIRT GERRARE.

Ты, как мученик, горела,
Белокаменная!
И река в тебе бурлила,
Blazing!
And under the ashes, you lay, Полоненою!
And from the ashes, you rose, Неизмѣнною!
Процветай же славой вечной,
City of temples and palaces!
Город центральный, город сердечный,
Коренной России, огонь!
Ѳ. ГЛИНКА
White walls and golden head, Cool, weird, The pride of all the millions
Under Russian Tsar rule:
The heart of an Empire, Shrine of a great lineage,
With Europe's finest cities
Moscow stands strong!
V. E. M.

CONTENTS

CHAPTER I
PAGE
Introduction—Pre-Muscovite Russia 1
CHAPTER II
Origin and Early History11
CHAPTER III
Moscow under the Mongols21
CHAPTER IV
Moscow of the Princes37
CHAPTER V
Ivan the Terrible47
CHAPTER VI
The Troublous Times80
CHAPTER VII
Moscow of the Tsars111
CHAPTER VIII
The Kremlin147
CHAPTER IX
Moscow of the Ecclesiastics172
CHAPTER X
Moscow of the Citizens206
CHAPTER XI
Ancient Customs and Quaint Survivals227
CHAPTER XII
The Convents and Monasteries253
CHAPTER XIII
Moscow of the English270
CHAPTER XIV
The French Invasion—and after284
CHAPTER XV
Itinerary and Miscellaneous Information303
  
Index A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, J, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z  309

ILLUSTRATIONS

PAGE
The Virgin of Vladimir (Vladimirski Bogeimateri) by St Luke     Frontispiece
The Kremlin13
Danilovski Monastery17
Spass na Boru29
Ilyinka Gate of the Kitai Gorod39
Doorway of St Lazarus45
Alarm Bell Tower58
Vasili Blajenni67
The Terem—A Corridor83
Church of the Assumption89
Dom Romanovykh108
Belvedere of the Terem117
Krutitski Vorot122
Krasnœ Kriltso126
Throne Room of the Terem135
Vosskresenski Vorot and Iberian Chapel143
Kremlin—Wall and Tower148
Terem and Belvedere of the Potieshni Dvorets154
Church of Our Saviour behind the Golden Gates161
Potieshni Dvorets, or Pleasure Palace167
Church of the Nativity (Rojdestva V-Putinkakh)181
Uspenski Sobor—The Ikonostas186
Cathedral of the Annunciation (Blagovieshchenski Sobor)193
Church and Gate of Mary of Vladimir204
Srietenka—The Sukharev Bashnia208
St Nicholas “Stylite”218
Dom Chukina223
Krestovia in the Romanof House229
Varvarka Vorot of the Kitai Gorod238
A Chastok (Watch Tower)245
Petrovski Monastery250
Simonov Monastery261
Novo Devichi Convent267
Spasski Vorot, Tower over the Redeemer Gate279
Borovitski Gate and St Saviour’s Cathedral299
Plan of the Kremlinface 125
Map of Moscow" 308

{1}

{1}

Moscow

CHAPTER I

Introduction—Pre-Muscovite Russia

“Cimmerii a Scythis nomadibus ejecti.”—Herodotus.

THE mediæval pilgrim to Moscow, getting his first glimpse of the Holy City from Salutation Hill, saw before him much the same sight as the tourist of to-day may look upon from the same spot. Three miles away a hill crowned with white-walled buildings, many towers, gilded domes and spires topped with Cross-and-Crescent; outside the wall that encircles this hill, groups of buildings, large and small; open fields, trees—singly, in rows, clumps and thickets—separate group from group; ever and anon above the many hued roofs reach belfries, spires, steeples, domes and minarets innumerable. Beyond, to right and left, the scene repeats itself until the bright coloured buildings become indistinguishable from the masses of verdure and all merge in the haze of the plains east and west, or the faint outline of forest to the north.

THE medieval pilgrim visiting Moscow, getting his first look at the Holy City from Salutation Hill, saw much the same view that a modern tourist sees from the same spot. Three miles away, a hill topped with white-walled buildings, numerous towers, gilded domes, and spires set with Cross-and-Crescent; outside the wall surrounding this hill are groups of buildings, large and small; open fields, trees—standing alone, in rows, clusters, and thickets—separate each group; every now and then, above the vibrant roofs, rise belfries, spires, steeples, domes, and countless minarets. Beyond, to the right and left, the scene repeats itself until the brightly colored buildings blend into the greenery and all merge into the haze of the plains to the east and west, or the faint outline of the forest to the north.

Long ago the tremendous extent of this town, apparently without limit, amazed strangers no less than the richness and multitude of its buildings filled pilgrims with awe and reverence. To the tourist to-day it is as a vision of magnificent splendour and brilliance, for{2} seen in the clear sunlight of a summer day Moscow has beauty and brightness no other city possesses. Long lines of ivory whiteness capped with vivid green or flushed with carmine and ruby; great globes of deepest blue, patches of purple and dashes of aquamarine; many gleaming domes of gold, glowing halos of burnished copper, dazzling points of glistening silver—such make Moscow at sunset like part of a rainbow streaked with lightning and thickly bedizened with great gems.

Long ago, the vastness of this town, seemingly endless, amazed visitors just as much as the richness and variety of its buildings filled pilgrims with awe and respect. To today’s tourist, it appears as a vision of magnificent splendor and brilliance, for{2} seen in the bright sunlight of a summer day, Moscow has a beauty and vibrancy that no other city can match. Long lines of white buildings topped with vibrant green or shades of red; large spheres of deep blue, patches of purple, and accents of aquamarine; countless gleaming golden domes, glowing halos of polished copper, and dazzling points of shining silver—these create a Moscow at sunset that resembles a part of a rainbow streaked with lightning and richly adorned with precious gems.

Intense colours, sharp contrasts characterise Moscow. The extravagances of design and colouring, unconcealable even in the general prospect, are obvious on closer inspection. The stranger arriving by railway gets no bird’s-eye view of the town; but on his way from the station in the suburbs towards the central town sees the painted roofs, coloured walls, pretentious pillars, cupolas with golden stars, strange towers, fantastic gates, immense buildings, tiny cottages, magnificent spaces, narrow winding streets; irregularities and incongruities so many that Moscow first, and most lastingly, impresses by its bizarrerie.

Intense colors and sharp contrasts define Moscow. The bold designs and vibrant colors, which are hard to miss even from afar, become even more striking up close. The newcomer arriving by train doesn't get a bird's-eye view of the city; however, on the journey from the suburban station to the city center, they notice the painted roofs, colorful walls, flashy pillars, domes topped with golden stars, unusual towers, whimsical gates, massive buildings, tiny houses, grand open spaces, and narrow winding streets. The sheer number of irregularities and oddities means that Moscow first and foremost leaves an impression with its bizarre nature.

With fuller acquaintance the diversity of style appears in keeping with the spirit of the place, and seeming incongruities are softened, or redeemed, by originality of design or execution. The buildings of Moscow are multiform, but there is dissimilarity rather than contrariety; the usual elsewhere is the unconventional here, and conformity is attained by each being unlike all others. An early traveller wrote: “One might imagine all the states of Europe and Asia had sent a building by way of representation to Moscow,” and in a certain sense this is still true. But it would be incorrect to assume, therefore, that cosmopolitanism is a dominant trait. The very reverse is the fact. Moscow is essentially Russian, and though there is abundant evidence of borrowing from Greece, Italy and Byzantium;{3} from Moor, Goth and Mongol; of appropriation of classic, mediæval and renaissance methods, the prevalent style seems to be not exactly the combination of any so much as the outcome of all. Not that indigenous forms are wanting, but their elemental quality is obscured by the wondrous versatility and adaptability of the artists. The result is as confusing as though an author in writing out his original ideas made constant random use of different alphabets in each word.

With a deeper understanding, the variety of styles aligns with the spirit of the place, and any seeming contradictions are softened or redeemed by the uniqueness of the design or execution. The buildings of Moscow are diverse, but there is more difference than opposition; what is typical elsewhere is unconventional here, and conformity is achieved by each structure being unlike all the others. An early traveler wrote: “One might imagine all the states of Europe and Asia had sent a building by way of representation to Moscow,” and in a sense, this is still true. However, it would be incorrect to assume that cosmopolitanism is a dominant characteristic. The opposite is true. Moscow is fundamentally Russian, and while there’s plenty of evidence of influence from Greece, Italy, and Byzantium; from Moor, Goth, and Mongol; and from the adoption of classic, medieval, and Renaissance techniques, the dominant style seems to be less a combination of these influences and more the result of them all. It’s not that there aren’t indigenous forms, but their basic nature is obscured by the incredible versatility and adaptability of the artists. The outcome is as confusing as if an author, while writing his original ideas, randomly used different alphabets for each word.

This method, so characteristic of Russia, is perplexing rather than intricate, but he would be very learned or foolhardy who, acting on the rule that to see the house is to know the inmates, if shown Moscow should at once predicate the character of its inhabitants.

This method, typical of Russia, is confusing rather than complex, but one would have to be either very knowledgeable or reckless to think that just by seeing the house in Moscow, they could instantly determine the character of the people living there.

Yet more than most towns Moscow reflects the life history of its people; whatever there is of beauty, of strength, of individuality, is the result of human intelligence, experience and effort. No town of like importance owes so little to nature, so much to man. And the dominant tone is religious; religious feeling has inspired the noblest efforts, ecclesiastical influence has conserved such oneness of purpose as Moscow manifests. Withal there is strong individualism, both clerical and secular.

Yet, more than most towns, Moscow reflects the life story of its people; everything beautiful, strong, and unique is a result of human intelligence, experience, and effort. No other town of similar importance depends so little on nature and so much on humanity. The prevailing atmosphere is religious; spiritual feelings have inspired the greatest efforts, and ecclesiastical influence has maintained the unity of purpose that Moscow displays. At the same time, there is a strong sense of individualism, both religious and secular.

Paradoxical as Moscow is, it is in the highest degree interesting. If no one object can be pointed to as typical of race or period, no public work shown as the result of persistent policy or genius of peculiar citizenship, Moscow in its entirety demonstrates the development of a people. Even the opposing principles of diffusion and cohesion, and the parts they have served in the history of this race, are so unmistakably expressed that the sight-seer, even, feels that in Moscow, most surely, must be found the key not only to the history of Russia, but also to the character of men{4} who have conquered and hold the largest part of two continents.

Paradoxical as Moscow is, it is incredibly fascinating. While no single object can be identified as typical of its people or era, and there is no public project that showcases the result of steady policy or the unique genius of its citizens, Moscow as a whole reflects the evolution of a nation. Even the contrasting ideas of spreading out and coming together, and the roles they have played in the history of this people, are so clearly expressed that even a visitor can sense that in Moscow lies the key not only to the history of Russia but also to the essence of the people{4} who have conquered and maintain control over the largest portions of two continents.

Moscow, the town that has cradled and nursed a mighty nation, does not lack story; but its story comprises much of the early history of the empire subsequently evolved, and consequently much that may be considered foreign to the city itself must be stated if the tale is to be complete, or even comprehensible by those to whom the ancient history of Russia is unknown.

Moscow, the city that has nurtured and supported a powerful nation, has plenty of stories; but its narrative includes a lot of the early history of the empire that developed later. Therefore, much that might seem unrelated to the city itself needs to be included if the story is to be complete or even make sense to those unfamiliar with the ancient history of Russia.

 

To begin at the beginning. European Russia is an immense plain, its centre elevated scarcely three hundred feet above sea-level; the hills, few, low and unimportant. Lakes are plentiful, and great rivers with many ramifications flow slowly by tortuous channels—mostly towards the north-west or the south-east. Large tracts of forest and marsh in the centre terminate with frozen wastes to the north, and merge with rough, sandy pastures on the south.

To start at the beginning. European Russia is a vast flatland, its center rising only about three hundred feet above sea level; the hills are few, small, and insignificant. There are plenty of lakes, and large rivers with many branches flow slowly through winding channels—mostly towards the northwest or the southeast. Large areas of forest and marshland in the center give way to frozen wastelands in the north and blend into rough, sandy pastures in the south.

At various periods, Europe has been invaded and peopled by different races from the east, and the last of these migrants, the Slavs, for the most part took the direction of the great water-ways of Russia, that is, from the south-east towards the north-west. In addition to their nomadic habit, various causes, amongst which must be counted internecine warfare, led to the dispersion of the Slavs, whilst effective occupation by earlier migrants and the determined resistance of aboriginal races checked their progress in some directions. The Scythian branch of the Slav race settled on the Don about 400 B.C. but was gradually driven from the shores of the Black Sea by the Greek colonists of Miletus. These colonies were taken by the Romans{5} later, and about 300 A.D. the Slavs again asserted their dominion there for a period. Other branches of the Slav race and wilder races from Asia pressed westward, laying the country waste. Huns, Turks, Goths, Bolgars, Magyars, Polovtsi, Pechenegians and others, at different times, drove Slavs of pastoral habit aside from their path. In the fifth century Slavs established themselves on the Dnieper at Kief and at Novgorod on the Ilmen, where they progressed and became civilised. In the seventh century they were once more on the shores of the Black Sea in the south, and in the north Novgorod was a thriving commercial centre.

At different times, Europe has been invaded and settled by various groups from the east, with the last of these migrants being the Slavs. Most of them moved along the major waterways of Russia, traveling from the southeast to the northwest. Besides their nomadic lifestyle, several factors—including internal conflicts—led to the dispersal of the Slavs. Earlier settlers and the strong resistance of indigenous peoples also limited their expansion in some areas. The Scythian branch of the Slavic race settled near the Don around 400 B.C., but was gradually pushed out from the Black Sea coast by Greek colonists from Miletus. These colonies were later taken over by the Romans{5}, and around 300 A.D., the Slavs briefly reclaimed control in that area. Other branches of the Slavic race, along with more aggressive groups from Asia, moved westward, devastating the land along the way. The Huns, Turks, Goths, Bolgars, Magyars, Polovtsi, Pechenegs, and others pushed the pastoral Slavs aside at various times. In the fifth century, the Slavs established themselves along the Dnieper in Kief and in Novgorod near the Ilmen, where they developed and became more civilized. By the seventh century, they were once again on the shores of the Black Sea in the south, while Novgorod in the north emerged as a bustling trade hub.

The Slav republics suffered at the hands of Asiatics on the south, and from the depredations of vikings on the north; moreover there were internal dissensions. In A.D. 864, Rurik, a Varœger prince—the same who, it is believed, laid waste the maritime provinces of France in 850 and in 851 entered the Thames with 300 sail and pillaged Canterbury—made himself master of the northern republic, took up his residence at Novgorod and founded a dynasty which lasted 700 years. There is a legend to the effect that his coming was at the invitation of the Slavs, who sought his aid and sovereignty, but there can be no doubt it was as a conqueror that Rurik came and established his race in Russia. Some of his followers, led by Askold and Dyr, sought fortune and conquest further south. These became masters of Kief, pressed on to Constantinople in 200 ships, embraced Christianity and returned to Kief, intending there to found a separate kingdom and dynasty. After the death of Rurik, his son Igor, a minor, succeeded; his uncle, Oleg, as regent, went to Kief; there he treacherously killed the two usurping leaders, took possession of the city and, appointing Igor to the throne, determined that Kief should be{6} the “mother of Russian towns.” The people were then pagans, and the Northmen kept to the practices of their ancestors until about 955, when Olga was regent; she visited Constantinople and was there baptised into the Christian faith. Some thirty years later, Vladimir, the seventh in descent from Rurik, ascended the throne, and during his reign the Christian religion was generally adopted throughout his realm. Kief then became closely associated with Constantinople, its connection with the Byzantine empire being both ecclesiastical and commercial. Novgorod, on the other hand, remained in closer touch with the west, supplying the Northmen with the wares of Araby and Ind that reached Russia by way of the Volga. Otther, the Scandinavian founder of Tver, where the Tmak joins the Volga north of Moscow, was a great trader and traveller; at one time going as far east as Perm on the Kama (Biarmaland), at another to England—where he gave King Alfred particulars of the fairs in the east, and the methods of trading with Asian merchants.

The Slavic republics faced challenges from the Asiatics in the south and the raids of Vikings in the north; additionally, there were internal conflicts. In A.D. 864, Rurik, a Varangian prince—the same one believed to have devastated the coastal regions of France in 850 and who sailed up the Thames with 300 ships in 851 to raid Canterbury—took control of the northern republic, settled in Novgorod, and established a dynasty that lasted for 700 years. There's a legend that he was invited by the Slavs, who sought his help and rule, but it's clear that Rurik arrived as a conqueror and established his lineage in Russia. Some of his followers, led by Askold and Dyr, sought wealth and conquest further south. They became rulers of Kiev, advanced to Constantinople with 200 ships, converted to Christianity, and returned to Kiev intending to create an independent kingdom and dynasty. After Rurik's death, his son Igor, who was still a child, took over; his uncle Oleg served as regent, went to Kiev, and treacherously killed the two rival leaders, seized control of the city, and appointed Igor as king, declaring that Kiev should be the{6} "mother of Russian towns." At that time, the people were pagans, and the Northmen adhered to the customs of their ancestors until around 955, when Olga was regent; she visited Constantinople and was baptized as a Christian. About thirty years later, Vladimir, Rurik's seventh descendant, became king, and during his reign, Christianity was widely embraced across his territory. Kiev then developed a close relationship with Constantinople, forming both ecclesiastical and commercial ties with the Byzantine Empire. In contrast, Novgorod maintained stronger connections with the west, supplying the Northmen with goods from Arabia and India that arrived in Russia via the Volga. Otther, the Scandinavian founder of Tver, located where the Tmak joins the Volga north of Moscow, was a prominent trader and traveler; at one point he traveled as far east as Perm on the Kama (Biarmaland) and at another to England—where he informed King Alfred about the eastern fairs and the trading methods with Asian merchants.

In the Historical Museum of Moscow is a well arranged collection of prehistoric antiquities found in the empire. There is nothing among the stone implements to show that the earliest races in Russia in any way differed in habit from those of the same era occupying western Europe and the British Isles. The most ancient of the relics (Rooms I., II.) were found with bones of the mammoth in the district of Murom in Vladimir, and at Kostenki near Voronesh. Some ear-rings and a bracelet of twisted silver were found in the Kremlin, and a few other early remains when excavating for the foundations of the new cathedral, but these trifles are not evidence of early occupation, since they may have been left by travellers along the waterways.{7}

In the Moscow Historical Museum, there's a well-organized collection of prehistoric artifacts discovered throughout the empire. The stone tools do not indicate that the earliest populations in Russia were different in lifestyle from those of the same time in Western Europe and the British Isles. The oldest relics (Rooms I., II.) were found alongside mammoth bones in the Murom area of Vladimir and at Kostenki near Voronezh. Some earrings and a twisted silver bracelet were discovered in the Kremlin, along with a few other ancient items during the excavation for the foundation of the new cathedral, but these small finds don’t prove early settlement, as they could have been left by travelers along the waterways.{7}

The frescoes are fanciful representations of supposed incidents in the life of the early inhabitants, and the models of tumuli, tombs, dolmens, cromlechs and the like, enable one to picture some part of the rude life of the people. Particularly deserving notice are the models of the dwellings of different races found in Russia: in many the living room is raised well above the ground. It was on the first-floor that the mediæval Muscovites lived; it is still the bel-étage, and preferred by all.

The frescoes are imaginative depictions of events from the lives of early inhabitants, and the models of burial mounds, tombs, dolmens, cromlechs, and similar structures help visualize aspects of the people’s primitive lives. Notably, the models of the homes of various ethnic groups found in Russia show that in many, the living space is elevated well above the ground. It was on the first floor that medieval Muscovites resided; it remains the bel-étage and is still favored by everyone.

The picture by Semiradski representing the funeral rites of the Bolgars has the warrant of history. On the death of a chief of this tribe, the remains were placed in a boat on a pile of wood; horses, cattle, slaves, were slain and added; the wife, or a maid offering herself a sacrifice, was fêted for a time, then placed in the boat, and as soon as her attendants bade her farewell the pyre was fired, and subsequently a mound raised over the ashes.

The painting by Semiradski depicting the funeral rites of the Bolgars is backed by history. When a chief of this tribe died, the body was placed in a boat on a pile of wood; horses, cattle, and slaves were killed and added. The chief's wife, or a maid who volunteered as a sacrifice, was honored for a time, then placed in the boat. As soon as her attendants said their goodbyes, the pyre was lit, and a mound was raised over the ashes.

The stone idols, remarkable in their likeness to each other, are from all parts of Russia; a similar one is to be seen at Kuntsevo, near Moscow, but both the “babas,” as they are called, and pre-christian crosses, are more common in the south and east of Russia than in Muscovy.

The stone idols, strikingly similar to each other, come from all over Russia; a similar one can be found at Kuntsevo, near Moscow, but both the “babas,” as they are known, and pre-Christian crosses are more common in the southern and eastern parts of Russia than in Muscovy.

To the little that this Historical Collection tells of the early Slavs may be added such facts as ancient chroniclers have recorded. The Russians lived together in communities governed by elected or hereditary elders; reared cattle and farmed bees; they were nomadic, idolatrous, hospitable and fond of fermented liquors.

To the small amount that this Historical Collection shares about the early Slavs, we can also include facts recorded by ancient chroniclers. The Russians lived in communities led by elected or hereditary elders; they raised livestock and farmed bees; they were nomadic, idol-worshipping, hospitable, and enjoyed fermented drinks.

Some writers dispute, disregard, or belittle the Varangian dominion in Russia; contending that the Varœgers themselves were Slavs, were closely akin to them, or were quickly absorbed by them. To the contrary it is urged that Rurik and his followers{8} possessed qualities peculiar to the Northmen; that his kingdom in Russia resembled other Scandinavian colonies, and that certain customs he introduced were foreign to Slav habits. Vladimir, a direct descendant of Rurik, conquered Poland; his son, Yaroslaf, both on account of his warlike achievements and the splendour in which he lived, was respected throughout Europe. His daughters married into the reigning houses of France, Hungary and Norway; a daughter of Vsevolod married Henry IV. of Germany; Vladimir, the grandson of Yaroslaf, married Gyda, the daughter of Harold II. King of England; their son, Mstislaf, married Christina, daughter of the King of Sweden. Such a close connection between the Scandinavian and Russian courts is not likely to have obtained if the members belonged to different races. Scandinavian conquerors to some extent mixed with the peoples whose territory they occupied; usually they married their own race. They fought with each other on matters of precedence and succession; they thought much of personal valour and honour, and lived in the present with little regard to dynasty. They, as little as the Slavs to-day, would pay tribute to suzerains.

Some writers dispute, ignore, or downplay the Varangian rule in Russia, arguing that the Varœgers were actually Slavs, closely related to them, or quickly assimilated by them. On the other hand, it is argued that Rurik and his followers{8} had distinct traits typical of the Northmen; that his kingdom in Russia was similar to other Scandinavian settlements, and that certain customs he introduced were not part of Slav traditions. Vladimir, a direct descendant of Rurik, conquered Poland; his son Yaroslaf earned respect throughout Europe for his military accomplishments and the grandeur in which he lived. His daughters married into the ruling families of France, Hungary, and Norway; one daughter of Vsevolod married Henry IV of Germany; Vladimir, the grandson of Yaroslaf, married Gyda, the daughter of Harold II, King of England; their son, Mstislaf, married Christina, daughter of the King of Sweden. Such a close connection between the Scandinavian and Russian courts is unlikely if the people belonged to different races. Scandinavian conquerors mixed to some extent with the local populations, but usually married within their own race. They often fought over matters of rank and inheritance; they valued personal bravery and honor, and lived in the moment with little regard for lineage. Like the Slavs today, they would not pay tribute to overlords.

Doubtless the Varangian leaders and their military companions, subsequently known as the drujni of the Russian princes, gave to the Slav character love of enterprise and power to initiate—traits which have always distinguished Russian nobles from the peasantry. Again, the “Russkaia Pravda” of the tenth century is contemporary with and akin to “Knut’s Code,” which the English usually, but wrongly, attribute to King Alfred. One other point tells in favour of Scandinavian dominion: the freedom accorded to women and the high position some of them took in the state. But their privileges and influence declined with the ascendency of the Slav, and the seclusion of women in the{9} Asiatic manner subsequently obtained in Moscow and lasted there until the days of Peter the Great.

Certainly, the Varangian leaders and their military allies, later known as the drujni of the Russian princes, instilled in the Slavic character a passion for adventure and the drive to take initiative—qualities that have consistently set Russian nobles apart from the peasantry. Furthermore, the “Russkaia Pravda” from the tenth century is contemporary with and similar to “Knut’s Code,” which the English often, but incorrectly, credit to King Alfred. Another factor in favor of Scandinavian control is the freedom given to women and the significant roles some of them held in governance. However, their rights and influence waned with the rise of the Slavs, leading to the confinement of women in the{9} Asian style that prevailed in Moscow and persisted until the era of Peter the Great.

The Northmen introduced into Russia their system of succession, the odelsret that still prevails in Norway. The descendants of Rurik, with their military comrades, fought against each other for the throne of Kief, or the inheritance of other possessions. As with each succeeding generation the princely family multiplied, the country was rent with dissensions. Now the ruler of Kief, then he of Novgorod became paramount; in 1158 the reigning prince of Vladimir succeeded, and, for the time, Kief became of second importance. The history of Russia during the tenth and succeeding centuries is a story of strife and disaster. Wars, with varying success, against Poles, Swedes, Lithuanians, and the predatory tribes on the south and east; fires, famine, pestilence, succeeded each other and re-occurred. In 1124 Kief, the opulent and sacred city, was destroyed by fire; some years later Novgorod was depopulated by famine; robbers exacted blackmail from voyagers on the great waterways; trade decayed. In 1224 the Russians made common cause with their enemy the Polovtsi to repel an invasion of Tartars; they were beaten and Kief fell—50,000 of its inhabitants being put to the sword. Thirteen years later a second invasion of the Tartars resulted in the fall of Vladimir and the subjection of southern and eastern Russia to Mongol rule. Livonians, Swedes and Danes attacked Novgorod, but were repulsed. Pressed on these sides the Russians could extend only towards the inhospitable north. In these times and with this environment Moscow was founded, and nursed; became a rallying point for the Slav race; grew strong and rich; and, by the genius of its rulers, dominated Russia.

The Northmen brought their system of succession to Russia, the odelsret, which is still in use in Norway. The descendants of Rurik, along with their military allies, fought each other for the throne of Kief and other territories. As each generation of the royal family grew, the nation became more divided. One ruler of Kief would take precedence, then another from Novgorod; in 1158, the reigning prince of Vladimir came to power, making Kief less significant for a time. The history of Russia from the tenth century onward is marked by conflict and calamity. There were wars, with inconsistent victories, against the Poles, Swedes, Lithuanians, and marauding tribes from the south and east; disasters like fires, famine, and plague followed one after another. In 1124, Kief, the wealthy and revered city, was destroyed by fire; a few years later, famine decimated Novgorod; robbers extorted travelers on the major waterways; commerce declined. In 1224, the Russians joined forces with their enemy, the Polovtsi, to fend off a Tartar invasion; they were defeated, and Kief fell, with 50,000 of its residents killed. Thirteen years later, a second Tartar invasion led to the fall of Vladimir and the subjugation of southern and eastern Russia to Mongol control. Livonians, Swedes, and Danes attacked Novgorod but were driven back. With pressure from these sides, the Russians could only expand into the harsh north. During this period and under these conditions, Moscow was established and nurtured; it became a gathering place for the Slavic people; it grew strong and prosperous; and, through the brilliance of its leaders, it came to dominate Russia.

Slowly but surely the Scandinavian element was{10} absorbed; with Ivan I. (1328-1341) the time of transition practically ended. A new policy of aggrandisement was adopted and the Muscovite was evolved from the Slav race. Round Moscow, subject to the Tartar yoke, the people became patient and resigned; born to endure bad fortune, they could profit by good. The princes of Moscow gained their ends by intrigue, by corruption, by the purchase of consciences, by servility to the Tartar Khans, by perfidy to their equals, by murder and treachery. “Politic and persevering, prudent and pitiless, it is their honour to have created the living germ which became great Russia.”{11}

Slowly but surely, the Scandinavian influence was{10} absorbed; with Ivan I. (1328-1341), the period of transition practically came to an end. A new strategy of expansion was adopted, and the Muscovite was shaped from the Slavic race. Around Moscow, under the Tartar rule, the people became tolerant and resigned; born to withstand hardship, they could make the most of good times. The princes of Moscow achieved their goals through scheming, corruption, buying loyalties, submissiveness to the Tartar Khans, betrayal of their peers, murder, and deceit. “Cunning and persistent, wise and ruthless, it is their legacy to have created the living foundation that grew into great Russia.”{11}

CHAPTER II

Origin and Early History

“Away in the depths of the primeval forest, where one heard the low chanting of the solitary hermit in his retreat, arises the glorious Kremlin of Moscow town.”

“Away in the depths of the ancient forest, where you could hear the soft chanting of the lone hermit in his hideaway, stands the magnificent Kremlin of Moscow.”

M. Dmitriev.

M. Dmitriev.

IT is generally believed that the word Moscow is of Finnish origin; in an old dialect kva means water, the exact significance of Mos is undecided, probably Moskva implies “the-way,” simply—the water-route to some trading point reached by this river from the Volga and Oka. It was the name by which the river was known, and from time immemorial there have been villages on the banks of the stream near the present town of Moscow.

It's widely accepted that the word Moscow comes from Finnish; in an old dialect, kva means water, while the exact meaning of Mos isn't clear. It's likely that Moskva means “the way,” referring specifically to the water route to a trading point that this river connects to from the Volga and Oka. This was the river's name, and villages have existed along its banks near what is now Moscow for a very long time.

In the ninth century the hill which the Kremlin now covers was virgin forest. According to tradition Bookal, a hermit, was living there in 882, when Oleg, on his return to Novgorod from Kief, paused there and laid the first stone of the city. Sulkhovski, who had access to the archives of Moscow prior to their removal on the French invasion, asserts that there was documentary proof of this then in existence, but his statement lacks confirmation.

In the ninth century, the hill that the Kremlin currently sits on was untouched forest. According to tradition, Bookal, a hermit, was living there in 882 when Oleg, on his way back to Novgorod from Kief, stopped there and laid the first stone of the city. Sulkhovski, who had access to Moscow's archives before they were moved during the French invasion, claims there was documentary evidence of this at that time, but his statement hasn't been confirmed.

The chroniclers make no mention of Moscow until 1147. Between the foundation of the Rurik dynasty and this date the dominion of the Northmen had extended, and, divided and subdivided as generation succeeded generation, was split up into many districts,{12} each ruled by a descendant of Rurik. These princes all claimed kinship, admitted the rights of their elders and the rule of the head of the house in Kief. In addition to the residences of the princes, their drujni, that is “war companions” or friends, had “halls,” and held, subject to their prince, one or more villages. In the twelfth century one Stephen Kutchko had his hall near the Chisty Prud in Moscow, and the villages between the Moskva and the Yauza, with others, were within his lordship.

The chroniclers don't mention Moscow until 1147. Between the founding of the Rurik dynasty and this date, the Northmen's influence had spread, and as generations passed, it became divided into many regions,{12} each ruled by a descendant of Rurik. These princes all claimed to be related, recognized the authority of their ancestors, and accepted the leadership of the head of the house in Kief. Alongside the residences of the princes, their drujni, or “war companions” and friends, had “halls” and held, under their prince's authority, one or more villages. In the twelfth century, a man named Stephen Kutchko had his hall near Chisty Prud in Moscow, and the villages between the Moskva and Yauza rivers, among others, were under his control.

In 1147 Yuri Dolgoruki, the Prince of Suzdal, in whose country Moscow was situated, agreed to meet his kinsmen Sviatoslaf and Oleg of Novgorod on the banks of the Moskva river, and thither they came with their drujni, and others, all of whom were so sumptuously entertained by Yuri, that the fame of Moscow and of Yuri was noised abroad.

In 1147, Yuri Dolgoruki, the Prince of Suzdal, whose territory included Moscow, arranged to meet his relatives Sviatoslaf and Oleg of Novgorod by the Moskva river. They arrived with their drujni and others, and Yuri hosted them so lavishly that the reputation of Moscow and Yuri spread far and wide.

As the river Moskva was a highway for traffic between Suzdal, Vladimir and the Volga in the east, with Smolensk in the west and Kief in the south, the villages on its banks were important. The hill on which the Kremlin stands appeared to Yuri a point of vantage, and, as it was near the boundary of his territory, he there constructed a fortress and also built, or rebuilt or enlarged, the church which served for the inhabitants of the village of Kutchkovo hard by, and for those of other villages in the neighbourhood.

As the Moskva River served as a route for traffic between Suzdal, Vladimir, and the Volga to the east, with Smolensk to the west and Kief to the south, the villages along its banks were significant. The hill where the Kremlin stands seemed to Yuri like a strategic location, and since it was close to the edge of his territory, he built a fortress there and also built, rebuilt, or expanded the church that served the people of the nearby village of Kutchkovo, as well as those from other local villages.

All chroniclers agree that Yuri was the first to make a stronghold of the hill on the Moskva; most state further that he put to death Stephen Kutchko, but attribute this act to different causes. One story has it that Yuri wished to wed the wife of Stephen, so put him out of the way. As Yuri was but recently married to a kinswoman of Mstislaf, and so allied to the dominant house in Novgorod, this story is improbable. Another legend is to the effect that Kutchko, proud{13}

All historians agree that Yuri was the first to build a fortress on the hill by the Moskva River; most also claim that he killed Stephen Kutchko but ascribe this act to different reasons. One version suggests that Yuri wanted to marry Stephen's wife, so he eliminated him. Since Yuri had just married a relative of Mstislaf, thus connecting him to the ruling family in Novgorod, this story seems unlikely. Another tale suggests that Kutchko, prideful{13}



THE KREMLIN, FROM THE MOSKVA

THE KREMLIN, FROM THE MOSKVA

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
THE KREMLIN, FROM THE MOSCOW

{14}

{14}

{15}

{15}

of his village, refused due homage to his superior lord, and so suffered; and another that a village was taken from Kutchko to endow Andrew Bogoloobski, a son of Yuri’s wedded to the daughter of a neighbouring boyard, whence the trouble. This last story is supported by the fact that later the sons of the killed Kutchko conspired against the enriched Andrew Bogoloobski; one was killed in attacking him, whilst the other succeeded in avenging a wrong done. Later historians are of opinion that Kutchko was an interloper from Black Russia or Podolia, trespassing on the territory of Yuri, who treated him as a usurper.

of his village, refused to pay proper respect to his superior lord, and thus faced consequences; and another story mentions that a village was taken from Kutchko to give to Andrew Bogoloobski, a son of Yuri, who was married to the daughter of a neighboring nobleman, leading to the conflict. This latter story is backed by the fact that later the sons of the slain Kutchko plotted against the wealthy Andrew Bogoloobski; one was killed while trying to attack him, while the other managed to avenge a wrong done. Later historians believe that Kutchko was an outsider from Black Russia or Podolia, invading Yuri's territory, who viewed him as a usurper.

It was in 1156 that Moscow became a town—just a cluster of dwellings on the Kremlin hill with a fence extending from the narrow stream Neglinnaia (now a covered sewer under the Alexander Gardens), from the Troitski Gate to the Moskva at, or near, the Tainitski Gate. The chief house was built on the spot now covered by the Orujnia Palata. A church, Spass na Boru, St Saviour of the Pines, is supposed to have existed where the church of that name, the oldest building in the Kremlin, now stands. Another church, dedicated to St John the Baptist, once existed nearer the foot of the hill, and its altar was removed to the chapel adjoining the Borovitski Gate when a later erection was demolished. Both of these churches were known as “In the Wood,” and the name still preserves the memory of the thick forest that once covered the hill, and probably extended far and near on both sides of the Moskva.

It was in 1156 that Moscow became a town—just a group of homes on the Kremlin hill with a fence stretching from the narrow stream Neglinnaia (now a covered sewer under the Alexander Gardens), from the Troitski Gate to the Moskva River at, or near, the Tainitski Gate. The main house was built where the Orujnia Palata now stands. A church, Spass na Boru, St. Saviour of the Pines, is said to have existed where the church of that name, the oldest building in the Kremlin, stands today. Another church, dedicated to St. John the Baptist, used to be located closer to the foot of the hill, and its altar was moved to the chapel next to the Borovitski Gate when a later building was torn down. Both of these churches were known as “In the Wood,” and the name still remembers the thick forest that once covered the hill and likely extended far and wide on both sides of the Moskva.

The founder of Moscow, Kniaz Yuri Dolgoruki Vladimirovich, or, as the English call him, Prince George Long-ith’-arm, Vladimir’s son, was a son of that Prince of Kief who married Gyda, the daughter of Harold II. of England. Yuri, like his father, was a man of great energy and did much to strengthen and{16} improve the towns within his territory. He is described as “above the middle height, stout, fair complexioned, with a large nose, long and crooked; his chin small; a great lover of women, sweet things and liquor; great at merry-makings, and not backward in war.”

The founder of Moscow, Prince Yuri Dolgoruki Vladimirovich, or as the English refer to him, Prince George Long-Arm, son of Vladimir, was the son of that Prince of Kievan Rus who married Gyda, the daughter of Harold II of England. Yuri, like his father, was a man of great energy and did a lot to strengthen and{16} improve the towns in his territory. He is described as “taller than average, stout, fair-skinned, with a large long crooked nose; a small chin; a big fan of women, sweets, and alcohol; great at parties, and not shy in battle.”

For a century or more Moscow remained in obscurity, an insignificant appanage of the younger sons of the princes of Suzdal. It was long before any of the reigning house made it a place of residence. In the meantime, a stronghold, it attracted traders and the attention of enemies. Gleb of Riazan has the distinction of being the first to set fire to the town, but the earliest enemy of importance was the Tartar.

For over a century, Moscow stayed in the shadows, a minor outpost for the younger sons of the princes of Suzdal. It took a long time before any members of the ruling family made it their home. In the meantime, it developed into a stronghold, drawing in traders and catching the eyes of its enemies. Gleb of Riazan was the first to burn the town, but the first significant enemy was the Tartar.

In 1224 the Golden Horde defeated the Slavs in South Russia, destroyed Kief, marched towards Novgorod Sverski, then, “without ostensible reason,” returned to Bokhara, to the camp of their leader, Khingiz Khan. In 1237 Baati, a grandson of Khingiz, crossed the Volga and laid the country waste. On the march of this horde westward Moscow was burnt; Vladimir was first taken. There the princess and other persons of distinction took refuge in a church, where they were burnt alive. Yuri II., the reigning prince, absent at the time, then attempted revenge and was slain in battle. There was little resistance; the Tartars subdued many towns and reduced whole provinces; marched within sixty miles of Novgorod Sverski, then again “without ostensible cause” turned eastward and left Russia.

In 1224, the Golden Horde defeated the Slavs in Southern Russia, destroyed Kiev, marched towards Novgorod Sverski, and then, "for no clear reason," returned to Bokhara, to the camp of their leader, Genghis Khan. In 1237, Batu, a grandson of Genghis, crossed the Volga and devastated the land. As this horde marched westward, Moscow was burned; Vladimir was taken first. There, the princess and other notable figures sought refuge in a church, where they were burned alive. Yuri II, the reigning prince, who was away at the time, then sought revenge and was killed in battle. Resistance was minimal; the Tatars conquered many towns and subdued entire provinces, advancing within sixty miles of Novgorod Sverski, and then again "for no clear reason" turned eastward and left Russia.

The Tartar was not driven from his own country; he raided because it was his nature so to do. The object of these early incursions, as of subsequent raids into Russian territory, was “to get stores of captives, both boys and girls, whom they sell to the Turks and other neighbouring Mahometan countries.” Rich towns, therefore, could buy the Tartar off; a fact{17}

The Tartar wasn’t forced out of his homeland; he raided because that’s just who he was. The goal of these early attacks, like the later ones into Russian land, was “to collect captives, both boys and girls, whom they sell to the Turks and other nearby Muslim countries.” Wealthy towns could, therefore, pay off the Tartar; a fact{17}

which influenced the later policy of the Muscovites. Poor towns and ill-protected districts were, until a comparatively recent period, liable to “slave-raids” from Tartars and others. The Sultan Ahmed I. of Constantinople asked of Osman, his eldest son and heir, “My Osman, wilt thou conquer Crete for me?”

which influenced the later policy of the Muscovites. Poor towns and poorly protected areas were, until quite recently, at risk of “slave-raids” from Tartars and others. Sultan Ahmed I of Constantinople asked his eldest son and heir Osman, “My Osman, will you conquer Crete for me?”



DANILOVSKI MONASTYR

DANILOVSKI MONASTYR

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Danilovski Monastery

“What have I to do with Crete? I will conquer the land of the white Russian girls,” answered the boy. And as he thought to do, so many of his race did. It was not until the present century that the exchange of prisoners of war became the practice of Turks and{18} Russians. The Tartars, with their enormous crowd of captives, could not winter in Russia, hence their timely withdrawal “without ostensible cause” on several occasions.

“What do I care about Crete? I’m going to conquer the land of the white Russian girls,” the boy replied. And just like that, many of his people did the same. It wasn’t until this century that exchanging prisoners of war became common for the Turks and{18} Russians. The Tartars, with their huge number of captives, couldn’t survive the winter in Russia, so they withdrew “without a visible reason” on several occasions.

Moscow was soon rebuilt after this Tartar invasion. A few years later Michael Khorobrit, a brother of the successful Alexander Nevski, ruler of Novgorod, succeeded to Moscow, and became its first actual prince; but during the war the Lithuanians commenced against Novgorod in 1242, Michael was killed. Tradition has it that this Michael was the builder of the first cathedral of the Archangel in the Kremlin.

Moscow was quickly rebuilt after the Tartar invasion. A few years later, Michael Khorobrit, the brother of the successful Alexander Nevski, who ruled Novgorod, became the first real prince of Moscow. However, during the war the Lithuanians started against Novgorod in 1242, Michael was killed. Tradition says that this Michael was the builder of the first Archangel Cathedral in the Kremlin.

He was succeeded in Moscow by Daniel, the fourth son of Alexander Nevski, and thenceforward the fortunes of Novgorod and Moscow were more in common. Moscow was chief of the few villages Daniel received as his portion. He made the most of it. In 1293 the Tartars, under Dudenia, fired the town and destroyed the churches, monastery, and all buildings on the Kremlin hill. Daniel set energetically to work to build a larger and stronger town. He re-erected the church Spass na Boru; built the cathedral of the Archangel, and that of the Annunciation; founded the Danilof monastery, and incorporated the one known as Krutitski. He so added to the town that it quickly became prosperous, and when he died in 1303 his son, George, succeeded to a position of wealth and power. Daniel was of the line of Rurik, and from him were descended the subsequently mighty race of Moscow Tsars. George acquired Mojaisk; then began a struggle with Tver, which continued from father to son, lasted eighty years. The quarrel arose from a disputed succession. Andrew, Prince of Suzdal, died in 1304; George of Moscow, his nephew, wished to succeed him. His right to do so was questioned by Michael of Tver,{19} who was cousin-german of the deceased. Michael, the eldest, was accepted by the boyars, and his election was confirmed by the Tartars, who claimed the right of appointing the sovereign. George then caused himself to be recognised as a Prince of Novgorod, and still disputed. Michael besieged him in Moscow, and for a time there was peace. Then George again attempted to obtain Tver, and a second time he was forced to take refuge in Moscow, which was again besieged by Michael.

He was succeeded in Moscow by Daniel, the fourth son of Alexander Nevsky, and from then on, the fortunes of Novgorod and Moscow were closely linked. Moscow was the main village that Daniel received as his share. He made the most of it. In 1293, the Tartars, led by Dudenia, set fire to the town and destroyed the churches, monastery, and all the buildings on the Kremlin hill. Daniel got to work immediately to build a larger and stronger town. He rebuilt the church Spass na Boru, constructed the cathedral of the Archangel, and that of the Annunciation; founded the Danilov monastery, and merged it with another known as Krutitski. He expanded the town so much that it quickly became prosperous, and when he died in 1303, his son, George, inherited a position of wealth and power. Daniel was part of the Rurik dynasty, and from him descended the eventually powerful line of Moscow Tsars. George acquired Mojaisk, and then began a conflict with Tver that lasted eighty years, passed down from father to son. The quarrel started over a disputed succession. Andrew, Prince of Suzdal, died in 1304, and George of Moscow, his nephew, wanted to succeed him. His claim was challenged by Michael of Tver, who was a cousin of the deceased. Michael, being the eldest, was supported by the boyars, and his election was confirmed by the Tartars, who claimed the right to appoint the ruler. George then had himself acknowledged as a Prince of Novgorod and continued to dispute it. Michael besieged him in Moscow, and for a while, there was peace. Then George tried again to take Tver, and once again, he was forced to seek refuge in Moscow, which was besieged by Michael again.

Tokhta, Khan of the Golden Horde of Tartars on the Volga, died; he was succeeded by Usbek, to whom George of Moscow at once repaired to do homage and obtain favours. He so represented affairs to Usbek that he obtained from him his sister Kontchaka in marriage, and was adjudged rightful successor to Andrew of Suzdal. George returned to Russia accompanied by a Mongol army under a baskak, one Kavgadi. The boyards still supported Michael, who was a great fighter. Michael, refusing to submit to Kavgadi, was accused of having drawn sword against an envoy of the Khan, and later, when Kontchaka died, of having poisoned her. To arrange this matter Michael, busy in defending his province against other enemies, sent his twelve-year old son to the Horde; George went himself and compassed the fall of his rival. The Khan reluctantly complied with George’s request for a sentence of death upon Michael; it was no sooner granted than George hastened away to give it effect, and Michael was done to death in his tent by George’s servants. Michael became a saint; George the all-powerful ruler of Moscow, Suzdal and Novgorod.

Tokhta, the Khan of the Golden Horde of Tartars on the Volga, died; he was succeeded by Usbek, to whom George of Moscow immediately went to pay his respects and seek favors. He presented his case to Usbek in such a way that he secured the hand of Usbek's sister, Kontchaka, in marriage, and was recognized as the rightful heir to Andrew of Suzdal. George returned to Russia accompanied by a Mongol army led by a baskak, a man named Kavgadi. The boyars continued to support Michael, who was a formidable warrior. Michael, refusing to submit to Kavgadi, was accused of drawing his sword against an envoy of the Khan, and later, when Kontchaka died, of poisoning her. To resolve this issue, Michael, busy defending his territory against other threats, sent his twelve-year-old son to the Horde; George went himself and orchestrated the downfall of his rival. The Khan reluctantly agreed to George’s request for a death sentence on Michael; as soon as it was granted, George rushed off to carry it out, and Michael was killed in his tent by George’s servants. Michael became a saint; George emerged as the all-powerful ruler of Moscow, Suzdal, and Novgorod.

Dmitri, of the “terrible eyes,” son of Michael, succeeded to Tver and determined upon revenge. When at last he met George of Moscow he slew him, but for thus going against his superior prince was himself{20} put to death, and his brother, Alexander, succeeded him in Vladimir in 1325.

Dmitri, with the “terrible eyes,” son of Michael, took control of Tver and decided to seek revenge. When he finally confronted George of Moscow, he killed him, but for defying his overlord, he was himself{20} put to death, and his brother, Alexander, took over in Vladimir in 1325.

Such is the story of the little wooden town. Its rulers—with, possibly, the exception of Daniel—regarded it merely as a property, the possession of which might lead to the acquisition of a more important capital. It flourished because it was in the midst of a country that was self-supporting, as well as being conveniently situated as a mart for the interchange of products from north and south, east and west. Its disasters were such as other towns suffered; its advantages of site they did not possess.{21}

This is the story of the little wooden town. Its leaders—except maybe Daniel—saw it just as a piece of property, something that could lead to a more significant capital. It thrived because it was in the middle of a self-sustaining area and was conveniently located for trading goods from the north and south, east and west. Its challenges were like those faced by other towns; however, they didn’t have the same advantages of location.{21}

CHAPTER III

Moscow under the Mongols

“At Sara, in the land of Tartary,
There lived a king who ruled Russia. ChaucerStory of Bold Cambuscan.

THE first real prince of Moscow was Ivan I., surnamed “Kalita” (the Purser), who of his own right inherited Moscow from his father, Daniel, and by the grace of the Khan, was also Grand Prince of Vladimir in succession to his brother George. He made alliances, matrimonial and other, for himself and his, so adding to his possessions, and by purchase acquiring also Uglitch, Galitch and Bielozersk. Like his brother he kept on good terms with the Khan. At the command of Usbek he made war on Tver, Novgorod and Pskov. The Tartar Horde and the Muscovites fought in concert against Russian enemies. When Tver rose against the Tartar, Ivan, with Moscow, was on the side of the Mongols. When Usbek ordered him to produce Alexander of Tver, who was a fugitive in Pskov, Ivan induced the metropolitan to interdict Alexander and the Pskovians—thus a Christian prince and people were excommunicated by their own kin at the behest of Tartars.

THE first true prince of Moscow was Ivan I., known as “Kalita” (the Purser), who inherited Moscow from his father, Daniel, and was granted the title of Grand Prince of Vladimir by the Khan, following his brother George. He arranged alliances, both marriages and others, for himself and his family, expanding his territory, and he also acquired Uglitch, Galitch, and Bielozersk through purchases. Like his brother, he maintained good relations with the Khan. Following Usbek's orders, he waged war on Tver, Novgorod, and Pskov. The Tartar Horde and the people of Moscow collaborated against their Russian adversaries. When Tver rebelled against the Tartars, Ivan sided with the Mongols alongside Moscow. When Usbek demanded that he hand over Alexander of Tver, who had sought refuge in Pskov, Ivan persuaded the metropolitan to excommunicate Alexander and the people of Pskov—thus, a Christian prince and his people were ostracized by their own kin at the request of the Tartars.

Ivan “Kalita,” in his turn, served the church well. Peter, the metropolitan of Vladimir, had often resided in Moscow; Theognistus lived there almost constantly; and for Ivan, Vladimir was only the town in which{22} he had been crowned. It was in Moscow that he lived and for Moscow he worked. In order to make it attractive to the metropolitan and to obtain for it the religious supremacy which had first belonged to Kiev, then to Vladimir, he built magnificent churches—notably that of the Assumption (Uspenski Sober)—and was practically successful in so far that Moscow had the prestige of a metropolis; but Vladimir remained the legal capital, and as such was recognised by the Khans.

Ivan “Kalita” did a great job serving the church. Peter, the metropolitan of Vladimir, often stayed in Moscow; Theognistus lived there almost all the time. For Ivan, Vladimir was just the town where he had been crowned. He lived in Moscow and worked for Moscow. To make it appealing to the metropolitan and reclaim the religious authority that had originally belonged to Kiev and then to Vladimir, he built impressive churches—especially the Assumption Cathedral (Uspenski Sober)—and he was mostly successful in elevating Moscow’s status to that of a metropolis. However, Vladimir still held its position as the legal capital and was recognized as such by the Khans.

Ivan surrounded the hill with a wall of oak in place of the deal fence formerly its sole protection, and he gave to the enclosure the Tartar name of “Kreml” or fortress. This then included his own dwelling; the cathedrals of the Assumption, of the Annunciation and of the Archangel Michael; the churches of Spass na Boru and of St John the Baptist; as also the dwellings of his drujni, followers and military companions. It was at his instigation too, that Sergius founded the Troitsa monastery in order to rival the Pecherskoi monastery and catacombs of Kiev. Ivan knew well the power of money and was free in using it; he was cunning, unscrupulous and discerning. He demanded and obtained from Novgorod more than he intended to pay on her behalf to Usbek, and was everywhere successful as farmer-general of taxes and imposts made on Russia by the Horde. When he died, in 1341, he ordered that Moscow should not be divided, and he left by far the largest portion of his possessions to his son Simeon, surnamed “The Proud.”

Ivan surrounded the hill with a wall of oak instead of the deal fence that had been its only protection before, and he named the enclosure “Kreml,” meaning fortress, in Tartar. This included his own home, the cathedrals of the Assumption, Annunciation, and Archangel Michael, the churches of Spass na Boru and St John the Baptist, as well as the homes of his drujni, followers, and military companions. It was also at his urging that Sergius founded the Troitsa monastery to compete with the Pecherskoi monastery and catacombs of Kiev. Ivan understood the power of money and used it freely; he was clever, ruthless, and sharp. He demanded and received from Novgorod more than he planned to pay on her behalf to Usbek, and he was consistently successful as the general collector of taxes and levies imposed on Russia by the Horde. When he died in 1341, he instructed that Moscow should not be divided, and he left the vast majority of his possessions to his son Simeon, who was nicknamed “The Proud.”

Simeon, most submissive before the Khan, bought over the horde by using his father’s treasure. To his brothers he was haughty and overbearing. As intermediary between the Tartars and Russian states he enjoyed privileges denied to his seniors, and arrogated to himself the title and position of “Prince of all{23} the Russias.” He continued his father’s policy in Moscow, engaging Greek artists to ornament the cathedrals, and many native workmen to enlarge and improve the buildings within the Kremlin, spending upon Moscow the tribute he exacted from Novgorod and other towns.

Simeon, completely compliant with the Khan, used his father’s wealth to win over the horde. To his brothers, he was proud and overbearing. As a mediator between the Tartars and Russian states, he enjoyed privileges that were not available to his elders, and he took on the title and role of “Prince of all{23} the Russias.” He continued his father’s policies in Moscow, hiring Greek artists to decorate the cathedrals and many local craftsmen to expand and enhance the buildings within the Kremlin, spending the tribute he collected from Novgorod and other towns on Moscow.

Ivan II. who succeeded him, 1353, was of quite another sort. Gentle, pacific, lovable—all outraged him; he would have lost his throne had not the church supported him loyally. Moris, a monk, quelled a revolt; a fire destroyed the Kremlin; when he died the succession to the title of Grand Duke, which his three predecessors had made such efforts to keep in the house of Moscow, passed to their kinsmen at Suzdal.

Ivan II, who took over in 1353, was a different kind of leader. He was gentle, peaceful, and lovable—traits that were seen as weak; he would have lost his throne if the church hadn't supported him so faithfully. A monk named Moris put down a rebellion; a fire wiped out the Kremlin; and when Ivan II died, the title of Grand Duke, which his three predecessors had worked hard to keep within the house of Moscow, went to their relatives in Suzdal.

Alexis, the metropolitan, saved the supremacy of Moscow. After crowning Dmitri at Vladimir he returned to Moscow to take charge of the children of Ivan II. and refused to leave the town. Dmitri was in his ninth year when he succeeded his father in Moscow, and remained in the tutelage of the church for many years. It was to the prompting of Alexis even more than to that of his own kinsmen that the breach of the Tartar alliance is due. Dmitri availed himself of a division in the Tartar horde to question the supremacy of either leader. Later he had the courage to visit Mamai—who was then the more powerful—and had the good luck to get back alive. Seven years later he won a battle against Mamai, in Riazan.

Alexis, the city leader, saved Moscow's dominance. After crowning Dmitri in Vladimir, he returned to Moscow to take care of Ivan II's children and refused to leave the city. Dmitri was just nine years old when he took over in Moscow and remained under the church's guidance for many years. It was largely due to Alexis's influence, even more than that of his own relatives, that the break with the Tartar alliance occurred. Dmitri took advantage of a split within the Tartar horde to challenge the authority of both leaders. Later, he had the bravery to visit Mamai—who was then the stronger leader—and fortunately returned alive. Seven years later, he defeated Mamai in a battle in Riazan.

In 1635 a fire on All Saints’ Day destroyed the Kremlin wall and, a storm raging at the time, Moscow was almost in ruins. In 1367 the Kremlin was surrounded with a new wall—of masonry—and in the following year this was put to the test when an attack was made on Moscow by some bands of pagan Lithuanians under Olgerd, his brother Kistut and his subsequently famous nephew Vitovt. “Olgerd camped{24} before the walls, pillaged the churches and monasteries in the neighbourhood, but did not assault the Kremlin, the walls of which frightened him.” Two years later he returned to the attack, but his enterprise was unsuccessful. In the meantime Mamai, the Tartar leader, had matured his scheme of revenge. In 1380 he had collected his forces and was marching on Moscow when Dmitri, with the aid of all the neighbouring princes, got together an immense army and determined to give battle.

In 1635, a fire on All Saints’ Day destroyed the Kremlin wall, and with a storm raging at the time, Moscow was nearly ruined. In 1367, a new masonry wall was built around the Kremlin, which was tested the following year when pagan Lithuanian bands led by Olgerd, his brother Kistut, and his renowned nephew Vitovt attacked Moscow. “Olgerd camped{24} outside the walls, pillaged the churches and monasteries nearby, but didn’t assault the Kremlin, which frightened him with its walls.” Two years later, he tried again, but his efforts were unsuccessful. In the meantime, Mamai, the Tartar leader, had developed his plan for revenge. In 1380, he gathered his forces and was marching on Moscow when Dmitri, with help from all the neighboring princes, assembled a huge army and decided to fight back.

The confederate troops gathered in the Kremlin included contingents supplied by the princes of Rostov, Bielozersk and Yaroslaf, and the boyards of Vladimir, Suzdal, Uglitch, Serpukhov, Dmitrov, Mojaisk and other towns. After service in the cathedral they left by the Frolovski (Spasski) Nikolski and other gates in the east wall, escorted by the clergy with crucifixes and miracle-working ikons, the troops marching behind a black standard on which was painted a portrait of the Saviour on a nimbus of gold.

The Confederate troops gathered in the Kremlin included units provided by the princes of Rostov, Bielozersk, and Yaroslav, as well as the boyars from Vladimir, Suzdal, Uglitch, Serpukhov, Dmitrov, Mojaisk, and other towns. After a service in the cathedral, they departed through the Frolovski (Spasski), Nikolski, and other gates in the east wall, accompanied by the clergy holding crucifixes and miraculous ikons, with the troops marching behind a black banner bearing a portrait of the Savior surrounded by a golden halo.

Dmitri before advancing against the Tartars went to St Sergius at the Troitsa monastery to ask his blessing, and was there comforted with a prophecy of victory. More, Sergius sent two monks, Osliabia and Peresvet, to encourage the Muscovites. They wore a cross on their cowls and went into the thick of the battle. Peresvet was found dead on the field tightly grasping a Patsinak giant who had slain him. The armies met at Kulikovo on the Don, where Dmitri with his 150,000 men after a hard fight obtained the victory, and Mamai fled. The battle was really won by the troops of Vladimir and Dmitri of Volhynia, whose men remained in ambush until the best moment for attack came.

Before advancing against the Tartars, Dmitri went to St. Sergius at the Troitsa monastery to seek his blessing, where he was comforted by a prophecy of victory. Additionally, Sergius sent two monks, Osliabia and Peresvet, to encourage the Muscovites. They wore a cross on their hoods and entered the heart of the battle. Peresvet was found dead on the field, tightly gripping a Patsinak giant who had killed him. The armies met at Kulikovo on the Don, where Dmitri, with his 150,000 men, won the battle after a tough fight, causing Mamai to flee. The victory was truly thanks to the troops from Vladimir and Dmitri of Volhynia, whose men stayed in ambush until the perfect moment to strike.

With historians Dmitri, who, badly wounded, was found in a swoon after the battle, is the hero of{25} the day, and he added the name of Donskoi to commemorate the victory. Sophronius, a priest of Riazan, who wrote an epic of the battle, awards chief honours to the monks, and makes St Sergius, through them, support the courage of Dmitri at critical stages.

With historians Dmitri, who was badly wounded and found unconscious after the battle, is the hero of{25} the day, and he added the name of Donskoi to honor the victory. Sophronius, a priest from Riazan, who wrote an epic about the battle, gives primary credit to the monks and has St. Sergius, through them, bolster Dmitri's courage during crucial moments.

Though Mamai was beaten by Dmitri, he fought again before he fell into the hands of his rival Tamerlane, who put him to death. Then Tamerlane sent an envoy to Dmitri acquainting him with the fact that their common enemy had been vanquished and calling upon him and all Russian princes to present themselves to him and make their homage to the Horde.

Though Mamai was defeated by Dmitri, he fought again before he was captured by his rival Tamerlane, who executed him. Then Tamerlane sent a messenger to Dmitri to inform him that their shared enemy had been defeated and urged him and all the Russian princes to come to him and show their respect to the Horde.

Dmitri failed to comply, and when the Tartars advanced into his territory he tried to raise an army to oppose them. The princes who had promised him support failed to afford it, and Dmitri, unable to get 40,000 men together, was still waiting reinforcements at Kostroma when the Tartars under Tokhtamysh, a descendant of Khingis Khan, appeared before the walls of Moscow.

Dmitri didn’t follow through, and when the Tartars moved into his land, he tried to gather an army to fight them. The princes who had promised to help him didn't come through, and Dmitri, unable to assemble 40,000 men, was still waiting for reinforcements at Kostroma when the Tartars led by Tokhtamysh, a descendant of Genghis Khan, showed up at the walls of Moscow.

The defence of the Kremlin was in the hands of a Lithuanian, Ostei, and the Tartar attack was repulsed; boiling water being thrown from the towers; stones and baulks of timber dropped from the walls upon the assailants in the ditch. For three days the Tartars tried to effect an entrance by force. Then Tokhtamysh stated that it was not with the people of Moscow the Tartars were at war, but only with their prince and his companions, inviting those who had sought refuge in the Kremlin to come out and occupy their dwellings where they would not be molested. The besieged believed him, and, laden with presents and preceded by the clergy, they went out of the Kremlin to meet the enemy as friends. The Tartars at once fell upon them, killed Ostei and the other leaders, and forced a way into the{26} fortress. The defenders were demoralised, “they cried out like feeble women and tore their hair, making no attempt even to save themselves. The Tartars slew without mercy; 24,000 perished. They broke into the churches and treasuries, pillaged everywhere, and burned a mass of books, papers and whatever they could not otherwise destroy; not a house was left standing save the few built of stone.”

The defense of the Kremlin was led by a Lithuanian named Ostei, and the Tartar attack was fought off; boiling water was thrown from the towers, and stones and logs were dropped from the walls onto the attackers in the ditch. For three days, the Tartars attempted to break in by force. Then Tokhtamysh declared that their conflict wasn’t with the people of Moscow, but only with their prince and his followers, inviting those who had sought safety in the Kremlin to come out and return to their homes, where they wouldn’t be harmed. The besieged believed him and, loaded with gifts and led by the clergy, they left the Kremlin to greet the enemy as allies. The Tartars immediately attacked them, killed Ostei and the other leaders, and forced their way into the{26} fortress. The defenders were demoralized, “they screamed like weak women and tore their hair, making no effort even to escape. The Tartars killed without mercy; 24,000 people died. They broke into the churches and treasuries, looted everything, and burned countless books, papers, and anything else they couldn’t destroy in other ways; not a single house was left standing except for a few made of stone.”

After Tokhtamysh withdrew Dmitri returned and was horrified at the ruin wrought. He is said to have repented of his victory over the Tartars at Kulikovo, a barren victory after this desolation, and to have called out “Our fathers who never triumphed over Tartars were less unhappy than we.”

After Tokhtamysh pulled back, Dmitri returned and was shocked by the destruction. It’s said that he regretted his victory over the Tartars at Kulikovo, a hollow victory after such devastation, and exclaimed, “Our ancestors who never conquered the Tartars were better off than we are.”

Moscow was quickly rebuilt. When Dmitri died in 1389 the principality was the largest and most thriving of the states in the north-east of Russia. As the Horde withdrew the “Good companions” from Novgorod devastated the country round, but Vladimir and Moscow alike in having a Kremlin on a hill, were far enough away from the Volga to escape the attention of these free-booters from the north-west.

Moscow was quickly rebuilt. When Dmitri died in 1389, the principality was the largest and most prosperous of the states in the northeast of Russia. As the Horde retreated, the "Good Companions" from Novgorod wreaked havoc on the surrounding areas, but both Vladimir and Moscow, which had a Kremlin on a hill, were far enough away from the Volga to avoid the attention of these raiders from the northwest.

Vasili, the son of Dmitri Donskoi, succeeded his father, and twice saw his territory invaded by the Horde. In 1392 he bought a iarlikh of the Tartars freeing to him Moscow, Nijni and Suzdal. In 1395, to escape an inroad of the Tartars, the celebrated ikon of the Virgin (see Frontispiece) was brought from Vladimir to Moscow, but the Tartars did not venture so far. This time they stopped at Eletz-on-the-Don, pillaged Azov—where much Egyptian, Venetian, Genoese, Biscayan and other merchandise was warehoused—and returned to Tartary sacking Sarai and Astrakhan on their way thither.

Vasili, the son of Dmitri Donskoi, took over after his father and faced invasions from the Horde twice. In 1392, he purchased a iarlikh from the Tartars, which allowed him to free Moscow, Nizhni, and Suzdal. In 1395, to avoid an attack from the Tartars, the famous icon of the Virgin (see Frontispiece) was moved from Vladimir to Moscow, but the Tartars didn't go that far. This time, they stopped at Eletz-on-the-Don, looted Azov—where a lot of Egyptian, Venetian, Genoese, Biscayan, and other goods were stored—and returned to Tartary, plundering Sarai and Astrakhan on their way.

During these turbulent times Moscow increased in importance. The two years of peace Dmitri secured{27} after his victory at Kulikovo he used to strengthen the defences. Already, in 1637, he had substituted a wall of masonry for the old wood rampart round the Kremlin; now handsome gates with towers were added. Its finest church at this period was that of the Transfiguration, more usually styled “Spass na Boru,” which, built in stone in 1330, had been considerably enlarged and a monastery attached; there were the cells in or near the church building, vaults below it for secreting treasure, a hospital for the infirm, and a cemetery for the princes, but their tombs were subsequently transferred to the Archangelski Sobor.

During these chaotic times, Moscow became increasingly important. The two years of peace Dmitri secured{27} after his victory at Kulikovo were used to reinforce the defenses. By 1637, he had replaced the old wooden rampart around the Kremlin with a masonry wall; handsome gates with towers were added as well. At this time, the finest church was the Transfiguration, more commonly known as “Spass na Boru,” which was built in stone in 1330 and had been significantly enlarged with a monastery added. There were cells in or near the church building, vaults below it for hiding treasure, a hospital for the sick, and a cemetery for the princes, although their tombs were later moved to the Archangelski Sobor.

Within the Kremlin, or near by, were the monasteries of Chudof (Miracles), Vossnesenski (Ascension), Bogoyavlenni (Epiphany), Rojdestvenski (Nativity), St Alexis, St Peter the Apostle, of Daniel, Simon, and Spasso-Preobrajenni (the Transfiguration). To commemorate the withdrawal of Tamerlane, Vasili founded the monastery of the Sretenka (Meeting). He made a fosse across the town from the field of Kuchko to the river Moskva, and later surrounded the town with a stone wall.

Within the Kremlin or nearby were the monasteries of Chudof (Miracles), Vossnesenski (Ascension), Bogoyavlenni (Epiphany), Rojdestvenski (Nativity), St. Alexis, St. Peter the Apostle, Daniel, Simon, and Spasso-Preobrajenni (the Transfiguration). To commemorate Tamerlane's retreat, Vasili established the monastery of Sretenka (Meeting). He dug a trench across the town from the Kuchko field to the Moskva River and later enclosed the town with a stone wall.

A strong place now; the lesser nobles, cadets of the house of Rurik, took up their residence in Moscow and shared its fortune.

A strong place now; the lesser nobles, descendants of the house of Rurik, settled in Moscow and enjoyed its prosperity.

In 1408 the Lithuanians aided by the Tartars laid siege to Moscow, a siege which is memorable from the fact that cannons were then first used in its defence, though Mamai had brought Genoese gunners against Dmitri twenty years earlier. Ediger led the assault, and, though his forces had to retreat, the boyards of Moscow paid to him 3000 roubles as a war indemnity; the Monastery of St Sergius at Troitsa was burned, the surrounding country pillaged and the peasants ruthlessly slaughtered.{28}

In 1408, the Lithuanians, supported by the Tartars, laid siege to Moscow. This siege is notable because it was the first time cannons were used in its defense, even though Mamai had brought in Genoese gunners to fight Dmitri twenty years earlier. Ediger led the attack, and although his troops had to pull back, the boyars of Moscow paid him 3000 roubles as compensation for the war. The Monastery of St. Sergius at Troitsa was burned down, the surrounding area was plundered, and the peasants were brutally killed.{28}

It cannot be said that the first Vasili did much for Moscow. He was in retreat at Kostroma when the inhabitants of the town, led by “Vladimir the Brave,” successfully defended it; both pestilence and famine were frequent during his reign of thirty-six years, and at his death the succession was disputed.

It can't be said that the first Vasili did much for Moscow. He was in retreat at Kostroma when the townspeople, led by "Vladimir the Brave," successfully defended it; both plague and famine were common during his thirty-six-year reign, and at his death, there was a dispute over the succession.

In 1431 Yuri attempted to revert to the ancient custom of succession of the eldest, and claimed the throne from Vasili II., the son of Vasili I. To avoid war it was agreed to refer the matter to the Horde for settlement. Vsevoloshski, a boyard of Moscow, advanced the most potent argument on behalf of Vasili. “My Lord Tsar,” he said to Ulu Mahomet, “let me speak, me, the slave of the Grand Prince. My master prays for the throne, which is thy property, having no other title but thy protection, thy investiture and thy iarlikh. Thou art master and can dispose of it at thy pleasure. My lord, the Prince Yuri Dmitrovich, my master’s uncle, claims the throne of the Grand Prince by the act and will of his father, but not as a favour from the all powerful.” This flattery had a suitable reward; the Khan appointed Vasili to the throne, and ordered Yuri to lead his nephew’s horse by the bridle.

In 1431, Yuri tried to go back to the old practice of having the eldest succeed to the throne and claimed it from Vasili II, the son of Vasili I. To avoid conflict, it was agreed to take the issue to the Horde for resolution. Vsevoloshski, a noble from Moscow, presented the strongest argument for Vasili. “My Lord Tsar,” he said to Ulu Mahomet, “let me speak, I, the servant of the Grand Prince. My lord wishes to have the throne, which belongs to you, having no other claim but your protection, your endorsement, and your iarlikh. You are the master and can decide its fate as you see fit. My lord, Prince Yuri Dmitrovich, my master’s uncle, asserts his claim to the Grand Prince's throne based on his father's actions and wishes, but not as a gift from the all-powerful.” This flattery earned a fitting reward; the Khan appointed Vasili to the throne and ordered Yuri to lead his nephew's horse by the bridle.

Vasili II. was crowned at Moscow, not at Vladimir, and the supremacy of Moscow was admitted. Vasili was to have married a daughter of Vsevoloshski, but instead married a grand-daughter of Vladimir the Brave, the defender of Moscow. The offended boyard went over to the side of Yuri and fanned his resentment. Yuri’s two sons, Vasili, the squint-eyed, and Chemiaki were present at the marriage festivities of Vasili, whose mother, the Princess Sophia, seeing round the waist of the young Vasili a belt of gold that had belonged to Dmitri Donskoi, there and then seized it from him. The brothers took umbrage at this open affront; forthwith they{29}

Vasili II was crowned in Moscow, not in Vladimir, and Moscow's dominance was recognized. Vasili was supposed to marry a daughter of Vsevoloshski, but instead, he married a granddaughter of Vladimir the Brave, the defender of Moscow. The offended boyar switched sides to support Yuri and fueled his anger. Yuri’s two sons, Vasili, who squinted, and Chemiaki were at Vasili’s wedding celebrations when his mother, Princess Sophia, saw a gold belt around young Vasili’s waist that had belonged to Dmitri Donskoi and immediately took it from him. The brothers were offended by this blatant insult; right away they{29}



SPASS NA BORU (ST SAVIOUR’S IN THE WOOD)

SPASS NA BORU (ST SAVIOUR’S IN THE WOOD)



SPASS NA BORU (ST SAVIOUR’S IN THE WOOD)

FUN AT THE EDGE (ST SAVIOUR’S IN THE WOOD)

{30}

{30}

{31}

{31}

left Moscow and induced their father to take up arms.

left Moscow and convinced their father to take up arms.

At Kostroma, Vasili II. fell into the power of Yuri, who spared his life and gave him Kostroma as an appanage, betaking himself to Moscow. Thereupon the inhabitants of Moscow deserted the town and took up residence with their prince in Kostroma. Owing to the popularity of Vasili II., Yuri was powerless and sent to him at Kostroma inviting him to return to his own. On his return the people crowded round him “like bees round their queen.” Later, Vasili, the squint-eyed, fell into the hands of Vasili II., who had his eyes put out; then at once repenting the act, set free his brother Chemiaki, and war again broke out between them. Chemiaki with a host of free lances “good companions” and such men as he could get together besieged Moscow. Then in came the Tartar horde and Vasili could get but 15,000 men together to oppose them. He made a valiant struggle, but, wounded in fifteen places, he was taken prisoner to Kazan.

At Kostroma, Vasili II fell into the hands of Yuri, who spared his life and gave him Kostroma as a territory, heading back to Moscow himself. After that, the people of Moscow abandoned the city and moved to live with their prince in Kostroma. Because Vasili II was so popular, Yuri was powerless and sent a message to him at Kostroma, inviting him to return home. When he returned, the people gathered around him "like bees around their queen." Later, Vasili, known for his squint, was captured by Vasili II, who had his eyes put out. However, immediately regretting the act, he released his brother Chemiaki, leading to renewed conflict between them. Chemiaki, along with a group of free lancers and anyone he could rally, laid siege to Moscow. Then the Tartar horde arrived, and Vasili could only gather 15,000 men to fight them off. He put up a brave fight, but after being wounded in fifteen places, he was captured and taken to Kazan.

Moscow was in despair: Tver insulted her and Chemiaki intrigued to get himself made prince. Then the Khan suddenly agreed to liberate Vasili II. for a small ransom, and soon the prince was in his capital again. He went forthwith to Troitsa to return thanks for his escape. During his absence, Chemiaki surprised the Kremlin and there captured the wife and mother of Vasili and took all the treasure. Hurrying after Vasili to Troitsa, he made him prisoner, brought him back to Moscow, and in 1446 put out his eyes in revenge for the like act upon his brother Vasili. Chemiaki, some time afterwards, left Moscow to go against the Tartars; the town revolted during his absence and Vasili was once more restored to the throne, which as “Vasili the Blind” he held until his death in 1462.{32}

Moscow was in despair: Tver had insulted her, and Chemiaki was scheming to become prince. Then the Khan suddenly agreed to free Vasili II. for a small ransom, and soon the prince was back in his capital. He immediately went to Troitsa to thank God for his escape. While he was gone, Chemiaki seized the Kremlin, capturing Vasili's wife and mother and taking all the treasure. He rushed after Vasili to Troitsa, captured him, brought him back to Moscow, and in 1446, blinded him in revenge for a similar act against his brother Vasili. Some time later, Chemiaki left Moscow to fight against the Tartars; during his absence, the town revolted, and Vasili was restored to the throne, which he held as “Vasili the Blind” until his death in 1462.{32}

It is not easy to account for the popularity of Vasili II.; possibly the detestation in which Chemiaki was held made the mild virtues of Vasili more prominent; for in the language of the people, a “judgment of Chemiaki” is, proverbially, tantamount to a crying wrong.

It’s hard to explain why Vasili II was so popular; maybe it was because people's dislike for Chemiaki made Vasili’s gentle qualities stand out more. In common language, a “judgment of Chemiaki” is, by tradition, considered a serious injustice.

Events outside Russia strengthened the supremacy of Moscow. At the Council of Florence (1439) Pope Eugene suggested the union of the eastern and western churches, and amongst the many representatives of the eastern church present Isidor, the metropolitan of Moscow, agreed to the proposal and signed the act of union. How Mark, Bishop of Ephesus, protested, and at last carried the Greeks with him in repudiating the union, is no part of this history. Isidor having accepted, introduced the Latin cross, made use of the name of the Pope in the services and so astonished the Russians that Vasili interfered. He reproached Isidor for his bad faith, and in dismay the prelate fled to Rome. In 1453 Mahomet II. entered Constantinople. There was no longer a Christian emperor of the east, and Moscow became the heir of Constantinople and the metropolis of orthodoxy. Ivan, the artist-monk of Constantinople, brought to Moscow such of the holy relics as he could save, and, what is more, by his own genius impressed upon the Muscovite priesthood a love of culture to which Moscow had hitherto been a stranger.

Events outside Russia reinforced Moscow's dominance. At the Council of Florence (1439), Pope Eugene proposed a union of the eastern and western churches. Among the many representatives of the eastern church present, Isidor, the metropolitan of Moscow, agreed to the proposal and signed the act of union. The details of how Mark, Bishop of Ephesus, protested and eventually convinced the Greeks to reject the union are not part of this story. After accepting, Isidor introduced the Latin cross and used the Pope's name in services, which shocked the Russians and prompted Vasili to intervene. He criticized Isidor for his lack of loyalty, and overwhelmed by the situation, the prelate fled to Rome. In 1453, Mahomet II entered Constantinople. There was no longer a Christian emperor in the east, and Moscow became the heir to Constantinople and the center of orthodoxy. Ivan, the artist-monk from Constantinople, brought to Moscow as many holy relics as he could save and, more importantly, inspired the Muscovite priesthood with a love for culture that Moscow had not experienced before.

Ivan III., styled “The Uniter of Russia,” was twenty-two years of age when, in 1462, he succeeded his father Vasili, the Blind. He continued the policy of the princes of Moscow and early obtained a success against the Tartars of Kazan. In 1472 he married Sophia, a daughter of Thomas Paleologus, a brother of the last emperor of Byzantium, and this union, with a member of the race that had so long held sway over{33} all orthodox Christianity, greatly influenced his policy. His wife, less patient than the Russians, found the Mongol yoke unbearable. “How long am I to be the slave of Tartars?” she would ask, and there is little doubt that it is to her urging that Ivan became aggressive. He was not personally courageous, preferring to remain in Moscow, and allow his people to fight on the frontiers of Russia; when forced into the field, his method was to avoid giving battle and wear out the enemy with delays, retreats, and puzzling, irritating marches and counter-marches.

Ivan III, known as "The Uniter of Russia," was just twenty-two when he took over from his father, Vasili the Blind, in 1462. He continued the policies of the Moscow princes and quickly achieved success against the Tartars of Kazan. In 1472, he married Sophia, the daughter of Thomas Paleologus, a brother of the last Byzantine emperor. This marriage, with someone from a lineage that had long dominated all of Orthodox Christianity, significantly influenced his policies. His wife, who was less patient than the Russians, found the Mongol rule unbearable. "How long will I be a slave to the Tartars?" she would ask, and it's likely that her frustration pushed Ivan to take a more aggressive stance. He wasn't personally brave, preferring to stay in Moscow while his people fought on Russia's borders; when he had to lead, his strategy was to avoid direct battles and instead tire the enemy out with delays, retreats, and confusing, annoying maneuvers.

In 1472 he conquered Perm; in 1475 he was successful against Novgorod the Great; in 1478 he openly rebelled against the Khan; in 1499 he pushed the confines of Russia to Petchora on the Arctic Sea. He was a puzzle to his enemies, gaining victories over Lithuanians, Livonians and Siberians, without leaving the Kremlin. Stephen of Moldavia said of him, “Ivan is a strange man; he stays quietly at home yet triumphs over his enemies, whilst I, although always on horseback, cannot defend my own country.”

In 1472, he conquered Perm; in 1475, he succeeded against Novgorod the Great; in 1478, he openly rebelled against the Khan; and in 1499, he expanded Russia's borders to Petchora on the Arctic Sea. He bewildered his enemies, achieving victories over Lithuanians, Livonians, and Siberians without leaving the Kremlin. Stephen of Moldavia remarked about him, “Ivan is a strange man; he stays quietly at home yet triumphs over his enemies, while I, even though always on horseback, cannot defend my own country.”

Born a despot he was initiated into the mysteries of autocratic government by his wife. Cold, cruel and cunning, he brooked no opposition where he thought he could triumph; was an arrant coward whenever the issue was doubtful.

Born a tyrant, he learned the secrets of dictatorial rule from his wife. Cold, cruel, and sly, he tolerated no opposition when he felt he could win; he was a complete coward whenever the outcome was uncertain.

When he vanquished Novgorod, he brought the boyards to Moscow, and settled them there; three years later he tortured some, and put others to death. He was relentless in punishing rebellion, no matter what the rank of the offender. He whipped Prince Oukhtomski, and ordered the archimandrite of a monastery to be flogged; mutilated the counsellors of his son, cowed the boyards, burnt alive Poles who had conspired against him; pillaged the German traders of goods to the value of £40,000, and played{34} the tyrant so thoroughly that even when he slept no boyard “durst open his mouth in whispers” for fear of disturbing his master’s slumber.

When he conquered Novgorod, he brought the nobles to Moscow and settled them there; three years later, he tortured some and executed others. He was merciless in punishing rebellion, regardless of the offender's rank. He whipped Prince Oukhtomski and ordered the archimandrite of a monastery to be flogged; he mutilated his son's advisors, intimidated the nobles, burned alive Poles who had conspired against him, looted German traders of goods worth £40,000, and played{34} the tyrant so thoroughly that even while he slept, no noble “dared whisper” for fear of waking his master.

Towards the Great Horde he was both respectful and recalcitrant. He repulsed the invasions of adventurers into his territory; avoided the payment of tribute by sending costly presents regularly. But in 1478, when Khan Akhmet sent envoys with his image to receive tribute, Ivan openly rebelled; put all the messengers to death, save one; trampled the image of the Khan under foot, spat on the edict, and allowed this news to reach the Khan. When the enraged Tartars advanced towards Moscow, Ivan wished to remain in the city, but the inhabitants would have no shirking. “What! he has overtaxed us, refused to pay tribute to the Horde, and now that he has enraged the Khan, though he does not want to fight, he must—and shall.” Ivan journeyed about from one town to another, returning to Moscow on various pretexts. He wished to consult the clergy, the boyards, his mother, anybody. The answer was always the same, “March against the enemy!” Forced to go South, he wished to send his son back to Moscow, but the young Ivan disobeyed.

Towards the Great Horde, he was both respectful and defiant. He resisted the encroachments of adventurers into his land and avoided paying tribute by regularly sending expensive gifts. But in 1478, when Khan Akhmet sent envoys bearing his image to collect tribute, Ivan openly revolted; he executed all the messengers except one, trampled the Khan's image, spat on the edict, and made sure this news reached the Khan. When the furious Tartars marched toward Moscow, Ivan wanted to stay in the city, but the residents would not accept that. “What! He has overtaxed us, refused to pay tribute to the Horde, and now that he has angered the Khan, even though he doesn't want to fight, he must—and will.” Ivan traveled from town to town, returning to Moscow for various reasons. He wanted to consult the clergy, the boyars, his mother, anyone. The answer was always the same: “March against the enemy!” Forced to head South, he wanted to send his son back to Moscow, but young Ivan disobeyed.

Archbishop Vassian urged Ivan to go to the front. “Is it part of mortals to fear death? We cannot escape destiny; a good shepherd will, at need, lay down his life for his flock.” But this prompting did not suffice. Vassian at last lost patience, wrote a bellicose letter to Ivan, recounting the deeds of his heroic ancestors, from Igor Sviatoslaf to Dmitri Donskoi. Ivan assured him that this letter “filled his heart with joy, himself with courage and strength”; but another fortnight passed, and Ivan had not advanced a step.

Archbishop Vassian encouraged Ivan to go to the front lines. “Is it human to fear death? We can’t escape our fate; a good shepherd will, when necessary, sacrifice his life for his flock.” But this urging wasn’t enough. Vassian eventually lost his patience, wrote a fierce letter to Ivan, recounting the heroic deeds of his ancestors, from Igor Sviatoslav to Dmitri Donskoi. Ivan assured him that this letter “filled his heart with joy, and gave him courage and strength”; but two more weeks went by, and Ivan hadn’t made any progress.

When at last the two armies came within sight of each other, the streams Oogra and Oka separated them.{35} They insulted each other bravely across the water, but not daring to ford, waited until the river should be frozen. When this happened, Ivan at once gave orders for his forces to withdraw. Seeing the army in motion an inexplicable panic seized the Tartars, and they hastened away. Both armies were in flight, and no one pursuing. In such pitiful fashion did the Mongol supremacy terminate. For more than three centuries Moscow had acknowledged the rule of the Golden Horde, now a thoroughly demoralised rabble. The remnants in their flight south were opposed by the Nogay and Krim Tartars, and defeated. The Khan Akhmet was then put to death by his own men.

When the two armies finally spotted each other, the Oogra and Oka rivers stood between them.{35} They exchanged insults bravely from across the water, but instead of crossing, they waited for the river to freeze. Once it froze, Ivan immediately ordered his troops to pull back. Seeing his army retreat, the Tartars were seized by an inexplicable panic and quickly fled. Both armies were in flight, with no one chasing them. That’s how Mongol dominance came to an end. For over three centuries, Moscow had been under the rule of the Golden Horde, now a thoroughly demoralized mob. The remnants fled south only to be attacked and defeated by the Nogay and Krim Tartars. Khan Akhmet was ultimately killed by his own men.

Ivan next sent his voievodes or “war-leaders” against Kazan; in 1487 they took it and made Alegam, its commander, a prisoner. In his boyhood Ivan had been imprisoned in Kazan by his Tartar enemies, and so now was able to turn the tables on them completely.

Ivan then sent his war leaders against Kazan; in 1487 they captured it and took its commander, Alegam, prisoner. In his childhood, Ivan had been held captive in Kazan by his Tartar enemies, and now he was able to completely reverse the situation on them.

His next act exemplifies his statesmanship. Instead of annexing Kazan to Moscow he gave the crown to the nephew of his powerful ally, the Khan of the Krim Tartars. This Khan could not ask for the release of Alegam, because he was an enemy of his own nephew, the newly installed ruler of Kazan; but the leaders of the Khivan and Nogay Tartars, who were related to him, felt that Islam had been wronged, and despatched an envoy to Moscow praying for Alegam’s release. Ivan declined, but did so graciously, and gave no offence. He made the envoys presents, and sent to their leaders other presents, much foreign cloth and trinkets for their wives, whom he styled his sisters. Ivan did not treat directly with the envoys, making use of the western method of conducting negotiations through an officer of his court.

His next move showcases his skill as a statesman. Instead of taking Kazan by force, he granted the crown to the nephew of his powerful ally, the Khan of the Krim Tartars. This Khan couldn't request the release of Alegam because he was an enemy of his own nephew, the newly crowned ruler of Kazan; however, the leaders of the Khivan and Nogay Tartars, who were related to him, believed that Islam had been wronged and sent an envoy to Moscow asking for Alegam’s release. Ivan politely declined but did so in an amicable manner, causing no offense. He gifted the envoys with presents and sent additional gifts to their leaders, including valuable foreign cloth and trinkets for their wives, whom he referred to as his sisters. Ivan didn't negotiate directly with the envoys; instead, he used the Western approach of having a court officer handle the discussions.

Ivan took the two-headed eagle as the arms of his{36} country. Its early form is still to be seen on the wall of Granovitaia palace in the Kremlin. The device of St George and the Dragon, which Yuri Dolgoruki the founder of Moscow used, was from this time more closely associated with the city of Moscow, and the eagle taken as the arms of the ruler.

Ivan adopted the two-headed eagle as the official emblem of his{36} country. Its earlier version can still be seen on the wall of the Granovitaia Palace in the Kremlin. The symbol of St. George and the Dragon, used by Yuri Dolgoruki, the founder of Moscow, became more closely linked to the city during this time, while the eagle became the symbol of the ruler.

When it became necessary for Ivan to appoint his successor he hesitated, and at last made choice of Dmitri, the son of Ivan, his eldest child, then dead. His wife advanced the claims of her own son Vasili; his daughter-in-law, Ivan’s widow, her own son. Having proclaimed Dmitri heir, he threw Vasili into prison and degraded his wife; then he changed his mind, imprisoned his daughter-in-law and grandson, and proclaimed Vasili his heir. In 1505 he died, and Vasili was at once crowned ruler of Moscow.{37}

When Ivan had to choose his successor, he hesitated and eventually decided on Dmitri, the son of his eldest child, who was already dead. His wife pushed for her own son Vasili; his daughter-in-law, Ivan’s widow, supported her own son. After declaring Dmitri as the heir, he jailed Vasili and humiliated his wife. Then, he changed his mind, imprisoned his daughter-in-law and grandson, and declared Vasili as his heir. In 1505, he died, and Vasili was immediately crowned ruler of Moscow.{37}

CHAPTER IV

Moscow of the Princes

"Your thousand crowns look like pearls,
Your hands hold a diamond scepter,
Your domes, your steeples, bright and clear "See the sunny rays in the golden east." —Dmitriev.

VASILI III. succeeded his father and reigned in Moscow for nearly thirty years. From the historical point of view, he is unfortunate, as he followed a sovereign recognised as “Great,” whose conquests and innovations changed the destiny of Moscow, and was succeeded by a ruler, who, by his barbarities, won for himself the surname of “Terrible.” Vasili III. was not a warrior, and when he made war it was by preference against Slavonic peoples in the west. His chief delight was in building: churches, monasteries, city-walls, palaces—none of these came amiss to him; he constructed some of all, leaving Moscow much stronger, richer and more beautiful than he found it. He made the most of such services as the Italian masters could render, but in those times, all that was done in Moscow in any one age appears to have been executed at the command of the reigning prince. The houses of the nobility have all disappeared, and to the date of Vasili III. there appear to have been no founders of churches in Moscow, other than the princes. Not that these necessarily found the labour or material; as often as not a church was built from the proceeds of a{38} fine laid upon some town or government at the pleasure of the prince.

VASILI III succeeded his father and ruled in Moscow for almost thirty years. From a historical perspective, he was unfortunate, as he followed a ruler regarded as “Great,” whose conquests and innovations changed Moscow's fate, and was succeeded by a ruler who earned the nickname “Terrible” due to his brutalities. Vasili III was not a warrior, and when he did go to war, it was mostly against Slavic people in the west. His main passion was building: churches, monasteries, city walls, and palaces—he took on all of these projects; he built some of everything, leaving Moscow much stronger, wealthier, and more beautiful than he found it. He made the most of the services provided by Italian masters, but at that time, everything done in Moscow in any given era seemed to have been carried out at the command of the reigning prince. The homes of the nobility have all disappeared, and up until the time of Vasili III, it seems there were no founders of churches in Moscow other than the princes. Not that these princes necessarily provided the labor or materials; more often than not, a church was built from taxes levied on towns or the government at the discretion of the prince.

Vasili was the first to build a stone palace in the Kremlin, that known as the Granovitaia, which is still standing. But Herberstein wrote that Vasili would not live in it, preferring his old palace of wood.

Vasili was the first to build a stone palace in the Kremlin, known as the Granovitaia, which is still standing today. However, Herberstein noted that Vasili wouldn’t live in it, choosing instead his old wooden palace.

During his reign the Tartars got as near Moscow as the Sparrow Hills; there they sacked the royal palace and cellars containing large stores of mead. They became intoxicated with the liquor and advanced no further, but the leader obtained from Vasili a treaty in which he acknowledged the sovereignty of the Horde and promised yearly tribute. Vasili’s voievodes at Riazan, thinking the terms shameful, intercepted the returning Tartars, routed them, and got back the treaty. The following year, goaded to action, Vasili got an army together and went out towards the Khan, challenging him to battle. The Khan answered that he knew the way into Russia, and was not in the habit of asking his enemies when he should fight. In revenge for this insult, Vasili established a fair at Makharief, on the Volga; it ruined the mart of Kazan and was subsequently moved to Nijni-Novgorod, where it is still held yearly.

During his reign, the Tartars made it as close to Moscow as Sparrow Hills; there, they looted the royal palace and cellars filled with large supplies of mead. They became drunk on the liquor and didn’t go any further, but the leader managed to get a treaty from Vasili, in which he acknowledged the Horde’s power and agreed to pay yearly tribute. Vasili’s voievodes in Riazan, thinking the terms were disgraceful, intercepted the returning Tartars, defeated them, and recovered the treaty. The next year, spurred into action, Vasili gathered an army and marched out to confront the Khan, challenging him to battle. The Khan replied that he knew how to invade Russia and didn’t need to ask his enemies when to fight. In retaliation for this insult, Vasili set up a fair at Makharief, on the Volga; it devastated the marketplace in Kazan and was later moved to Nijni-Novgorod, where it is still held every year.

Vasili married first, Solomonia Saburov, but, as after twenty years of married life she had no son, he forced her to take the veil and married Helena Glinski, of Lithuania. This gave great offence to the Church; when he sent specially to the highest authority on the technical question, Mark, Patriarch of Jerusalem, is reported to have made the following remarkable prediction:—

Vasili's first wife was Solomonia Saburov, but after twenty years of marriage and no son, he pressured her to become a nun and then married Helena Glinski from Lithuania. This upset the Church significantly; when he reached out to the top authority on the matter, it is said that Mark, Patriarch of Jerusalem, made a notable prediction:—

“Shouldst thou contract a second marriage thou shalt have a wicked son; thy states shall become a prey to terrors and tears; rivers of blood shall flow; the heads of the mighty shall fall; thy cities shall be devoured by flames.”

“Should you enter into a second marriage, you will have a wicked son; your lands will be plagued by fears and sorrow; rivers of blood will flow; the mighty will fall; your cities will be consumed by fire.”

{39}

{39}

Vasili disregarded the decision of the Church and married a most able and enlightened woman, who had the foresight to surround the Kitai Gorod with a wall of good masonry, and it is said, named that part of the town after a similarly designated enclosure in her native place. She bore Vasili two sons, Ivan, the Tsarevich, who was later the “terrible” Tsar, succeeding to the throne in 1533, when but three years of age. The younger son, Yuri, fared badly at the hands of his cruel brother.

Vasili ignored the Church's decision and married a skilled and intelligent woman, who had the foresight to build a strong masonry wall around Kitai Gorod, and it's said she named that part of town after a similarly named enclosure from her hometown. She had two sons with Vasili: Ivan, the Tsarevich, who later became the infamous "Terrible" Tsar, ascending to the throne in 1533 at just three years old. The younger son, Yuri, suffered greatly at the hands of his cruel brother.



KITAI GOROD, ILYINKA GATE

KITAI GOROD, ILYINKA GATE

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Kitai Gorod, Ilyinka Gate

The Moscow of the Princes was of wood, and the{40} vestiges remaining are unimportant. Some of the later buildings, as the palace of the Terem and towers of the Kremlin wall, have been built in the style of the wooden erections they replaced; but it is not easy to picture Moscow as it was before Ivan’s Italian workmen raised their walls of brick and stone.

The Moscow of the Princes was made of wood, and the{40} remaining pieces are insignificant. Some of the later structures, like the Terem Palace and the towers of the Kremlin wall, were built in a style similar to the wooden structures they replaced; however, it's hard to imagine what Moscow looked like before Ivan's Italian workers raised their walls of brick and stone.

The town was of great size; in 1520 it contained 41,500 dwellings and 100,000 inhabitants. Its circumference was nearly twelve miles. The Grand Prince and his relations lived in the Kremlin; so did a few of the richest and most powerful nobles. In the Kitai Gorod lived the traders, the wealthy boyards and foreigners. The Bielo Gorod, “White” or Free Town, was occupied by boyards, merchants and privileged citizens; in the outer ring lived the artisans and labourers. The churches and chapels were numerous. Ivan Kalita built ten when there were already eighteen in the town, in 1337; in the reign of Vasili III. there were as many monasteries and nunneries, and upwards of three score churches and chapels.

The town was quite large; in 1520 it had 41,500 homes and 100,000 residents. Its perimeter was almost twelve miles. The Grand Prince and his family lived in the Kremlin, along with some of the richest and most powerful nobles. The Kitai Gorod was home to traders, wealthy boyards, and foreigners. The Bielo Gorod, or “White” Free Town, was inhabited by boyards, merchants, and privileged citizens; in the outer ring lived the artisans and laborers. There were many churches and chapels. Ivan Kalita built ten in 1337 when there were already eighteen in the town; during Vasili III's reign, there were as many monasteries and convents, and over sixty churches and chapels.

The first dwelling in the Kremlin was the Prince’s habitation, originally called the Prince’s apartment, which served only as a pied à terre for the Prince when passing through. When Moscow became a place of residence then a house was put up near where the Great Palace now is. Then followed the usual dependences; including a prison or dungeon. Even at that early date the Russian carpenters were able craftsmen; how expert they afterwards became the wonderful wooden palaces and churches of Russia accurately demonstrate.

The first residence in the Kremlin was the Prince’s home, originally known as the Prince’s apartment, which functioned only as a pied à terre for the Prince when he was passing through. When Moscow became a permanent residence, a house was built near where the Great Palace currently stands. This was followed by the usual outbuildings, including a prison or dungeon. Even at that early time, Russian carpenters were skilled craftsmen; the breathtaking wooden palaces and churches of Russia clearly show how much more expert they became.

The Princes of Moscow were not extravagant, their palaces consisting of four chambers, en suite—the one most distant from the entrance was the sleeping-room; then, adjoining it, the oratory or private chapel; the{41} room for living or affairs of the town, the anti-chamber; the vestibule; add kitchens and domestic rooms on a lower floor, and the early palaces of the Russian princes is complete.

The Princes of Moscow weren't extravagant; their palaces had four connected rooms. The furthest room from the entrance was the bedroom, followed by the oratory or private chapel, the living or town affairs room, and the antechamber. There was also a vestibule, plus kitchens and domestic spaces on a lower level, making up the early palaces of the Russian princes.

Vasili III. required no more; his palace in the Kremlin consisted, on the bel étage, of the vestibule, an anti-chamber, and two rooms. In a separate building, reached by a corridor or covered staircase, the bathroom and storerooms. Above the bel étage, either a large open loft, or a belvedere pierced with windows on all sides and communicating with the terrace. The apartments reserved for the children, and for relations of the sovereign, were in separate buildings offering similar accommodation.

Vasili III needed nothing more; his palace in the Kremlin had, on the bel étage, a foyer, an anteroom, and two rooms. In a separate building, accessed by a hallway or covered staircase, were the bathroom and storage rooms. Above the bel étage, there was either a large open loft or a belvedere with windows on all sides that connected to the terrace. The living quarters for the children and relatives of the sovereign were in separate buildings that provided similar accommodations.

The roof was invariably ornamented with carved wood-work and with gay colours. The distinctive colour for the windows of the Terem was red. Further ornamentation consisted in shaping the roof conical, making it arched or in superposing cones on two arches; these were furnished with small grills and covered with shingles.

The roof was always decorated with carved woodwork and bright colors. The signature color for the windows of the Terem was red. Additional decor included a conical roof shape, arching it, or placing cones on top of two arches; these were fitted with small grills and covered with shingles.

Each house had its private chapel, so the agglomeration of connected buildings that constituted a palace in the Kremlin in old days contained many chapels, and they now number more than a dozen. Apart from these private chapels within the palace, the Princes used the churches for the safer keeping of their treasure.

Each house had its own private chapel, so the cluster of connected buildings that made up a palace in the Kremlin back in the day had many chapels, and they now total over a dozen. Besides these private chapels within the palace, the Princes used the churches to keep their treasures safe.

Ivan III. used the Church of St Lazarus now in the palace for his treasury; his wife, the Church of St John the Baptist, near the Borovitski Gate. To steal from the church was sacrilege, to take from the house of even the Tsar, simply robbery. The churches were used as treasuries also by the nobles, and doubtless much of the church-plate throughout Russia was originally deposited for safe keeping, whilst the owners{42} went against Tartars or Livonians. All the churches were rich, and all, time after time, were spoiled by invaders; thus hiding-places were made in or near all the old churches.

Ivan III used the Church of St. Lazarus, now located in the palace, for his treasury; his wife utilized the Church of St. John the Baptist, near the Borovitski Gate. Stealing from the church was seen as sacrilege, while taking from even the Tsar's household was simply considered robbery. Nobles also used churches as treasuries, and it's likely that much of the church silver and gold throughout Russia was originally stored there for safekeeping while the owners{42} fought against Tartars or Livonians. All the churches were wealthy, and time and again, they were plundered by invaders; this prompted the creation of hiding places in or near all the old churches.

Near the residence of the ruler were the very similar dwellings of the minor princes. In the days of Vasili III., of Grand Dukes even, for, as Moscow conquered other principalities, their former rulers were brought to the Kremlin and lived under the surveillance of the “Grand Prince of all the Russias,” rendering him such military service as he demanded. In time these nobles became an element of danger, intriguing for the succession and quarrelling among themselves for precedence. Vasili III. was the first ruler to treat them harshly and he spared none, not even his own near relatives if he thought they aspired to the succession. To render them less dangerous they were not employed as war-leaders, men of lower rank, the drujni of the Tsar and other princes being entrusted with command in the field and acting also as governors of provinces. Burned down time after time and usually put up again in wood, Moscow, with all its conflagrations, was nearly three centuries before it contained a dwelling-house of brick or stone, and more than two before enclosed with a wall. The reason being that stones of any kind were scarce in the neighbourhood of Moscow, whilst wood was plentiful.

Near the ruler's residence were the similar homes of the minor princes. During the reign of Vasili III, even Grand Dukes had to live this way, as Moscow conquered other principalities. Their former rulers were brought to the Kremlin and lived under the watch of the “Grand Prince of all the Russias,” providing whatever military service he required. Over time, these nobles became a threat, scheming for succession and fighting among themselves for status. Vasili III was the first ruler to deal with them harshly, not sparing even his close relatives if he suspected they wanted to take the throne. To make them less of a threat, he didn’t let them lead armies; instead, men of lower rank, the drujni of the Tsar and other princes, were given command in battles and acted as governors of provinces. Moscow, which was burned down repeatedly and usually rebuilt in wood, took nearly three centuries to have a brick or stone house and more than two centuries to be enclosed by a wall. This was because stones were hard to find around Moscow, while wood was abundant.

With a palace in the Kremlin the rulers soon set to work to have palaces elsewhere. The one at the Sparrow Hills seems to have been most often resorted to in the early days, but with the advent to Russia of Sophia Paleologus and the introduction of western customs, not only was the single palace found inadequate, but Ivan’s successors all built dwellings in the forest or in villages near Moscow where they{43} could go for sport, or when driven from town by fire, pestilence or revolt.

With a palace in the Kremlin, the rulers quickly started building more palaces elsewhere. The one at Sparrow Hills seems to have been the most used in the early days, but with the arrival of Sophia Paleologus in Russia and the introduction of Western customs, the single palace was found to be insufficient. Ivan’s successors constructed homes in the forests or in villages near Moscow where they{43} could retreat for leisure, or when they were forced out of the city by fire, disease, or uprising.

The most pressing need of the rulers of Moscow when they entered into relations with the west was a hall for entertaining visitors. It was for this purpose that the Granovitaia (chequered) Palace was constructed by the Italian workmen Ivan induced to work in Moscow for the then high wages of ten roubles a month. It was at this period that the Tsars began to evolve a special court etiquette. Previously anyone who could force his way through the throng by whom the princes were surrounded might speak with them. From the first the court etiquette, though not elaborate, was firmly insisted upon. Those who came to the palace had to dismount at some distance from the grand entrance, and approach it on foot. This accounts for the joy of Bowes, the English envoy, who rode right up to the grand entrance before dismounting. Those officers sent to meet foreign envoys had orders not to be the first to dismount; if the envoy knew the etiquette the parties on meeting would sit for hours facing each other, then agree to dismount simultaneously. Herberstein held back after throwing his feet out of the stirrups, so was last to touch earth, and he counts this a gain to his master. Common people and lower nobles were not allowed to pass the Tsar’s residence covered, and “must uncover as soon as it is within view.”

The biggest need for the rulers of Moscow when they started interacting with the west was a place to host visitors. That's why the Granovitaia (chequered) Palace was built by Italian workers that Ivan had convinced to come to Moscow for the high pay of ten roubles a month. During this time, the Tsars began to develop a specific court etiquette. Before, anyone who could push their way through the crowd around the princes could talk to them. Initially, while this court etiquette wasn’t complex, it was strictly enforced. Visitors had to get off their horses some distance from the main entrance and walk to it. This explains the delight of Bowes, the English envoy, who rode right up to the grand entrance before getting off his horse. The officers sent to greet foreign envoys were instructed not to be the first to dismount; if the envoy understood the etiquette, both parties would sit facing each other for hours before agreeing to dismount together. Herberstein held back after swinging his legs out of the stirrups, so he was the last to touch the ground, and he considered this a win for his master. Commoners and lower nobles were not allowed to approach the Tsar’s residence with their heads covered and “must uncover as soon as it is in sight.”

“The city is built of wood and tolerably large, and at a distance appears larger than it really is, for the gardens and spacious courtyards in every house make a great addition to the size of the town, which is again greatly increased by the houses of the smiths and other artificers who use fires. These houses extend in a long row at the end of the city, interspersed with fields and meadows. Moreover not far from the city are some small houses, and the other side of the river some villas where, a few years ago, the Tsar built a new city for his courtiers, who had the privilege of the Tsar to drink at all{44} seasons, which was forbidden to most, who were free to drink only at Eastertide and Christmas. For that reason the Nali, or drinkers, separated themselves from intercourse with the rest of the inhabitants to avoid corrupting them by their mode of living. Not far from the city are some monasteries, which of themselves appear like a great city to persons viewing them from a distance.”—Herberstein.

“The city is made of wood and is fairly large. From a distance, it looks bigger than it actually is because the gardens and spacious courtyards in every house add to the town’s size. This is also enhanced by the houses of the blacksmiths and other craftsmen who use fire. These houses form a long row at the edge of the city, mixed in with fields and meadows. Additionally, not far from the city are some small houses, and on the other side of the river, there are some villas where, a few years ago, the Tsar built a new city for his courtiers, who had the Tsar’s privilege to drink at all times{44}, which was forbidden to most people, who could only drink at Easter and Christmas. Because of this, the Nali, or drinkers, isolated themselves from the other inhabitants to avoid corrupting them with their lifestyle. Not far from the city are some monasteries, which, from a distance, look like a large city to those viewing them.” —Herberstein.

In addition to the gilded domes of its cathedrals, and the bright red roofs of its palaces, during the reign of Vasili III. Moscow commenced to accumulate other ornamental work quite as wondrous to the pilgrims from other Russian towns. Aleviso of Florence is unusually credited with the work upon the doors and lintels of the old churches within the palace, the porches of the Vossnesenski, Blagovieshchenski, and other Cathedrals within the Kremlin. The gilded and embossed metal work of the doors, the carved and bright-coloured columns and lintels, impressed visitors with the wealth of Moscow since the precious metals were so lavishly employed for merely decorative purposes. There are not many specimens of the work of this period still in existence, such as remain are now for the most part preserved within the palace instead of being, as formerly, exposed to the weather; but practically the whole of the wooden Moscow of the Princes was destroyed by fires during the reign of Ivan IV.{45}

In addition to the golden domes of its cathedrals and the bright red roofs of its palaces, during the reign of Vasili III, Moscow began to gather other decorative works that amazed pilgrims from other Russian towns. Aleviso of Florence is often credited with the work on the doors and lintels of the old churches within the palace, and the porches of the Vossnesenski, Blagovieshchenski, and other Cathedrals within the Kremlin. The gilded and embossed metalwork of the doors, along with the carved and brightly colored columns and lintels, impressed visitors with Moscow's wealth, as precious metals were used so extravagantly for decoration. There are not many examples of this period's work still around; those that remain are mostly preserved within the palace instead of being, as they once were, exposed to the elements. However, nearly all of the wooden structures of Moscow from the time of the Princes were destroyed by fires during the reign of Ivan IV.{45}

{46}

{46}

{47}

{47}



TEREM—ENTRANCE TO CHAPEL OF ST LAZARUS

TEREM—ENTRANCE TO CHAPEL OF ST LAZARUS



TEREM—ENTRANCE TO CHAPEL OF ST LAZARUS

TEREM—ENTRANCE TO THE CHAPEL OF ST. LAZARUS

CHAPTER V

Ivan the Terrible

“A right Scythian, full of readie wisdom, cruell, bloudye, mercilesse.”—Horsey.

“A true Scythian, full of quick wisdom, cruel, bloody, merciless.” —Horsey.

MOST conspicuous of all the monuments of the past Moscow contains, is the great weird building familiarly known as the church of Vasili Blajenni; as monstrous and impressive is the era that produced it. The half century during which Ivan the Terrible reigned over Muscovy is a unique period in the history of Russia. And not that of Russia only, for in no country at any time have so many and diverse outrages been perpetrated at one man’s command. Disasters resulting from human ambition and folly sully the history of every land, but all histories are spotless in comparison with that of Moscow under its first Tsar—a creature of unparalleled ferocity and inconceivable wickedness.

MOST noticeable of all the historical landmarks that Moscow has is the unusual building known as the Church of Vasily the Blessed; just as extraordinary and striking is the time period that created it. The fifty years during which Ivan the Terrible ruled Muscovy is a distinctive chapter in Russia's history. And it's not just Russia; in no other country and at no other time have so many different atrocities been committed at the command of one individual. History is marked by disasters caused by human ambition and foolishness in every country, but all other histories seem clean compared to that of Moscow under its first Tsar—a being of unmatched brutality and unimaginable evil.

Ivan was the son of the crafty Vasili Ivanovich in his dotage; of Helena Glinski, a fiery-natured Lithuanian woman, passionate as a Spaniard, reckless as a Tartar. But if his parentage was unpromising his upbringing was worse. He and his mother had many enemies, the members of princely houses in vassalage in Moscow but with aspirations to the throne. These men, mostly relations of the Tsar, were insistent upon the rules of precedence, both for the gratification of their own vanity, and as of possible importance in the{48} event of a Tsar dying without direct heir. For this reason all the Tsars were merciless towards their relatives on their father’s side, and looked for help from the relations of their mother and wife, who had most to gain from the succession being maintained in a direct line.

Ivan was the son of the cunning Vasili Ivanovich in his old age and Helena Glinski, a fiery Lithuanian woman who was as passionate as a Spaniard and as reckless as a Tartar. But if his parentage was unpromising, his upbringing was even worse. He and his mother had many enemies among the princely houses in Moscow who were vassals but had ambitions for the throne. These men, mostly relatives of the Tsar, insisted on matters of precedence, both to satisfy their own vanity and because it could be important in the{48} case of a Tsar dying without a direct heir. For this reason, all the Tsars were ruthless towards their paternal relatives and looked for support from their maternal and in-law relatives, who had the most to gain from keeping the succession in a direct line.

Helena, as regent, appears to have governed well. She did not marry again, thus the rights of Ivan and his brother Yuri were not endangered by her. Her lover, Kniaz Telepniev, for a time kept at bay the rival factions of the more powerful nobles, and possibly was instrumental in thwarting the plots of the Glinski. At Helena’s command two of her relatives were executed for conspiring against the infant Tsar. She enclosed the Kitai Gorod with a wall of stone; improved the defences of Moscow in other ways, gave the people a new coinage, founded monasteries, built churches, and continued the policy of the rulers of Moscow. Five years after her husband’s death she died suddenly, of poison it is said, and the rumour may be credited.

Helena, as regent, seems to have ruled effectively. She didn’t remarry, so the rights of Ivan and his brother Yuri weren’t threatened by her. Her lover, Kniaz Telepniev, kept the rival factions of the more powerful nobles in check for a while and may have played a key role in stopping the Glinski’s schemes. At Helena’s order, two of her relatives were executed for plotting against the young Tsar. She fortified the Kitai Gorod with a stone wall, improved the defenses of Moscow in various ways, introduced a new currency, founded monasteries, built churches, and continued the policies of Moscow's rulers. Five years after her husband’s death, she died suddenly, allegedly from poison, and that rumor seems plausible.

In 1538, Ivan, then in his eighth year, and his brother Yuri, his junior by eighteen months, were left to the mercies of the most powerful factions about the court. They were neglected; Ivan himself said of this period, “we two were treated as strangers: even as the children of beggars are served. We were ill clothed, cold, and often went hungry.”

In 1538, Ivan, who was eight years old, and his brother Yuri, who was a year and a half younger, were left at the mercy of the most powerful factions at court. They were neglected; Ivan himself said of this time, “we two were treated like strangers: just like the children of beggars. We were poorly dressed, cold, and often went hungry.”

Jealous of each other the courtiers would not allow the princes to attach themselves to anyone. If Ivan felt drawn to anyone, or any person took notice of him, all the others combined to separate the two.

Jealous of one another, the courtiers wouldn't let the princes get close to anyone. If Ivan felt attracted to someone, or if someone showed an interest in him, everyone else would team up to pull them apart.

The Shooiskis were then the most powerful family, and Shooiski treated Ivan with scant consideration. His tutors encouraged him to ride at full speed through the streets and try to knock down the old and feeble;{49} they allowed him to have animals tortured for his diversion, and laughed with him at their plight when flung from the roof of the palace. Ivan learned to read, and spelled through all the books he could obtain. From these old chronicles,—from those of the Kings of Israel, to the doings of his own ancestors—he seems to have obtained the idea of the powers of sovereignty. A close observer he noticed that although ordinarily he was treated as of little account, when any act of state had to be done he was always summoned to give the command. Young as he was, Ivan knew his importance. One day, when he was thirteen years old, he went out sporting with Gluiski, and Gluiski incited him to repress the arrogance of Shooiski. Ivan did it by having Shooiski pulled out into the street and worried to death there and then by Gluiski’s hounds.

The Shooiskis were the most powerful family, and Shooiski treated Ivan with little respect. His tutors urged him to ride full speed through the streets and try to knock down the old and weak; {49} they let him have animals tortured for his amusement and laughed with him at their suffering when they were thrown from the roof of the palace. Ivan learned to read and went through all the books he could find. From these old records—from the stories of the Kings of Israel to the actions of his own ancestors—he seemed to have gained an understanding of the powers of sovereignty. As a keen observer, he noticed that although he was usually treated as unimportant, whenever there was a state matter to handle, he was always called to give the command. Even at a young age, Ivan understood his significance. One day, when he was thirteen, he went out hunting with Gluiski, who encouraged him to challenge Shooiski's arrogance. Ivan did this by having Shooiski dragged out into the street and attacked to death then and there by Gluiski’s hounds.

From that time Ivan treated all with cruelty. In his eighteenth year he arrogated to himself the title of Tsar—the name by which all great rulers were designated in the old Slavonic books he had read. In the same year, 1547, he married Anastasia Romanof, and in that year the inhabitants of Moscow, tired of his cruelties, repeatedly fired the town. In April the merchants’ stores were fired, probably by robbers intent upon gain; the fire spread, destroying the stores of the Tsar, the monastery of the Epiphany, and most of the houses in the Kitai Gorod. On the 20th of the same month the streets of the artisans along the Yauza suffered, and on the 21st June, during a high wind, a fire started on the far side of the Neglinnaia, in the Arbat, and this spread to the Kremlin and destroyed there the whole of the wooden buildings. The inhabitants could save nothing, and the night was made more hideous by frequent explosions as the fire reached one powder magazine and another. The palaces, the tribunals, the treasuries, armouries, warehouses, all were{50} destroyed. All books, deeds, pictures and ikons were lost, with few exceptions. The metropolitan, the aged Macarius, was praying in the cathedral and refused to leave; he was forcibly removed, placed in a basket and lowered from the Kremlin wall near the Tainitski gate; the rope broke, he fell to the ground, and was taken more dead than alive to the Novo Spasski Monastery. There was not time to remove the Holy ikons. The fire after destroying the roof of the cathedral burnt out, and the celebrated ikon of the Virgin of Vladimir was saved.

From that time, Ivan treated everyone with cruelty. At eighteen, he claimed the title of Tsar—the name used for all great rulers in the old Slavonic books he had read. In the same year, 1547, he married Anastasia Romanof, and during that year, the people of Moscow, fed up with his cruelty, set fire to the town multiple times. In April, the merchants' stores caught fire, likely set by robbers looking for loot; the fire spread, destroying the Tsar's stores, the Epiphany monastery, and most of the houses in Kitai Gorod. On April 20th, the artisans' streets along the Yauza were affected, and on June 21st, during a strong wind, a fire broke out across the Neglinnaia in the Arbat and spread to the Kremlin, destroying all the wooden buildings there. The residents couldn't save anything, and the night grew more terrifying with frequent explosions as the fire reached one gunpowder magazine after another. The palaces, courts, treasuries, armories, warehouses—all were{50} destroyed. All books, documents, pictures, and ikons were lost, with a few exceptions. The aging metropolitan, Macarius, was praying in the cathedral and refused to leave; he was forcibly taken, put in a basket, and lowered from the Kremlin wall near the Tainitski gate; the rope broke, and he fell to the ground, taken more dead than alive to the Novo Spasski Monastery. There was no time to remove the Holy ikons. After burning the roof of the cathedral, the fire died down, and the famous ikon of the Virgin of Vladimir was saved.

The ruins smouldered for a week. Seventeen hundred perished in the flames. The Tsar withdrew to the Sparrow Hills so as not to see the distress of the people. The survivors, their beards burnt, their faces blackened, fought among the embers for the vestiges of what had been theirs. Church and court alike forsook the spot.

The ruins smoldered for a week. Seventeen hundred people died in the flames. The Tsar moved to the Sparrow Hills so he wouldn’t have to see the suffering of the people. The survivors, their beards burnt and their faces charred, fought through the ashes for the remnants of what had once been theirs. Both the church and the court abandoned the place.

An earnest priest, Sylvester, forced himself upon the terrified Tsar, upbraided him for his excesses, and exhorted him to lead a better life. Ivan, always an arrant coward, now completely unnerved, at once came under the influence of the priest. He took as his counsellor one Adashef, a man of good repute and some wisdom. For thirteen years he and Sylvester administered the law and dictated the policy of the country. In Anastasia they had an able assistant and firm friend. Their first act was directed towards limiting the power of the Tsar; at their behest he called together an assembly of the people to advise him. They compiled a code of laws, the Sudebnik, and the Stoglaf, this last the decrees of the council (Zemstvo) held at Moscow in 1551 and shortly afterwards Sylvester issued his “Domostroi”—household law, teaching how to live as Godfearing men and prove good husbandmen. The Tsar, earnest in his{51} new rôle, paid great attention to his spiritual advisers. When twenty-one he exhorted them to “Thunder in mine ears the voice of God that my soul may live.”

An earnest priest, Sylvester, confronted the terrified Tsar, scolding him for his excesses and urging him to lead a better life. Ivan, always a coward, was completely shaken and immediately fell under the priest's influence. He appointed one Adashef as his advisor, a man of good reputation and some wisdom. For thirteen years, he and Sylvester governed the law and shaped the country's policies. They had a capable ally and loyal friend in Anastasia. Their first action aimed to limit the Tsar's power; at their suggestion, he convened an assembly of the people for advice. They created a code of laws, the Sudebnik, and the Stoglaf, which contained the council’s decrees (Zemstvo) held in Moscow in 1551. Shortly after, Sylvester published his “Domostroi”—a guide on household law, teaching how to live as God-fearing individuals and responsible farmers. The Tsar, serious about his new role, paid great attention to his spiritual advisors. At twenty-one, he urged them to “Thunder in my ears the voice of God that my soul may live.”

In 1552 he was persuaded to lead an expedition against the Tartars of Kazan. The army was strong and well equipped. With wonderful foresight, a neighbouring town had been well stocked with provisions and was used as a base for the besiegers. After a stubborn resistance Ivan’s army of 150,000 took the town, and slaughtered the defenders. On this occasion Ivan is said to have displayed considerable courage, and when he saw the bodies of the slain Tartars, to have regretted their death, saying, “for though of another faith they are human beings even as ourselves.”

In 1552, he was convinced to lead a mission against the Tartars of Kazan. The army was powerful and well-prepared. With great foresight, a nearby town had been stocked with supplies and served as a base for the attackers. After strong resistance, Ivan’s army of 150,000 captured the town and killed the defenders. On this occasion, Ivan reportedly showed significant courage, and when he saw the bodies of the dead Tartars, he regretted their deaths, saying, “for though of another faith they are human beings just like us.”

Too soon he returned to Moscow, and the newly-conquered province rebelled. Ivan then was very ill, “a fever so great all thought him at the point of death.” Ivan thought his last hour was at hand and summoned the nobles to take the oath of fealty to his son Dmitri, whom he nominated his successor. Some refused, others hesitated: Zakharin-Yurief alone, was earnest and ready in his allegiance. He was a near kinsman of the Tsarina and so, more than any, was interested in the welfare of Dmitri. Others intrigued for the succession. The Tsar lying helpless on his couch heard the boyards and counsellors discussing their plans in the adjoining apartment. Even Sylvester and his trusted counsellor Alexis Adashef, favoured the succession of Vladimir, Ivan’s cousin.

Too soon, he returned to Moscow, and the newly-conquered province revolted. Ivan was very ill, “with a fever so great that everyone thought he was on the brink of death.” Ivan believed his last moments were near and called the nobles to swear allegiance to his son Dmitri, whom he appointed as his successor. Some refused, and others hesitated; only Zakharin-Yurief was genuine and ready to pledge his loyalty. He was a close relative of the Tsarina and, more than anyone, was concerned about Dmitri’s future. Others schemed for the throne. The Tsar, lying helpless on his couch, heard the boyars and advisors discussing their plans in the next room. Even Sylvester and his trusted advisor Alexis Adashef favored Vladimir, Ivan’s cousin, for the succession.

Ivan recovered, but for a time he acted as though he had forgotten what he overheard on his sick bed. He never forgave. His wife, Anastasia, also withdrew her friendship from those who had opposed her son’s succession.{52}

Ivan recovered, but for a while, he pretended he had forgotten what he heard while he was sick. He never forgave. His wife, Anastasia, also cut off her friendships with those who opposed her son's succession.{52}

Then Ivan made a visit to the monastery at Bielo Ozersk—the White Lake—and there he saw the aged Vassian, the old counsellor of his father, who gave him advice contrary to that so earnestly and frequently dinned into his ears by Sylvester and Adashef. “If you wish to become absolute monarch,” said Vassian, “seek no counsellor wiser than yourself. Never take advice from any: instead, give it. Command, never obey. Then will you become a sovereign in all truth.”

Then Ivan visited the monastery at Bielo Ozersk—the White Lake—and there he met the elderly Vassian, the old advisor of his father, who offered him advice that was the opposite of what Sylvester and Adashef had repeatedly drilled into him. “If you want to be an absolute monarch,” Vassian said, “don’t look for a counselor wiser than yourself. Never take advice from anyone; instead, give it. Command, don’t obey. That’s how you’ll truly become a sovereign.”

This advice pleased Ivan. “My father himself,” he answered, “could not have given wiser counsel.”

This advice made Ivan happy. “My dad himself,” he replied, “couldn't have given better advice.”

Ivan could wait for his triumph over his associates. He went now to the Volga again, completed the conquest of Kazan, and his troops pressed on as far as Astrakhan, which they took after slight resistance.

Ivan could wait for his victory over his associates. He went back to the Volga, finished conquering Kazan, and his troops continued on to Astrakhan, which they captured with little resistance.

In Moscow Ivan kept the grand-dukes, princes, and boyards his nearest relatives; his voievodes, or military leaders, were men of good birth, but with no claim on the succession. Under the administration of Adashef, the outlying parts of the Tsar’s dominions were so effectually governed that when the English ships first appeared on the White Sea, Chancellor was not allowed to trade, or penetrate into the interior of the country, until the permission of the Tsar had been received from Moscow.

In Moscow, Ivan kept the grand dukes, princes, and boyars as his closest relatives; his voivodes, or military leaders, were of noble birth but had no rights to the throne. Under Adashef's administration, the outer regions of the Tsar’s territories were governed so effectively that when the English ships first arrived at the White Sea, the Chancellor wasn’t allowed to trade or venture into the country's interior until he received permission from the Tsar in Moscow.

In 1560 Anastasia died, and Ivan fretted under the constant surveillance of Sylvester. He was always at hand, entreating the Tsar to shew mercy, and to live straightly. Both Sylvester and Adashef retired within a short time of Anastasia’s death. For bad generalship in Lithuania, Adashef was imprisoned in the fortress of Dorpat, where he died shortly afterwards. Sylvester was ready enough to send the Tsar and his Russian armies to war against the Tartars and infidels; he opposed wars with Livonia, Lithuania and Poland,{53} where Ivan was particularly desirous of extending his dominion.

In 1560, Anastasia died, and Ivan struggled under the constant watch of Sylvester. He was always nearby, urging the Tsar to show mercy and live righteously. Both Sylvester and Adashef withdrew shortly after Anastasia’s death. For poor leadership in Lithuania, Adashef was imprisoned in the fortress of Dorpat, where he died shortly after. Sylvester was more than willing to send the Tsar and his Russian armies to fight against the Tartars and infidels; however, he opposed wars with Livonia, Lithuania, and Poland,{53} where Ivan was particularly eager to expand his rule.

On the withdrawal of these counsellors again commenced the murders and massacres in which Ivan delighted. Historians divide these into seven cycles; it is a purely arbitrary division—with the exception of the thirteen years 1547-1560, during which he was wedded to Anastasia and engaged in foreign wars, the whole of his long reign was given to terrorising his subjects.

On the removal of these advisors, the murders and massacres that Ivan enjoyed began again. Historians break these events into seven phases; this division is completely arbitrary—except for the thirteen years from 1547 to 1560, when he was married to Anastasia and involved in foreign wars, the entirety of his lengthy reign was dedicated to instilling fear in his subjects.

Obolenski was the first noble killed by Ivan himself; Repnin was murdered whilst at his devotions in church; another was slain simply because he remonstrated with the Tsar for such a display of cruelty. Ivan always used the hour of victory to exterminate foes, and he now relentlessly hunted down all his past advisers and their friends.

Obolenski was the first noble killed by Ivan himself; Repnin was murdered while he was praying in church; another was killed just for speaking out against the Tsar for such a cruel act. Ivan consistently took advantage of his victories to eliminate his enemies, and he now ruthlessly pursued all of his former advisors and their associates.

He was determined on absolute supremacy.

He was set on total dominance.

“To shew his soveraintie over the lives of his subjects, Ivan in his walks, if he disliked the face or person of any man he met by the way, or that looked at him, would command his head to be struck off. There and then the thing was done, and the head cast before him.”

“To show his power over the lives of his subjects, Ivan, while walking, if he didn’t like the face or appearance of any man he encountered or who looked at him, would order his head to be cut off. Right then and there, it was done, and the head was thrown in front of him.”

Dismayed, some of his nobles fled to the west; among them was Kniaz Kourbski, who, not content simply to take service under Sigismund, acquainted the Tsar by letter with the fact. Kniaz Vasili Chibanov was the bearer. Ivan received him on the Krasnœ Kriltso, and there, with his sharp staff, pinned to the floor the foot of Chibanov, who never stirred a muscle during the whole time the long letter was read aloud. Then Chibanov was put to the torture, to obtain particulars of the flight of Kourbski, and the names of his partisans in Moscow; but Chibanov confessed not a word, and in the midst of the most horrible{54} torment praised his master, and counted it a joy to suffer thus for him.

Dismayed, some of his nobles escaped to the west; among them was Prince Kourbski, who, not satisfied with just serving Sigismund, informed the Tsar by letter. Prince Vasili Chibanov delivered the message. Ivan received him at the Krasnœ Kriltso, where he used his sharp staff to pin Chibanov's foot to the floor; Chibanov didn't move a muscle while the long letter was read aloud. Then, Chibanov was tortured to gather details about Kourbski's escape and the names of his supporters in Moscow; however, Chibanov didn't confess a thing, and despite the most horrible torment, he praised his master and considered it a privilege to suffer for him.

Generally Ivan studied to keep on good terms with the common people—whom he feared; by them he was worshipped. Macarius, the metropolitan, complained that “He who blasphemes his maker, meets with forgiveness amongst men, he who reviles the Tsar is sure to lose his head.” Ivan chose as his companions the worst people whom he could find. At one time he withdrew from Moscow, taking umbrage at the prelates, still too powerful to be touched. The people clamoured for his return.

Generally, Ivan studied to stay on good terms with the common people—whom he feared; they idolized him. Macarius, the metropolitan, complained that “He who blasphemes his maker is forgiven by men, but he who insults the Tsar is sure to lose his head.” Ivan chose as his companions the worst people he could find. At one point, he withdrew from Moscow, upset with the prelates, who were still too powerful to be confronted. The people demanded his return.

“The Tsar has forsaken us: we are lost, who will now defend us against the enemy? What are sheep without the shepherd? Let him punish all who deserve it: has he not the power over life and death? The state cannot endure without its head, and we will not acknowledge any other than he whom God has given us.”

“The Tsar has abandoned us: we are lost, who will defend us against the enemy now? What are sheep without a shepherd? Let him deal with everyone who deserves it: doesn’t he have power over life and death? The state can’t survive without its leader, and we will not recognize anyone other than the one God has given us.”

This was gratifying to Ivan. He consented to govern again if the Church would not exercise its prerogative of mercy, and would leave him to do his will. His return was followed by murders and outrages worse than before. Randolph, who in 1568, was in Muscovy on an embassy from England, with which country Ivan wished to be on the best of terms, was not allowed to enter Moscow, because, Count Yuri Tolstoi thinks, Ivan wished to keep from him the knowledge of these massacres. Randolph wrote to Cecil:—

This made Ivan happy. He agreed to rule again if the Church wouldn’t use its power of mercy and would let him do as he pleased. His return led to killings and violence that were even worse than before. Randolph, who was in Muscovy in 1568 on a diplomatic mission from England—a country Ivan wanted to maintain good relations with—was not allowed to enter Moscow. Count Yuri Tolstoi believes this was because Ivan wanted to hide the information about these massacres from him. Randolph wrote to Cecil:—

“Of the Tsar’s condition I have learned that of late he hath beheaded no small number of his nobility, causing their heads to be laid on the streets, to see who durst behold them or lament their deaths. The Chancellor he caused to be executed openly, leaving neither wife, children, nor brother alive. Divers others have been cut to pieces by his command.”

“Regarding the Tsar’s situation, I’ve learned that recently he has beheaded quite a few of his nobles, placing their heads in the streets to see who would dare to look at them or mourn their deaths. He had the Chancellor executed publicly, leaving no wife, children, or brother behind. Several others have been mutilated on his orders.”

During the third cycle of Ivan’s outrages, Philip,{55} the metropolitan, in 1568, dared to upbraid the Tsar. Ivan with a crowd of his irreligious followers, disguised in the cloaks they wore when sallying forth to rapine and outrage, repaired to the Uspenski Sobor for a blessing before starting on their fearful work. The metropolitan refused to recognise Ivan so clad when called upon for his benediction.

During the third wave of Ivan's violent actions, Philip,{55} the metropolitan, in 1568, had the courage to confront the Tsar. Ivan, along with a group of his irreverent followers, dressed in the cloaks they wore when they went out to commit robbery and violence, went to the Uspenski Sobor to seek a blessing before embarking on their terrifying mission. The metropolitan refused to acknowledge Ivan in that attire when asked for his blessing.

“What is the thing thou hast done then, O Tsar, that thou shouldst put off from thee the form of thine honour? Fear the judgment of God, to whom we are here making a pure sacrifice. Behind the altar the innocent blood of Christian men is made to flow by thee! Among pagans, in the country of the infidel, are laws, and justice, and compassion shown to men, but in Russia now is nothing of this kind. The lives and goods of citizens are without defence. Everywhere pillage, on all sides murder, and each and all these crimes are committed in the name of the Tsar. There is a judge on high—how shall you present yourself before that Tribunal? Dare you appear there covered with the blood of innocents, deaf to their cries of pain? Even the very stones beneath your feet cry aloud to heaven for vengeance on such black deeds as are done here. O Prince, I speak to thee as the shepherd, fearing none but the Lord our God.”

“What have you done, Tsar, that you should strip away your honor? Fear the judgment of God, to whom we are offering a pure sacrifice. Behind the altar, innocent blood of Christian men is being shed by you! Among pagans, in the land of the infidels, there are laws, justice, and compassion shown to people, but in Russia now, there's none of this. Citizens’ lives and possessions are unprotected. Pillage is everywhere, murder is rampant, and all these crimes are committed in the name of the Tsar. There is a higher judge—how will you present yourself before that court? Will you dare show up covered in the blood of the innocent, ignoring their cries for help? Even the stones beneath your feet cry out to heaven for vengeance against such horrific acts happening here. O Prince, I'm speaking to you as a shepherd, fearing only the Lord our God.”

Ivan enraged, stuck his staff into the ground, and swore to be as bad as Philip described him. Vasili Pronski was the first to suffer in the murders that followed closely upon this scene, but Ivan did not forget Philip. One of the soldiers was ordered to present himself before the metropolitan and wear the Tartar skull cap; the metropolitan noticed this irreverence, and turned to the leader for a command that the man should uncover. In the meantime the man did so, and Philip was accused of lying. The boyard, Alexis Basmanov, with a troop of armed men and having the Tsar’s fiat in his hand, arrested Philip whilst officiating at High Mass in the Uspenski Sobor, and read out that by the decree of the clergy, Philip was deposed from his high office. The people were{56} surprised and stupefied. The soldiers seized Philip, tore his vestments from him, and chased him from the church with besoms. He was first taken to the monastery of the Epiphany, next to an obscure prison where he was loaded with irons. Whilst there, the head of his well-beloved nephew, Ivan Borisovich, was thrown to him. A crowd gathered near the prisoner’s cell, and the people spake with each other of his goodness. It frightened Ivan, and he had Philip removed to the monastery at Tver, where he was subsequently strangled by Skutarov on the Tsar’s journey through the town on the way to Novgorod.

Ivan, furious, slammed his staff into the ground and vowed to live up to Philip's worst portrayal of him. Vasili Pronski was the first to pay the price in the murders that followed quickly after this moment, but Ivan didn't forget about Philip. One of the soldiers was told to appear before the metropolitan wearing the Tartar skull cap; the metropolitan noticed the disrespect and turned to the leader, asking for the man to uncover his head. In the meantime, the man did so, and Philip was accused of lying. The boyar, Alexis Basmanov, with a group of armed men and holding the Tsar’s fiat, arrested Philip while he was officiating at High Mass in the Uspenski Sobor and announced that by the decree of the clergy, Philip was deposed from his high office. The people were{56} shocked and bewildered. The soldiers dragged Philip, ripped his vestments off him, and chased him out of the church with brooms. He was first taken to the Epiphany Monastery, then to a hidden prison where he was put in chains. While he was there, the severed head of his beloved nephew, Ivan Borisovich, was thrown to him. A crowd gathered near the prison cell, and the people spoke to each other about Philip's goodness. This scared Ivan, so he had Philip moved to the monastery in Tver, where he was later strangled by Skutarov during the Tsar’s journey through the town on the way to Novgorod.

As a condition for his consent to reside in Moscow, Ivan stipulated for a bodyguard of his own choosing. These men, the öpritchniki, that is, “picked” fellows, became the terror of Moscow. Selected for their readiness to obey, their bodily strength and lack of morals, they recognised no master but Ivan, and by him were privileged to rob and slay the people as they wished, providing they were at hand to kill anyone in particular whom he might want out of the way. They carried bludgeons with heads carved to represent those of dogs, at the saddle bow, and a small besom at the other end, the “speaking symbols” of their intention to hunt down rebels and sweep Russia clean.

As a condition for agreeing to stay in Moscow, Ivan demanded a bodyguard of his choosing. These men, known as the öpritchniki, or "picked" ones, became the terror of Moscow. Chosen for their willingness to obey, physical strength, and lack of morals, they recognized no authority except Ivan, who granted them the freedom to rob and kill as they pleased, as long as they were ready to eliminate anyone he wanted out of the way. They carried clubs with heads carved to look like dogs, slung over their saddles, and a small broom at the other end, the “speaking symbols” of their mission to hunt down rebels and rid Russia of dissent.

By their callousness and brutality they, on many occasions, distinguished themselves in a manner that gladdened Ivan, but at no time did their excesses excel their performance on the march to Novgorod. Ivan, very suspicious of treason, doubted the fidelity of Novgorod, a town with known predilections for freedom, and inclined to favour the more enlightened rule of the western kings than the Russian autocrat. A hired traitor placed a forged letter behind an image in Novgorod Church, and disclosed the plot to Ivan,{57} whose agents found the compromising letter, which contained overtures to the Lithuanians; Ivan started to subdue the town. The öpritchniks preceded him. Klin, a thriving town near Moscow, was sacked; the inhabitants of Tver were spoiled, and many murdered. On their way the advance guard killed all whom they met, lest any should know where the Tsar was. Villages and towns were annihilated. Monks had to find twenty roubles each as ransom; those who could not were thrashed from morning until night, then, when Ivan arrived on the scene, were flogged to death.

Through their cruelty and violence, they often stood out in a way that pleased Ivan, but none of their actions could compare to their behavior on the march to Novgorod. Ivan, who was very suspicious of betrayal, questioned the loyalty of Novgorod, a city known for its love of freedom and its preference for the more progressive rule of western kings over that of the Russian autocrat. A hired traitor hid a forged letter behind an image in Novgorod Church and revealed the plot to Ivan,{57} whose agents discovered the compromising letter, which included offers to the Lithuanians; Ivan then began to take control of the town. The öpritchniks led the way. Klin, a prosperous town near Moscow, was looted; the people of Tver were plundered, and many were killed. On their way, the advance guard slaughtered everyone they encountered, ensuring that no one would know where the Tsar was. Villages and towns were destroyed. Monks had to pay a ransom of twenty roubles each; those who couldn't were beaten from morning until night, and when Ivan finally arrived, they were whipped to death.

On his arrival at Novgorod he was entertained by the people; during the banquet served to him and his followers he gave a loud cry—the signal for his fellows to begin the slaughter. The Tsar and his son went to an enclosure specially reserved for the torture of their victims, and with their lances prodded those who were not quickly enough dragged to the place of torment. Chroniclers say that from 500 to 1000 were slain in cold blood before him each day of his stay. Some were burned, some racked to death, others drowned in the Volkhof, run in on sledges or thrown in from the bridge—soldiers in boats spearing those who swam. Infants were empaled before the eyes of their mothers, husbands butchered along with their wives. Novgorod, at that time larger and of greater commercial importance than Moscow, was so injured that she has never since acquired the rank of even a third-rate town. On leaving it, Ivan called together a few starving survivors, and commanded them to obey the laws and fear him. He went on to Pskov, where the town was saved by the boldness of a half-witted hermit, who offered Ivan raw meat on a fast-day, and threatened him that he would be struck by lightning if any citizen of Pskov was injured whilst Ivan remained in the town. An accident to his horse seemed to Ivan{58} an earnest of the “Holy-man’s” power, and he left the town precipitately.

Upon his arrival in Novgorod, the people welcomed him. During a banquet for him and his followers, he let out a loud cry—his signal for his men to start the slaughter. The Tsar and his son went to an area specifically set aside for torturing their victims, using their lances to prod those who weren't dragged to the place of suffering quickly enough. Chroniclers report that between 500 and 1000 people were killed in cold blood each day of his stay. Some were burned, some were tortured to death, others were drowned in the Volkhof, either brought in on sledges or thrown in from a bridge—soldiers in boats spearing those who tried to swim. Infants were impaled in front of their mothers, and husbands were savagely killed alongside their wives. At that time, Novgorod was larger and more commercially significant than Moscow, but the devastation was so severe that it has never recovered to even the status of a third-rate town. When he left, Ivan gathered a few starving survivors and ordered them to follow the laws and fear him. He then moved on to Pskov, where the town was saved by the daring of a simple-minded hermit, who offered Ivan raw meat on a fasting day and warned him he would be struck by lightning if any citizen of Pskov was harmed while he was in town. An accident involving his horse seemed to Ivan{58} like proof of the “Holy-man’s” power, and he left the town in a hurry.

According to Horsey, Ivan at this time had a Tartar army with him, and tried to reduce other towns in Livonia. At Reval, men and women carried water by night to repair the breaches in the walls made by his cannon during the day, and Ivan, losing six thousand men, in the end had to retreat in shame. Losing more men before Narva, he put in execution there “the most bloody and cruellest massacre that ever was heard of in any age,” giving the spoil of the town to his Tartars. Following the custom of his country, the prisoners of war were all brought as slaves to Moscow, many dying on the way, some, including Scotch and English soldiers of fortune in the pay of the Swedes, thrown into prison in Moscow and there subsequently tortured and executed.

According to Horsey, at this time, Ivan had a Tartar army with him and was trying to conquer other towns in Livonia. In Reval, men and women worked throughout the night to haul water and repair the damage to the walls caused by his cannon during the day. Ivan, who lost six thousand men, eventually had to retreat in disgrace. After suffering more losses near Narva, he carried out “the most brutal and cruel massacre ever recorded,” giving the spoils of the town to his Tartars. Following his country's customs, all the war prisoners were taken as slaves to Moscow, with many dying on the journey, and some, including Scottish and English mercenaries working for the Swedes, thrown into prison in Moscow, where they were later tortured and executed.



ALARM TOWER

Alarm Tower

These excursions of Ivan and his men into distant parts of his dominions afforded the Muscovites some respite from his attentions. The English then there were much impressed by the cruelties of Ivan, though themselves escaping. Jerom Horsey thus describes Ivan’s invasion of Novgorod:—

These journeys of Ivan and his men into far-off regions of his territory gave the people of Moscow some relief from his focus. The English present were quite struck by Ivan's brutalities, although they were able to avoid them themselves. Jerom Horsey describes Ivan’s invasion of Novgorod as follows:—

“O the lamentable outcries and cruel slaughters! The drownings and burnings, the ravishing of women and maids, stripping them naked without mercy or regard of the frozen weather, tying and binding them by three and four together at their horses’ tails: dragging them, some alive, some dead, all bloodying the ways and streets, lying full of carcases of the aged men, women and infants! Thus were infinite numbers of the fairest people in the world dragged into Muscovy.”

“O the heartbreaking cries and brutal killings! The drownings and burnings, the rapes of women and girls, stripping them bare without mercy or concern for the freezing weather, tying them together by threes and fours to their horses’ tails: dragging them, some alive, some dead, all staining the roads and streets with blood, lying among the bodies of old men, women, and infants! Thus were countless numbers of the most beautiful people in the world dragged into Muscovy.”

{59}

{59}

With the spoil brought from Novgorod was the “Great Bell of Novgorod” which had so often called its burghers to assemble for the defence of the town. Ivan was determined that the tocsin should never again be heard over the fallen city. The bell he caused to be hanged in the turret on the Kremlin wall near the Spasski Gate, where for long it was used as the alarm bell of Moscow, but subsequently served as metal when the great bell in Ivan Veliki was recast.

With the loot taken from Novgorod was the “Great Bell of Novgorod,” which had frequently summoned its citizens to gather for the defense of the town. Ivan was set on making sure that the alarm would never again ring out over the ruined city. He had the bell hung in the tower on the Kremlin wall near the Spasski Gate, where it was used for a long time as the alarm bell for Moscow, but later it was melted down when the big bell in Ivan Veliki was recast.

Shortly after his return from Novgorod he entered upon his fourth cycle of massacres. The prisoners were executed in batches before the Spasski Gate. Horsey was instrumental in getting the lives of many spared, and they were settled in a suburb of Moscow where they lived at peace with the citizens but were still subject to attacks from the öpritchniks. Ivan found other traitors among the boyards and princes, for his favourites of to-day were the victims of the morrow.

Shortly after he got back from Novgorod, he started his fourth round of killings. The prisoners were executed in groups in front of the Spasski Gate. Horsey helped save the lives of many, and they were resettled in a neighborhood of Moscow where they lived peacefully with the locals, though they still faced attacks from the öpritchniks. Ivan discovered more traitors among the boyars and princes, as the favorites of today became the victims of tomorrow.

“On July 25, in the middle of the market-place, eighteen scaffolds were erected, a number of instruments of torture were fixed in position, a large stack of wood was lighted, and over it an enormous cauldron of water was placed. Seeing these terrible preparations, the people hurried away and hid themselves wherever they could, abandoning their opened shops, their goods and their money. Soon the place was void but for the band of öpritchniks gathered round the gibbets, and the blazing fire. Then was heard the sound of drums: the Tsar appeared on horseback, accompanied by his dutiful son, the boyards, some princes, and quite a legion of hangmen. Behind these came some hundreds of the condemned, many like spectres; others torn, bleeding, and so feeble they scarce could walk. Ivan halted near the scaffolds and looked around, then at once commanded the öpritchniks to find where the people were and drag them into the light of day. In his impatience he even himself ran about here and there, calling the Muscovites to come forward and see the spectacle he had prepared for them, promising all who came safety and pardon. The inhabitants, fearing to disobey, crept out of their hiding-places,{60} and, trembling with fright, stood round the scaffold. Some having climbed on to the walls, and even showing themselves on the roofs, Ivan shouted: ‘People, ye are about to witness executions and a massacre, but these are traitors whom I thus punish. Answer me: Is this just?’ And on all sides the people shouted approval. ‘Long live our glorious King! Down with traitors! Goiesi, Goida!’

“On July 25, right in the middle of the marketplace, eighteen scaffolds were set up, various torture devices were arranged, a large pile of wood was ignited, and an enormous cauldron of water was placed over it. Seeing these dreadful preparations, the people hurried away and hid wherever they could, leaving their shops open along with their goods and money. Soon, the place was empty except for the group of öpritchniks gathered around the gibbets and the blazing fire. Then the sound of drums was heard: the Tsar appeared on horseback, accompanied by his obedient son, the boyars, some princes, and a whole army of executioners. Behind them followed hundreds of the condemned, many looking like ghosts; others were torn, bleeding, and so weak that they could barely walk. Ivan stopped near the scaffolds and looked around, then immediately ordered the öpritchniks to find the hidden people and drag them into the light. In his impatience, he even ran around calling the Muscovites to come forward and see the spectacle he had prepared, promising safety and pardon to anyone who showed up. The residents, fearing disobedience, crept out of their hiding spots, and trembling with fear, gathered around the scaffold. Some climbed onto the walls and even showed themselves on the roofs. Ivan shouted: ‘People, you are about to witness executions and a massacre, but these are traitors whom I punish. Answer me: Is this just?’ And from all sides, the people shouted their approval. ‘Long live our glorious King! Down with traitors! Goiesi, Goida!’”

“Ivan separated 180 of the prisoners from the crowd and pardoned them. Then the first Clerk of the Council unrolled a scroll and called upon the condemned to answer. The first to be brought before him was Viskovati, and to him he read out: ‘Ivan Mikhailovich, formerly a Counsellor of State, thou hast been found faithless to his Imperial Highness. Thou hast written to the King Sigismund offering him Novgorod: there thy first crime!’ He paused to strike Viskovati on the head, then continued reading: ‘And this thy second crime, not less heinous than thy first, O ungrateful and perfidious one! Thou hast written to the Sultan of Turkey, that he may take Astrakhan and Kazan,’ whereupon he struck the condemned wretch twice, and continued: ‘Also thou hast called upon the Khan of the Krim Tartars to enter and devastate Russia: this thy third crime.’ Viskovati called God to witness that he was innocent, that he had always served faithfully his Tsar and his country: ‘My earthly judges will not recognise the truth; but the Heavenly Judge knows my innocence! Thou also, O Prince, thou wilt recognise it before that tribunal on high!’ Here the executioners interrupted, gagging him. He was then suspended, head downwards, his clothes torn off”, and, Maluta Skutarov, the first to dismount from his horse and lead the attack, cut off an ear, then, little by little, his body was hacked to pieces.

“Ivan separated 180 of the prisoners from the crowd and pardoned them. Then the first Clerk of the Council unrolled a scroll and called on the condemned to answer. The first to be brought before him was Viskovati, and to him he read: ‘Ivan Mikhailovich, once a Counsellor of State, you have been found disloyal to his Imperial Highness. You wrote to King Sigismund offering him Novgorod: that is your first crime!’ He paused to strike Viskovati on the head, then continued reading: ‘And this is your second crime, no less serious than the first, O ungrateful and treacherous one! You have written to the Sultan of Turkey, so he may take Astrakhan and Kazan,’ at which point he struck the condemned man twice and continued: ‘You have also called on the Khan of the Crimean Tartars to invade and devastate Russia: this is your third crime.’ Viskovati called God to witness that he was innocent, that he had always served his Tsar and his country faithfully: ‘My earthly judges will not recognize the truth; but the Heavenly Judge knows my innocence! You too, O Prince, will acknowledge it before that tribunal on high!’ Here the executioners interrupted, gagging him. He was then suspended, head down, his clothes torn off, and Maluta Skutarov, the first to dismount from his horse and lead the attack, cut off an ear, and then, little by little, his body was hacked to pieces.”

“The next victim was the treasurer, Funikov-Kartsef, a friend of Viskovati, accused with him of the same treason, and as unjustly. He in his turn said to Ivan, ‘I pray God will give thee in eternity a fitting reward for thy actions here!’ He was drenched with boiling and cold water alternately, until he expired after enduring the most horrible torments. Then others were hanged, strangled, tortured, cut to pieces, killed slowly, quickly, by whatever means fancy suggested. Ivan himself took a part, stabbing and slaying without dismounting from his horse. In four hours two hundred had been put to death, and then, the carnage over, the hangmen, their clothes covered with blood, and their gory, steaming knives in their hands, surrounded the{61} Tsar and shouted huzzah. ‘Goida! Goida! Long live the Tsar! Ivan for ever! Goida! Goida!’ And so shouting they went round the market-place that Ivan might examine the mutilated remains, the piled-up corpses, the actual evidences of the slaughter. Enough of bloodshed for the one day? Not a bit of it. Ivan, satiated for the moment with the slaughter, would gloat over the grief of the survivors. Wishing to see the unhappy wives of Funikov-Kartsef and of Viskovati, he forced a way into their apartments and made merry over their grief! The wife of Funikov-Kartsef he put to the torture, that he might have from her whatever treasures she possessed. Equally he wished to torture her fifteen-year-old daughter, who was groaning and lamenting at their ill fortune, but contented himself with handing her over to the by no means tender mercies of the Tsarevich Ivan. Taken afterwards to a convent, these unhappy beings shortly died of grief—it is said.”—Karamzin.

“The next victim was the treasurer, Funikov-Kartsef, a friend of Viskovati, who was accused alongside him of the same treason, and just as unfairly. He turned to Ivan and said, ‘I pray God will reward you in eternity for your actions here!’ He was drenched with boiling and cold water alternately until he died after enduring the most horrific torments. Then others were hanged, strangled, tortured, cut to pieces, killed slowly, quickly, by whatever means came to mind. Ivan himself participated, stabbing and killing without getting off his horse. In four hours, two hundred had been executed, and then, when the bloodshed was over, the executioners, their clothes soaked with blood and their bloody, steaming knives in hand, surrounded the{61} Tsar and shouted huzzah. ‘Goida! Goida! Long live the Tsar! Ivan forever! Goida! Goida!’ And as they shouted, they went around the market-place so Ivan could see the mutilated bodies, the piled-up corpses, the actual evidence of the slaughter. Enough bloodshed for one day? Not at all. Ivan, momentarily satisfied with the killing, took pleasure in the sorrow of the survivors. Wanting to see the devastated wives of Funikov-Kartsef and Viskovati, he forced his way into their apartments and reveled in their grief! He tortured Funikov-Kartsef’s wife to extract whatever treasures she had. He also wanted to torment her fifteen-year-old daughter, who was moaning and grieving over their misfortune, but settled for handing her over to the far from gentle mercy of Tsarevich Ivan. Later taken to a convent, these unfortunate souls soon died from grief—it is said.”—Karamzin.

Sometimes Ivan’s vagaries were less gruesome, possessing even a comic aspect:—

Sometimes Ivan’s mood swings were less intense, even having a funny side:—

One day he requisitioned of his secretary 200,000 men at arms by such a day and signed the order “Johnny of Moscow.” He carried a staff with a very sharp spike in the end, which, in discourse he would strike through his boyard’s feet, and if they could bear it without flinching, he would favour them. He once sent to Vologda for a pot of fleas and because the town could not send the measure full, he fined the inhabitants 7000 roubles.

One day, he ordered his secretary to gather 200,000 soldiers by a certain date and signed the order “Johnny of Moscow.” He carried a staff with a very sharp spike on the end, and in conversations, he would jab it into his boyars' feet. If they could stand it without flinching, he would show them favor. He once requested a pot of fleas from Vologda, and since the town couldn't send a full measure, he fined the residents 7,000 roubles.

“He once went in disguise into a village and sought shelter. The only man who would offer it was the one worst off, and at the time sore beset. Ivan promised to return, and did so with a great company and many presents, acting also as godson to the man’s child, whose birth he had witnessed. Then his followers burned all the other dwellings in the village to teach the owners charity and try how good it was to lie out of doors in winter.”

“He once went incognito into a village looking for a place to stay. The only person who offered him shelter was the one who was struggling the most and was in a tough situation. Ivan promised to come back, and he did so with a large group and lots of gifts, also serving as the godfather to the man's child, whose birth he had seen. Then his followers burned down all the other houses in the village to teach the owners about charity and show them how it felt to sleep outside in the winter.”

“When Ivan went on his tours he was met by the householders and presented with the best they had. A poor shoemaker knowing not what to give, except a pair of sandals, was reminded that a large turnip in his{62} garden was a rarity, and so presented that to Ivan, who took the present so kindly that he commanded a hundred of his followers to buy sandals of the man at a crown a pair. A boyard seeing him so well paid, made account by the rule of proportion to get a much greater reward by presenting Ivan with a fine horse, but Ivan, suspecting his intention, rewarded him with the turnip the bootmaker had given.”

“When Ivan went on his tours, he was greeted by the local homeowners and offered their best gifts. A poor shoemaker, unsure of what to give other than a pair of sandals, was reminded that a large turnip from his garden was a rarity, so he gave that to Ivan. Ivan accepted the gift graciously and instructed a hundred of his followers to buy sandals from the man for a crown each. A nobleman, noticing how well the shoemaker was rewarded, calculated that he could get a much greater reward by giving Ivan a fine horse. However, Ivan, suspecting his motives, rewarded him with the turnip that the shoemaker had offered.”

On a certain festival he played mad pranks, which caused some Dutch and English women to laugh, and he, noticing this, sent all to the palace, where he had them stripped stark naked before him in a great room and then he commanded four or five bushels of pease to be thrown on the floor and made them pick all up one by one, and, when they had done, gave them wine and bade them heed how they laughed before an emperor again. He sent for a nobleman of Kasan, who was called Plesheare, which is “Bald,” and the Vayvod mistaking the word, thought he sent for a hundred bald pates and therefore got together as many as he could, about eighty or ninety, and sent them up speedily with an excuse that he could find no more in his province and asking pardon. The emperor seeing so many, crossed himself, and finding out how the mistake occurred, made the baldpates drunk for three days then sent them home again.—Collins.

On a certain festival, he played crazy pranks that made some Dutch and English women laugh. Noticing this, he sent them all to the palace, where he had them stripped completely naked in a large room. Then he ordered four or five bushels of peas to be scattered on the floor and made them pick them up one by one. Once they finished, he gave them wine and warned them to be careful how they laughed in front of an emperor again. He called for a nobleman from Kasan named Plesheare, which means "Bald," but the Vayvod misunderstood the term and thought he was asking for a hundred bald men. So, he quickly gathered about eighty or ninety and sent them up, apologizing for not being able to find more in his province. When the emperor saw so many, he crossed himself and, after discovering the mix-up, got the bald men drunk for three days before sending them home again.—Collins.

“He it was who nailed a French ambassador’s hat to his head. Sir Jeremy Bowes, the English ambassador, soon after came before Ivan, put on his hat, and cocked it before him, at which Ivan sternly demanded how he durst do so, having heard how he chastised the French ambassador. Sir Jeremy answered, ‘I am the ambassador of the invincible Queen of England, who does not veil her bonnet, nor bare her head to any prince living. If any of her ministers shall receive any affront abroad, she is able to avenge her own quarrel.’

"He's the one who nailed a French ambassador’s hat to his head. Sir Jeremy Bowes, the English ambassador, soon came before Ivan, put on his hat, and tilted it in front of him, which made Ivan sternly ask how he dared to do that after seeing how he punished the French ambassador. Sir Jeremy replied, 'I am the ambassador of the invincible Queen of England, who doesn’t cover her head or bow to any living prince. If any of her ministers face an insult abroad, she is fully capable of avenging her own honor.'"

“ ‘Look you at that!’ cried Ivan to his boyards, ‘Which of you would do so much for me, your master?’ ”

“‘Look at that!’ Ivan shouted to his nobles, ‘Which of you would do so much for me, your master?’”

He was probably not acting nor scoffing when he{63} acted the part of abbot, and made his companions friars of the house at Alexandrovski—to which he retreated for upwards of a year at a time when he mistrusted the people of Moscow and feared for his life and his throne. Ivan regularly summoned to mass this strange company, all clad like brothers of a monastery, and himself officiated. His prostrations were no sham, for his forehead bore the marks of its severe knockings on the floor, but in the middle of a mass he would pause to give some order for the murder of his victims, or the pillage of the rich. The mornings were spent in religious exercise—the rest of the day and much of the night in the foulest orgies and the perpetration of fearful outrages in the dungeons and torture chambers of his residence.

He wasn’t pretending or mocking when he{63} took on the role of abbot and made his friends friars at the Alexandrovski house, where he secluded himself for over a year because he didn’t trust the people of Moscow and feared for his life and his throne. Ivan regularly summoned this strange group to mass, all dressed like monks, and he led the service himself. His kneeling was genuine, as his forehead showed the marks from hitting the floor, but in the middle of a mass, he would pause to give orders for the murder of his targets or the looting of the wealthy. Mornings were spent in religious activities, while the rest of the day and much of the night were filled with the most debauched parties and horrifying acts in the dungeons and torture chambers of his palace.

At all times the boyards durst do nothing without him, and waited upon him duteously wherever he might go. His voievodes kept the newly-conquered provinces in subjection; others carried the war into the country of his enemies and brought fresh lands under his dominion. Yermak, an outlaw, conquered Siberia and made of it a gift to the Tsar. Anthony Jenkinson, on behalf of the English Russia Company, conveyed their goods from Archangel to Astrakhan; there fitted out a fleet for trading on the shores of the Caspian, and made a successful war on the Shah of Persia.

At all times, the nobles wouldn’t do anything without him and followed him respectfully wherever he went. His leaders kept the newly-conquered provinces in check; others took the fight to his enemies and brought more land under his rule. Yermak, a fugitive, conquered Siberia and gifted it to the Tsar. Anthony Jenkinson, representing the English Russia Company, transported their goods from Archangel to Astrakhan; there, he organized a fleet for trading along the Caspian coast and waged a successful war against the Shah of Persia.

In 1571 Ivan’s voievodes failed him. They were unable, or unwilling, to oppose the Tartar horde and it reached Moscow. There the enemy pillaged and burnt the town, destroying the stores, houses and buildings outside the Kremlin. The town suffered worse than in the great conflagrations of 1547, but the Tartars, satisfied with the spoil, withdrew. They subsequently sent envoys to Ivan and these were at once imprisoned. Kept in dark rooms, ill-treated, almost starved,—they endured; made light of the hardships; scorned{64} their guardians. At last an audience was granted them.

In 1571, Ivan's commanders let him down. They were either unable or unwilling to fight against the Tartar horde, which made its way to Moscow. There, the enemy looted and burned the town, destroying the stores, homes, and buildings outside the Kremlin. The town suffered more than it did in the massive fires of 1547, but the Tartars, happy with their plunder, retreated. They later sent envoys to Ivan, who were immediately imprisoned. Kept in dark rooms, mistreated, and nearly starved, they endured it all; they downplayed their suffering and mocked{64} their captors. Finally, they were granted an audience.

“The Ambassador enters Ivan’s presence; his followers kept back in a space with grates of iron between the Emperor and them; at which the ambassador chafes with a hellish, hollow voice, looking fierce and grimly. Four captains of the guard bring him near the Emperor’s seat. Himself, a most ugly creature, without reverence, thunders out, says,—His master and lord, Devlet Geray, great Emperor of all the Kingdoms and Kams the sun did spread his beams over, sent to him Ivan Vasilievich, his vassal, and Grand Duke over Russia by his permission, to know how he did like the scourge of his displeasure by sword, fire and famine? Had sent him for remedy (pulling out a foul, rusty knife) to cut his throat withal.” They hasted him forth from the room, and would have taken off his gown and cap, but he and his company strove with them so stoutly. The Emperor fell into such an agony; sent for his ghostly father; tore his own hair and beard for madness! Then sent away the ambassador with this message, “Tell the miscreant and unbeliever, thy master, it is not he, it is for my sins, and the sins of my people against my God and Christ. He it is that hath given him, a limb of Satan, the power and opportunity to be the instrument of my rebuke, by whose pleasure and grace I doubt not of revenge, and to make him my vassal ere long be.” The Tartar answered, “He would not do him so much service as to do any such message for him.”—Horsey.

“The Ambassador enters Ivan’s presence; his followers are held back behind iron grates separating them from the Emperor. The ambassador, with a menacing and hollow voice, appears fierce and grim. Four captains of the guard bring him closer to the Emperor’s seat. He is a strikingly ugly figure, lacking reverence, and dramatically declares, ‘My master, Devlet Geray, the great Emperor of all the Kingdoms and Kams beneath the sun, has sent me to Ivan Vasilievich, his vassal and Grand Duke over Russia, to ask how he feels about the punishment of sword, fire, and famine. I am here to offer a remedy’—and he pulls out a foul, rusty knife—‘to cut his throat with this.’ They quickly removed him from the room and attempted to take off his gown and cap, but he and his companions struggled fiercely against them. The Emperor was engulfed in such agony that he called for his confessor, tearing out his own hair and beard in madness! Then he sent away the ambassador with this message, ‘Tell the villain and unbeliever, your master, that it is not he, but my sins and the sins of my people against my God and Christ that have brought this upon me. He is but a servant of Satan, given the power and opportunity to be the instrument of my punishment, by whose pleasure and grace I have no doubt I will seek revenge and make him my vassal soon enough.’ The Tartar replied, ‘He would not do him the service of delivering any such message for him.’”—Horsey.

Ivan had to send his own emissaries to the Tartars and the Khan kept them imprisoned seven years, and in other ways showed his contempt for the ruler of Moscow. But for Ivan’s newly-found friends the English, his enemies in east and west would have conquered him. The English, much to the disgust of Swedes and Poles, supplied Ivan with artillery and small arms; improved engines of war, much gunpowder, and showed his men how to use them—Russians are not slow to learn.

Ivan had to send his own messengers to the Tartars, and the Khan held them captive for seven years, showing his disdain for the ruler of Moscow in various ways. However, if it weren't for Ivan's new allies, the English, his enemies to the east and west would have defeated him. The English, much to the annoyance of the Swedes and Poles, provided Ivan with artillery and firearms, advanced weapons, plenty of gunpowder, and taught his troops how to use them—Russians pick things up quickly.

In 1548 Ivan sent John Schlitte to Germany to enlist foreign artisans for his service. Attracted by the high remuneration offered, a hundred were willing{65} to accompany Schlitte back to Moscow, but the Governments, anticipating danger to their territory if the Russ became enlightened, refused permission. Only a few determined stragglers reached Russian territory. The first printers in Russia were encouraged for a time, then, for their own safety, had hurriedly to seek exile.

In 1548, Ivan sent John Schlitte to Germany to recruit foreign craftsmen for his service. Enticed by the generous pay, a hundred were ready{65} to travel back to Moscow with Schlitte, but the governments, fearing a threat to their land if the Russians became more educated, denied them permission. Only a few determined individuals managed to enter Russian territory. The first printers in Russia received some support for a while, but then, for their own safety, they had to quickly flee into exile.

For Moscow Ivan did little: twice during his reign the town was destroyed by fire. After the first he built himself a new palace of wood within the Kremlin; later he had another constructed outside, between the Nikitskaia and the Arbat. For a long time he lived in neither, preferring a wretched dwelling in a far off village, whence he believed he could, at need, escape unobserved to England if any of his subjects took up arms against him.

For Moscow, Ivan didn’t do much: the town was burned down twice during his reign. After the first fire, he built a new wooden palace within the Kremlin; later, he had another one built outside, between Nikitskaia and the Arbat. For a long time, he didn’t live in either place, choosing instead to stay in a shabby house in a remote village, from where he thought he could quietly escape to England if any of his subjects rebelled against him.

The monument of his reign is the church in the Grand Place. Dedicated to the “Intercession of the Holy Virgin,” it was built at Ivan’s command, and at the expense of Kazan, to commemorate the conquest of that town, which fell on the first of October 1552. Commenced in 1553, it was completed six years later and consecrated by the Metropolitan Macarius on the day of its patron saint.

The monument of his reign is the church in the Grand Place. Dedicated to the “Intercession of the Holy Virgin,” it was built at Ivan’s order and funded by Kazan to commemorate the conquest of that city, which happened on October 1, 1552. Work began in 1553, and it was finished six years later, consecrated by Metropolitan Macarius on the feast day of its patron saint.

The name of its architect is unknown. Tradition asserts that Ivan, to make sure that this church should be “the crowning effort of his wonderful genius,” put out his eyes. There is no evidence in support of this story, and it is unlikely that Ivan would have done a thing so usual.

The architect's name is unknown. Legend has it that Ivan, to ensure this church would be “the crowning effort of his wonderful genius,” blinded himself. There’s no proof to back up this tale, and it seems unlikely that Ivan would have done something so extreme.

Many writers have asserted that this fantastic edifice is a mixture of the Gothic, Moorish, Indian, Byzantine and other styles of architecture. As a matter of fact it is but an exaggeration of the Russian style, an agglomeration of domes, towers and spires, one or other of which may be found on many buildings in “wooden Russia.” In the chapter on “Ecclesiastical{66} Moscow” the reader will find further information on this point. It appears to embody the salient features of many styles, eastern and western, and the whole, if neither beautiful nor magnificent is strikingly imposing and original. Unlike other Russian churches the belfry instead of being at the west end, is at the east. Nine of its chapels are each surmounted by a lofty roof differing from the others.

Many writers have claimed that this amazing building is a blend of Gothic, Moorish, Indian, Byzantine, and other architectural styles. In reality, it's more of an exaggeration of the Russian style, a collection of domes, towers, and spires, many of which can be seen on buildings in "wooden Russia." In the chapter on "Ecclesiastical{66} Moscow," the reader will find more details on this topic. It seems to incorporate the key features of various styles, both eastern and western, and while it may not be beautiful or magnificent, it is definitely striking and original. Unlike other Russian churches, the belfry is located at the east end instead of the west. Nine of its chapels each have a tall roof that differs from the others.

The central one, that dedicated to the Virgin, has a high tower and wonderful spire, the paintings on its internal converging sides adding to its extravagant proportions. The other eight chapels on this floor surround the spire and are covered with the usual arched vault supporting longer or shorter cylindrical towers, surmounted with cupolas of different forms and sizes. One, has apparently large facets; another bristles like the back of a hedgehog; a third bears closest resemblance to a pine-apple, a fourth to a melon; a fifth is in folds, another has spiral gonflements—none are plain. A covered gallery extends from north to south, with roofed and spired stairways leading up to the church level, and a narrow passage and outside wall enclose the remaining chapels. The quaint belfry with its Russo-Gothic spire and bright roofing, being unlike aught else, is in keeping with the general design. Outside, the central dome is brightly gilt, the others are painted in gaudy colours, and the whole of the exterior is decorated with crude patterns in strong contrast. Its design is bizarre; its colour is motley; the two both harmonise and contrast—the whole fascinates. It is at once both a nightmare and a revelation. Like an impressionist’s picture it rivets attention by apparent strength and seeming originality. It cannot be forgotten, yet it repels by its egregious fatuity. It is the over-inflated frog at the instant of explosion. It is not even known by its correct name: covering the remains of a{67}

The main one, dedicated to the Virgin, has a tall tower and a stunning spire, with paintings on its sloping sides enhancing its grand proportions. The other eight chapels on this level surround the spire and feature the usual arched vaults supporting cylindrical towers of varying heights, topped with cupolas of different shapes and sizes. One has large facets; another resembles a hedgehog's back; a third looks like a pineapple, while a fourth is similar to a melon; a fifth is folded, and another has spiral bulges—none of them are plain. A covered gallery runs from north to south, with covered and spired stairways leading up to the church level, and a narrow passage along with an outer wall encloses the remaining chapels. The unique belfry, with its Russo-Gothic spire and bright roofing, stands out and fits the overall design. Outside, the central dome is brightly gilded, while the others are painted in bright colors, and the entire exterior is adorned with bold patterns in strong contrast. Its design is unusual; its colors are mixed; both elements harmonize and contrast—the whole is captivating. It evokes both a nightmare and a revelation. Like an impressionist painting, it grabs attention with its apparent strength and seeming originality. It's unforgettable, yet it can be off-putting due to its excessive absurdity. It's like an over-inflated frog at the moment of bursting. It's not even known by its proper name: covering the remains of a{67}



VASILI BLAJENNI

VASILI BLAJENNI

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
VASILI BLAJENNI

mendicant monk “idiotic for Christ’s sake,” its familiar appellation, “Blessed Willie,” is derived from him. He it was who so often interposed his person between the Tsar and the objects of his wrath. He upbraided{68} Ivan; threatened him with all manner of disasters, but neither Ivan nor his opritchniks ever hurt the naked body of the old beggar. He used to address the Tsar familiarly, “Ivashka” (Bad Jacky); when the Tsar offered him money he let it fall to the floor, blew on his fingers, said the coins burned, and asked Ivan why he had his gold from hell. Then he would tell Ivan that on his forehead were already growing the horns of a goat—that he was becoming a devil really—then hold him up to the ridicule of the court and the people—and Ivan, enraged, dared not strike him down himself or order anyone to do so. Now, the wonderful monument of Ivan’s time is called by the name of the man he feared; it is he the orthodox remember; it is his church; they honour and revere him. Later another popular prophet, “Ivan the Idiot” was buried there by order of the Tsar Theodore: his chapel adjoins that of “Blessed Willie,” below the level of the church itself at the east end.

mendicant monk “idiotic for Christ’s sake,” its familiar nickname, “Blessed Willie,” comes from him. He was the one who often stood between the Tsar and the targets of his anger. He scolded{68} Ivan; threatened him with all sorts of disasters, but neither Ivan nor his opritchniks ever harmed the old beggar's exposed body. He would talk to the Tsar casually, calling him “Ivashka” (Bad Jacky); when the Tsar offered him money, he would let it drop to the floor, blow on his fingers, say the coins were burning, and ask Ivan why he got his gold from hell. Then he would tell Ivan that horns of a goat were already growing on his forehead—that he was really turning into a devil—then hold him up to the mockery of the court and the public—and Ivan, infuriated, didn’t dare to strike him down or order anyone else to do so. Now, the remarkable monument from Ivan’s time is named after the man he feared; it is he that the orthodox remember; it is his church; they honor and revere him. Later, another popular prophet, “Ivan the Idiot,” was buried there by order of Tsar Theodore: his chapel is next to “Blessed Willie’s,” below the level of the church itself at the east end.

The church has not much history; the Poles plundered it, Napoleon ordered his generals to “Destroy that Mosque”—instead they quartered themselves there. It has been many times repaired; was reconsecrated in 1812 and remains, what it is, a striking memorial of a fearful era.

The church doesn’t have much history; the Poles looted it, and Napoleon told his generals to “Destroy that Mosque”—but instead, they made themselves at home there. It has been repaired many times; it was reconsecrated in 1812 and still stands as a powerful reminder of a dark time.

As a place of worship it is now but little used. Its architecture is not of the kind to inspire lofty thoughts, or draw any nearer to God. Its associations are all unpleasant, reminiscent of the excesses of Ivan, the weaknesses of his immediate successors. Worse, it lacks sincerity: intuitively one knows that such a building cannot shelter truth or engender hope. To uncover at its portal seems a mockery; to connect it with aught that is pure and Holy, a rank blasphemy.

As a place of worship, it’s now hardly used. Its architecture doesn’t inspire deep thoughts or bring people closer to God. The memories it holds are all negative, bringing to mind the excesses of Ivan and the shortcomings of his immediate successors. Even worse, it feels insincere; you can just tell that a building like this can’t hold truth or create hope. Coming to its entrance feels like a joke; linking it to anything pure and sacred feels like a serious insult.

Glittering in bright sunlight, gay with colour, resplendent with reflections from a glorious sky, it seems{69} only like a kaleidoscopic flash on a variegated canvas. To know Vasili Blajenni, the visitor should walk round it in the dusk of the evening, in the gloom of a winter’s day, or, in summer, in that half-light of midnight that there does duty for darkness. Standing in the shadow of the Kremlin wall, on soil saturated fathoms deep with the blood of innocent martyrs, examine the building closely and call to memory the people by whom and for whom it was produced. Then and then only may the conception of this fungus-like excrescence seem possible, and Vasili Blajenni stand revealed as an expression of inordinate vanity, uncontrolled passion, insatiate lust. Like attributes without a soul—weird, monstrous, horrible. No fitting memorial of any man, yet not out of character with what is known of him they called Ivan the Terrible.

Shining in bright sunlight, bursting with color, and reflecting a beautiful sky, it looks{69} just like a colorful flash on a mixed-up canvas. To really understand Vasili Blajenni, a visitor should walk around it in the evening dusk, on a gloomy winter day, or, in summer, in that half-light of midnight that serves as darkness. Standing in the shadow of the Kremlin wall, on ground soaked deep with the blood of innocent martyrs, take a close look at the building and remember the people who created it and for whom it was made. Only then can the idea of this fungus-like growth seem possible, and Vasili Blajenni be seen as a symbol of extreme vanity, uncontrolled passion, and insatiable desire. Like features without a soul—strange, monstrous, horrifying. Not a fitting tribute to any man, yet completely in line with what is known about the one they called Ivan the Terrible.

The clergy alone possessed any power besides the Tsar; but the Church was unable to coerce him or to save the people. Obedience to those in power it had inculcated so long and thoroughly that the Russians never attempted reprisals or lifted a hand against the Tsar. Even a voievod, speaking to Ivan, had his ears sliced off there and then by the Tsar himself, and he not only bore it patiently, but thanked the Tsar for his attention. The people, debased, servile, frightened, could not help the Church—and soon the clergy could not help themselves. Ivan, who was fond of the semblance of justice, after his expedition north appointed a baptized Tartar, one Simeon Bekbulatov, to be Tsar in his place, then himself abdicated. But he took care to make Simeon do as he wished, and he kept the power. The people obeyed Simeon, to a certain extent, but the Tsar’s chief object in this was to legalise his seizure of ecclesiastical revenues. Simeon made certain agreements, but not having made those in force, which had been recognised by Ivan, he abrogated{70} them. Then Ivan dismissed Simeon amidst the thanksgiving and rejoicing of his people, and with tears in his own eyes, the arch-hypocrite again took his seat on the throne. But the old agreements were no longer in force; then Ivan declared null and void certain acts of Simeon, and so between the two, secured all the Church properties he wanted, and deprived the clergy of many privileges. Ivan was a great chess-player; his strategy as Tsar shows how his knowledge of the game benefited him.

The clergy were the only ones who had any power aside from the Tsar, but the Church couldn't control him or protect the people. The emphasis on obedience to those in power was ingrained so deeply that the Russians never tried to retaliate or acted against the Tsar. Even a voievod, speaking to Ivan, had his ears cut off right then by the Tsar himself, and he not only accepted it quietly but also thanked the Tsar for his attention. The people, degraded, submissive, and scared, couldn’t help the Church—and soon the clergy found themselves unable to help themselves. Ivan, who liked the appearance of justice, appointed a baptized Tartar named Simeon Bekbulatov as Tsar in his place after his northern campaign, then he abdicated. However, he made sure Simeon followed his orders, meaning he still held the real power. The people did obey Simeon to some degree, but the Tsar’s main goal was to legitimize his takeover of church revenues. Simeon made certain agreements, but since he hadn’t enforced the ones recognized by Ivan, he canceled them. Then Ivan dismissed Simeon amidst the people’s thanks and celebration, and with tears in his eyes, the arch-hypocrite returned to the throne. But the old agreements no longer applied; then Ivan declared certain acts of Simeon void, and between the two of them, he secured all the Church properties he wanted and stripped the clergy of many privileges. Ivan was a great chess player; his strategy as Tsar shows how his understanding of the game benefited him.

Ivan put to death his cousin Vladimir for no crime; his mother Euphrosyne, when living in seclusion in a convent, he dragged forth and drowned in the Cheksna. His own sister-in-law, the widow of his early playmate Yuri, was also killed for no other reason than in the seclusion of the convent she had shed tears over the victims of the despot’s fury.

Ivan killed his cousin Vladimir without any reason; he pulled his mother Euphrosyne out of her secluded life in a convent and drowned her in the Cheksna. He also had his sister-in-law, the widow of his childhood friend Yuri, killed just because she cried for the victims of the tyrant's rage while in the privacy of the convent.

The boyard Rostevski, after imprisonment, was marched naked in very cold weather until the Volga was reached. His guards said that there they must water their horses. “Ah,” said Rostevski, “full well I know I have to drink of that water too,” and straightway he went to his death.

The boyar Rostevski, after being imprisoned, was marched naked in very cold weather until they reached the Volga. His guards said they had to water their horses there. “Ah,” said Rostevski, “I know I have to drink that water too,” and he went straight to his death.

Seerkon had no other crime than that he was rich. A rope was placed round his waist and he was hauled from one side of a river to the other and back again until half-drowned, then placed in a bath of hot oil and torn to pieces.

Seerkon had no other crime than being wealthy. A rope was tied around his waist, and he was dragged from one side of a river to the other and back again until he was half-drowned, then thrown into a bath of hot oil and torn apart.

Ivan kept many bears, and delighted to turn them out when savage amongst helpless people. Another diversion was to clothe men in bear skins, then set trained dogs to tear them to pieces. He poured spirits over the heads of delegates, then set their beards on fire. On one occasion his men brought a lot of women of Moscow, and stripping all naked presented them to Ivan—he took a few and gave the remainder to the{71} perpetrators of this outrage. Prince Chernialef he had grilled in an enormous frying-pan; hundreds died on the rack.

Ivan kept a lot of bears and enjoyed releasing them to attack defenseless people. Another form of entertainment was dressing men in bear skins and then letting trained dogs rip them apart. He poured alcohol over the heads of delegates and then ignited their beards. At one point, his men brought a group of women from Moscow, stripped them all naked, and presented them to Ivan—he took a few for himself and handed the rest over to the{71} people responsible for this atrocity. Prince Chernialef was cooked alive in a giant frying pan; hundreds suffered and died on the rack.

“Kniaz Ivan Kuraken, being found drunk, as was pretended, in Wenden when besieged, being voievod thereof, was stripped naked, laid on a cart, whipped through the market with six whips of wire, which cut his back, belly and bowels to death. Another, as I remember, Ivan Obrossimov, was hanged naked on a gibbet by the hair of his head; the skin and flesh of his body from top to toe cut off and minced with knives into small gobbets, by four palatsniks (chamberlains). The one, wearied with his long carving, thrust his knife in somewhat far the sooner to dispatch him, and was presently had to another place of execution and that hand cut off; which, not being well seared, he died the next day.

“Kniaz Ivan Kuraken, supposedly found drunk in Wenden during the siege, was stripped naked, placed on a cart, and whipped through the market with six wire whips that shredded his back, stomach, and intestines to death. Another man, Ivan Obrossimov, was hanged naked from a gibbet by his hair; the skin and flesh of his entire body were sliced off and chopped into small pieces with knives by four palatsniks (chamberlains). One of them, tired from the long task, quickly drove his knife in deeper to finish him off, and was soon taken to another execution site where that hand was cut off; since it hadn’t been properly cauterized, he died the next day.”

“That was the valley compared to Gehenna or Tophet, where the faithless Egyptians did sacrifice their children to the hideous devils.

“That was the valley compared to Gehenna or Tophet, where the faithless Egyptians sacrificed their children to the hideous devils.

“Kniaz Boris Telupa was drawn upon a sharp stake, soaped to enter his body and out at his neck, upon which he languished in horrible pain for fifteen hours and spake unto his mother, the duchess, brought to behold that woeful sight. And she, a good matronly woman, given to one hundred gunners who did her to death. Her body lying naked in the Place, Ivan commanded his huntsman to bring their hungry hounds and devour her flesh, and dragged her bones everywhere. The Tsar saying: ‘Such as I favour I have honoured, and such as be treytors will I have thus done unto.’ ”—Horsey.

“Kniaz Boris Telupa was impaled on a sharp stake, which pierced his body and came out at his neck. He suffered in excruciating pain for fifteen hours and spoke to his mother, the duchess, who was brought to witness this tragic sight. She, a decent and respectable woman, was given to a hundred gunners who caused her death. Her body lay exposed in the square, and Ivan ordered his huntsman to bring their hungry hounds to consume her flesh, dragging her bones around everywhere. The Tsar said: ‘Those I favor I have honored, and those who are traitors will meet the same fate.’” —Horsey.

Another boyard impaled, during the long hours he remained conscious, never ceased calling upon God to forgive the Tsar. On one occasion, during a time of great scarcity, Ivan caused it to be made known that at a certain hour alms would be distributed at his palace. A great crowd of needy people assembled, and seven hundred were promptly knocked on the head by the opritchniks and their bodies thrown into the lake; a death so merciful, Horsey terms it “a deed of charity.”

Another noble was impaled, and throughout the long hours he stayed conscious, he kept calling on God to forgive the Tsar. At one point, during a particularly difficult time, Ivan announced that at a specific hour, donations would be given out at his palace. A huge crowd of needy people gathered, and seven hundred were quickly killed by the opritchniks, their bodies tossed into the lake; a death so merciful that Horsey calls it “a deed of charity.”

Ivan forced father to kill son, and son father. His two once favourites, the Gluiskis, also suffered; the son being beheaded as he reverently raised the head{72} just struck from his father’s body. On that same day another prince was impaled and four others beheaded. Many were hung up by the feet, hacked with knives, and whilst still living, plunged into a cauldron of scalding water. On one occasion, eight hundred women were drowned together. The opritchniks, of whom at one time Ivan had seven hundred, killed scores of people daily.

Ivan forced fathers to kill their sons, and sons to kill their fathers. His two former favorites, the Gluiskis, also suffered; the son was beheaded as he reverently lifted the head{72} just severed from his father's body. On that same day, another prince was impaled and four others beheaded. Many were hung by their feet, slashed with knives, and while still alive, tossed into a pot of boiling water. On one occasion, eight hundred women were drowned together. The opritchniks, of whom Ivan once had seven hundred, killed dozens of people every day.

He himself plotted against the life of his own son and gave “Maliuta” (Skutarov) orders to kill him. Kniaz Serebrenni saved him. This is the subject of Count A. Tolstoi’s best known novel and of an old ballad which recounts how the Tsar got all the boyards together to say a mass for the dead Tsarevich and in mourning, “or all I will boil in a cauldron.” Nikita Serebrenni, hiding the Tsarevich behind the door, enters in ordinary raiment and is questioned by the Tsar, who when he knows that the Tsarevich is safe, rejoices greatly and offers Serebrenni half the kingdom as a reward. Serebrenni answers:—

He conspired against his own son's life and instructed “Maliuta” (Skutarov) to kill him. Kniaz Serebrenni saved him. This is the focus of Count A. Tolstoi’s most famous novel and an old ballad that tells how the Tsar gathered all the boyars for a mass in honor of the deceased Tsarevich, saying, “or else I will boil in a cauldron.” Nikita Serebrenni, hiding the Tsarevich behind the door, enters in regular clothes and is questioned by the Tsar, who, upon learning that the Tsarevich is safe, rejoices greatly and offers Serebrenni half the kingdom as a reward. Serebrenni responds:—

“Ah! woe, Tsar Ivan Vasilievich!
I don’t want even half of your kingdom,
Nor the gold in your vaults. Just give me that wicked Skutarov,
I will lead him to the smelly marsh. "That's the place that most people consider cursed."

With the aid of his foreign physician, Bomel, Ivan substituted poison for the knife. At his table the craven boyards would gather trembling; take from him and drain the cup they knew to be poisoned. No wonder Horsey called them “a base and servile people, without courage.” In his turn “Elizius Bomelius” suffered a cruel death. When Theodorof was accused of aspiring to the crown, Ivan dressed him in the royal insignia, seated him on the throne and did him mock homage; then struck him dead, saying that it was he{73} who exalted the humble and put down the mighty from their seats.

With the help of his foreign doctor, Bomel, Ivan chose poison instead of a knife. At his table, the cowardly boyars would gather anxiously; they would take the cup from him and drink it, knowing it was poisoned. It’s no surprise Horsey called them “a low and servile people, without bravery.” In turn, “Elizius Bomelius” met a brutal end. When Theodorof was accused of wanting the crown, Ivan dressed him in royal clothing, sat him on the throne, and pretended to pay him respect; then he killed him, saying that it was he{73} who lifts the lowly and brings down the mighty from their positions.

His people all shrank from him: the merchants hid their goods if he, or any of his spies, were in their neighbourhood; none dared be counted rich. He robbed any and all. Even the English merchants, whose good esteem he prized, were forced to furnish him with what he wished, on credit, and were never paid. They dared not offer their wares to any, unless he had first been afforded an opportunity to purchase—at his own price.

His people all avoided him: the merchants hid their goods if he or any of his spies were nearby; no one dared to be seen as wealthy. He took from everyone. Even the English merchants, whose approval he valued, had to give him whatever he wanted on credit and were never compensated. They wouldn’t sell their goods to anyone unless he had first been given a chance to buy—at his own price.

His palace at Alexandrovski was a wondrous building; all spires, domes, quaint gables, and corridors—as unlike all other palaces as Vasili Blajenni is unlike other churches. Of his enormities there, none may write. After his death, it was struck by lightning and burned to the ground.

His palace at Alexandrovski was an amazing building; filled with spires, domes, unique gables, and hallways—completely different from any other palaces, just like Vasili Blajenni stands apart from other churches. No one can write about his excesses there. After he died, it was hit by lightning and burned down.

He was rough, uncouth, unfeeling. He emptied scalding soup over one of his favourites and laughed at the sufferer’s contortions. Taking offence at a remark of one of his jesters, he ran his knife into the little fellow’s chest; then called a doctor, telling him he had used his fool roughly. The doctor told him the man was dead. Ivan, remarking that he was a poor jester after all, went away to his revels.

He was harsh, rude, and heartless. He dumped boiling soup on one of his favorites and laughed at the person's pain. Offended by a comment from one of his jesters, he stabbed the little guy in the chest; then he called for a doctor, saying he had treated his fool badly. The doctor informed him that the man was dead. Ivan, noting that he wasn't much of a jester anyway, went off to continue his celebrations.

A straightforward old boyard, Morozof, a hard fighter and an upholder of the rights of his order, for disputing with the favoured Boris Godunov about precedence, was exiled. After some years he was again summoned to court, and Ivan made of him a buffoon. Count Alexis Tolstoi uses the story in his romance “Prince Serebrenni.”

A simple old noble named Morozof, a tough fighter and a defender of his class's rights, was exiled for arguing with the favored Boris Godunov over rank. After several years, he was called back to court, and Ivan made him a jester. Count Alexis Tolstoi uses this story in his novel “Prince Serebrenni.”

“ ‘Yes, the Boyard is old in years but young in spirit. He loves a joke—so do I in the hours not devoted to prayers or my affairs of state. But since I killed that foolish jester, no one knows how to amuse me. I see that the Boyard Morozof{74} wants the post. I have promised to show him a favour—I name him my chief jester! Bring the cap and bells! Put them on the Boyard.’ The muscles of the Tsar’s face worked sharply, his voice was unchanged.

“‘Yes, the Boyard is old in years but young at heart. He loves a joke—and so do I when I'm not busy with prayers or my political matters. But ever since I killed that silly jester, nobody knows how to make me laugh. I can see that Boyard Morozof{74} wants the position. I've promised to do him a favor—I appoint him my chief jester! Bring the cap and bells! Put them on the Boyard.’ The muscles of the Tsar’s face twitched sharply, but his voice remained unchanged.

“Morozof was thunder-struck: he could not believe his ears. He looked more terrible even than the Tsar. When Gresnoi brought the cloak, with its tinkling bells, Morozof pushed him aside. ‘Stand back! Do not dare, outcast, to touch Boyard Morozof! Your fathers cleaned out my ancestor’s kennels. You leave me alone! Tsar, withdraw your order. Let me be put to death. With my head you can do as you will. You may not touch my honour!’

“Morozof was stunned: he couldn't believe what he was hearing. He looked even more terrifying than the Tsar. When Gresnoi brought the cloak with its jingling bells, Morozof shoved him aside. ‘Step back! Don't you dare, outcast, to lay a finger on Boyard Morozof! Your ancestors used to clean out my family's kennels. Just leave me be! Tsar, take back your order. Go ahead and execute me. Do whatever you want with my head. But you will not touch my honor!’”

“Ivan looked round at the opritchniks. ‘You see I am right in saying that the Boyard will have his joke. I have no right to promote him to the office of jester, eh?’

“Ivan looked around at the opritchniks. ‘You see I’m right in saying that the Boyard will have his joke. I have no right to promote him to the role of jester, right?’”

“ ‘Tsar, I implore you to withdraw your words. Before you were born I fought for your father with Simski against the Cheremiss; with Odoevski and Mstislavski drove back the Krim-Tartars, and chased the Tartars away from Moscow. I defended you when a child; fought for your rights and the rights of your mother. I prized only mine honour; that has always remained unstained. Will you mock the grey hairs of a faithful servant? Behead me rather—if you will.’

“Tsar, I beg you to take back your words. Before you were born, I fought for your father with Simski against the Cheremiss; alongside Odoevski and Mstislavski, I pushed back the Krim-Tartars and drove the Tartars away from Moscow. I defended you as a child; I fought for your rights and your mother’s rights. I valued only my honor, which has always stayed untarnished. Will you ridicule the gray hairs of a loyal servant? Just behead me instead—if that’s what you want.”

“ ‘Your foolish words show that you are well fitted for a jester. Put on the cloak! And you fellows, help him. He is used to be waited upon.’

“Your silly words show that you’re perfect for a jester. Put on the cloak! And you guys, help him. He’s used to being waited on.”

“The opritchniks put on the fool’s cloak, the parti-coloured cap, and retreating, bowed low before him. ‘Now amuse us as did the late jester!’ said their leader.

“The opritchniks put on the fool's cloak, the multi-colored cap, and stepping back, bowed low before him. 'Now entertain us like the late jester!' said their leader.”

“Morozof was resolute. ‘I accept the new post, to which the Tsar has appointed me. It was not fit for Boyard Morozof to sit at table with a Godunov—but the court fool may keep company even with such as the Basmanovs. Make way for the new jester, and listen, all of you, how he will amuse Ivan Vasilievich!’ He made a gesture of command: the opritchniks stood aside, and with his bells tinkling, the fine old man marched up the room and seated himself on the stool before the Tsar, but with such dignity that he seemed to be wearing the royal purple instead of the motley of the court fool.

“Morozof was determined. ‘I accept the new position the Tsar has given me. It wasn’t proper for Boyard Morozof to sit at the table with a Godunov—but the court jester can associate with people like the Basmanovs. Make way for the new fool, and listen, everyone, to how he will entertain Ivan Vasilievich!’ He waved his hand in command: the opritchniks stepped aside, and with his bells jingling, the distinguished old man walked confidently up the room and took his seat on the stool in front of the Tsar, but with such dignity that he appeared to be wearing royal purple instead of the jester's motley.”

“ ‘How shall I amuse you, Tsar?’ and putting his elbows on the table, he leant forward and looked directly into the eyes of his sovereign. ‘It is not easy to find a fresh diversion for you; there have been so many jests in Russia since you began to reign. You rode your horse over the helpless in the streets{75} once-upon-a-time; you have thrown your companions to dogs, you poured burning pitch over the heads of those who humbly petitioned you! But those were childish freaks. You soon tired of such simple cruelties. You began to imprison your nobles, in order to fill your rooms with their wives and daughters, but of this also you have tired. You next chose your most faithful servants for the torture; then you found it wearied you to mock the people and the nobles, so you began to scoff at the Church of God. You picked out the lowest rabble, decked them out as monks, and yourself became the abbot! In daylight you commit murders; at night sing psalms! Your favourite amusement, this! None had thought of it before. You are covered with blood, yet you chant and ring the holy bells and would like to perform the mass. What else shall I say to amuse you, Tsar? This: whilst you are masquerading thus with your opritchniks, wallowing in blood, Sigismund with his Poles will fall on you in the west, and from the east will come the Khan, and you will have left none alive to defend Moscow. The holy churches of God will be entered and burned by the infidel, all the holy relics will be taken: you,—you—the Tsar of all the Russias, will have to kneel at the feet of the Khan, and ask leave to kiss his stirrup!’ Morozof ceased. None dared interrupt; all held their breath in agonising suspense. Ivan, pale, with flashing eyes, and foaming with rage, listened to all attentively, bent forward, as though fearing to lose a single word. Morozof gazed proudly around him. ‘Do you want me to divert you further, Tsar? I will. One faithful subject, of high birth, still remained to you. You had not yet thought of killing him, because—perhaps—perhaps you feared the anger of God; and perhaps only because you could think of no torture or infamous death worthy of him. He lived in disgrace far from you; you exiled him; you might have forgotten him—but you never forget, do you, Tsar? You sent your cursed favourite, Viasemski, to burn his house and carry off his wife. When he came to you for redress for these wrongs, you sent him to combat for the right, in the hope that your young courtier would kill the old boyard. God did not allow you that joy, Tsar. He gave the other the victory. What did you do then, Tsar?’ the bells on the cap tinkled as the old man’s head shook with his emotion. ‘Why, then you dishonoured him by an unheard-of outrage. Then, Tsar,’ he pushed back the table in his indignation, and sprang to his feet—‘then you ordered the boyard, Morozof, to wear the fool’s cap! You forced the man, who had saved Tula{76} and Moscow, to play the fool to amuse you and your idle courtiers!’

“‘How should I entertain you, Tsar?’ With his elbows on the table, he leaned forward and looked directly into the eyes of his ruler. ‘It’s not easy to come up with something new for you; there have been so many jokes in Russia since you took the throne. You once rode your horse over the vulnerable in the streets{75}; you’ve thrown your friends to the dogs, and you poured boiling pitch over those who humbly asked something of you! But those were childish antics. You quickly got bored with such simple cruelities. You started imprisoning your nobles to fill your rooms with their wives and daughters, but you grew tired of that too. Then you chose your most loyal servants to torture; after that, you found mocking the people and the nobles was wearisome, so you started making fun of the Church of God. You picked out the lowest of society, dressed them as monks, and became the abbot yourself! In the daylight, you commit murders; at night, you sing psalms! Your favorite pastime! No one had thought of that before. You are bathed in blood, yet you chant and ring the holy bells, wanting to perform the mass. What else should I say to entertain you, Tsar? This: while you are playing these games with your opritchniks, reveling in bloodshed, Sigismund and his Poles will attack you from the west, and from the east will come the Khan, leaving no one alive to defend Moscow. The holy churches will be invaded and burned by infidels, all the sacred relics taken: you—the Tsar of all the Russias—will end up kneeling at the feet of the Khan, begging for permission to kiss his stirrup!’ Morozof stopped. No one dared to interrupt; all held their breath in tense anticipation. Ivan, pale, with blazing eyes, and seething with rage, listened intently, leaning forward as if afraid to miss a single word. Morozof looked around him with pride. ‘Do you want me to entertain you further, Tsar? I will. One loyal subject, of noble birth, still remains for you. You hadn’t yet considered killing him because—maybe—maybe you feared God’s wrath; and perhaps only because you couldn’t think of any torture or disgrace worthy of him. He lived in disgrace far from you; you exiled him; you might have forgotten him—but you never forget, do you, Tsar? You sent your cursed favorite, Viasemski, to burn his house and take his wife. When he came to you to seek justice for these wrongs, you sent him off to fight, hoping your young courtier would kill the old boyar. God didn’t grant you that pleasure, Tsar. He gave the victory to the other man. What did you do then, Tsar?’ The bells on the cap chimed as the old man shook his head in emotion. ‘Why, then you dishonored him with an unprecedented insult. Then, Tsar,’ he pushed the table back in indignation and jumped to his feet—‘then you ordered the boyar, Morozof, to wear the fool’s cap! You forced the man who saved Tula{76} and Moscow to play the fool to amuse you and your idle courtiers!’”

“The look of the old warrior was fierce; the absurdity of his dress disappeared. His eyes flashed fire, his white beard fell on a chest scarred with many wounds now hidden beneath a jester’s cloak. So much dignity was there in him that by his side the Tsar looked mean.

“The old warrior looked fierce; the ridiculousness of his outfit faded away. His eyes sparkled with intensity, and his white beard rested on a chest marked by many wounds, now concealed beneath a jester's cloak. He had so much dignity that the Tsar, standing beside him, seemed diminished.”

“Tsar, your new fool stands before you. Listen to his last jest. While you live the people dare not speak, but when your hateful reign is over your name will be cursed from generation to generation, until, on the day of judgment, the hundreds and thousands you have murdered—men, women and little children, all of whom you have tortured and killed, all will stand before God appealing against you, their murderer. On that dreadful day I, too, shall appear in this same dress before the Great Judge, and will ask for that honour you took from me on earth. You will have no body-guard then to defend you; the Judge will hear us, and you will go into that everlasting fire prepared for the devil and his angels.’

“Tsar, your new fool is here. Listen to his final joke. While you’re alive, the people are afraid to speak up, but when your cruel reign ends, your name will be cursed through the generations, until, on Judgment Day, the countless individuals you’ve murdered—men, women, and little children, all of whom you’ve tortured and killed—will stand before God, pleading against you, their murderer. On that terrible day, I, too, will show up in this same outfit before the Great Judge, and I will seek the honor you took from me while I was alive. You won’t have any bodyguards to protect you then; the Judge will listen to us, and you will be cast into that eternal fire meant for the devil and his angels.”

“Casting a disdainful look upon the courtiers, Morozof turned round and slowly withdrew. None dared to stop him. He passed through the hall with great dignity, and not until the jingle of his bells ceased did any speak.”—Alexis Tolstoi.

“Looking down disdainfully at the courtiers, Morozof turned around and slowly walked away. No one dared to stop him. He walked through the hall with great dignity, and it wasn't until the sound of his bells stopped that anyone spoke.”—Alexis Tolstoi.

His son, the Tsarevich Ivan, wished to lead an army against his father’s enemies in Lithuania. In this offer the jealous Tsar saw an attempt to gain popularity. He turned on Ivan savagely and struck him repeatedly with the iron-shod “sceptre” he always carried; the last blow knocked the young man senseless. He fell to the ground, and the Tsar, now frightened, did his utmost to save him, but he was injured too severely and died four days later.

His son, Tsarevich Ivan, wanted to lead an army against his father’s enemies in Lithuania. The jealous Tsar saw this as a move to gain popularity. He attacked Ivan brutally, hitting him repeatedly with the iron-tipped "scepter" he always carried; the final blow knocked the young man out cold. He collapsed to the ground, and the Tsar, now terrified, did everything he could to save him, but he was too badly injured and died four days later.

There still exists in the monastery of St Cyril, Moscow, a synodal letter, in which are specified a number of victims for whom Ivan solicited the prayers of the Church. The souls of 3,470 in all are to be prayed for; 986 of these are mentioned by name, the others are cited as—“with his wife,” “with sons,” “with wife and children,” “Kazarim Dubrovski and his two sons and the ten men who came to their defence,”{77} “twenty men of the village of Kolomensko,” “eighty of Matveche,” “Remember, Lord, the souls of thy servants to the number of 1,505 Novgorodians.”

There is still a synodal letter in the monastery of St. Cyril in Moscow that lists a number of victims for whom Ivan requested the Church's prayers. A total of 3,470 souls are to be prayed for; 986 of these are named, while the others are referred to as—“with his wife,” “with sons,” “with wife and children,” “Kazarim Dubrovski and his two sons and the ten men who came to their defense,” {77} “twenty men from the village of Kolomensko,” “eighty from Matveche,” “Remember, Lord, the souls of your servants, a total of 1,505 Novgorodians.”

In the number of wives recognised by the Church as more or less legitimately joined with him he beat Henry VIII. by only one, but in the number of mistresses he can be compared with Solomon alone. Anastasia Romanof died in 1560; in the same year he married Mary Tangrak, either a Cheremiss or Tartar. His next wife was chosen out of all the most eligible maids in Russia. Her name was Marfa Sabakina of Novgorod. The marriage took place on October 28, 1571, and on November 13 of the same year she died. Her brother, Michael, the Tsar impaled shortly afterwards. Ivan’s marriage with Natalia Bulkatov was not recognised by the Church. Anna Koltoski he took next, but he forced her into a nunnery later, where she lived until 1626. Anna Vasilichekov and one Mstislavski succeeded, but only one was recognised,—which one is disputed. Vassilissa Melentief, a great beauty, was his next choice, but the Church recognised only Maria Nagoi, the mother of the murdered Dmitri, whom he married in 1580. When but a few months wed, he informed Queen Elizabeth that he would put aside his wife, who was shortly to become a mother, if he could find a suitable partner for himself in England. Poor Lady Mary Hastings, learning something of his character, begged her sovereign not to mate her with such a barbarian. His harem was that of a Turk.

In the number of wives recognized by the Church as more or less legitimately joined to him, he surpassed Henry VIII by just one, but in terms of mistresses, he could only be compared to Solomon. Anastasia Romanof died in 1560; that same year, he married Mary Tangrak, who was either Cheremiss or Tartar. His next wife was chosen from the most eligible women in Russia. Her name was Marfa Sabakina of Novgorod. They were married on October 28, 1571, and she died on November 13 of the same year. Her brother, Michael, was impaled by the Tsar shortly after. Ivan’s marriage to Natalia Bulkatov wasn’t recognized by the Church. He then took Anna Koltoski as his next wife, but later forced her into a nunnery, where she lived until 1626. Anna Vasilichekov and one Mstislavski followed, but only one of them was recognized—there's disagreement on which one. Vassilissa Melentief, a great beauty, was his next choice, but the Church recognized only Maria Nagoi, the mother of the murdered Dmitri, whom he married in 1580. Just a few months into their marriage, he informed Queen Elizabeth that he would set aside his wife, who was about to become a mother, if he could find a suitable partner for himself in England. Poor Lady Mary Hastings, realizing something of his character, pleaded with her sovereign not to match her with such a barbarian. His harem resembled that of a Turk.

He was prematurely worn out with his excesses. He could obtain little peace. Superstitious, he sent for wizards and prognosticators; Finns who certainly foretold the day, if not the hour, of his death. The appearance of a comet greatly terrified him—the once mighty Tsar lost his strength. Like{78} Herod of old he died a fearful death, and he left his country in a worse plight than he found it.

He was worn out too soon from his excesses. He could find little peace. Superstitious, he called for wizards and fortune-tellers; Finns who could definitely predict the day, if not the hour, of his death. The sight of a comet terrified him greatly—the once mighty Tsar lost his strength. Like{78} Herod of old, he died a fearful death, leaving his country in a worse state than he found it.

He was received into the Church before his demise, but he is officially known as Yoanna and familiarly as “Groznoi” (the Terrible). His evil deeds are forgotten by the people, whilst the enrichment of his country by others of his day is counted to his credit. He was the first “Tsar” of Russia, and not in name only; he was its first ruler to become an absolute autocrat.

He joined the Church before he died, but he's officially known as Yoanna and informally called “Groznoi” (the Terrible). People have forgotten his evil deeds, while the contributions of others during his time are credited to him. He was the first “Tsar” of Russia, and not just in name; he was the first ruler to become an absolute autocrat.

It is a fashion of this humanitarian age to make allowances for the harsh deeds of those who lived in ruder times, and in this nineteenth century even Ivan the Terrible has found apologists. His atrocities, his joy in the perpetration of the cruellest tortures on the innocent, all his wickednesses are admitted; but they call his lust by a Greek name and say he is to be pitied rather than condemned. Yet some there must be even now, who, when they read that Ivan always went to the torture rooms with joy and came away from its fiendish practices invigorated, refreshed and gay, will rightly regard him with loathing and horror. Not only is his character without a redeeming trait, but his nature is so fiendish and foul that the student may read long and investigate very closely before making sure that Ivan was human. His lusts had not the saving grace of humour; his fear even was sulphurous. Neither circumstances nor events either mitigate or condone his cruelties. Throughout his life he was actuated by one impulse only, to gratify and preserve himself. Those who believe that the occasion makes the man must feel that the fifty-years rule of this despot upsets that theory. Never was there such need for a Cromwell—the country could not produce a man, much less a liberator. Doubtless the action of previous rulers, the centuries{79} of thraldom to Tartars, the thorough teaching of the Christian doctrine of obedience to rulers, contributed to the servility of the people. One of his tortured victims, it is true, did try to assault him, but the wretch was at once killed by the watchful Tsarevich, and in future Ivan ran no such risks. Prelates rebuked him and suffered; his victims suffered and forgave him—none tried to free themselves or help others. In all this dreary time only one man appears to have acted worthily. The Englishman, Jerom Horsey, exerted all the influence he possessed on behalf of Ivan’s prisoners. The services he rendered deserve a memorial; instead he received the condemnation of the Russia Company, in whose employ he was, and the encomiums and admiration of the Tsar whom he loathed and despised.

It's a trend in this humanitarian age to excuse the brutal actions of those who lived in harsher times, and even in the nineteenth century, Ivan the Terrible has found defenders. His horrific acts, his pleasure in inflicting the most savage tortures on the innocent, and all his wickedness are acknowledged; yet they label his depravity with a Greek term and claim he deserves pity rather than condemnation. Still, there must be some who, upon learning that Ivan always entered the torture chambers with joy and left feeling invigorated and cheerful, will justifiably view him with disgust and horror. Not only does his character lack any redeeming qualities, but his nature is so vile and monstrous that one may study extensively and investigate closely before confirming that Ivan was, indeed, human. His desires lacked any trace of humor; even his fears were toxic. Neither his circumstances nor events lessen or justify his cruelty. Throughout his life, he was driven by a single motive: to satisfy and preserve himself. Those who believe that a person's character is shaped by their circumstances must recognize that the fifty-year reign of this tyrant contradicts that idea. The need for a Cromwell was never greater—the country was unable to produce a man, let alone a liberator. Certainly, the actions of past rulers, centuries{79} of subjugation to Tartars, and the thorough teaching of the Christian doctrine of obedience to rulers contributed to the people's subservience. One of his tortured victims, it’s true, attempted to attack him, but the poor soul was immediately killed by the vigilant Tsarevich, and from then on, Ivan took no such chances. Clergymen reprimanded him and suffered; his victims suffered and forgave him—none attempted to free themselves or assist others. During this bleak period, only one man seems to have acted honorably. The Englishman, Jerom Horsey, used all his influence to advocate for Ivan's prisoners. His efforts merit recognition; instead, he was condemned by the Russia Company, where he worked, and received praise and admiration from the Tsar whom he hated and scorned.

The magnitude and multitude of his crimes place Ivan far beyond other tyrants of his class. It is reassuring to know that in no other country and at no other time would his rule be permitted. The mere possibility of a recurrence of such a time of terror would determine every thinking being to die childless. The spirit of freedom renders the ascendency or continuance of his like impossible—but in mediæval Moscow the spirit of freedom had no place.{80}

The scale and number of Ivan's crimes put him in a category all his own among tyrants. It's comforting to realize that no other country and no other time would allow his kind of rule. Just the thought of experiencing such a time of terror again would lead anyone who thinks critically to choose not to have children. The spirit of freedom makes it impossible for someone like him to gain power or stay in control—but in medieval Moscow, that spirit simply didn't exist.{80}

CHAPTER VI

The Troublous Times

"But war has spread its horrors over you,
And you have been laid in ashes:
Your throne looked unstable then before you,
"Your scepter is as weak as your sword."—Dmitriev.
"Yeah, one is just as evil as the other." W. RussellA Bloody and Tragic Massacre.

BORIS GODUNOV was the most powerful and sagacious of the boyards spared by Ivan the “Terrible”; he was best fitted to direct the policy of the government, and later the people looked to him as the only ruler possible. A man who could satisfy Ivan, yet take no part in his orgies, who could keep the goodwill of the foreign residents, yet be beloved of the Muscovites, must have possessed abilities of no mean order. Boris was a great man to whom historians have done scant justice. He is described as inordinately ambitious and accused of unscrupulousness in his methods, but the court in which he was schooled may be adduced in extenuation of his crimes, whilst ambition, an undesirable quality for a subject to possess, is a laudable virtue in monarchs. It was his misfortune not to have been born in the purple—his contemporaries and the historians have counted this a fault, but it is too late to blame him for acting as a king when he was by birth a simple noble.

BORIS GODUNOV was the most powerful and wise of the boyars who survived Ivan the “Terrible.” He was well-suited to lead the government, and eventually, the people saw him as the only viable ruler. A man who could please Ivan while avoiding his wild parties, who maintained the goodwill of foreign residents and was loved by the Muscovites, must have had exceptional skills. Boris was a great man who hasn’t received the recognition he deserves from historians. He’s often described as overly ambitious and accused of using ruthless tactics, but the court where he was raised can help explain his actions. While ambition is typically seen as a negative trait for a subject, it’s a worthy virtue in monarchs. His misfortune was being born a common noble instead of royalty—his peers and historians have seen this as a flaw, but it’s too late to fault him for acting like a king when he started off as a simple noble.

Boris Godunov, as brother of the Tsar’s wife, had{81} a recognised position apart from the favour the Tsar’s father had shown him. The relatives of the Tsarina were always counted less dangerous to the dynasty than were the Tsar’s blood relations, and their influence at Court was greater than their precedence warranted. Theodore was the opposite of his father, unintelligent, feeble-willed, incompetent, he thrust greatness upon Boris Godunov, who saved Moscow. At that time the Tsar held territory in Europe larger than that ruled by any of his contemporaries; the conquests of Yermak in Asia brought as much more under his dominion. Enemies, active, watchful, virulent, were ever ready to harass its rulers. Poles and Swedes expected Moscow sooner or later, to fall to them, and lost no opportunity to effect the overthrow of the Russians. Tartars and others kept up predatory wars and, within the empire, towns and districts, devastated by the wanton cruelties of Ivan, were anxious to get back their independence. There were no men able to rule. Ivan had put to death those brave enough and independent enough to assert authority; what was worse for Russia, he had driven into exile competent and influential nobles, who, maddened by his persecutions, became enemies of their fatherland and plotted with foreign sovereigns against the state.

Boris Godunov, as the brother of the Tsar's wife, held{81} a recognized position, boosted by the support his father-in-law had given him. The Tsarina's relatives were always seen as less of a threat to the dynasty than the Tsar’s blood relatives, and their influence at Court outweighed their ranking. Theodore was the opposite of his father; he was not intelligent, weak-willed, and inept, and he placed great expectations on Boris Godunov, who rescued Moscow. At that time, the Tsar ruled over a territory in Europe larger than that of any of his contemporaries; the accomplishments of Yermak in Asia added even more land to his reign. Enemies, always alert, aggressive, and malicious, were ready to undermine its leaders. The Poles and Swedes believed that Moscow would eventually fall to them and took every chance to try to overthrow the Russians. Tartars and others engaged in raids, and within the empire, towns and regions devastated by Ivan’s brutalities were desperate to regain their independence. There were no capable leaders available. Ivan had executed those strong and independent enough to claim authority; worse yet for Russia, he had exiled skilled and influential nobles, who, driven mad by his persecution, turned against their homeland and conspired with foreign rulers against the state.

To govern was difficult; to preserve the empire intact, still more so; further aggrandisement almost impossible with the conditions then prevailing. Theodore left everything to the council,—duma, consisting of boyards whom Godunov held in the hollow of his hand. From his brother-in-law he obtained special titles and special powers; he became viceroy of immense territories, and could put 100,000 armed men into the field at need. He was practically regent and lacked nothing that was royal but the title. When the Shooiskis, the Belskis, the Mstislavskis{82} and others did not please him he forced them from power. Mstislavski had to become a monk; Shooiski, who tried to get together a party among the merchants, was banished to a distant town; Dionysius, the metropolitan, was deposed, and a nominee of Godunov’s succeeded to the primacy of the church. When, in 1586, Batory, King of Lithuania died, Boris Godunov put forward Theodore as candidate for the crown of Poland. But the Poles would have no ruler who belonged to the eastern church. Moreover, they feared the Muscovites would join Poland to Muscovy like a sleeve to a coat; but the claim proved that Russia was still a power with which the west would have to reckon. Boris, who had always been friendly with the English, obtained for Theodore the support of England against Danes and Swedes; he quite won over Queen Elizabeth to the side of the young Tsar and, in many ways, as Grand High Chancellor advanced the interests of his sovereign and his country.

Governing was tough; keeping the empire intact was even tougher; and expanding it further seemed almost impossible under the circumstances at the time. Theodore left everything to the council, the duma, made up of boyars that Godunov had complete control over. He got special titles and powers from his brother-in-law; he became the viceroy of vast territories and could mobilize 100,000 armed men when needed. He was essentially the regent and had everything royal except for the title. When the Shooiskis, the Belskis, the Mstislavskis, and others didn’t meet his expectations, he pushed them out of power. Mstislavski had to become a monk; Shooiski, who tried to rally support among merchants, was exiled to a far-off town; Dionysius, the metropolitan, was removed, and a candidate chosen by Godunov took over the church's leadership. When Batory, the King of Lithuania, died in 1586, Boris Godunov presented Theodore as a candidate for the Polish crown. However, the Poles refused a ruler from the eastern church. Additionally, they feared the Muscovites would attach Poland to Muscovy as easily as attaching a sleeve to a coat; but this claim showed that Russia was still a force that the west had to consider. Boris, who had always maintained good relations with the English, secured England's support for Theodore against the Danes and Swedes; he garnered Queen Elizabeth's favor for the young Tsar and, in many ways, as Grand High Chancellor, advanced the interests of both his sovereign and his country.

In Moscow he acted intelligently. The middle town, the Bielo-Gorod or free town, between the Kitai Gorod and the present boulevards was enclosed with a wall of stone, having twenty-eight towers and nine gates. The last gate, that on the Arbat, was razed in 1792, the wall having been earlier demolished and its site utilised for the present existing boulevards. Its style was that of the wall around the Donskoi Monastery built in 1591 to commemorate the victory of the Muscovites under Mstislavski against 150,000 Krim-Tartars advancing on the city under the leadership of the Khan Kazi Ghiree. Another building of Godunov’s is the smaller “Golden Palace” in the Terem of the Kremlin, which was erected for the accommodation of the Tsaritsa Irene. Many bells were cast, and some cannon including the monstrous Tsar Pushka—still within the Kremlin—which bears a{83}

In Moscow, he acted smartly. The central area, the Bielo-Gorod or free town, located between the Kitai Gorod and the current boulevards, was surrounded by a stone wall that had twenty-eight towers and nine gates. The last gate, which was on the Arbat, was destroyed in 1792, while the wall was taken down earlier and its location was used for the current boulevards. Its design was similar to that of the wall around the Donskoi Monastery, built in 1591 to celebrate the Muscovites' victory under Mstislavski against 150,000 Crimean Tatars who were advancing on the city led by Khan Kazi Ghiree. Another structure from Godunov’s time is the smaller “Golden Palace” in the Terem of the Kremlin, which was built to accommodate Tsaritsa Irene. Many bells were cast, along with some cannons including the huge Tsar Pushka—still located within the Kremlin—which bears a{83}



A CORRIDOR—THE OLD PALACES

A CORRIDOR—THE OLD PALACES

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
A HALLWAY—THE HISTORIC PALACES

{84}

{84}

{85}

{85}

portrait of Theodore on horseback on its reinforcement. Theodore lived in regal state: his household numbered over 1000, and he entertained foreign ambassadors with even greater pomp and magnificence than his predecessors. Not only were these guests provided with a fitting residence and a large suit, but it was not uncommon for as many as a hundred and fifty dinners to be sent daily from the Tsar’s kitchen for their entertainment.

portrait of Theodore on horseback on its reinforcement. Theodore lived in royal style: his household had over 1000 members, and he hosted foreign ambassadors with even more grandeur and splendor than his predecessors. These guests were not only given appropriate accommodations and a large suite, but it was also common for as many as a hundred and fifty dinners to be sent out daily from the Tsar’s kitchen for their enjoyment.

Ivan’s youngest son, Dmitri, with his mother Maria, and her relatives, the Nagois, were domiciled in Uglitch by the order of Boris; whilst there in 1581, about the period of the Tartar invasion, young Dmitri was murdered—at Boris Godunov’s instigation it is said. Jerom Horsey, who was in Uglitch at the time, states that he was aroused late at night, the news given him, and his aid requested on behalf of Dmitri’s mother believed to be poisoned. Horsey gave the messenger the small vial of sallet oil the Queen (Elizabeth) had given him as a specific against all poisons and ills. An inquiry was ordered when Boris Godunov was suspected of having instigated the crime, and as a result of the investigation made by Shooiski it was declared that the boy cut his own throat and that the Nagois and citizens of Uglitch had put to death innocent men as murderers, whereupon, the incredible finding being believed, an effort was made to exterminate the Nagois, and Uglitch was almost depopulated.

Ivan’s youngest son, Dmitri, lived in Uglitch with his mother Maria and her relatives, the Nagois, under Boris's orders. In 1581, during the time of the Tartar invasion, young Dmitri was said to have been murdered—reportedly on Boris Godunov’s orders. Jerom Horsey, who was in Uglitch at that time, recounts that he was woken up late at night with the news and was asked for help on behalf of Dmitri’s mother, who was believed to be poisoned. Horsey gave the messenger the small vial of sallet oil that Queen Elizabeth had given him as a remedy against poisons and illnesses. An inquiry was launched when Boris Godunov was suspected of having instigated the crime. Following an investigation by Shooiski, it was concluded that the boy had cut his own throat, and that the Nagois and citizens of Uglitch had unjustly executed innocent people as murderers. Consequently, this unbelievable finding was accepted, leading to an attempt to eliminate the Nagois, and Uglitch was nearly emptied of its population.

There can be no doubt that Dmitri was murdered when six years old, but it is not so clear at whose instigation the deed was done. Giles Fletcher states that the child “resembled his father in delight of blood,” and it may be that evidence of his cruel propensities induced some sufferer from Ivan’s tyranny to wreak vengeance on the son in hope of saving a generation to come from such suffering as the past{86} had endured. It may be that Boris Godunov plotted for his removal, but it is known that Boris was anxious for Theodore to have a son to succeed to the throne, and, probably, had then little intention of securing it for himself. One of the complaints made by the Russia Company against Jerom Horsey was in connection with a wrongly interpreted order he executed on behalf of Boris Godunov who wished a “wise woman” sent out from England to doctor the Tsaritsa, and the company instead sent out a midwife.

There’s no doubt that Dmitri was murdered when he was six, but it’s unclear who was behind it. Giles Fletcher claims that the boy “shared his father’s love of blood,” and it’s possible that someone suffering from Ivan’s brutality took revenge on the son in hopes of sparing future generations from such pain as the past{86} had faced. It could be that Boris Godunov conspired for Dmitri's death, but it’s known that Boris wanted Theodore to have a son to inherit the throne and likely didn’t intend to take it for himself at that time. One of the complaints made by the Russia Company against Jerom Horsey was related to a misinterpreted order he carried out for Boris Godunov, who wanted a “wise woman” sent from England to care for the Tsaritsa, but the company mistakenly sent a midwife instead.

To conciliate the small landowners a decree was issued in 1597 forbidding peasants to leave the land and thus serfdom was established. Some efforts had been made in former centuries to restrict the migrations of a people, nomadic by habit, still accustomed to change masters frequently by moving from one estate to another at seed time and harvest. The tendency of the powerful was to increase the size of their holdings and to augment their retainers by enticing labourers from smaller estates. To check this the husbandman was attached to the soil as the serf of the estate.

To appease the small landowners, a decree was issued in 1597 that prevented peasants from leaving the land, thus establishing serfdom. In previous centuries, there had been attempts to limit the migration of a people who were nomadic by nature and accustomed to frequently changing masters by moving between estates during planting and harvest seasons. Those in power aimed to expand their lands and increase their workforce by luring laborers away from smaller estates. To counter this, the farmer was tied to the land as a serf of the estate.

As statesmanlike, and less objectionable, was the appointment of a patriarch to win over the clergy. Jeremiah, patriarch of Constantinople, was banished by the Turks and sought refuge in Rome. The Pope sent him to Moscow, hoping that the chief of their own church would influence the Russians to forward the amalgamation of the Greek and Roman churches. If not successful in this, it was hoped that the recountal of the patriarch’s sufferings and indignities at the hands of infidels, might induce the Romans to make a league with Spain against the Turks. According to Giles Fletcher the Pope’s emissaries did nothing more than inveigh against England; but with the destruction of the Spanish Armada all conceit of a{87} Russo-Spanish league vanished. Godunov profited by Jeremiah’s stay in Moscow. He induced him to consecrate the Metropolitan Job, patriarch of Moscow, and to this patriarchate that of Constantinople was subsequently added. Thus Moscow became indisputably the head of the Orthodox Church, by direct apostolic succession.

The appointment of a patriarch to win over the clergy was seen as a diplomatic move that faced fewer objections. Jeremiah, the patriarch of Constantinople, was exiled by the Turks and found refuge in Rome. The Pope sent him to Moscow, hoping that the leader of their church would persuade the Russians to bring about the unification of the Greek and Roman churches. If that didn’t work, they were optimistic that sharing the patriarch’s stories of suffering and humiliation at the hands of the infidels would convince the Romans to ally with Spain against the Turks. According to Giles Fletcher, the Pope’s representatives only focused on criticizing England; however, with the defeat of the Spanish Armada, any hope of a Russo-Spanish alliance disappeared. Godunov took advantage of Jeremiah’s time in Moscow. He convinced him to consecrate Metropolitan Job, the patriarch of Moscow, and later, the patriarchate of Constantinople was added to it. Consequently, Moscow became clearly established as the head of the Orthodox Church, with a direct line of apostolic succession.

The Tsar fell ill in 1597 and died in the Kremlin the following year, and his widow then at once retired to the Novo Devichi convent mourning her bereavement and blaming herself that through her the sovereign race had perished, for her only child, Theodosia, died in 1592, when but ten months old.

The Tsar got sick in 1597 and passed away in the Kremlin the next year. His widow immediately went to the Novo Devichi convent, mourning her loss and blaming herself for the extinction of the royal line, since her only child, Theodosia, had died in 1592 at just ten months old.

The enmity the reigning princes had shown their own kindred, produced the unexpected result that there were now no legal heirs to the throne; the line of which Andrew Bogoloobski Dolgoruki was the founder, was extinct. The Tsar Theodore when on his death-bed said that God would provide the next Tsar, and refused to nominate a successor. The States’ Council convened for the purpose of appointing a ruler, unanimously chose Boris Godunov. It was impossible that the throne could escape him. He hung back, wishful to have an expression of the desire of the people of Moscow, as well as of the delegates. The people required him. They went to the Novo Devichi convent, whither he had gone, begged him to accept the position to which he had been appointed; his sister “blessed him for the throne,” and with great show of reluctance, he at last consented. In due course he was crowned; reigned wisely and well, but was not liked. A chronicler has it that “he presented to the poor in a vase of gold the blood of the innocents, he fed them with unholy alms.”

The hostility that the ruling princes had displayed toward their own relatives led to the surprising outcome that there were no legal heirs to the throne; the lineage founded by Andrew Bogoloobski Dolgoruki was extinct. On his deathbed, Tsar Theodore stated that God would choose the next Tsar and refused to name a successor. The States’ Council met to appoint a ruler and unanimously selected Boris Godunov. It was unthinkable that the throne could remain out of his grasp. He hesitated, wanting to see the wishes of the people of Moscow and the delegates. The people needed him. They went to the Novo Devichi convent, where he had gone, and pleaded with him to accept the position he was destined for; his sister "blessed him for the throne," and after much reluctance, he finally agreed. Eventually, he was crowned; he ruled wisely and effectively, but was not liked. A chronicler wrote that “he presented to the poor in a gold vase the blood of the innocents, he fed them with unholy alms.”

Those of his subjects who remembered the tyranny of Ivan should have blessed their elected ruler. They{88} could not forget his Tartar origin: he was not of royal descent, was no Tsar. Nor could he win popularity. His first act was to conclude an honourable peace with Kazi Ghiree and the invading Tartars; his policy was to avoid war, that “there might be neither widows nor orphans of his making.”

Those of his subjects who remembered the oppression of Ivan should have been grateful for their chosen leader. They{88} could not forget his Tartar roots: he wasn't of royal lineage, he was not a Tsar. Nor could he gain popularity. His first action was to settle a respectable peace with Kazi Ghiree and the invading Tartars; his approach was to steer clear of war, so “there would be neither widows nor orphans created by him.”

Horsey wrote of him:—

Horsey wrote about him:—

“He is nowe become a Prince of subjects, and not of slaves, kept within duty and loyalty by love and not by feare and tyranny. He is comely of stature, of countenance well-favoured and majesticalle withal; affable in behaviour and yet of great courage, wyse, politick, grave; merciful, a lover of virtue and goodness, a hater of wicked men, and a severe punisher of injustice. In summa, he is a most rare prince as ever reigned over these people as any I have ever read of in their chronicles, which are of great antiquity.”

“He has now become a prince of his people, and not of slaves, held in line by love and not by fear and tyranny. He is good-looking, with a pleasing and majestic appearance; friendly in demeanor yet very courageous, wise, shrewd, and serious; merciful, a lover of virtue and goodness, a hater of evil men, and a strict enforcer of justice. In summary, he is one of the most exceptional princes to have ever ruled over these people, something I've read about in their ancient chronicles.”

In 1601 Moscow was in a state of famine, the like of which it had never known. In a short time 3 roubles would not buy as much food as 15 copecks had done formerly. Driven wild by hunger the Muscovites committed fearful atrocities. Men were entrapped, killed and eaten. It is said that some mothers killed and ate their own children; pies of human flesh were sold openly; many thousand corpses remained unburied in the streets; chroniclers state that half a million perished of famine and disease. To alleviate some of the misery, Boris caused the granaries and stores to be burst open, and the food avarice withheld sold at normal prices.

In 1601, Moscow was experiencing a famine like it had never seen before. Shortly, 3 roubles couldn't buy as much food as 15 kopecks used to. Driven mad by hunger, the people of Moscow committed terrible acts. Men were trapped, killed, and eaten. It's said that some mothers killed and ate their own children; pies made of human flesh were sold openly; many thousands of bodies remained unburied in the streets; chroniclers report that half a million people died from hunger and disease. To ease some of the suffering, Boris ordered the granaries and storage facilities to be opened, and the food that had been hoarded was sold at normal prices.

Boris built two new palaces of stone within the Kremlin; had made a map of the Russian dominions, and a plan of Moscow. To find employment for the poor he caused the belfry tower of Ivan Veliki to be constructed, and did his utmost to win the love of the citizens. He had to combat treason and intrigue; his reprisals were severe, but the victims suffered in secret.{89}

Boris built two new stone palaces inside the Kremlin; he created a map of Russia and a layout of Moscow. To provide jobs for the needy, he oversaw the construction of the bell tower of Ivan Veliki and did everything he could to earn the citizens' affection. He had to deal with betrayal and scheming; his retaliations were harsh, but the affected individuals suffered quietly.{89}



CHURCH OF THE ASSUMPTION

CHURCH OF THE ASSUMPTION

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
CHURCH OF THE ASSUMPTION

{90}

{90}

{91}

{91}

The Belskis and Romanofs were ill-treated; the head of the latter house was forced to become a monk, and took the name of Philaret; his wife to become a nun, under the name of Marfa. One of the most remarkable specimens of Muscovite architecture has survived from Boris Godunov’s day, the church of the Assumption he built on the Pokrovka. Like other churches of mediæval Moscow, its chief entrance is by steps to a second storey, but unlike them it is carried much higher and appears more like a collection of buildings piled upon each other. Thirteen cupolas, at different heights, are arranged around the central dome. A covered gallery surrounds the church on the main storey, and the logia beneath was, until recently, divided and let as shops.

The Belskis and Romanofs faced harsh treatment; the head of the Romanof family was forced to become a monk and took the name Philaret; his wife became a nun, going by Marfa. One of the most impressive examples of Muscovite architecture from Boris Godunov’s time is the church of the Assumption he built on Pokrovka. Like other churches from medieval Moscow, its main entrance is accessed by steps leading up to a second story, but unlike those, it is built much taller and resembles a stack of buildings. Thirteen cupolas, at various heights, are arranged around the central dome. A covered gallery encircles the church on the main level, and the logia below was, until recently, subdivided and rented out as shops.

In 1604, the first false Dmitri appeared, invading Russia from the west, at the head of Poles and Zaporogians. Boris was energetic and able, but the towns revolted on the approach of Dmitri, and the soldiers of Godunov’s voievodes “found it hard to bear arms against their lawful sovereign.” Even Mstislavski, who tried to stop the advance, had no soldiers to help him; his men “had not hands to fight, only feet with which to run away.” Shooiski was better able to rally his men, and he defeated Dmitri at Dobryvichi. Boris then thought that the struggle was finished, but the movement had only just commenced. The Ukraine rose; some 40,000 Cossacks of the Don joined the impostor, and the inaction of the voievodes to stop the advance towards Moscow, proved that the spirit of treason was wide spread.

In 1604, the first false Dmitri showed up, invading Russia from the west with a group of Poles and Zaporogians. Boris was energetic and capable, but the towns revolted as Dmitri approached, and Godunov's voievodes' soldiers "found it hard to fight against their rightful ruler." Even Mstislavski, who tried to halt the advance, had no troops to support him; his men "had no hands to fight, only feet to run away." Shooiski was better at rallying his men and defeated Dmitri at Dobryvichi. Boris then thought the struggle was over, but the movement had only just started. The Ukraine rose up; about 40,000 Don Cossacks joined the impostor, and the voievodes' failure to stop the advance toward Moscow showed that the spirit of betrayal was widespread.

Boris Godunov did not live to see the issue. After a repast he was suddenly taken ill; there was suspicion of poisoning and, expecting to die, he nominated his son Theodore his successor. After confiding the youth to the care of his friend Basmanov, to the{92} Patriarch and to the people of Moscow, he breathed his last on the 15th April 1605, being then but fifty-five years of age.

Boris Godunov did not live to see the outcome. After a meal, he suddenly fell ill; there were suspicions of poisoning and, fearing for his life, he named his son Theodore as his successor. After entrusting the young man to his friend Basmanov, the{92} Patriarch, and the people of Moscow, he passed away on April 15, 1605, at the age of fifty-five.

Theodore ascended the throne as soon as his father’s remains were interred in the Archangelski Cathedral, but it soon became evident to his supporters that neither officers nor men would fight on behalf of the Godunovs. Rather than become a victim of treason, Basmanov chose to be its author, and announced that he was convinced that Dmitri was in truth the son of Ivan the Terrible.

Theodore took the throne right after his father's body was buried in the Archangelski Cathedral, but it quickly became clear to his supporters that neither the officers nor the soldiers would fight for the Godunovs. Instead of being a victim of betrayal, Basmanov decided to lead it himself and stated that he believed Dmitri was actually the son of Ivan the Terrible.

The impostor was audacious and successful. His career has the fascination of romance. He was one Otrepief, a monk of the Chudov monastery within the Kremlin. Job, the Patriarch, made him his secretary, a position which enabled him to learn several state and court secrets. He said one day to his fellow scribes, that some day he would reign over them as Tsar of Muscovy. For answer they spat in his face, and reported his words. Boris sent him a prisoner to the monastery on the White Lake. He escaped, wandered about for some time, and at Novgorod Severski was well received by the inhabitants, to whom he revealed himself as the supposed murdered Dmitri, and promised all who helped him suitable rewards if he should obtain his own rights. Then he threw off his cowl and joined a band of Zaporogians; learned of them how to ride and fight. As a soldier he sought service with Adam Vichnevetski, a Polish pan of good standing. He soon feigned illness; a priest was summoned, and to him he confessed that he was the son of the Tsar. This disclosure was of too great political value to remain the secret of the priest, and in due course Otrepief was recognised as Dmitri by Vichnevetski. Then the papal Nuncio took him under his protection, and he was presented to King Sigismund.{93}

The impostor was daring and successful. His career has a romantic allure. He was Otrepief, a monk from the Chudov monastery in the Kremlin. Patriarch Job made him his secretary, a role that allowed him to learn various state and court secrets. One day, he told his fellow scribes that he would eventually rule over them as Tsar of Muscovy. In response, they spat in his face and reported his words. Boris sent him as a prisoner to a monastery on White Lake. He escaped, wandered for a while, and in Novgorod Severski, he was greeted warmly by the locals, to whom he revealed himself as the supposedly murdered Dmitri, promising appropriate rewards to those who helped him reclaim his rights. He then discarded his monk's cowl and joined a group of Zaporogians, learning to ride and fight from them. As a soldier, he sought service with Adam Vichnevetski, a Polish noble of good reputation. He soon pretended to be ill; a priest was called, and he confessed to him that he was the son of the Tsar. This revelation was too politically significant to remain a secret, and eventually, Otrepief was recognized as Dmitri by Vichnevetski. Then the papal Nuncio took him under his wing, and he was introduced to King Sigismund.{93}

It is unlikely that these dignitaries were deceived. Sigismund feigned to believe Otrepief’s story, but refused to recognise him officially, though he allowed his subjects, at their own risk, to take service under Otrepief’s banner and foment a revolution.

It’s improbable that these dignitaries were fooled. Sigismund pretended to believe Otrepief’s tale, but didn’t officially acknowledge him, even though he let his subjects, at their own risk, serve under Otrepief’s banner and stir up a revolution.

From various motives the Russian leaders flocked to him as he marched towards Moscow. In the town the people crowded in the Grand Square to hear the news of his triumphant progress; his manifesto was read from the Lobnoe Mesto, and none dare stay the treason, not even the Patriarch would venture! The boyards Mstislavski, Vasili Shooiski, Belski and others, went out to argue with the citizens, but they were met with cries of “The day of Godunov is over! To-day the sun rises upon Russia; Dmitri! Long live the Tsar Dmitri! Down with the Godunovs! Cursed be the memory of Boris! Long live Dmitri!” So shouting, this crowd made its way into the Kremlin.

For various reasons, the Russian leaders gathered around him as he marched towards Moscow. In the town, people filled the Grand Square to hear news of his victorious march; his manifesto was read from the Lobnoe Mesto, and no one dared to stop the rebellion, not even the Patriarch would take the risk! The boyars Mstislavski, Vasili Shooiski, Belski, and others went out to talk to the citizens, but they were met with cries of “The reign of Godunov is over! Today the sun rises over Russia; Dmitri! Long live Tsar Dmitri! Down with the Godunovs! Cursed be the memory of Boris! Long live Dmitri!” Shouting like this, the crowd made its way into the Kremlin.

The rioters were masters; the guard fled, and the townsmen who had forced their way into the palace actually pulled the young Tsar from the throne. His mother begged them to spare his life, and her cry was heeded. The Godunovs were removed from the palace to their own dwelling and a guard placed over them. The relations and friends of the Godunovs were then imprisoned, their dwellings pillaged and destroyed. Belski, from his known antipathy to the Godunovs, became the counsellor of the mob. Some time later the partisans of Dmitri made a fresh attack on the Kremlin. The object of their fury on this occasion was the Patriarch. He was celebrating mass in the Cathedral of the Assumption when an armed band forced their way into the sanctuary, seized him at the altar, dragged him forth and tore away his vestments. Clad in black he was brought in ignominy from the church, shown to the people, and sent away on a{94} common cart to the monastery of Staritsa, five hundred versts from Moscow.

The rioters were in control; the guards fled, and the townspeople who had forced their way into the palace actually pulled the young Tsar off the throne. His mother pleaded with them to spare his life, and they listened. The Godunovs were taken from the palace to their own house, and a guard was placed over them. The relatives and friends of the Godunovs were then imprisoned, and their homes were looted and destroyed. Belski, due to his well-known dislike for the Godunovs, became the adviser to the mob. Some time later, Dmitri's supporters launched another attack on the Kremlin. This time, their anger was directed at the Patriarch. He was celebrating mass in the Cathedral of the Assumption when an armed group forced their way into the sanctuary, captured him at the altar, dragged him out, and ripped off his vestments. Dressed in black, he was brought out in shame from the church, displayed to the crowd, and sent away on a{94} common cart to the monastery of Staritsa, five hundred versts from Moscow.

On the 10th of June 1605, the Princes Galitzin and Mossolski, with a couple of secretaries and three of the guard of Streltsi, went to the palace of the Godunovs; took Theodore and his sister from the arms of the Tsarina and ordered the guard to put them to death in an adjoining room, and then strangled the Tsarina herself. Theodore made a struggle for life, fighting savagely, but he was struck down. Xenia was spared; Dmitri who had heard of her beauty ordered Mossolski to find an asylum for her in his mansion. The corpses of Marie and Theodore after being exposed to the public, were interred in the convent of St Varsonophee on the Srietenka, and the disinterred body of Boris Godunov brought to the same resting-place.

On June 10, 1605, Princes Galitzin and Mossolski, along with a couple of secretaries and three Streltsi guards, went to the Godunov palace. They took Theodore and his sister away from the Tsarina, ordered the guards to kill them in an adjacent room, and then strangled the Tsarina herself. Theodore fought fiercely for his life, but he was overpowered. Xenia was spared; Dmitri, who had heard about her beauty, instructed Mossolski to find her a safe place in his mansion. The bodies of Marie and Theodore, after being put on public display, were buried in the convent of St. Varsonophee on the Srietenka, and Boris Godunov's disinterred body was brought to the same burial site.

At this time Dmitri was at Tula, but all being now in readiness for his enthronement, he came to Moscow and made a state entry unparalleled for its magnificence and pageantry. A violent gust of wind which somewhat disturbed the procession as it crossed the Moskva was taken as an omen of ill, and later in the day, by an unlucky coincidence, at the moment when the clergy were prostrate before the Holy ikons, the foreign musicians sounded a fanfare. When Dmitri prostrated himself before the tomb of Ivan and cried, “Oh my father, thou left me an orphan and in exile, but by thy prayers I have regained my possessions!” the simple people were convinced of his identity. He was crowned; his supposed mother, Maria Nagoi, recognised him, and his rule commenced.

At that time, Dmitri was in Tula, but with everything ready for his coronation, he came to Moscow and made an entrance that was unmatched in its grandeur and spectacle. A strong gust of wind that disrupted the procession as it crossed the Moskva was seen as a bad omen, and later in the day, by unfortunate coincidence, at the moment the clergy were kneeling before the Holy icons, the foreign musicians played a fanfare. When Dmitri knelt before the tomb of Ivan and exclaimed, “Oh my father, you left me an orphan and in exile, but by your prayers, I have regained my possessions!” the ordinary people were convinced of his identity. He was crowned; his presumed mother, Maria Nagoi, recognized him, and his reign began.

Little fault can be found with the way in which Dmitri governed. He pardoned those who had suffered from the Godunovs, and was generous to those who had shown themselves inimical to him;{95} he rewarded his partisans handsomely and was lavish in his expenditure. He purchased and ordered rich furnishings for himself and the court, exhibiting a prodigality that frightened the more staid of the Moscow citizens. In three months he is said to have spent more than seven million roubles, and the display of riches was the wonder of foreign visitors to his court. He rode Arabs, dressed his servants like nobles, and built and furnished a palace that surpassed anything seen in Moscow. It was of wood; the stoves of porcelain had doors of silver; the bolts and bars of the palace were all gold, or at least gilded; before the entrance was an enormous statue of Cerberus, of which the three jaws opened wide at the least blow. The chroniclers state that “this was a symbol of the dwelling that was to be Dmitri’s throughout eternity.”

Little fault can be found with how Dmitri ruled. He pardoned those who had suffered under the Godunovs and was generous to those who had opposed him;{95} he rewarded his supporters well and spent lavishly. He bought and ordered luxurious furnishings for himself and the court, showing a level of extravagance that alarmed the more conservative citizens of Moscow. In just three months, he reportedly spent more than seven million roubles, and the display of wealth amazed foreign visitors to his court. He rode Arabian horses, dressed his servants like nobles, and built and furnished a palace that exceeded anything seen in Moscow. It was made of wood; the stoves were porcelain with silver doors; the locks and bolts were all gold, or at least gilded; at the entrance stood a huge statue of Cerberus, with its three heads opening wide at the slightest touch. Chroniclers note that “this was a symbol of the dwelling that was to be Dmitri's throughout eternity.”

There were malcontents, and chief among them was Vasili Shooiski, who, on the denunciation of Basmanov, was tortured and condemned to death. At the last moment he was pardoned, but was implacable, and worked assiduously for the overthrow of Dmitri and the ruin of Basmanov.

There were dissatisfied individuals, and at the forefront was Vasili Shooiski, who, after being reported by Basmanov, was tortured and sentenced to death. At the last minute, he was granted a pardon, but he remained unyielding and diligently plotted to bring down Dmitri and destroy Basmanov.

Pope Paul V. sent Rogoni to Moscow on the usual errand, but Dmitri was in nowise inclined to make any submission to Rome. At the same time he was tolerant, and this tolerance gave great offence to the orthodox. He allowed Lutherans to preach; permitted the Jesuits to have a place of worship within the Kremlin; even listened to an address in Latin delivered by a Jesuit in an orthodox church. Equally irritating was the freedom foreigners now had to enter an orthodox church, the doors of which had been hitherto closed against all but the faithful. Dmitri upbraided the clergy for their intolerance. “With us,” said he, “there is only the outward observance, we{96} ignore the spirit of our religion. You fast, you prostrate yourselves before relics, you worship the Holy ikons, but you do not understand the spirit of religion. You consider yourselves the most upright people on the earth, and meanwhile you do not even live as do Christians. You lack charity: you are little inclined to good works. Why do you scorn those who dissent from you? What is the Roman faith? It is a Christian faith, even as yours is.” Such opinions as these alienated everyone, but especially the clergy. To them he was gracious, allowing the Patriarch, four metropolitans, seven archbishops and three bishops to have seats on the general council—a privilege they had previously received upon very special occasions only. An order he made for an inventory of clerical property inflamed the priests of all degrees against him.

Pope Paul V sent Rogoni to Moscow on the usual mission, but Dmitri was definitely not interested in submitting to Rome. At the same time, he was tolerant, and this tolerance greatly offended the orthodox. He allowed Lutherans to preach, permitted the Jesuits to have a place of worship within the Kremlin, and even listened to a speech in Latin delivered by a Jesuit in an orthodox church. Equally frustrating was the newfound freedom for foreigners to enter an orthodox church, which had previously been closed to everyone except the faithful. Dmitri reprimanded the clergy for their intolerance. “With us,” he said, “there is only outward observance; we{96} ignore the spirit of our religion. You fast, you prostrate yourselves before relics, you worship the Holy ikons, but you do not understand the essence of religion. You see yourselves as the most righteous people on earth, yet you don’t even live like true Christians. You lack charity; you are not inclined to do good works. Why do you look down on those who disagree with you? What is the Roman faith? It is a Christian faith, just like yours.” Such views alienated everyone, especially the clergy. To them, he was gracious, allowing the Patriarch, four metropolitans, seven archbishops, and three bishops to have seats on the general council—a privilege they had only gotten on very special occasions before. His order to take an inventory of clerical property angered priests of all ranks against him.

Crull writes of him:—

Crull writes about him:—

“For his owne person, he maintayneth his greatnesse very well. He was a man of mean stature, browne of hue, prompt to choler, but quickly appeased. He hath broken many a staff, and given sentence of death, upon the marshals and other officers, when they did but little swerve from their duty. After he grew to know the Russians’ false pranks, he provided himself with a guard of Livonians, and afterwards also of Asmaynes and other strangers.... He yet further determined to have also a hundred musketeers, when he was laid apart. He took great delight in hunting, and in casting great pieces of artillery, and not only to see them in hand but also to proove them himself: for which end he caused ravelynes and ramparts to be erected to imitate an assault.”

“For himself, he maintains his greatness very well. He was a man of average height, brown-skinned, quick to anger but easily calmed down. He has broken many staffs and handed down death sentences on marshals and other officers for even minor lapses in their duties. Once he learned about the Russians’ deceptive tricks, he provided himself with a guard of Livonians, and later also of Asmaynes and other foreigners. He also decided to have a hundred musketeers when he was sidelined. He greatly enjoyed hunting and firing large pieces of artillery, not just to observe them in action but to try them out himself; for this purpose, he had trenches and ramparts built to simulate an assault.”

Dmitri was too fond of the customs of the west to satisfy the Muscovites. Many charges were made against him which seem absurd now. Among them may be instanced “that he favoured foreigners, especially musicians;” ordinarily he sacrificed pomp, and went hither and thither about Moscow like a{97} simple citizen. He took the cannon out of the town to test various pieces “and might then have turned them on the town”; he liked to watch mimic battles, and laughed when the Muscovites were routed by the foreign soldiers. He ate meat during Lent and veal at any time. He showed little or no regard for Russian customs, and broke down those barriers that prevented the common people from having access to their Tsar. Much could have been pardoned, but two things were decisive: he would not sleep after dinner, and he mounted his horse at a bound.

Dmitri was too fond of western customs to win over the Muscovites. Many accusations against him now seem ridiculous. One of them was that “he favored foreigners, especially musicians;” typically, he set aside grandeur and moved around Moscow like a{97} regular citizen. He took the cannons out of the city to experiment with different types and could have aimed them at the city; he enjoyed watching mock battles and laughed when the Muscovites were defeated by foreign soldiers. He ate meat during Lent and veal any time. He showed little to no respect for Russian traditions and broke down the barriers that kept ordinary people from seeing their Tsar. Much could have been excused, but two things were crucial: he refused to nap after lunch, and he jumped onto his horse.

When Dmitri arranged to wed Marina Mniszek, the daughter of a Polish pan, Vasili Shooiski plotted anew for his overthrow. He it was who had been commissioned to hold the inquiry into the crime committed at Uglitch; and the people remembered that he, if anyone, knew the truth respecting the murder of Ivan’s son and the identity of their present ruler. This in some measure accounts for Dmitri’s surprising leniency towards this enemy. In his new plot Shooiski counted upon the support of 18,000 men of Novgorod and Pskov, then in Moscow on their way to do battle against the Krim-Tartars. The Tsar could count on the support of the common people, and though warned of the danger that was threatening, he took no measures to ensure his own safety, or that of his guests and bride. The agents of Shooiski circulated two rumours; one, among the boyard and clergy, to the effect that with the help of the newly arrived Poles “Dmitri” intended to massacre the boyards and introduce the Roman faith; to the common people it was represented that the Poles were ill-treating the Tsar. On the night of the 17th of May the soldiers secured the entrances to the Kremlin; and on the morning of the 18th, Shooiski, with a cross in one hand and a drawn sword in the other, obtained an entrance through the Redeemer Gate,{98} made straight for the Cathedral of the Assumption and, prostrating himself before the ikon of Mary of Vladimir, called upon those around him in the name of God to attack the cursed heretics. The alarm bell rang; Basmanov met some boyards who, with swords drawn, demanded that “Dmitri” should be given them. They killed him; then entered the palace in search of the Tsar, who tried to escape, and to defend himself. Driven along a corridor, he slipped, was stabbed, and thrown into the courtyard. The guard of Streltsi, called to his assistance, would have defended him, but when threatened by Vasili and the boyards, the Tsar prayed them to desist, and the companions of Shooiski thereupon despatched him. Marina was spared, and a guard left to protect her; but the conspirators, having killed Dmitri, Basmanov, and a hundred or more of the foreign musicians in the palace, they spread over the Kitai Gorod and murdered without discrimination all the Poles and foreigners they encountered. These scenes continued all day, and at last the populace took up the cry of “Down with the Poles!” and the massacre of foreigners became general.

When Dmitri arranged to marry Marina Mniszek, the daughter of a Polish nobleman, Vasili Shooiski plotted once again to take him down. He had been put in charge of investigating the crime in Uglitch, and people remembered that he knew the truth about the murder of Ivan’s son and the identity of their current ruler. This partly explains Dmitri’s surprising leniency towards this enemy. In his new scheme, Shooiski was counting on the support of 18,000 men from Novgorod and Pskov, who were in Moscow on their way to fight against the Crimean Tatars. The Tsar had the backing of the common people, and although he was warned of the impending danger, he took no steps to ensure his safety or that of his guests and bride. Shooiski's agents spread two rumors: one among the boyars and clergy claiming that with the help of the newly arrived Poles, “Dmitri” intended to massacre the boyars and enforce the Roman faith; to the common people, it was said that the Poles were mistreating the Tsar. On the night of May 17th, soldiers secured the entrances to the Kremlin; and on the morning of the 18th, Shooiski, with a cross in one hand and a drawn sword in the other, entered through the Redeemer Gate,{98} made a beeline for the Cathedral of the Assumption, prostrated himself before the icon of Mary of Vladimir, and called on those around him in the name of God to attack the cursed heretics. The alarm bell rang; Basmanov encountered some boyars who, with swords drawn, demanded that “Dmitri” be handed over. They killed him and then stormed the palace in search of the Tsar, who tried to escape and defend himself. As he was driven along a corridor, he slipped, was stabbed, and tossed into the courtyard. The Streltsi guards called to help him but, when threatened by Vasili and the boyars, the Tsar begged them to back off, and Shooiski’s followers then dispatched him. Marina was spared, and a guard was left to protect her; but after killing Dmitri, Basmanov, and over a hundred foreign musicians in the palace, the conspirators spread out over the Kitai Gorod, indiscriminately murdering all the Poles and foreigners they encountered. These scenes went on all day, and eventually, the crowd picked up the chant of “Down with the Poles!” as the massacre of foreigners became widespread.

The bodies of “Dmitri” and Basmanov, their faces covered with ribald masks, prepared for “mummeries” in celebration of the wedding, were dragged out on to the Grand Square and exposed to the public; later these corpses were burned, and the ashes fired from a cannon.

The bodies of “Dmitri” and Basmanov, their faces hidden by crude masks, ready for “mummeries” to celebrate the wedding, were pulled out into the Grand Square and shown to the public; later, these corpses were burned, and the ashes were shot from a cannon.

On the day following the massacre, Vasili Shooiski was proclaimed Tsar. The action was too precipitate. Galitzin, who was a candidate, was not satisfied; the provinces were annoyed that they had not been consulted. Shooiski did not feel secure. He sent into the distant parts of the empire as voievodes those boyards who had taken the side of “Dmitri.” Among them was Mossolski, who, on leaving Moscow, took a letter addressed to “Dmitri,” and had already{99} formed the idea of advancing someone else to the throne. Vasili Shooiski was fifty years of age, he lacked energy, and his rule satisfied no one. Pretenders sprang up everywhere; at one time there were seventeen people claiming to be “Dmitri”; others took the name of Peter; all claimed to be sons of Ivan. Fighting men took their part. Cossacks, Zaporogians, and others, wanted war for the booty it brought. The nobles led a war in the south; in the east the Tartars thought the time opportune for action; Finns tried to recover their independence; Swedes and Poles looked on, waiting for the best moment at which to interfere. News travelled slowly, lack of communication made local risings possible. The people in distant parts heard almost at the same time that the Tsar was dead, that Dmitri had recovered his own, that the usurper had been dethroned—they knew not what to believe. In Moscow the citizens remembered that the bodies which had been exposed on the Grand Square had the faces masked: to most it seemed possible that “Dmitri” had escaped after all.

On the day after the massacre, Vasili Shooiski was named Tsar. The decision was too hasty. Galitzin, who was a candidate, was unhappy; the provinces were upset that they hadn’t been consulted. Shooiski didn’t feel secure. He sent those boyars who had supported “Dmitri” to distant parts of the empire as voievodes. Among them was Mossolski, who, upon leaving Moscow, took a letter addressed to “Dmitri,” and had already formed the idea of putting someone else on the throne. Vasili Shooiski was fifty years old, lacked energy, and his rule pleased no one. Pretenders emerged everywhere; at one point, there were seventeen people claiming to be “Dmitri”; others called themselves Peter; all claimed to be sons of Ivan. Fighters took their side. Cossacks, Zaporogians, and others wanted war for the loot it provided. The nobles waged war in the south; in the east, the Tartars thought the time was right to act; Finns sought to regain their independence; Swedes and Poles observed, waiting for the perfect moment to intervene. News traveled slowly, and poor communication allowed local uprisings to happen. People in distant areas heard almost simultaneously that the Tsar was dead, that Dmitri had reclaimed his own, and that the usurper had been overthrown—they didn’t know what to believe. In Moscow, the citizens remembered that the bodies displayed in the Grand Square had their faces covered: to most, it seemed possible that “Dmitri” had escaped after all.

It was some time before the revolutionists joined forces. In the meantime Shooiski instigated an anti-foreign reaction. Dmitri exiled a bishop named Hermogen, an able, devout man, uncompromisingly orthodox, stubborn and bigoted, who now became Patriarch, and won the confidence of the people.

It took a while for the revolutionaries to come together. In the meantime, Shooiski sparked an anti-foreigner movement. Dmitri exiled a bishop named Hermogen, a capable and devout man, who was strictly orthodox, stubborn, and biased. He later became Patriarch and gained the trust of the people.

In due course the different sections of the army of revolutionaries closed in towards Moscow. Lissovski, a noted brigand, had a large following. There was John Zapieha, exiled from Poland, seeking fortune, and with him numerous “pans,” intent on the spoils of war; a host of Zaporogians, and the usual large army of Cossacks, under the hetman Rojinski, joined them. In the field the superior talents of Michael Skopin-Shooiski, a nephew of the Tsar, saved the situation.{100} He refused overtures made by Liapunov, and this voievode consequently separated his following from that of the revolutionaries and joined Shooiski. Bolotnikov had then to fall back on Tula, and he wrote to Mniszek that unless “Dmitri” was produced, their cause would be lost. He was found, but too late to save Bolotnikov, who was drowned; another leader was hanged. The identity of the new impostor is as disputed as that of “Junius”; to historians he is simply the “second false Dmitri,” the “Brigand of Tushino,” or the “Little Tsar.” His party was strong, because each of its units expected spoils in case of victory; it received such support as it had from the people by reason of the ex-Tsaritsa Marina, the widow of “Dmitri,” and Mniszek, recognising the impostor as “Dmitri.”

Eventually, the different groups of revolutionary soldiers closed in on Moscow. Lissovski, a famous bandit, had a large following. There was John Zapieha, who was exiled from Poland and looking for fortune, along with many “pans” eager for war loot; a large number of Zaporogians, and the usual big army of Cossacks, under hetman Rojinski, joined them. On the battlefield, Michael Skopin-Shooiski, the Tsar's nephew, used his superior skills to turn the tide. He declined offers from Liapunov, which led that voievode to separate his men from the revolutionaries and join Shooiski. Bolotnikov then had to retreat to Tula, and he wrote to Mniszek that unless “Dmitri” was presented, their cause would be doomed. Dmitri was found, but it was too late to save Bolotnikov, who had drowned; another leader was hanged. The identity of the new impostor is as contested as that of “Junius”; historians simply refer to him as the “second false Dmitri,” the “Brigand of Tushino,” or the “Little Tsar.” His faction was strong because each unit expected rewards in the event of victory; it received support from the people due to the ex-Tsaritsa Marina, the widow of “Dmitri,” and Mniszek, who recognized the impostor as “Dmitri.”{100}

The northern towns supported the impostor, and Sigismund and the Poles made common cause with him against Moscow. Shooiski, who had refused the proffered aid of Sweden, now sought help, and from Novgorod the young Delagardie was sent on behalf of Sweden. More could have been accomplished had not Vasili Shooiski been so jealous of the successes and popularity of his nephew. He was afraid to let him take the field, and the impostor established himself at Tushino, a village ten miles to the north of Moscow. Here he held his court, and enticed the Muscovites by promises. Nobles and citizens alike essayed to be on good terms with both Shooiski, the “half-Tsar,” and the impostor, the “little Tsar,” spending their time at both courts, and earning the name of Pereletsi (birds-of-passage) by their frequent changes of residence. The townsmen were so demoralised that they were ready for whomsoever should succeed, yet gave little assistance to either “Tsar,” and responded but feebly to future attempts at insurrection within the capital. The soldiers returned to their homes, and{101} Shooiski became by turns devout and ribald. Now spending all his hours in church, anon seeking aid of sorcerers; one day punishing traitors with extreme rigour, the next proclaiming that all were free to do as they wished. The few who remained true to Shooiski sent sons or near relations to make court to the impostor.

The northern towns supported the impostor, and Sigismund and the Poles teamed up with him against Moscow. Shooiski, who had previously turned down Sweden's help, now sought assistance, and from Novgorod, the young Delagardie was sent on Sweden's behalf. More could have been achieved if Vasili Shooiski hadn’t been so jealous of his nephew's successes and popularity. He was too afraid to let him go to battle, and the impostor set up his base at Tushino, a village ten miles north of Moscow. Here, he held court and attracted Muscovites with promises. Nobles and citizens alike tried to stay on good terms with both Shooiski, the "half-Tsar," and the impostor, the "little Tsar," spending their time at both courts and earning the nickname Pereletsi (birds-of-passage) due to their frequent changes of residence. The townspeople were so demoralized that they were ready to back whoever succeeded, yet they offered little support to either “Tsar,” responding weakly to future insurrection attempts in the capital. The soldiers returned home, and Shooiski fluctuated between being devout and irreverent. He spent all his time in church one moment, seeking sorcerers' help the next; one day he punished traitors severely, the next he declared everyone was free to do as they pleased. The few who stayed loyal to Shooiski sent sons or close relatives to make their case to the impostor.

The Church saved Russia in this extremity; it was unswervingly orthodox and opposed to Polish supremacy. The rich monastery of Troitsa attracted the cupidity of the revolutionaries, and some 30,000 men under Zapieha and Lissovski laid siege to the famous monastery in 1608. The monks held out bravely, keeping the besiegers at bay for sixteen months. In September 1609 Sigismund himself laid siege to Smolensk. The people refused to submit; the voievode Shein defended the town so well that Sigismund found it necessary to call all Poles to his banner. Zapieha very reluctantly left Troitsa and joined Sigismund, knowing that in case of victory the spoils would now fall to the King of Poland. The Russians with the “little Tsar” had no choice but to accompany the Poles, and the impostor, deserted, sought refuge in flight. Disguised, he went south, and later Marina and Mniszek joined him.

The Church saved Russia in this crisis; it was firmly Orthodox and against Polish dominance. The wealthy Troitsa monastery drew the attention of the revolutionaries, and about 30,000 men led by Zapieha and Lissovski besieged the famous monastery in 1608. The monks held out bravely, keeping the attackers at bay for sixteen months. In September 1609, Sigismund himself laid siege to Smolensk. The people refused to surrender; the voievode Shein defended the town so well that Sigismund found it necessary to rally all Poles to his cause. Zapieha reluctantly left Troitsa to join Sigismund, knowing that if they won, the spoils would go to the King of Poland. The Russians with the “little Tsar” had no choice but to follow the Poles, while the impostor, abandoned, fled for his life. In disguise, he headed south, and later Marina and Mniszek joined him.

The condition of the nobles and commoners who had taken the part of the impostor was pitiable. In despair a deputation, headed by Soltikov, waited upon Sigismund and said that the Muscovites beat their foreheads in the dust before his majesty, and begged that his son Vladislas would take the throne of the Tsars, making only one condition, namely, that he should become of the orthodox faith. A compact was made between Sigismund and the delegates, by which, under certain conditions, Vladislas was to succeed to the throne of Muscovy.

The situation of the nobles and commoners who supported the impostor was tragic. In despair, a group led by Soltikov approached Sigismund and said that the Muscovites were humbling themselves before him, pleading for his son Vladislas to take the throne of the Tsars, with just one condition: he must adopt the orthodox faith. An agreement was reached between Sigismund and the delegates, under which, with certain conditions, Vladislas was to inherit the throne of Muscovy.

In the meantime Michael Skopin-Shooiski died in the hour of his victories. His uncles were accused of{102} having poisoned him. When, at last, Dmitri Shooiski went out against Sigismund, he was beaten by Jolkievski and betrayed by the leader of the foreign regiment. The Poles then marched on to Moscow, and thitherward also came the impostor with a fresh following, thinking the town would choose him in preference to Vladislas. Moscow was in uproar; the inhabitants knew not what to do. On one hand the proclamation of Jolkievski promised peace, abundance, and prosperity; on the other, the impostor with more specious promises held fast those who had already paid court to him. Some suggested that neither candidate should be accepted, but a new Tsar elected by the people. Matters drifted on until the 17th July 1609 when, after the result of a meeting at Serphukov became known, the boyards and citizens together most humbly requested Vasili Shooiski to abdicate, because “he caused Christian blood to be shed and was not successful in his government.” He retired to his private dwelling and subsequently became a monk in the Chudov Monastery.

In the meantime, Michael Skopin-Shooiski died at the height of his victories. His uncles were accused of{102} poisoning him. When Dmitri Shooiski finally confronted Sigismund, he was defeated by Jolkievski and betrayed by the leader of the foreign regiment. The Poles then marched on Moscow, and the impostor arrived with a new following, believing the city would choose him over Vladislas. Moscow was in chaos; the residents didn’t know what to do. On one hand, Jolkievski’s proclamation promised peace, abundance, and prosperity; on the other, the impostor, with more appealing promises, kept those who had already supported him. Some suggested that neither candidate should be accepted, but instead, a new Tsar elected by the people. Things continued to escalate until July 17, 1609, when, after the outcome of a meeting in Serphukov became known, the boyars and citizens together humbly requested Vasili Shooiski to step down, saying “he caused Christian blood to be shed and was unsuccessful in his governance.” He then retired to his private residence and eventually became a monk in the Chudov Monastery.

When the boyards had to choose between the Pole and the impostor, some wished to restore Shooiski to power. For the time being the Council was content to enforce an oath of fealty to it, and to await the coming of Jolkievski, then at Mojaisk.

When the boyars had to choose between the Pole and the impostor, some wanted to bring Shooiski back to power. For now, the Council was satisfied to require an oath of loyalty to it and to wait for Jolkievski, who was at Mojaisk.

Sigismund had determined upon securing the throne for himself, and Jolkievski had a difficult part to play. The Russians elected an embassy to Sigismund; it consisted of those who were most likely to oppose the Polish supremacy: then, the better to guard against the impostor, the Poles were requested to garrison the Kremlin. The dissidents were thus got out of the town, and the key to the stronghold of the empire was given into the hands of the Poles. The Muscovites progressed so slowly with their negotiations that Jolkievski left Gonsievski in command and returned to Smolensk,{103} taking Shooiski with him. The Patriarch alone remained inexorable. He protested against the Polish occupation and refused all attempts at compromise. More, he was unceasing in his attempts to awaken the Muscovites to their duty, to their religion, their country and themselves. His attitude was most irritating to the boyards favouring the Poles and to the officers of the garrison, for the indomitable prelate, deprived of the wherewithal to write, called out loudly to the people to revolt. The boyard Soltikov, enraged by his repeated refusals to sign the submission, struck at him with a dagger, but the cross of the prelate warded off the blow. “The cross is my only weapon that I have against thee, cursed one!” he called, and the garrison did their best to prevent the people from entering the cathedral to hear him. Cast in prison, he still found means to inflame the populace.

Sigismund was set on taking the throne for himself, and Jolkievski had a tough role to fill. The Russians sent a delegation to Sigismund; it included those most likely to challenge Polish rule. To better secure against the pretender, the Poles were asked to occupy the Kremlin. The dissenters were pushed out of town, and control of the empire's stronghold was handed over to the Poles. The Muscovites dragged their feet with the negotiations, so Jolkievski left Gonsievski in charge and went back to Smolensk,{103} taking Shooiski with him. Only the Patriarch remained unyielding. He opposed the Polish presence and rejected all attempts at compromise. Moreover, he relentlessly tried to awaken the Muscovites to their responsibilities to their faith, their country, and themselves. His stance infuriated the boyars supporting the Poles and the garrison officers, as the resolute prelate, unable to write, shouted to the people to rise up. The boyar Soltikov, furious at his repeated refusals to submit, attacked him with a dagger, but the prelate's cross deflected the blow. “The cross is my only weapon against you, cursed one!” he shouted, and the garrison did their best to keep people from entering the cathedral to hear him. Even in prison, he found a way to stir the populace.

The “little Tsar,” after the alliance between the Poles and Muscovites was accomplished, withdrew to Kaluga. Soon afterwards he was murdered; he left Marina and a son, but neither now were of importance to Russia.

The "little Tsar," after the alliance between the Poles and Muscovites was formed, retreated to Kaluga. Soon after, he was killed; he left behind Marina and a son, but neither was significant to Russia anymore.

Sigismund wanted Smolensk reunited to Poland; the delegates wanted Vladislas in Moscow at once. Sigismund delayed. He tried what he could do with Smolensk; when the secretary Tomila was asked if he would surrender the town, he answered, “If I were to do it, not only would God and Muscovites curse me, but the earth would open and swallow me.” Others were not so honest. The King was besieged by applicants for favours and rewards in return for services rendered, or to be rendered. In the Kremlin, the boyards denounced each other to the commandant, Galitzin and Vorontski were arrested; others lost what little prestige remained to them.

Sigismund wanted to bring Smolensk back into Poland, while the delegates insisted that Vladislas should go to Moscow immediately. Sigismund hesitated. He did what he could with Smolensk; when the secretary Tomila was asked if he would hand over the town, he replied, “If I did that, not only would God and the Muscovites curse me, but the ground would open up and swallow me.” Others were less straightforward. The King was overwhelmed with people asking for favors and rewards for services provided or to be provided. In the Kremlin, the boyars accused each other to the commandant; Galitzin and Vorontski were arrested, and others lost what little respect they had left.

Hermogen succeeded in getting two letters circulated; both were calls to the faithful to rise against the Poles. They excited indignation, and at last Liapunov started{104} out from Riazan with an army and arrived before Moscow. The Poles besought Hermogen to order this force to disperse. He refused and defied the Poles to do their worst.

Hermogen managed to get two letters spread around; both urged the faithful to stand up against the Poles. They stirred up anger, and eventually, Liapunov set out from Riazan with an army and reached Moscow. The Poles pleaded with Hermogen to command this force to disband. He refused and dared the Poles to do their worst.

In 1611 matters quickly became worse. As long as Jolkievski was in the Kremlin, Russians and Poles were at peace with each other, but Gonsievski was not so successful. Some Poles were so foolish as to mock the orthodox worshippers, and although severely punished, the circumstance roused the Muscovites to action. There were several riots, but these were quelled, and the measures the Poles took to ensure their own safety irritated the citizens still more. Hatred increased day by day; the position of the Poles became critical. As Holy Week approached, Gonsievski fearing trouble forbade the usual ceremonies. This so offended the people that he was forced to give way. The critical period passed with one or two unimportant risings, when suddenly a quarrel broke out with the carters, who had been asked to haul cannons into position and had refused. Soon the fighting became general in the town. Prince Pojarski, with the advance guard of the Russian army, had just arrived on the Sretenka when the Poles and Germans fell ruthlessly upon the citizens. The massacre lasted an hour or more, some seven thousand being killed. The alarm bells were ringing, and the crowd at last was chased from the Kitai Gorod when the Poles who followed further were driven back by the cannon of Pojarski. The Poles and foreigners had then to entrench themselves and, to clear the neighbourhood, the Poles fired the town. The conflagration spread rapidly and lasted three days. The Russians abandoned the burning town; the Bielo Gorod was destroyed, and much of the Kitai Gorod also; the dwellings and warehouses of the foreign{105} merchants were consumed, and the “English factory” lost several of its members. Some went into the cellars and were suffocated, the survivors made a dash for the Kremlin, and were helped over the wall by the Poles, where their position was precarious, for they were amidst a town in flames in a foreign country, among a people in revolt against the garrison. Some vestiges of this fire are still found occasionally when excavating—old vaults full of charred wood and burned bricks—whilst the wall of the Kitia Gorod itself is said to bear evidence in several places of the fire that for days raged round it, and vitrified the bricks and tiles of its battlements and machecoules. When the news of the disaster in Moscow reached Sigismund he sent the delegates and hostages as prisoners to Marienburg. Shortly afterwards Smolensk capitulated: the brave Shein was tortured for holding out so long, then Sigismund returned to Warsaw and led the ex-Tsar Shooiski in triumph through the streets. He delayed in hastening needed reinforcements to the besieged garrison in the Kremlin of Moscow, counting those that reached it during the conflagration sufficient.

In 1611, things quickly worsened. While Jolkievski was in the Kremlin, Russians and Poles were at peace, but Gonsievski was not as effective. Some Poles foolishly mocked the Orthodox worshippers, and even though they faced severe punishment, this stirred the Muscovites to action. There were several riots, but they were suppressed, and the measures the Poles took to ensure their safety only further irritated the citizens. Hatred grew day by day, and the situation for the Poles became critical. As Holy Week approached, Gonsievski, fearing unrest, banned the usual ceremonies. This deeply offended the people, forcing him to relent. The tense period passed with one or two minor uprisings, when suddenly a dispute broke out with the carters, who had been asked to haul cannons into position and refused. Soon, fighting erupted throughout the town. Prince Pojarski, with the advance guard of the Russian army, had just arrived on the Sretenka when the Poles and Germans ruthlessly attacked the citizens. The massacre lasted over an hour, resulting in about seven thousand deaths. The alarm bells rang, and eventually, the crowd was driven from the Kitai Gorod, with the Poles being pushed back by Pojarski's cannons. The Poles and foreigners then had to dig in, and to clear the area, the Poles set fire to the town. The blaze spread quickly and lasted three days. The Russians abandoned the burning town; Bielo Gorod was destroyed, and much of Kitai Gorod followed suit; the homes and warehouses of foreign merchants were incinerated, and the “English factory” lost several members. Some sought refuge in the cellars and suffocated, while the survivors tried to escape to the Kremlin, where the Poles helped them over the wall, putting them in a precarious position in a country engulfed in flames amidst a populace revolting against the garrison. Some remnants of this fire are occasionally found during excavations—old vaults filled with charred wood and burnt bricks—while the walls of Kitai Gorod are said to show signs of the fire that raged around them for days, vitrifying the bricks and tiles of its battlements and machicolations. When news of the disaster in Moscow reached Sigismund, he sent the delegates and hostages as prisoners to Marienburg. Soon after, Smolensk surrendered: the valiant Shein was tortured for holding out so long. Sigismund then returned to Warsaw, triumphantly parading the ex-Tsar Shooiski through the streets. He delayed sending much-needed reinforcements to the besieged garrison in the Kremlin, considering the troops that reached it during the fire sufficient.

During Easter week Liapunov arrived; he was closely followed by Zarutski with Don-Cossacks and Prince Troubetskoi with the levies from Kaluga. The Russian forces camped on the ashes of the Bielo Gorod and, if the leaders had been united and vigilant, success might have been theirs. Day by day the situation became more dangerous for the beleaguered Poles—obliged to make frequent sorties for food, and losing men on each occasion. Zapieha made an attempt to relieve the garrison but failed; the 100,000 Russians round the Kremlin kept him away, but themselves were unable to carry the fortress by assault and too lax to starve the enemy out.

During Easter week, Liapunov arrived, closely followed by Zarutski with Don Cossacks and Prince Troubetskoi with troops from Kaluga. The Russian forces camped on the ruins of Bielo Gorod, and if the leaders had been united and alert, victory might have been theirs. Each day, the situation grew more dangerous for the trapped Poles, who had to make frequent raids for food and lost men each time. Zapieha tried to relieve the garrison but failed; the 100,000 Russians around the Kremlin kept him at bay, but they also couldn't take the fortress by storm and were too lax to starve the enemy out.

Gonsievski did well. Threats failing to move the{106} stubborn Hermogen, a letter was written to the leader of the Cossacks to the effect that Liapunov intended to ruin them. They treacherously killed him; the cause of Russia seemed lost, for there was no longer a leader in whom all could trust, but impostors and intriguers beyond count. The Cossacks determined to fight for their own hand; the nobles and boyards held aloof, save those with the Poles in the Kremlin. Zapieha revictualled the garrison; Sweden threatened Novgorod, and called the heir-apparent Tsar of Russia; a fresh usurper found a following at Pskov; Cossacks, Poles and brigands of different nationalities overran the country, pillaged towns and burned villages, and during that winter of 1611-12 food was so scarce that “men devoured each other.” There was no Sovereign recognised, no chief authority, no law. From time to time the Archimandrite Denis, and his able seconder Abraham Palitizin, sent letters to the different towns urging the people to rise, retake Moscow, and save the holy relics. Hermogen was starving imprisoned in the Kremlin; the Poles allowed the ex-patriarch Ignatius to act in his stead. Moscow was powerless. The other towns commenced to govern themselves and to raise local forces for their own protection.

Gonsievski did well. After threats failed to sway the stubborn Hermogen, a letter was sent to the leader of the Cossacks claiming that Liapunov intended to betray them. They treacherously killed him; the cause of Russia seemed doomed, as there was no longer a leader whom everyone could trust, only impostors and schemers everywhere. The Cossacks decided to fight for themselves; the nobles and boyars kept their distance, except for those who sided with the Poles in the Kremlin. Zapieha resupplied the garrison; Sweden threatened Novgorod and claimed the heir-apparent Tsar of Russia; a new usurper found support in Pskov; Cossacks, Poles, and various bands of brigands invaded the country, looted towns, and burned villages, and during that winter of 1611-12, food was so scarce that “men devoured each other.” There was no recognized Sovereign, no central authority, no law. Occasionally, Archimandrite Denis and his capable assistant Abraham Palitizin sent letters to different towns urging people to rise up, retake Moscow, and save the holy relics. Hermogen was starving while imprisoned in the Kremlin; the Poles allowed the ex-patriarch Ignatius to act on his behalf. Moscow was powerless. Other towns began to govern themselves and raised local forces for their own protection.

The high priest Sabbas made a stirring appeal to the people to unite and deliver their fatherland. His eloquence moved the citizens of Nijni-Novgorod to tears. He called on the faithful “to assert their unity, join together to defend the pure and true religion of Christ, free the holy cathedral of the Blessed Virgin, and recover the sainted remains of the miracle workers of Moscow.”

The high priest Sabbas made an emotional appeal to the people to come together and save their homeland. His powerful words brought the citizens of Nijni-Novgorod to tears. He urged the faithful “to stand united, band together to defend the pure and true faith of Christ, liberate the holy cathedral of the Blessed Virgin, and reclaim the revered remains of the miracle workers of Moscow.”

An elder of the province, one Cosma Minin, by trade a butcher, exhorted his neighbours to initiate the rising. His appeal was, “Orthodox! If we wish to save our country, do not fear to sacrifice our goods, to sell our{107} possessions, aye, even to pledge our wives and children if need be, and find a commander faithful to our religion and capable of leading us, then will victory be ours!”

An elder of the province, a man named Cosma Minin, who worked as a butcher, urged his neighbors to start the uprising. His plea was, “Orthodox! If we want to save our country, we must not be afraid to sacrifice our belongings, to sell our{107} possessions, yes, even to pledge our wives and children if necessary, and to find a leader who is loyal to our faith and capable of guiding us; then victory will be ours!”

The most suitable leader seemed to Minin to be the Prince Pojarski who had fought at Moscow and been wounded in the fray. He lived near by on his estate in Suzdal, and to him Minin went and offered the command of the volunteering peasants. Pojarski had shown no strong partisanship, had sought favours of no one, and was willing to fight for the general good. These provincials were undoubtedly in earnest; a three days’ fast was enjoined and made obligatory for all, even suckling babes. When the troops began to gather together, in the spring of 1612, the Poles and boyards in the Kremlin became desperate, and once more ordered Hermogen to command the leaders to disperse their forces. He refused; and in the days of dire necessity that followed he died, starved to death, and was buried within the Chudov Monastery.

The most suitable leader seemed to Minin to be Prince Pojarski, who had fought in Moscow and been wounded in the battle. He lived nearby on his estate in Suzdal, and Minin went to him to offer the command of the volunteer peasants. Pojarski had shown no strong favoritism, had not sought favors from anyone, and was willing to fight for the common good. The locals were definitely serious; a three-day fast was required for everyone, even nursing babies. When the troops began to gather in the spring of 1612, the Poles and nobles in the Kremlin became desperate and once again ordered Hermogen to command the leaders to disperse their forces. He refused; and during the following days of great need, he died of starvation and was buried at Chudov Monastery.

Prince Pojarski advanced very slowly towards Moscow: it appeared to be that he was waiting for an assembly general at Yaroslavl to elect a tsar, fearing without a sovereign the Russian provincial troops would not act together against so many enemies, native and foreign.

Prince Pojarski moved very slowly toward Moscow: it seemed that he was waiting for a general assembly in Yaroslavl to choose a tsar, worrying that without a sovereign, the Russian provincial troops wouldn’t unite against so many enemies, both local and foreign.

The garrison of the Kremlin, now commanded by Struss, was ill-provisioned. The Cossacks had retired to the south-east, Zarutski’s intention being to beat up reinforcements and re-attack with the followers of the “little Tsar” and secure the throne for Marina and her son. From the west, Khodkevich came with reinforcements and provisions to the relief of Struss. Pojarski arrived on the 18th August, but was separated from Troubetskoi. On the 21st August Khodkevich arrived on that side of the town guarded by Pojarski, whose troops therefore were the first to be attacked.{108}

The garrison at the Kremlin, now led by Struss, was poorly supplied. The Cossacks had retreated to the southeast, with Zarutski planning to gather reinforcements and strike back alongside the supporters of the "little Tsar" to secure the throne for Marina and her son. From the west, Khodkevich came with reinforcements and supplies to assist Struss. Pojarski arrived on August 18th but was separated from Troubetskoi. On August 21st, Khodkevich arrived on the side of the town secured by Pojarski, making Pojarski's troops the first to face the attack.{108}



DOM ROMANOF

DOM ROMANOF

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
DOM ROMANOF

On the 23rd the poles and Pojarski engaged in a fierce battle. Later Troubetskoi led his men also against the Poles, and with him went a part of the Cossack army. Khodkevich was driven back, but fought stubbornly. The next day he renewed his attempt to reach the Kremlin. Pojarski begged Troubetskoi to join forces, and Abraham Politzin persuaded the Cossacks to assist in defeating the Polish relief. Attacked on both sides simultaneously, Khodkevich retreated from the commanding position he had occupied; then the sudden appearance of Minin, with a few hundred peasants who{109} fought most savagely, turned the retreat into a rout, and the Polish treasure fell into the hands of the Cossacks. After this victory Pojarski and Troubetskoi joined forces and formed a provisional administration. The defenders of the Kremlin were in despair. They were short of food and ammunition, and the fact that 300 Poles had forced their way through the Russian ranks and joined the garrison was in no way advantageous. Soon they deserted the Kitai Gorod and took refuge in the Kremlin, holding it a month longer in hope that relief would reach them. The usual horrors of a long siege were manifest; not only did they devour everything that was eatable, but even gnawed at their own flesh and disinterred corpses. The boyards with their wives and families were sent out of the Kremlin and at last the Poles were compelled by hunger to surrender. On the 25th October the Muscovites made their entry into the Kremlin, and after much thanksgiving and praise, proceeded to the election of a new ruler. Sigismund with an army was coming to the relief of the Poles, but was unable to subdue the towns on his way. His ambassadors to the Muscovites were not even received by the victorious leaders. The Swedes were informed that no one of their race would be elected. Boyards intrigued for Galitzin, for Shooiski, and for others. The provincial army was determined that there should be a general assembly for the election of the Tsar, and the candidate most favoured by all classes seemed to be the young Michael Theodorovich Romanof.

On the 23rd, the Poles and Pojarski fought fiercely. Later, Troubetskoi led his troops against the Poles, joined by part of the Cossack army. Khodkevich was pushed back but fought hard. The next day, he tried again to reach the Kremlin. Pojarski urged Troubetskoi to team up, and Abraham Politzin convinced the Cossacks to help defeat the Polish reinforcements. Attacked from both sides at once, Khodkevich retreated from his strong position; then the unexpected arrival of Minin, along with a few hundred peasants who fought fiercely, turned the retreat into a rout, and the Polish treasure fell into the hands of the Cossacks. After this victory, Pojarski and Troubetskoi joined forces and set up a temporary administration. The defenders of the Kremlin were in deep trouble. They were running low on food and ammunition, and the fact that 300 Poles had pushed through the Russian lines and joined the garrison didn't help at all. Soon they abandoned the Kitai Gorod and sought refuge in the Kremlin, holding out for another month in the hope of relief. The usual horrors of a prolonged siege were evident; they not only consumed everything edible but even resorted to chewing on their own flesh and digging up corpses. The boyars, along with their wives and families, were sent out of the Kremlin, and eventually the Poles were forced to surrender due to hunger. On October 25th, the Muscovites entered the Kremlin, and after expressing their gratitude, they moved on to elect a new ruler. Sigismund, with an army, was coming to rescue the Poles but was unable to conquer the towns on his way. His ambassadors to the Muscovites weren't even received by the victorious leaders. The Swedes were informed that no one from their ranks would be elected. Boyars began to scheme for Galitzin, Shooiski, and others. The provincial army insisted on a general assembly to elect the Tsar, and the candidate most favored by everyone appeared to be the young Michael Theodorovich Romanof.

Old men remembered Anastasia Romanof, the first wife of Ivan the Terrible; younger ones had nothing but praise for Philaret, the present head of the family; all pitied the persecutions and hardships its members had suffered because of their relationship to the old royal line—if unanimity was necessary, no candidate{110} had so good a chance of securing it as had the young Romanof. On February 21st, 1613, the electors met around the Lobnœ Mesto in the Grand Square. The crowd shouted lustily for Mikhail Theodorovich Romanof, and to the general wish the electors gave the only possible expression. By some it is thought that the crown was offered to Pojarski who declined it; it is a fiction of latter day poets, as are Dmitriev’s lines:—

Old men remembered Anastasia Romanov, Ivan the Terrible's first wife; younger ones praised Philaret, the current head of the family. Everyone felt sorry for the hardships and persecutions the family had faced due to their connection to the old royal line—if consensus was needed, no candidate{110} had a better chance than the young Romanov. On February 21st, 1613, the electors gathered around the Lobnœ Mesto in the Grand Square. The crowd cheered loudly for Mikhail Theodorovich Romanov, and the electors expressed the collective wish of the people. Some believe the crown was offered to Pojarski, who turned it down; this is a tale created by later poets, just like Dmitriev’s lines:—

“What should his reward be?
Look! The one who made the invaders bleed
And Moscow and his country were liberated,
He—humble yet brave—he He removes the bright garland from his forehead,
And now he leans down to a young person,
He bends an old and heroic knee. "You are of royal blood," he said, "Your father is in our enemy's custody;
Wear this garland on your head. And bless—oh bless, our homeland!”

The new dynasty was founded, but quite early, if the tradition be true, was likely to have been extinguished. The Poles on learning the news endeavoured to put the young Romanof to death; an attempt to waylay him was frustrated by the heroism of the peasant Sussanin who, in the district of Kostroma, gave his “life for the Tsar” by leading astray in the forest the murderous band searching for him. Historians now say that he had no opportunity of so doing, but the fact remains that for some service rendered the Romanofs the Sussanins for many generations enjoyed rare privileges, and if the tale be not true, it has at least resulted in the Russians obtaining from the theme their finest opera, Glinka’s “Life for the Tsar.”

A new dynasty was established, but soon after, if the stories are to be believed, it was likely on the verge of being wiped out. When the Poles heard the news, they tried to kill the young Romanof; however, their attempt to ambush him was thwarted by the bravery of the peasant Sussanin, who in the Kostroma region sacrificed his life for the Tsar by misleading the murderous group searching for him in the forest. Historians now argue that he had no real chance to do that, but the truth is that the Sussanins were granted special privileges for many generations due to their service to the Romanofs. Even if the story isn’t entirely true, it at least led to Russians producing their greatest opera, Glinka's “Life for the Tsar.”

The “time of trouble” for Moscow was not over on the appointment of a Tsar, but the Muscovites entered upon a very glorious era with a Tsar of their own choosing.{111}

The “time of trouble” for Moscow didn’t end with the appointment of a Tsar, but the people of Moscow began a very glorious era with a Tsar they had chosen themselves.{111}

CHAPTER VII

Moscow of the Tsars

"Deep in the forest, the towers shine" Of Moscow's stunning Kremlin stand, Beautiful golden crown! "Unique white-walled town!" All Russian Poets.

WRITERS in the west still ignore the history of Russia previous to the reign of Peter the Great, attributing to that monarch reforms he did not initiate, and a policy of which he was not the author and followed but indifferently. The real makers of the Russian nation were the wise Romanofs who preceded the tyrant Peter. The history of the period may be briefly recounted, apart from the story of the construction of the great town—the Moscow of the Tsars. It was under the Tsar Michael that the relations of Russia with the west became general; under Alexis, who succeeded him in 1645, not only were the Poles driven back and other enemies conquered, but those great social and economic reforms were introduced, the working of which subsequently “westernised” Russia. Theodore during his short reign of five years successfully continued what his father had commenced. It was the claims made on behalf of his half-brother Peter that caused the hands of the clock to be set back. The story of Peter is well known, but its teaching has been often misinterpreted. To obtain the truth{112} let the Moscow of Theodore Alexeivich be compared with the Russia of Peter, or of any of his eighteenth century successors. The one exhibits the highest normal achievement of purely Muscovite ideals, and reveals the capacity of Russia to absorb what is nearest akin to its own spirit from among the more progressive motives of the west. Peter crudely grafted a coarse imitation of western forms upon a rarer stock; stagnation and corruption were the result. It was not until the nineteenth century, and the complete abandonment of Peter’s policy, that Russia once more advanced towards civilisation.

WRITERS in the West still overlook Russia's history before Peter the Great, wrongly crediting him for reforms he didn't start and a policy he barely followed. The true architects of the Russian nation were the wise Romanovs who came before the tyrant Peter. The history of this era can be briefly summarized, aside from the tale of building the grand city—the Moscow of the Tsars. Under Tsar Michael, Russia's relations with the West became more prominent; when Alexis took over in 1645, not only did he push back the Poles and defeat other enemies, but he also implemented significant social and economic reforms that eventually “westernized” Russia. Theodore continued his father's work during his brief five-year reign. However, the claims made for his half-brother Peter set progress back. The story of Peter is widely known, but its implications have often been misread. To uncover the truth{112}, one should compare the Moscow of Theodore Alexeivich with Russia under Peter or any of his successors from the eighteenth century. One represents the peak of purely Muscovite achievements, illustrating Russia's ability to embrace ideas that resonate with its own spirit from the more progressive elements of the West. Peter roughly imposed a crude imitation of Western structures onto a unique foundation, leading to stagnation and corruption. It wasn't until the nineteenth century, with a complete shift away from Peter’s policies, that Russia began to progress toward civilization again.

A country devastated by foreign invaders and surrounded with bitter and relentless enemies; a territory wasted by internecine warfare; the cinders of a capital; an empty treasury; a famished and pestilent ridden people—such was the gift of the electors in 1613 to Michael Theodorovich Romanof, a boy of sixteen, whose mother was in a convent and father in a foreign prison. No wonder that he hesitated, and that his friends urged prudence. The people were honest, and Michael exacted proofs of their earnestness. Slowly he advanced towards Moscow, urging his subjects to prepare suitable apartments for himself and his mother in the spoiled ruins of the Kremlin, to store afresh the warehouses with provisions and replenish the treasury. The boyards answered that they had already prepared the palace of Ivan for himself, and a suite in the convent of the Ascension for his mother, but it was impossible to restore the Golden Palace and terem of the Tsaritsa Irene, for there was no money, carpenters were lacking, the buildings roofless, and the stairs, corridors, doors, windows, and all furnishings were no longer in existence; it would be necessary to rebuild, and time pressed. Michael was not satisfied; the palaces must{113} be made fit for habitation, if materials were lacking those of other buildings must be used, and as for the apartments in the convent, “it will not suit my mother to occupy them.” Ultimately the Tsar’s behests were executed, and in May he made his state entry, more than two months after his election to the throne.

A country wrecked by foreign invaders and surrounded by bitter and relentless enemies; a land ravaged by internal conflict; the ruins of a capital; an empty treasury; a starving and disease-ridden population—this was the legacy the electors gave to Michael Theodorovich Romanof, a sixteen-year-old boy whose mother was in a convent and father was in a foreign prison. No surprise he hesitated, and his friends urged caution. The people were honest, and Michael insisted on proof of their sincerity. He slowly made his way to Moscow, asking his subjects to prepare suitable accommodations for him and his mother in the damaged remnants of the Kremlin, to stock the warehouses with food, and to replenish the treasury. The boyars replied that they had already arranged the palace of Ivan for him and a suite in the convent of the Ascension for his mother, but it was impossible to restore the Golden Palace and the chambers of Tsaritsa Irene due to a lack of money, missing carpenters, roofless buildings, and the complete absence of stairs, corridors, doors, windows, and furnishings; rebuilding would be necessary, and time was tight. Michael was not satisfied; the palaces must{113} be made habitable, and if materials were insufficient, they should be sourced from other buildings, and as for the accommodations in the convent, “it will not do for my mother to stay there.” Eventually, the Tsar's orders were carried out, and in May he made his official entry, more than two months after his election to the throne.

Both at home and abroad his position was regarded as precarious. Zarutski, who had with him Marina Mniszek, the widow of the false Dmitri, and her son, held Kazan and ruled the districts bordering the Volga. He was ultimately captured, and executed in Moscow. Marina and her son were also taken; according to native writers she “died in prison of chagrin”; according to foreigners in Russia at that time, she and her son were thrust beneath the ice on the river Oka. Sweeden continued the war, and would not relinquish her claim to the throne. It terminated after Gustavus Adolphus was repulsed at Pskov, and failed to take Narva. A Swedish officer states that “from their youth up, the Muscovites are inured to continuous labour and much fasting, and can make shift long with meal, salt and water only. They hold it to be a deadly and unpardonable sin to surrender a fortress, and prefer to die happily for their Tsar and country.” The Swedes contemplated a long siege, but by the good offices of the Dutch and English an armistice of three months was agreed to, and in 1617 a lasting peace concluded on terms disadvantageous to Russia. An army of Poles was marching upon Moscow, when it was re-inforced by Ronashevich-Salidachni at the head of 20,000 Cossacks; Michael repulsed their attack on Moscow, but, anxious to secure his father’s release, agreed to relinquish Smolensk, so a peace to endure fourteen years and six months was thereupon made. Immediately after his coronation the Tsar sent envoys to England, Germany and the Netherlands, seeking their{114} assistance in securing peace. The English promised a loan of £100,000 and paid 16,000 roubles only towards it; but King James prevented Scots taking service in Poland against Russia, and the Tsar obtained his munitions of war from the English factory at Archangel. In such fashion was a respite obtained, so that undivided attention might be given to establishing good order within the Tsar’s Empire. Surely no ruler started with greater disadvantages than did Michael. To the inexperience of youth must be added a lack of competent advisers. The old hereditary aristocracy had for the most part disappeared; those members who survived had taken sides with either the second impostor or the Poles, and in them he dared not trust. There remained only appointed military and civil officers, boyards, whose titles were not hereditary, secretaries, and gentlemen of the council. In Russia, where there was no general instruction and little learning, all was left to a governing caste, composed of men who, from their noble birth, had the entrée to the court and were conversant with all affairs of state; it was this “caste” Michael lacked. The men, able men, who were not accustomed to rule, did not seek responsible posts. Even Pojarski, the saviour of the country, said to Vasili Galitzin, “If we had found such a leader as you, Vasili Vasilievich, all the country would have at once flocked to you, and it would not have devolved upon me to direct so onerous a task.” The times of trouble had forced simple citizens to occupy positions of importance; such were the butcher Cosma Minin, Zarutski, Troubetskoi, Liapunov and Fedka Andronov. To none of the humble born leaders were the degenerate nobles prepared to grant precedence or even equality; whilst on the other hand, affairs of state could no longer be entrusted to those who had betrayed the country, or by past conduct,{115} proved themselves incapable. Squabbles for precedence at once recommenced.

Both at home and abroad, his position was seen as unstable. Zarutski, who had Marina Mniszek, the widow of the false Dmitri, and her son with him, controlled Kazan and ruled the areas along the Volga. He was eventually captured and executed in Moscow. Marina and her son were also captured; native writers claimed she “died in prison from grief,” while foreigners in Russia at the time said she and her son were thrown under the ice on the Oka River. Sweden continued the war, refusing to give up its claim to the throne. It ended after Gustavus Adolphus was driven back at Pskov and failed to take Narva. A Swedish officer noted that “from childhood, Muscovites are used to hard work and long fasting, and can manage for long periods on just meal, salt, and water. They see surrendering a fortress as a serious and unforgivable sin and would rather die happily for their Tsar and country.” The Swedes considered a long siege, but thanks to the efforts of the Dutch and English, a three-month ceasefire was arranged, and in 1617 a lasting peace was reached under terms unfavourable to Russia. An army of Poles was marching toward Moscow when it was reinforced by Ronashevich-Salidachni leading 20,000 Cossacks; Michael repelled their attack on Moscow but, eager to secure his father's release, agreed to give up Smolensk, resulting in a peace that lasted fourteen years and six months. Immediately after his coronation, the Tsar sent envoys to England, Germany, and the Netherlands, seeking their assistance in securing peace. The English promised a loan of £100,000 but only paid 16,000 roubles; however, King James kept Scots from serving in Poland against Russia, and the Tsar obtained his war supplies from the English factory in Archangel. This way, a breather was achieved, allowing focused efforts to establish order within the Tsar’s Empire. Surely no ruler faced greater challenges than Michael. On top of youthful inexperience, he lacked skilled advisers. The old hereditary aristocracy had mostly disappeared; those who remained had taken sides with either the second impostor or the Poles, and he couldn't trust them. Only appointed military and civil officials, boyars with non-hereditary titles, secretaries, and council members were left. In Russia, where there was no widespread education and little knowledge, all was left to a governing class made up of noble-born men who had access to the court and understood state affairs; it was this “class” that Michael lacked. Even competent individuals who were not used to ruling avoided taking on significant roles. Even Pojarski, the saviour of the country, remarked to Vasili Galitzin, “If we had found a leader like you, Vasili Vasilievich, the entire country would have rallied to you, and I wouldn’t have had to take on such a heavy responsibility.” The troubled times had forced ordinary citizens into important roles; notable examples included the butcher Cosma Minin, Zarutski, Troubetskoi, Liapunov, and Fedka Andronov. The decayed nobility was unwilling to grant precedence or even equality to any of these humble leaders; on the other hand, state affairs could no longer be entrusted to those who had betrayed the country or had proven incapable through their actions. Conflicts over precedence quickly resumed.

When Dmitri Mikhailovich Pojarksi, the great liberator, was created a boyard, one Gabriel Pushkin threw himself at the Tsar’s feet and pleaded that the thing might not be, for “his own family was in no way inferior to that of Pojarski,” who, as boyard, would be appointed a higher place than he himself occupied at court. These nobles could not, or would not, understand that services to the state should be considered. Birth alone was to count, for these nobles to remain side by side with a person of inferior birth was considered an ignominy to which death itself was preferable. On the occasion of the Tsar’s coronation, there were several disputes for priority of place, notwithstanding that the Tsar had ordered that during the ceremonies all ranks were to be discarded. Before the coronation, in the palace of the Golden Seal Prince Tretiakov, the secretary, nominated those who were to bear the regalia. “Prince Mstislavski will throw the golden coins upon the Tsar; the new boyard, Ivan Nikitich Romanof, will carry the crown of Monomachus; Prince Dmitri Troubetskoi, the sceptre; the new boyard, Prince Pojarski, the ‘globe!’ ” Troubetskoi took offence that he had to cede his place to a Romanof, albeit a relative of his sovereign. The Tsar answered, “It may be that your rank is higher than that of Ivan, but he is my uncle, and you must give place to him at a time when the order of rank is not to be observed.” This appeased Troubetskoi, but later, one Boris Likof, invited to the table of the Tsar, would not cede his place until the Tsar personally intervened. On the next occasion he failed to attend, although the Tsar twice sent for him. Each time he sent the same answer, “I am ready to yield my life on the scaffold, but allow a Romanof to take precedence{116} of a Likof I will not!” Sometimes these quarrels embarrassed the Tsar on occasions of state, as when, at the reception of the Persian envoys, his body-guard disappeared. One hid himself away so quickly that he could not be found; another feigned indisposition; another was dragged into the presence coupled with Prince Romodanovski; Cherchugov complained of Romodanovski, and Prince Pojarski also took offence, and upbraided Cherchugov for dishonouring his rank by his alliance with Romodanovski. The Tsar ordered Cherchugov to be beaten, and determined to avoid such annoyances in future by choosing his bodyguard from among the lesser nobles, who could not plead the privileges of their ancestors. When Telepnef and Larionof were appointed, one at once took offence and pointed out to the Tsar that he was a freeman of Moscow, whereas the other was but a secretary! Such were the earlier troubles of the boy-Tsar, who longed for the advice of his father in such matters of trifling importance; he, on his return to Moscow, ruled the court with commanding adroitness.

When Dmitri Mikhailovich Pojarksi, the great liberator, became a boyard, Gabriel Pushkin begged the Tsar not to let it happen because “his own family was just as good as Pojarski’s,” and that Pojarski, as a boyard, would have a higher position than him at court. These nobles couldn’t or wouldn’t grasp that serving the state should matter. For them, birth alone counted, and being next to someone of lower birth was considered a disgrace worse than death. At the Tsar’s coronation, there were several arguments over who would sit where, even though the Tsar had ordered that ranks were to be ignored during the ceremonies. Before the coronation, in the palace of the Golden Seal, Prince Tretiakov, the secretary, named who would carry the regalia. “Prince Mstislavski will scatter the golden coins upon the Tsar; the new boyard, Ivan Nikitich Romanof, will carry Monomachus’s crown; Prince Dmitri Troubetskoi, the scepter; and the new boyard, Prince Pojarski, the ‘globe!’” Troubetskoi was offended that he had to give way to a Romanof, even if he was related to the Tsar. The Tsar replied, “Your rank may be higher than Ivan’s, but he is my uncle, and you must give way to him when ranks aren’t being observed.” This calmed Troubetskoi, but later, Boris Likof, invited to dine with the Tsar, refused to give up his seat until the Tsar intervened personally. The next time he didn’t show up, even though the Tsar sent for him twice. Each time he replied, “I’m ready to lose my life on the scaffold, but I will not let a Romanof take precedence over a Likof!” Sometimes these disputes embarrassed the Tsar during state occasions, like when, during the reception of the Persian envoys, his bodyguard vanished. One hid so quickly he couldn’t be found; another pretended to be sick; another was dragged in alongside Prince Romodanovski; Cherchugov complained about Romodanovski, and Prince Pojarski was also offended and scolded Cherchugov for dishonoring his rank with his connection to Romodanovski. The Tsar ordered Cherchugov to be punished and decided to avoid such annoyances in the future by choosing his bodyguard from among the lower nobility, who couldn’t claim their ancestors' privileges. When Telepnef and Larionof were appointed, one was immediately offended, saying to the Tsar that he was a freeman of Moscow, while the other was just a secretary! Such were the early troubles of the boy Tsar, who wished he could consult his father on these trivial matters; upon his return to Moscow, he managed the court with great skill.

This matter of precedence came to the front again in the next reign, when Alexis settled it once and for all. Hereditary rank was based upon the achievements of one’s ancestors, which, with the titles and honours of the successful, were enumerated in the manuscript-books treasured by each family. In practice no noble would accept an office inferior to that occupied by his illustrious forefathers. Often incapable as military leaders, this meant ruin to the state. Alexis, after sufficient experience of the disasters the system entailed, proposed the abolition of hereditary rank, and petitioned the Church to pronounce upon his finding that “precedence was an institution invented by the devil, for the purpose of destroying Christian love and of increasing the hatred of brother for brother.” In due course the Patriarch declared that in the opinion of the Church,{117} “precedence was a system opposed to God, and intended to cause confusion and hatred.” Thereupon the nobles were commanded to deliver up their “golden books of honour and great deeds,” and the records were burned, so that henceforth precedence depended upon court and military rank alone.

This issue of precedence came to the forefront again in the next reign, when Alexis resolved it once and for all. Hereditary rank was based on the achievements of one’s ancestors, which, along with the titles and honors of the successful, were listed in the manuscript-books treasured by each family. In practice, no noble would accept a position lower than that held by his distinguished forefathers. This often made them ineffective as military leaders, leading to the state's downfall. After witnessing enough disasters caused by this system, Alexis proposed abolishing hereditary rank and asked the Church to declare that “precedence was an institution created by the devil to destroy Christian love and increase the hatred of brother for brother.” Eventually, the Patriarch stated that, according to the Church,{117} “precedence was a system against God, intended to create confusion and hatred.” The nobles were then ordered to surrender their “golden books of honor and great deeds,” and the records were burned, so that from then on precedence relied solely on court and military rank.



BELVEDERE OF THE TEREM

BELVEDERE OF THE TEREM

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
BELVEDERE OF THE TEREM

{118}

{118}

When Michael ascended the throne the two most powerful factions of the nobility were those headed respectively by the Miloslavksis and the Soltikovs, between whom no love was lost. To obtain greater influence and power they intrigued for the marriage of the Tsar. Michael’s choice was one Marie Kholopov, to whom he was betrothed. Before marriage she was drugged at the instigation of the Soltikovs, and her illness represented as incurable. She, and all her relatives, were then banished to Siberia for “attempting to deceive the Tsar,” and remained in exile seven years, when the Patriarch discovered the intrigue. This resulted in the fall of the Soltikovs from power, and the return of the Khlopovs to Nijni-Novgorod. Michael next chose Marie Dolgoruki, but she died a few months after marriage, and twelve months later, Michael was urged to marry again. The earlier method of selecting a bride was resorted to upon this occasion, and the Tsar’s intention made known throughout the empire. According to S. W. Glinka what took place is as follows:—

When Michael became Tsar, the two most powerful groups in the nobility were led by the Miloslavskis and the Soltikovs, and there was no love lost between them. To gain more influence and power, they schemed for the Tsar's marriage. Michael chose Marie Kholopov, to whom he was engaged. Before the wedding, the Soltikovs had her drugged, and her illness was declared incurable. She and her family were then exiled to Siberia for “trying to deceive the Tsar,” and they remained in exile for seven years until the Patriarch uncovered the plot. This led to the downfall of the Soltikovs and the return of the Kholopovs to Nizhny Novgorod. Michael then selected Marie Dolgoruki, but she died a few months after their marriage, and a year later, Michael was advised to marry again. The same method of choosing a bride was used in this case, and the Tsar's intentions were announced throughout the empire. According to S. W. Glinka, what happened next is as follows:—

“On the morrow the Tsar was to make known publicly whom he had chosen as his bride. That evening the carriages of the palace brought to his residence the marriageable daughters of all the noble and illustrious families who had gathered in Moscow for this election. These young ladies of high degree all wore the vestments provided by the Tsar, and were accompanied by their mothers, or a near relative. In turn they were presented to the Tsar’s mother, Martha Ivanovna, and the mothers and relatives then returned to their homes; the young ladies, attended by their maids remained, and donned the nightdresses they had brought with them. The chambers to which they were appointed contained two rows of beds. Towards midnight, the Tsar, accompanied by his mother, went in to examine the candidates. The scrutiny finished, he returned to his own apartments, and his mother anxiously inquired upon whom his choice had fallen. To her surprise, Michael indicated the maid of one of the ladies. Martha Ivanovna could not believe her ears. She earnestly begged her{119} son to reflect, before offending the pride and dignity of the princes, nobles and boyards by such a choice. Then she asked a definite answer, for, before the sun rose, it would have to be declared officially, before the Patriarch and the clergy assembled in the cathedral of the Assumption for that purpose. Michael answered, ‘I have obeyed you and the will of God in accepting the crown. Never have I dared to act contrary to your wishes. You have always been my counsellor and my support: I will do as you wish but ... but ... never ... never ... will I choose another; nor love anyone else. It is my fate to be unhappy! I lost my wife a few months after my marriage—now, to-day, I am deprived of the bride of my choice. She is of humble birth; perhaps she is poor; may be, unhappy. But I also have suffered—I too have been persecuted!’ and the Tsar burst into tears. Martha Ivanovna could not resist this appeal. ‘My son, my son!’ she cried, ‘have I not suffered as well? My husband languishing in exile; the murderous swords of cruel enemies directed towards you! Heaven has protected you, has chosen you to rule this realm. May the will of God be done! I will not thwart your desire. Take for wife the one whom you have chosen.’

“Tomorrow, the Tsar will publicly announce his choice for a bride. That evening, the palace carriages brought to his residence the eligible daughters from all the noble and prominent families gathered in Moscow for this event. These young ladies of high status wore the outfits provided by the Tsar and were accompanied by their mothers or a close relative. They were introduced to the Tsar’s mother, Martha Ivanovna, who then returned home with the mothers and relatives; the young ladies, along with their maids, stayed behind and changed into the nightgowns they had brought. The chambers assigned to them contained two rows of beds. Around midnight, the Tsar, accompanied by his mother, entered to assess the candidates. After the evaluation, he returned to his own quarters, and his mother anxiously asked whom he had chosen. To her surprise, Michael pointed to the maid of one of the ladies. Martha Ivanovna could hardly believe it. She earnestly urged her son to reconsider before offending the pride and dignity of the princes, nobles, and boyars with such a choice. She then sought a definitive answer since it had to be officially declared before dawn, in front of the Patriarch and clergy gathered in the cathedral of the Assumption for that purpose. Michael replied, ‘I have followed your wishes and the will of God in accepting the crown. I have never dared to act against your wishes. You have always been my advisor and my support: I will do as you wish but ... but ... never ... never ... will I choose anyone else; nor love anyone else. It is my fate to be unhappy! I lost my wife a few months after our marriage—now, today, I am deprived of the bride of my choice. She is of humble origins; perhaps she is poor; maybe she is unhappy. But I too have suffered—I too have been persecuted!’ and the Tsar broke down in tears. Martha Ivanovna couldn't resist his plea. ‘My son, my son!’ she exclaimed, ‘have I not suffered as well? My husband is languishing in exile; the murderous swords of cruel enemies are aimed at you! Heaven has protected you, has chosen you to rule this land. May the will of God be done! I will not stand in the way of your desire. Take as your wife the one whom you have chosen.’”

“Thereupon Martha Ivanovna at once sought out what she could respecting the young girl her son had noticed. She was informed that her name was Eudoxia, the daughter of Lucian Stephanovich Striechnef, a poor gentleman of Mojaisk, and herself a distant relative of the lady in whose service she was. Just as her mistress was haughty, proud and overbearing, so was the maid docile and modest. Michael himself had had to bear oppression. Ill-treatment he hated. He felt for Eudoxia, and chose her because she was ill-used.

“Thereupon, Martha Ivanovna quickly looked into the young girl her son had noticed. She found out that her name was Eudoxia, the daughter of Lucian Stephanovich Striechnef, a poor gentleman from Mojaisk, and she was a distant relative of the woman she worked for. Just as her mistress was arrogant, proud, and demanding, the maid was obedient and humble. Michael had also experienced oppression. He despised mistreatment. He sympathized with Eudoxia and chose her because she was poorly treated."

“Then Eudoxia was led into the Tsar’s apartments, was richly clothed, and presented with jewels. Martha Ivanovna called her daughter, and the Tsar himself called God to witness that she was his bride. The Patriarch, Philaret, gave his blessing to his son, both as father and as head of the church. The clergy prayed that the pride of the wicked might be humbled and the virtuous protected. The citizens were pleased and shouted ‘Long live Michael and Eudoxia!’ and there was general rejoicing. Then the daughters of the princes, and nobles, and boyards, were presented to Eudoxia and made their homage. In her confusion and modesty she would not allow them to kiss her hand, but cordially embraced each maid. When it came to the turn of her own relation, the frightened girl threw herself at the feet of Eudoxia and begged for mercy and pardon. Eudoxia bent down and said, ‘You also forgive{120} me! it in any way I have offended.’ Forthwith the lovers were formally betrothed, and, as all the world knows, Michael married Eudoxia, and they lived happy ever afterwards.”

“Then Eudoxia was brought into the Tsar’s quarters, dressed in luxurious clothes, and given jewels. Martha Ivanovna called her daughter, and the Tsar himself swore to God that she was his bride. The Patriarch, Philaret, gave his blessing to his son, both as a father and as the head of the church. The clergy prayed that the pride of the wicked would be humbled and the virtuous protected. The citizens were happy and shouted ‘Long live Michael and Eudoxia!’ and there was widespread celebration. Then the daughters of the princes, nobles, and boyars were introduced to Eudoxia and showed their respect. In her confusion and modesty, she wouldn’t allow them to kiss her hand, but warmly embraced each maid. When it was her relation's turn, the frightened girl threw herself at Eudoxia’s feet and begged for mercy and forgiveness. Eudoxia bent down and said, ‘You also forgive{120} me! if in any way I have offended.’ Immediately, the lovers were officially betrothed, and, as everyone knows, Michael married Eudoxia, and they lived happily ever after.”

Another story, quite as like a fairy tale as this is, concerns itself with Eudoxia’s father, whom the ambassadors of the Tsar found at the plough. Lucian was not surprised at his daughter’s good fortune; he saw in it only the hand of Providence. When he forsook his thatched cottage for a suite in the palace, he carried away with him his old clothes and other things, which he hung on the wall of his new apartment, and each morning uncovered them that he might not forget his origin, and be mindful of the workers and the poor. He lived for many years within the Kremlin, saw Eudoxia’s son, Alexis, upon the throne, and found himself an honoured member of his own grandson’s household, and surrounded by his daughter’s numerous royal grandchildren.

Another story, just as much like a fairy tale as this one, is about Eudoxia’s father, whom the Tsar's ambassadors found at work in the fields. Lucian wasn’t surprised by his daughter’s good fortune; he saw it as just the hand of Providence. When he left his thatched cottage for a suite in the palace, he took his old clothes and other belongings with him, hanging them on the walls of his new apartment. Each morning, he uncovered them so he wouldn’t forget where he came from and to remember the workers and the poor. He lived for many years within the Kremlin, witnessed Eudoxia’s son, Alexis, on the throne, and became a respected member of his grandson’s household, surrounded by numerous royal grandchildren from his daughter.

The next occasion that offered for the intrigues of those who sought court influence through a matrimonial alliance was in 1647 when Alexis, the son of Michael and Eudoxia, resolved to marry. Of the two hundred noble maids assembled for his selection he chose Euphemia Vsevolojski, who had enemies. These arranged their plans with her maids-of-honour. When she was attired in the royal robes, her attendants twisted her hair so tightly that she swooned in the Tsar’s presence, and the Court physician declared her to be epileptic. She and her family were thereupon banished to far away Tiumen in Siberia. The next year Alexis married Marie Ilyinichna Miloslavski, who bore him thirteen children, and died in childbed in 1669. In his next marriage Alexis observed the letter of the customary proceeding but disregarded its spirit. At that time his chief counsellor was Artemon Sergievich Matviev, a man who had commanded a foreign regiment{121} in the wars and married Mary Hamilton, one of a Scotch family resident in Moscow. Matviev had no daughter, but living with the family was Natalia Naryshkin, the daughter of Cyril Naryshkin, whose brother Theodore had married a Hamilton, the niece of Matviev’s wife. Matviev made his house as attractive as he could to the Tsar, giving western entertainments, even to the performance of comedies and tragedies in his private theatre. Western manners prevailed among them; his wife dressed in what were called “German” clothes, and both she and her ward appeared at table although strangers might be present. When the Tsar visited Matviev, Natalia, a tall, shapely brunette, herself served him with vodka and zakuska. One day the Tsar informed Matviev that he would find a husband for this charming ward; and, when the nobles were ordered to assemble their daughters, Natalia also received a command to attend at the palace. It was all prearranged, but to allay suspicion a second assembly was convened, and a final one after an interval of three weeks. When it became known that Natalia had been chosen, there was loud outcry, and anonymous letters reached the Tsar. These accused Matviev of sorcery and other dark crimes, and alleged misdemeanour on the part of Natalia. There was the usual investigation; the customary torture; and postponement of the marriage for nine months. On January the 22nd 1671 the ceremony was performed with great pomp, and Matviev that day appointed a member of the State Council as recompense “for the sufferings he had undergone in connection with the affair.” Sixteen months later—May 30th 1672—Peter the Great was born.

The next opportunity for those looking to gain influence at court through marriage came in 1647 when Alexis, the son of Michael and Eudoxia, decided to marry. Out of the two hundred noble maidens gathered for him to choose from, he selected Euphemia Vsevolojski, who had enemies. They conspired with her maids of honor. When she was dressed in the royal robes, her attendants styled her hair so tightly that she fainted in front of the Tsar, and the court doctor declared her epileptic. As a result, she and her family were banished to distant Tiumen in Siberia. The following year, Alexis married Marie Ilyinichna Miloslavski, who gave him thirteen children and died in childbirth in 1669. In his next marriage, Alexis followed the formalities but ignored the underlying customs. At that time, his main advisor was Artemon Sergievich Matviev, a man who had led a foreign regiment in battle and married Mary Hamilton, from a Scottish family living in Moscow. Matviev had no daughter, but living with the family was Natalia Naryshkin, the daughter of Cyril Naryshkin, whose brother Theodore had married Hamilton’s niece, Matviev’s wife. Matviev made his home as appealing as possible to the Tsar, hosting Western-style entertainment, even staging comedies and tragedies in his private theater. Western customs were embraced; his wife wore what were called “German” clothes, and both she and Natalia joined the dining table even when strangers were present. When the Tsar visited, Natalia—a tall, attractive brunette—served him vodka and zakuska. One day, the Tsar informed Matviev that he would find a husband for this lovely ward. When the nobles were summoned to bring their daughters, Natalia was also instructed to attend the palace. It was all prearranged, but to reduce suspicion, a second gathering was held, followed by a final one after three weeks. When it became known that Natalia had been selected, there was an uproar, and anonymous letters reached the Tsar. These accused Matviev of witchcraft and other sinister acts, claiming Natalia had also acted improperly. An investigation ensued, complete with the usual torture, and the wedding was postponed for nine months. On January 22, 1671, the ceremony took place with great grandeur, and that day Matviev appointed a member of the State Council as compensation “for the sufferings he had endured in connection with the affair.” Sixteen months later—on May 30, 1672—Peter the Great was born.

Natalia Naryshkin was of Tartar descent, but her training was western, and as tsaritsa she was able to free some of the “twenty-seven locks” with which the “terem” was guarded. With the accession of{122}

Natalia Naryshkin came from Tartar roots, but she was educated in the West. As tsaritsa, she was able to unlock some of the “twenty-seven locks” that secured the “terem.” With the accession of{122}



KRUTITSKI VOROT

KRUTITSKI VOROT

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Krutitskiy Gate

the Romanofs there was a strong reaction from the licence of the days of the impostors, a reaction which the all powerful Philaret as patriarch did his utmost to foster. Natalia was required to conform to the rules made on behalf of former tsaritsas, but she succeeded in going openly to church with her husband,{123} saw plays through a latticed window, and the state reception of foreign ambassadors from a screened loge. In so short a time she accomplished much, but in 1676 her husband died, and she retired with her children to a palace near the foreign suburb of Moscow, and there the young prince, Peter, was raised amid rough surroundings, for the Matvievs were exiled and Natalia barely tolerated so near the Kremlin.

the Romanovs faced a strong backlash against the freedom of the era, which the powerful Patriarch Philaret worked hard to nurture. Natalia had to follow the rules set for previous empresses, but she managed to go to church openly with her husband,{123} watch plays through a latticed window, and attend the state receptions for foreign ambassadors from a secluded loge. In a short time, she achieved a lot, but in 1676 her husband passed away, and she moved with her children to a palace near the foreign suburb of Moscow. There, the young prince, Peter, grew up in rough surroundings, as the Matvievs were exiled and Natalia was only barely tolerated so close to the Kremlin.

Theodore II. was most scholarly of the early Tsars; he was educated by Polish teachers, and, during his short reign the first public schools in Moscow were founded under his patronage. He separated the military from the civil departments; in military matters abolished precedence, and so altered legal procedure as to bring justice within reach of the people. He built the episcopal Palace of the Monastery of St Cyril at the Krutitski Vorot, and was particularly active in adding to the beautiful churches of Moscow. To him is due that gem of Muscovite ecclesiastical architecture, the church of the Nativity and Flight, in the Mala Dmitrovka (v. page 181). With an eye for the picturesque, he laid out a pleasure-garden in the Kremlin and another on the river front by making a vaulted embankment. Further away the slopes towards the river were planted with ornamental trees; medicinal herbs were largely cultivated, and the first hot-houses appeared in Moscow. Private dwellings in the Kremlin were demolished to afford accomodation for public buildings, and particularly for homes for the aged and sick, for the Tsar resembled his father and grandfather in his care of those who had served him, and in well-doing he was tireless. He disliked pomp and ceremony, restricted the ordinary citizens of noble birth to two horses in their carriages, and reduced the number used by others on State occasions; from his ascent to the throne the court pageantry declined.{124}

Theodore II was the most scholarly of the early Tsars; he was educated by Polish teachers, and during his short reign, the first public schools in Moscow were established under his support. He separated the military from the civil sectors; in military matters, he abolished rank precedence and changed legal procedures to make justice accessible to the public. He built the episcopal Palace of the Monastery of St. Cyril at the Krutitski Vorot and was especially active in enhancing the beautiful churches of Moscow. He is credited with the stunning church of the Nativity and Flight in Mala Dmitrovka (v. page 181). With an eye for beauty, he created a pleasure garden in the Kremlin and another by the riverside with a vaulted embankment. Further away, the slopes toward the river were planted with ornamental trees; medicinal herbs were widely cultivated, and the first greenhouses appeared in Moscow. Private homes in the Kremlin were demolished to make space for public buildings, especially for homes for the elderly and sick, as the Tsar, like his father and grandfather, cared for those who had served him and was tireless in his good deeds. He disliked pomp and ceremony, limited ordinary noble citizens to two horses in their carriages, and reduced the number used by others for state events; since he ascended the throne, court pageantry declined.{124}

In the seventeenth century almost the whole of the Kremlin was occupied with buildings appertaining either to the state or the superior clergy. The churches are still sufficiently in evidence, but such of the old dwellings as remain have to be approached through more recent buildings. The Granovitaia (Facetted) Palace of Ivan III. (1491) presents a façade to the Sobornia Ploshchad, but this in no way reveals its antiquity. The constant renewal of the exterior which is indispensable to preservation in the destructive climate of Moscow, to some extent accounts for this; and the “terem,” the outside of which may be viewed from the quadrangle on which stands the old church “Spass na Boru,” is equally disappointing in this particular. Even to see the interiors the visitors must pass through the Great Palace, with which these old dwellings are now incorporated. The site occupied by the eastern end of the Great Palace is that upon which, from the founding of Moscow, the residences of its rulers have been again and again erected, but they faced the east, not south. The wooden palaces of the early Romanofs have entirely disappeared; Peter the Great removed from Moscow whatever would serve to enrich his new capital, and allowed the old royal residences to decay. It is during the present century only that they have been restored to their earlier grandeur. The palace built by the Empress Elizabeth, and occupied by Napoleon, was destroyed by the fire of 1812.

In the seventeenth century, nearly the entire Kremlin was filled with buildings related to either the state or the high clergy. The churches are still quite prominent, but any old residences that remain must be accessed through newer constructions. The Granovitaia (Facetted) Palace of Ivan III. (1491) faces Sobornia Ploshchad, but this does not reveal its age. The ongoing maintenance required to preserve it in Moscow's harsh climate partly explains this; and the "terem," which can be seen from the courtyard where the old church “Spass na Boru” stands, is also underwhelming in this respect. To see the interiors, visitors must walk through the Great Palace, which now includes these old residences. The eastern end of the Great Palace is located on the site where the homes of Moscow's rulers have been built repeatedly since the city was founded, but they faced east, not south. The wooden palaces of the early Romanovs have completely vanished; Peter the Great removed everything from Moscow that could enrich his new capital, allowing the old royal homes to fall into disrepair. It is only in the current century that they have been returned to their former glory. The palace built by Empress Elizabeth, which Napoleon occupied, was destroyed in the fire of 1812.

The visitor will first procure a billet d’admission at the Chamberlain’s office in Commandant Street (see plan), turn to the left on leaving the building, and walking towards the south, at the end of the street pass under the Winter Garden which connects the Treasury with the Great Palace. He will then be

The visitor will first get an admission ticket at the Chamberlain’s office on Commandant Street (see plan), turn left after exiting the building, and walk south. At the end of the street, he will pass under the Winter Garden that connects the Treasury with the Great Palace. He will then be



KREMLIN

1. Nicholas Gate
2. Redeemer Gate
3. Secret Gate
4. Borovitski Gate
5. Trinity Gate
6. Belfry
7. Cathedral of the Assumption
8. " " Archangels
9. "" Annunciation
10. Granovitaya Palace
11. Grand Palace
12. Terem
13. St Saviours in the Wood
14. Ch. of the Holy Vestments
15. Ch. of St Saviour behind the Golden Gates 
16. Ch. of the Nativity of the Virgin
17. Ch. of St Lazarus
18. Ch. of the Resurrection
19. Ch. of St Catherine the Martyr
20. Ch. of the Apostles
21. The Synod
22. Ch. of John the Baptist
23. Ch. of the Annunciation
24. Ch. of Constantine and Helen
25. Chuduv Monastery
26. Convent of Ascension
27. Pleasure Palace
28. Treasury
29. Tsarevich’s Appartments
30. Place of the Boyards
31. Grand Entrance
32. Ch. of St Alexis
33. Cathedral Square
34. Tsar’s Square
35. Monument to Alexander II.
36. Alarm Bell
37. Tsarina’s Tower
38. Tower of Constantine and Helen
39. Oubliette
40. Water Tower
41. Ch. of St Michael
42. Ch. of Acsension
43. Ch. of the Miracles
44. Hall of Catherine II.
45. Ch. of St Catherine
46. Ch. of St Peter and Paul
47. Ch. of St Philip
48. Senate Square
49. State Court-yard
50. Arsenal Tower

{125}

{125}

in the State Courtyard; on the left a gateway communicates with the quadrangle in which is the old church “Spass na Boru;” the last door on the right is the public entrance to the Treasury. Traversing the courtyard and turning to the left he will reach the grand entrance of the Great Palace and enter there. Passing from the vestibule by the escalier d’honneur the Hall of St George will be reached. It contains sixteen allegorical groups commemorative of the conquests by Russia of Perm, Kazan, Siberia, Kamchatka, Tartary, the Caucasus, etc. The military order of St George was founded by the Empress Catherine II. in 1769, but the effigy of St George, on his white horse, slaying the Dragon, as already mentioned is of Norse origin and was the device used by Yaroslaf the Great in the eleventh century and definitely adopted as the arms of the principality of Moscow by Dmitri after his victory over the Tartars at Kulikova (1380); it figured on the coins, and April 23 (old style) this Saint’s day, is observed throughout Russia. The names inscribed on the wall are those of the individuals admitted to the order, and of the regiments likewise decorated; in short, this Hall of St George Pobiedonosets (the Conqueror) is the Russian Valhalla. The adjoining Hall of Alexander Nevski, is remarkable apart from its richness and beauty, for the six pictures by Müller illustrating the chief events in the life of the Saint: beyond is the Throne room—Griffins, the device of the Romanofs, conspicuous in the decorations—and next the Hall of St Catherine, the state room of the Tsaritsa. The older palaces will be reached directly from the Hall of St Vladimir, or, after passing through the personal apartments of the Tsar, by the Holy Corridor, so named because there the clergy attend to conduct the Tsar to state services in the Cathedrals. It dates from the reign of Ivan III. (15th cent.) and{126} is, in short, a continuation of that terrace which fronts the eastern side of the Great Palace, and has its counterpart in the principal approach to every old-fashioned Russian house. The Krasnœ Kriltso—how hateful the vulgar, and absolutely incorrect, translation, “Red Steps!”—is simply the state entrance to the reception rooms, in contradistinction to the Postyelnœ Kriltso (Back stairs) or private entrance, communicating with the personal apartments of the sovereign, or boyard. To comprehend the importance of the Terem rightly, it must be remembered that actually the state apartments of the sovereign were where the Great Palace now is, and that this corridor served both as a rendezvous for courtiers and the Tsar’s way of communication from his private to his official suites. Another staircase, to which the boyards had not access, led directly from the inner court, near the Postyelnœ Kriltso, to the Terem. The state suite in the seventeenth century comprised: an audience chamber (the middle Golden Palace); a smaller Golden Palace, once the audience chamber of the Tsaritsa; the Stolovia Izba, or saloon for fêtes; the Krestavia, for the celebration of solemn ceremonies by the clergy and household; the Otvietna Palace, where illustrious visitors were entertained; and the Higher Golden Palace, a council chamber for the consideration of grave questions of state. For most of these purposes the buildings still in existence have served temporarily at different periods.

in the State Courtyard; on the left, a gateway leads to the quadrangle where the old church “Spass na Boru” stands; the last door on the right is the public entrance to the Treasury. By crossing the courtyard and turning left, you'll reach the grand entrance of the Great Palace and enter there. Moving from the vestibule via the escalier d’honneur, you'll arrive at the Hall of St George. This hall has sixteen allegorical groups celebrating Russia’s conquests of Perm, Kazan, Siberia, Kamchatka, Tartary, the Caucasus, and more. The military order of St George was established by Empress Catherine II in 1769, but the figure of St George on his white horse slaying the Dragon, as mentioned earlier, is of Norse origin and was the emblem used by Yaroslaf the Great in the eleventh century, later adopted by Dmitri as the arms of the principality of Moscow after his victory over the Tartars at Kulikova (1380); it appeared on coins, and April 23 (old style), the feast day of this saint, is celebrated throughout Russia. The names inscribed on the wall are those of individuals admitted to the order and the regiments similarly honored; in short, this Hall of St George Pobiedonosets (the Conqueror) is the Russian Valhalla. The adjacent Hall of Alexander Nevski is notable not just for its richness and beauty but also for the six paintings by Müller illustrating key moments in the life of the Saint: beyond it is the Throne Room—Griffins, the emblem of the Romanovs, prominently featured in the decorations—and next is the Hall of St Catherine, the state room of the Tsaritsa. The older palaces can be reached directly from the Hall of St Vladimir or, after passing through the Tsar’s private apartments, via the Holy Corridor, so named because that’s where the clergy assist in conducting the Tsar to state services in the Cathedrals. This corridor dates back to the reign of Ivan III (15th century) and{126} is essentially a continuation of the terrace that faces the eastern side of the Great Palace, resembling the main approach to every traditional Russian house. The Krasnœ Kriltso—how dreadful the common and completely wrong translation, “Red Steps!”—is simply the state entrance to the reception rooms, contrasting with the Postyelnœ Kriltso (Back stairs) or private entrance, which connects to the Tsar’s or boyard's personal apartments. To fully understand the significance of the Terem, one must remember that the state apartments of the sovereign were actually located where the Great Palace stands today, and this corridor served as both a meeting place for courtiers and the Tsar’s passage from his private to his official suites. Another staircase, which the boyards could not access, led directly from the inner court near the Postyelnœ Kriltso to the Terem. The state suite in the seventeenth century included: an audience chamber (the middle Golden Palace); a smaller Golden Palace, once the audience chamber of the Tsaritsa; the Stolovia Izba, or hall for festivities; the Krestavia, used for solemn ceremonies by the clergy and household; the Otvietna Palace, which housed illustrious guests; and the Higher Golden Palace, a council chamber for serious state matters. Many of these spaces still exist and have been used for various purposes over different periods.



KRASNŒ KRILTSO

KRASNŒ KRILTSO

{127}

{127}

Descending seven steps from this corridor, the Palace of the Tsaritsa Irene, or lesser Golden Palace, is entered. Sneguirev is of opinion that this was originally the apartment of the Archbishop. The Slavonic inscription over the portal is merely to the effect that the decorations were made by order of Tsar Alexis Mikhailovich, and restored on the coronation of the Emperor Paul. It was here that in 1653 the Tsaritsa Marie Ilyinichna received the Tsaritsa of Georgia, and later the Tsaritsa Natalia Kyrilevna received the homage of the Princes of Kasimof and Siberia. On the vaulted roof are representations of Olga’s journey to Constantinople, Helena obtaining the true cross, the Council convened by the Emperor Theophilus the Iconoclast, and portraits of the Tsaritsas, Irene, Theodora, Sophia, and Olga. A vaulted corridor leads to an entrance from the square behind the Uspenski Sobor. It is called the “Passage of the Patriarchs” from the seven portraits of the Russian Patriarchs which adorn the walls.

Descending seven steps from this corridor, you enter the Palace of Tsaritsa Irene, also known as the lesser Golden Palace. Sneguirev believes that this was originally the Archbishop's apartment. The Slavonic inscription above the entrance simply states that the decorations were commissioned by Tsar Alexis Mikhailovich and were restored during the coronation of Emperor Paul. It was here in 1653 that Tsaritsa Marie Ilyinichna hosted the Tsaritsa of Georgia, and later Tsaritsa Natalia Kyrilevna received the tribute from the Princes of Kasimof and Siberia. The vaulted ceiling features depictions of Olga’s journey to Constantinople, Helena obtaining the true cross, the Council that was called by Emperor Theophilus the Iconoclast, and portraits of the Tsaritsas Irene, Theodora, Sophia, and Olga. A vaulted corridor leads to an entrance from the square behind Uspenski Sobor, known as the “Passage of the Patriarchs,” adorned with seven portraits of the Russian Patriarchs on the walls.

Almost upon a level with the Holy Corridor is the entrance to the Old Church of the Nativity of the Virgin, immediately below which is the Chapel of the Resurrection of St Lazarus (see page 45), the oldest existing building in Moscow. It is only an obscure crypt, but in one of the round pillars, facing the ikonastas is a niche which probably served as the loge of the reigning prince. The entrance with an old inscription was but recently discovered. The Church of the Nativity of the Virgin, dates from 1393, when the Tsaritsa Eudoxia, wife of Dmitri Donskoi, erected the first structure on the side of the older Church of St Lazarus. It was destroyed by lightning in 1414, burned in 1473, fell in 1480, and in 1514 was rebuilt by Vasili Ivanovich, and probably again reconstructed early in the seventeenth century. It then became one of the churches of the palace, and has remained the{128} particular church of the Tsaritsas. The old stoves are of an ancient Russian model; according to tradition the Tsaritisas in bygone days were placed upon one of these stoves during their confinements. The ikonostas was injured in 1812, but has been restored and some of the ikons are richly decorated with rubies and other gems of great value.

Almost at the same level as the Holy Corridor is the entrance to the Old Church of the Nativity of the Virgin, directly below which is the Chapel of the Resurrection of St. Lazarus (see page 45), the oldest standing building in Moscow. It's just a small crypt, but in one of the round pillars facing the ikonostas, there's a niche that likely served as the loge for the reigning prince. The entrance, with an old inscription, was recently discovered. The Church of the Nativity of the Virgin was established in 1393 when Tsaritsa Eudoxia, wife of Dmitri Donskoi, constructed the first structure next to the older Church of St. Lazarus. It was struck by lightning in 1414, burned down in 1473, collapsed in 1480, and in 1514 was rebuilt by Vasili Ivanovich, and probably reconstructed again early in the seventeenth century. It then became one of the palace churches and has remained the{128} favored church of the Tsaritsas. The old stoves are of an ancient Russian design; according to tradition, the Tsaritsas in the past were placed on one of these stoves during their confinements. The ikonostas was damaged in 1812, but it has been restored, and some of the ikons are richly adorned with rubies and other valuable gems.

Above the lesser Golden Palace is a chapel of small dimensions, known commonly as the “Cathedral of Our Saviour behind the Golden Gates,” actually dedicated to “Our Saviour on High” (Verkhospasski); its other name is due to the fact that the entrance to it is on the far, or private, side of the gilt wicket that barred the entrance to the Terem. It was built in 1635 by the Bajenko Ogurtsev, a Russian architect employed by the Tsar Michael, and was restored by his grandson, Theodore II., and many times subsequently. In the seventeenth century it was the private chapel of the sovereigns. In it the sons of Alexis were baptised; here it was that in times of danger, as during the revolt of the Strelsti (see ch. x. and p. 130) the royal princes sought refuge, and from here Ivan Naryshkin went to his murder by the Strelsti who were clamouring for his head. The church is closed by three doors all modelled after the “gilt wicket”; it possesses a magnificent ikonostas of chiselled silver, the gift of the Countess Soltikov, which marvellously escaped the plunderers of 1812. Its ikons include one of the Saviour, “not made with hands” (v. chapter ix. p. 182), said to have been brought to Moscow in 1472 by Sophia Paleologus, and one of Lupin, the centurion, the patron saint of the Romanofs. There is also an old ikonastas in the adjoining chapel of St John the Baptist. On the north side of the Verkhospasski Church, also on this third storey, is the Seventeenth Century Church of the Resurrection, on the threshold{129} of which, if tradition may be believed, Athanasius Naryshkin was struck down by the Streltsi in 1682. It is lighter than ordinary Russian Churches, lofty, with an ogival vaulted roof and almost entirely covered with frescoes. The western door has representations of the eight Sybils. The mediæval incense-burner suspended in the centre is of foreign, probably Dutch, origin, and apart from its own attractiveness serves well to contrast the great differences in Western and Russian handicraft, for the ikonostas has some excellent relief work. The paintings at the east-end are on a gold ground, at one period a prevalent fashion with Russian ikon painters. The brilliant colouring, the lavish use of gold and silver, and the bright illumination, so unusual in Russian churches, together make this royal chapel one of the most interesting of those in the Kremlin. It was from the corridor leading to this church that the first “Dmitri” is said to have been thrown; the window, which had been blocked up, will be pointed out to the visitor before entering the Chapel of the Crucifixion, which is over this corridor and on the same level as the fourth storey of the Terem. The interior of this chapel is very gloomy; the floor of black and white marble may assist in its recognition. Its most interesting feature is the ikonostas of embroidery, the work of the Tsaritsas and their daughters. The faces of the saints on the ikons are painted upon canvas, and the vestments instead of metal are of worked silk and other tissues. At the entrance is the private oratory of the Tsar Alexis, and amongst other things which will be pointed out as having some connection with the younger members of this Tsar’s family, is the spot upon which he at one time erected a “Golgotha”; the cross is of cedar, pine and cypress, contributed by three princes. This church was built in 1679 and communicates with the “Church of the Holy Vestments,”{130} by the door to the left of the entrance, a piece of work highly characteristic of Russian art at this period.

Above the smaller Golden Palace is a small chapel, commonly called the “Cathedral of Our Saviour behind the Golden Gates,” officially dedicated to “Our Saviour on High” (Verkhospasski). Its other name comes from the fact that the entrance is on the far, or private, side of the gilded gate that blocked the entrance to the Terem. It was built in 1635 by Bajenko Ogurtsev, a Russian architect working for Tsar Michael, and was restored by his grandson, Theodore II, and many times afterward. In the seventeenth century, it served as the private chapel for the sovereigns. The sons of Alexis were baptized here; in times of danger, like during the revolt of the Streltsi (see ch. x. and p. 130), the royal princes found refuge here, and from this spot, Ivan Naryshkin went to his murder by the Streltsi who were demanding his head. The church is closed off by three doors all designed after the “gilt wicket”; it features a magnificent ikonostas made of carved silver, a gift from Countess Soltikov, which miraculously survived the looting of 1812. Its icons include one of the Saviour, “not made with hands” (v. chapter ix. p. 182), said to have been brought to Moscow in 1472 by Sophia Paleologus, and one of Lupin, the centurion, patron saint of the Romanovs. There is also an old ikonostas in the adjacent chapel of St John the Baptist. On the north side of the Verkhospasski Church, also on this third storey, is the Seventeenth Century Church of the Resurrection, where, if tradition holds true, Athanasius Naryshkin was struck down by the Streltsi in 1682. It’s brighter than typical Russian churches, with a high, pointed vaulted roof, and is almost entirely adorned with frescoes. The western door has images of the eight Sybils. The medieval incense burner hanging from the center is of foreign, probably Dutch, origin and, apart from being attractive, highlights the significant differences between Western and Russian craftsmanship, as the ikonostas features some excellent relief work. The paintings at the east end are set against a gold background, which was a popular trend among Russian ikon painters at one time. The vibrant colors, generous use of gold and silver, and bright illumination, which are quite unusual for Russian churches, combine to make this royal chapel one of the most fascinating in the Kremlin. From the corridor leading to this church, it’s said that the first “Dmitri” was thrown; the blocked-up window will be pointed out to visitors before entering the Chapel of the Crucifixion, which is above this corridor and on the same level as the fourth storey of the Terem. The interior of this chapel is quite dim; the black and white marble floor might help in recognizing it. Its most interesting feature is the embroidered ikonostas, made by the Tsaritsas and their daughters. The faces of the saints on the icons are painted on canvas, and the vestments, instead of metal, are made of silk and other fabrics. At the entrance is the private oratory of Tsar Alexis, and among other items that will be highlighted as having connections with the younger members of this Tsar’s family is the place where he once erected a “Golgotha”; the cross is made of cedar, pine, and cypress, donated by three princes. This church was built in 1679 and connects to the “Church of the Holy Vestments,”{130} by the door to the left of the entrance, a piece of work that is very characteristic of Russian art from that period.

There are other churches and chapels which are technically private chapels of the palace, as are also the Cathedrals of the Assumption and Annunciation, but these are dealt with elsewhere. Those actually within, or communicating with the Terem, are those above enumerated, and in addition there is the old Chapel of St John the Baptist “in the wood,” now removed to the second floor of the tower over the Borovitski Gate.

There are other churches and chapels that are technically private chapels of the palace, like the Cathedrals of the Assumption and Annunciation, but those are covered in another section. The ones that are actually inside or connected to the Terem are the ones listed above, and in addition, there's the old Chapel of St John the Baptist “in the wood,” which has now been moved to the second floor of the tower above the Borovitski Gate.

The palaces and chapels of the Terem with their many means of communication afforded a secure hiding place, and means of escape would usually be found by reaching one of the churches with their treasuries and subterranean vaults. In the early times it was a capital offence to be found behind the Golden Gate, but two Chamberlains who accidentally encountered the Tsaritsa Natalia in one of the corridors were merely dismissed from office for a single day and reinstated; life was more free and easy in the days of Theodore than ever before in Moscow. The faction intrigues and riots that followed the succession to the throne of his brother Ivan and half-brother Peter were chiefly the result of the unjust treatment of the Streltsi. What took place at the palace is soon stated. Matviev had been recalled; the Naryshkins and Miloslavskis, the relatives of the first and second wives of the late Tsar Alexis, were opposed to each other; the son of each wife sat on the throne; Peter, the younger, had his mother to protect him; Ivan, the elder, his sister Sophia. It was too good an opportunity for deciding the supremacy of the Miloslavskis, and they having caused it to be reported that Ivan’s life was in jeopardy, the Streltsi advanced to the Kremlin crying “Death to those who oppose royalty! Death to all traitors!” Before the gates could be closed they were in the Kremlin, and with pikes, halberds, and partisans thronging the state entrance and the square of the palace itself. They wished to be sure that both Tsars were well: they wanted the lives of the Matvievs and Naryshkins if Ivan was not. Matviev momentarily saved the situation. He went with Natalia, who led the Tsars one by each hand out on to the terrace before the infuriated mob. “By God’s mercy both are well as you see,” he said, and added words{131} that soothed the mob, but all too soon he retired following Natalia into the palace. Dolgorooki, the head of the Streltsi, then turned to the rioters and ordered them to be gone. He irritated them by his address; some seized him and threw him over the balustrade, and those below caught him on their pikes. Another troop, partisans of Sophia, were searching for Matviev, dragged him from the presence of the ex-Tsaritsa and near Blagovieshchenski Sobor he too was thrown on to the pikes of the Streltsi in the square below, and they were not content merely with killing now, but cut his body in morsels. Three days later, a faithful black servant ventured forth and collected the remains for burial. The rioters having now committed two crimes reverted to their original determination to settle with those opposed to Ivan. They wished particularly for the uncles of Peter, Ivan and Athanasius Naryshkin—they mistook Soltikov for him, and the man, too frightened even to pronounce his own name, was slain. A dwarf of the Tsaritsa’s led the rioters to the hiding place of Athanasius—the altar of one of the churches, and they killed him where they found him, and threw the body out into the square. The mutiny lasted several days: the Streltsi could not find Ivan Naryshkin or Van Gaden the doctor. The third day they again went to the palace and demanded that Ivan should be given up to them. Natalia pleaded for the life of her brother, the boyards fearing for their own lives besought her to give him up, and at last she consented. He made his last confession, and, attended by Natalia and Sophia, carried the ikon of the virgin before him. Hurried by the impatient boyards he courageously left the chapel, and crossing the threshold of the Golden Gates was at once seized by the Streltsi waiting him and dragged to torture and execution, and this satisfied the rioters for the time.

The palaces and chapels of the Terem, with their numerous passageways, provided a safe hiding spot, and escape routes were often achieved by reaching one of the churches with their treasures and hidden vaults. In earlier times, it was a serious crime to be found behind the Golden Gate, but two Chamberlains who unexpectedly ran into Tsaritsa Natalia in one of the hallways were just fired for a day and then reinstated; life under Theodore was more relaxed than ever before in Moscow. The faction conflicts and riots that erupted after his brother Ivan and half-brother Peter ascended the throne were mainly due to the unfair treatment of the Streltsi. The events at the palace are straightforward. Matviev had been brought back; the Naryshkins and Miloslavskis, relatives of the late Tsar Alexis's first and second wives, were at odds with each other; each wife had her son on the throne. Peter, the younger, had his mother to protect him; Ivan, the elder, had his sister Sophia. It was too good an opportunity to assert the Miloslavskis' dominance, and they spread the word that Ivan’s life was in danger. The Streltsi marched to the Kremlin shouting, “Death to those who oppose royalty! Death to all traitors!” Before the gates could be closed, they swarmed into the Kremlin, armed with pikes, halberds, and partisans, filling the state entrance and the palace square. They wanted to ensure both Tsars were safe and sought the lives of the Matvievs and Naryshkins if Ivan was harmed. Matviev temporarily calmed the situation. He joined Natalia, who brought the Tsars out onto the terrace to face the furious crowd, saying, “By God’s mercy, both are safe as you see,” and added words{131} that calmed the mob, but he retreated back into the palace with Natalia all too soon. Dolgorooki, the Streltsi leader, then addressed the rioters and told them to disperse. His words annoyed them; some grabbed him and tossed him over the balustrade, where those below caught him on pikes. Another group, supporters of Sophia, were searching for Matviev; they dragged him away from the ex-Tsaritsa, and near Blagovieshchenski Sobor, he was also thrown onto the pikes of the Streltsi in the square below, and they went beyond simple murder by tearing his body apart. Three days later, a loyal black servant ventured out to collect the remains for burial. The rioters, having now committed two murders, returned to their original plan to deal with those against Ivan. They specifically wanted the uncles of Peter, Ivan, and Athanasius Naryshkin—they mistook Soltikov for him, and the terrified man was killed without even managing to say his name. A dwarf of the Tsaritsa guided the rioters to Athanasius's hiding place—the altar of a church, where they murdered him and discarded his body into the square. The revolt lasted several days: the Streltsi couldn’t find Ivan Naryshkin or Doctor Van Gaden. On the third day, they again went to the palace demanding that Ivan be handed over. Natalia begged for her brother's life, but the boyars, fearing for their own safety, urged her to give him up, and eventually, she agreed. He made his final confession, and, accompanied by Natalia and Sophia, carried the icon of the virgin before him. Rushed by the impatient boyars, he bravely left the chapel, and as he crossed the threshold of the Golden Gates, the waiting Streltsi seized him and dragged him away to torture and execution, which temporarily satisfied the rioters.

Richly carved doors, of a type truly Muscovite and mediæval, lead from the Holy Corridor to the larger Golden Hall of the Granovitaia Palace. This building is the work of two Italians, Marco Ruffo, and Pietro Antonio, at the close of the fifteenth century, and has its name of “Facetted” Palace from the trimming of the stone blocks of the external walls to imitate some earlier ornate wooden building. The large Hall is the old throne room of the Tsars Vasili, Ivan “Groznoi” and{132} Boris Godunov. The old custom of a state banquet on the day of the coronation is still observed. On this occasion, as in olden times, the Tsar is seated at a table with such other reigning sovereigns as may be present; his near relations are by etiquette still excluded from the room, and view the ceremony from the small window near the ceiling, immediately opposite the “Krasnœ Ugol” or throne. Around the central pillar which supports the vaulted roof, the “mountain” is placed on which the Imperial plate is displayed on state occasions, just as it was in the days of Herberstein, Jenkinson, and the early ambassadors to the Muscovite Court. Here, too, Ivan “Groznoi” received the Khan’s emissaries and the rusty knife his victorious enemy had sent him that he might cut his own throat; here for three days he regaled his companions after the fall of Kazan: here Boris Godunov entertained the Danish Prince, suitor for the hand of the Tsarevna Xenia; here, in 1653, Alexis received the submission of Bogdan Khmelnitski and the cession of Little Russia. Peter I. also celebrated herein his victory over Charles XII. at Poltava, and in 1767, Catherine II. confided to the delegates the celebrated “Nakaz” for the compilation of the new code of law. Its present condition closely resembles its primitive aspect, traces of Peter the Great’s vandalism having been removed; the walls uncovered; the paintings restored; the windows refitted; and older furnishings substituted for the tapestry and decorations of Peter and his successors. The paintings, as the inscription states, were made in 1882 by two “brothers Bieloosov, ikon painters, peasants of the village of Palekha.” Chancellor and his companions when ushered into the Golden Palace encountered Ivan the Terrible. “The Russian Tsar, sitting on a lofty couch, arrayed in robes of silver, and now wearing a different diadem. In the{133} middle of the room stood a huge abacus with a square pedestal, surmounted with a succession of orbicular tiers, which regularly tapered towards the culminating point, and was adorned with such profusion of plate and costly rarities that it was almost overburdened with the great weight of them, and the greater part were of the choicest gold. Four vases, conspicuous by their size, served specially to enhance the splendour of the other golden vessels, for they were nearly five feet in height. Four tables, placed separately on each side of the hall and raised to the height of three steps above the floor, were bespread with the very finest napery and attended by a numerous company.” One thing which surprised Chancellor was the great reverence shown the Tsar when he spoke, by the whole company “rising simultaneously and bending low their bodies with a sort of gesture of adoration, silently resume their seats.”

Richly carved doors, truly Muscovite and medieval in style, lead from the Holy Corridor to the larger Golden Hall of the Granovitaia Palace. This palace was built by two Italians, Marco Ruffo and Pietro Antonio, at the end of the fifteenth century, and is called the “Facetted” Palace because the stone blocks on the exterior walls are trimmed to mimic an earlier ornate wooden structure. The large Hall served as the throne room for Tsars Vasili, Ivan “Groznoi,” and Boris Godunov. The tradition of hosting a state banquet on coronation day is still followed. During this event, as in the past, the Tsar sits at a table with any other reigning monarchs present; his close relatives are still customarily excluded from the room and watch the ceremony from a small window near the ceiling, directly across from the “Krasnœ Ugol” or throne. Around the central pillar supporting the vaulted roof, the “mountain” holds the Imperial plate displayed during state occasions, just as it was in the days of Herberstein, Jenkinson, and the early ambassadors to the Muscovite Court. Here, Ivan “Groznoi” received the Khan’s emissaries and the rusty knife sent by his victorious enemy for him to cut his own throat; here he entertained his companions for three days after the fall of Kazan; here Boris Godunov hosted the Danish Prince, who sought the hand of Tsarevna Xenia; and here, in 1653, Alexis accepted the submission of Bogdan Khmelnitski and the surrender of Little Russia. Peter I also celebrated his victory over Charles XII at Poltava here, and in 1767, Catherine II entrusted delegates with the famous “Nakaz” for compiling a new code of law. Its current state closely resembles its original look, with signs of Peter the Great’s vandalism removed; the walls uncovered; the paintings restored; the windows refitted; and older furnishings replaced the tapestry and decorations of Peter and his successors. The paintings, as noted in the inscription, were made in 1882 by two “brothers Bieloosov, ikon painters, and peasants from the village of Palekha.” When the Chancellor and his companions were welcomed into the Golden Palace, they encountered Ivan the Terrible. “The Russian Tsar, seated on a high couch, dressed in silver robes, now wearing a different diadem. In the middle of the room stood a huge abacus with a square pedestal, topped with a series of circular tiers that tapered towards the top, adorned with such an abundance of plates and expensive rarities that it seemed almost overloaded with their weight, most of it being the finest gold. Four large vases enhanced the splendor of the other golden vessels, standing nearly five feet tall. Four tables, each set separately on either side of the hall and raised three steps above the floor, were covered with the finest linens and attended by a large company.” One thing that surprised the Chancellor was the deep respect shown to the Tsar when he spoke; everyone in attendance “rose simultaneously, bending low in a gesture of adoration, then silently resumed their seats.”

The Terem is a building of five storeys, each higher one smaller than any below and the topmost but a single room, with a porch leading to the flat roof from which, before blocked by the Great Palace, a splendid view was obtainable. The ground floor was built early in the sixteenth century, but serves now for storerooms only, and the one above, reached by a door under the staircase, consists of a private suite formerly the workrooms of the palace and now utilised for the preservation of old charters. The staircase with carved stone steps is separated from the palace by the “gilt-wicket” which formerly divided the private from the state and court rooms of the palace. It is of a quite ordinary design when compared with the much more elaborate wrought metal-work found elsewhere in the palaces and churches of the Kremlin. The first room reached was originally the “vestibule,” but serves now as a breakfast-room; the cases contain the old seals of the Kingdom; the walls and vaulted roof covered with{134} pictures and the stove of fine old glazed Russian tiles, a variety of faience the secret of whose manufacture has been lost. Near to this room is the Council Chamber, and, further, what originally served as the private room of the Tsars, but was latterly used as a throne room. In the bronze casket is the deed of election which appointed Mikhail Theodorovich to the throne. In the “Krasnœ Ugol,” or “Grand Corner,” is the seat of the Tsar Alexis with a carpet before it, the handiwork of his daughters. The window adjoining is that from which Dmitri, and other rulers, lowered the basket for the petitions of all and sundry who wished directly to communicate with the Tsar. Adjoining this room is a bedroom, once occupied by the unfortunate Tsarevich Alexis Petrovich. The oratory has two ikons which formerly belonged to the Tsar Alexis, as did also the cross. The belvedere reached by either of two separate staircases, was built by the Tsar Michael for the accommodation of his children, and in later reigns may have been used as a council chamber for the “duma” of the boyards. The Tsars Alexis and Theodore II. were brought up in the Terem; Peter the Great occupied it only occasionally, chiefly before his travels abroad, and his son Alexis was its last regal inmate.

The Terem is a five-story building, with each upper level smaller than the one below it, and the top floor consists of just one room. There’s a porch leading to the flat roof, which used to offer a stunning view before it was blocked by the Great Palace. The ground floor was built in the early sixteenth century, but now it’s just used for storage. The floor above is accessed through a door under the staircase and was once the palace workrooms; now it’s used to preserve old documents. The staircase, made of carved stone steps, is separated from the palace by the “gilt-wicket,” which once divided the private quarters from the state and court rooms. Its design is quite simple compared to the much fancier wrought metalwork found in other palaces and churches of the Kremlin. The first room you enter was originally the “vestibule,” but now it serves as a breakfast room; the cases hold the old seals of the Kingdom. The walls and vaulted ceiling are decorated with{134} pictures, and there’s a stove made of fine old glazed Russian tiles, a type of faience whose manufacturing secret has been lost. Next to this room is the Council Chamber, and beyond that is what used to be the private room of the Tsars, which later became a throne room. The bronze casket contains the election document that appointed Mikhail Theodorovich to the throne. In the “Krasnœ Ugol,” or “Grand Corner,” is the seat of Tsar Alexis, complete with a carpet made by his daughters. The adjacent window is where Dmitri and other rulers lowered a basket for petitions from anyone who wanted to reach out directly to the Tsar. Next to this room is a bedroom that was once occupied by the unfortunate Tsarevich Alexis Petrovich. The oratory has two ikons that belonged to Tsar Alexis, along with a cross. The belvedere, which can be accessed by either of two separate staircases, was built by Tsar Michael for his children, and in later reigns, it may have been used as a council chamber for the “duma” of the boyards. Tsars Alexis and Theodore II grew up in the Terem; Peter the Great only used it occasionally, mainly before his trips abroad, and his son Alexis was its last royal resident.

“The early Romanofs practically shared their rule with the Patriarch, and church services and pageants entered largely into their every day life. The Tsar would be awakened at about 4 A.M. and at once enter his oratory for private devotion; a quarter of an hour later he prayed before the ikon of the saint whose day it might be, and then sent one of his attendants to inquire as to the health of the Tsaritsa and, later, might himself attend her in the vestibule and accompany her to matins in one of the chapels of the palace. Boyards and others awaited his return for instructions in matters of state, and at nine o’clock the Tsar attended high mass either in one of the churches or cathedrals of the Kremlin, or upon fête days wherever the ceremony was necessarily performed. Mass

“The early Romanovs essentially shared their rule with the Patriarch, and church services and celebrations were a big part of their daily life. The Tsar would wake up around 4 A.M. and immediately go to his private chapel for personal prayer. A little later, he would pray in front of the icon of the saint of the day and then send one of his attendants to check on the Tsaritsa's health. Later on, he might go to see her in the entrance hall and accompany her to morning prayers in one of the palace chapels. The boyars and others would wait for his return to get instructions on state matters, and at nine o’clock, the Tsar would attend high mass either in one of the churches or cathedrals of the Kremlin, or on fête days, wherever the ceremony needed to be held. Mass

{135}

{135}



TEREM—THE THRONE ROOM

TEREM—THE THRONE ROOM

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
TEREM—THE THRONE ROOM

{136}

{136}

{137}

{137}

lasted about two hours, and afterwards the sovereign gave private audience to ministers until midday, when he took his first repast, ordinarily frugal to scantiness and eaten alone. During Lent the Tsar Alexis made but three meals each week, and ate fish but twice, on fast days taking only a morsel of black bread and a pickled mushroom; he drank either kvas or small beer: his devotions occupied five hours of each day, and often he prostrated himself more than a thousand times daily.

lasted about two hours, and afterwards the sovereign met with ministers privately until midday, when he had his first meal, usually quite small and eaten alone. During Lent, Tsar Alexis had only three meals each week, and ate fish only twice; on fast days, he would have just a small piece of black bread and a pickled mushroom. He drank either kvass or light beer: his devotions took up five hours each day, and he often prostrated himself more than a thousand times daily.

“Fast day or not the Tsar’s table was always well supplied, but of the seventy or more dishes usually served the greater part were presented to his courtiers and officers. After the midday repast, the sovereign invariably retired for a short sleep, arising for vespers at about three o’clock, when he was always attended by the court. Occasionally state business was transacted after evening service, but generally the remainder of the day was spent in recreations; theatricals, music and chess were chief among these. Court pilgrims were the Muscovite equivalent of the wandering minstrels of the British courts. The Tsar Alexis particularly was interested in the recitals of ‘experienced’ men who had travelled in distant parts of his kingdom and liked to hear often the recollections of the grey-beards who had known the Moscow of the ‘troublous times.’ If their stories failed, resource was had to a reading of the chronicles, ecclesiastical and profane. The pensioners were housed in the Kremlin near the royal palace, and were under the immediate protection of the Tsar, who himself not frequently followed some centenarian to the specially appointed burial place in the Bogo-yavlenni Monastyr.

“Whether it was a fast day or not, the Tsar's table was always well stocked, but out of the seventy or more dishes usually served, most were given to his courtiers and officers. After lunch, the sovereign would typically take a short nap, waking up for evening prayers at around three o'clock, attended by the court. Occasionally, state business would take place after the evening service, but generally, the rest of the day was spent on leisure activities; theater, music, and chess were the main ones. Court visitors were the Muscovite equivalent of the wandering minstrels from British courts. Tsar Alexis, in particular, was interested in the stories of 'experienced' men who had traveled to far-off parts of his kingdom and enjoyed hearing the tales of the elders who had witnessed Moscow during the 'troubled times.' If their stories fell short, they would turn to readings from the chronicles, both religious and secular. The retirees lived in the Kremlin near the royal palace and were directly under the Tsar's protection, who often accompanied some centenarian to the designated burial site in the Bogo-yavlenni Monastery.”

“The Tsaritsas for the most part occupied themselves with their own devotions and the direction of the work rooms of the palace; very occasionally with their children they accompanied the Tsar to the Krasnœ Kriltso to be ‘beholden of the people.’ Sometimes they witnessed state ceremonies from a secluded corner of the throne room, and in the evening witnessed the amusements in the Potieshni Dvorets; were diverted by the tricks of mountebanks and jugglers; listened to songs, or watched the special dancers engaged for their amusement. Their journeys abroad were restricted to visiting the convents and churches, pilgrimages to the Troitsa Monastery, or the season’s change to a suburban palace. Although they attended High Mass in the cathedrals, they were seldom seen by the public, being always surrounded by a guard of chamber-women who carried ecrans and, arranging themselves before the Tsaritsa, screened her from the eyes of{138} the curious. Doubtless the strict etiquette was departed from in the semi-state of the summer palaces at Kolomenskœ and Preobrajenskœ, and certainly the Tsaritsa Natalia failed in various ways to observe the strict seclusion of the Terem. A state procession in the days of Alexis was a wonderful pageant: on his visit to the Novo Devichi Convent he was preceded by 600 horsemen, three abreast, all dressed in cloth of gold. Grooms led the twenty-five white stallions harnessed to a coach draped with scarlet and gold: a guard of honour surrounded it; the Tsar followed in a smaller coach drawn by six white horses; boyards in state robes were his escort. Petitioners thronged the procession and their written requests were deposited in a special box carried behind the Tsar. The Tsarevich, with a long cortege, followed. The Tsaritsa was preceded by forty grooms with magnificent steeds, and her own coach drawn by ten white horses, and behind her the Tsarevna in a similar carriage drawn by eight horses. The waiting-women, to the number of twenty or more, rode astride white horses; they wore scarlet robes, white hats with yellow ribbons and long feathers; white veils hid part of their faces; top boots of bright yellow completed their costume. The guard consisted of 300 of the Streltsi with their showiest weapons, and behind them came pensioners, boyards and officers of the court.”—Zabielin.

“The Tsaritsas mostly focused on their own prayers and managing the palace workrooms. Occasionally, they would go with their children to the Krasnœ Kriltso to be 'seen by the people.' Sometimes they watched state ceremonies from a quiet corner of the throne room and enjoyed the evening entertainment in the Potieshni Dvorets, entertained by tricks from street performers and jugglers, listened to songs, or watched special dancers hired for their enjoyment. Their trips abroad were limited to visiting convents and churches, making pilgrimages to the Troitsa Monastery, or spending the season at a suburban palace. Though they attended High Mass in the cathedrals, they were rarely seen by the public, always surrounded by a guard of chamber-women holding ecrans who positioned themselves in front of the Tsaritsa to shield her from the curious. Of course, the strict etiquette was relaxed during the semi-state of the summer palaces at Kolomenskœ and Preobrajenskœ, and definitely Tsaritsa Natalia sometimes strayed from strictly observing the seclusion of the Terem. A state procession in Alexi’s time was a spectacular event: when he visited the Novo Devichi Convent, he was preceded by 600 horsemen, three abreast, all in gold cloth. Grooms led twenty-five white stallions harnessed to a coach draped in scarlet and gold, surrounded by a guard of honor; the Tsar followed in a smaller coach pulled by six white horses, with boyards in state robes as his escort. Petitioners crowded the procession, dropping off their written requests in a special box carried behind the Tsar. The Tsarevich, with a long entourage, followed. The Tsaritsa was preceded by forty grooms on splendid horses and her own coach pulled by ten white horses, while behind her, the Tsarevna rode in a similar carriage pulled by eight horses. The waiting-women, numbering twenty or more, rode side-saddle on white horses; they wore scarlet robes, white hats with yellow ribbons and long feathers, and white veils that covered part of their faces; bright yellow top boots completed their outfits. The guard consisted of 300 Streltsi with their most ornate weapons, followed by pensioners, boyards, and court officials.” —Zabielin.

The young Prince Peter had a small state coach to himself; it was drawn by small white ponies, and he had as a special retinue a number of dwarfs. In the golden age of the three Romanofs Moscow thrived as never before and became beautiful beyond other cities. Alexis busied himself in erecting new and better buildings where fire destroyed the old, and his example was followed by the boyards, who commenced of their own accord to build churches or to enrich those existing, and were even so western and modern as to present bells. It was under Theodore that Moscow attained its zenith and became known as the city of churches—“Forty-forties” their number, the Russian equivalent of “seventy times seven,” derived from “sorokov,” an ecclesiastical division, and also a “great gross”; the number actually in existence{139} within the town limit is said to have been 1071. There were twenty-seven “Halls” within the Kremlin palaces; some twelve new courts of justice in the town; and eight royal residences in the suburbs. The boyard Dmitri Kaloshinim built a great church on the Devichi Pol-ye, and in addition to the academy in the Za-ikono-spasski Monastyr other schools were founded. The handicrafts of the west were generally practised, and many new trades learned and mastered, some 4300 foreigners being employed in Moscow in the manufacturing industries and the instruction of the citizens. It was at this period that most of the beautiful glass, faience and metal work that enriches the sacristies was produced, and then that the finest ecclesiastical buildings were erected. Some of the choicest antiquities of the Treasury (Orujen-ia Palata) date from this period. The boyards during the siege of the Poles and themselves in the Kremlin turned much of the old plate stored there into money; the specimens of earlier date had been hidden away, or were in the treasures of churches outside the Kremlin. Among the most interesting antiquities here are:—

The young Prince Peter had a small state coach just for himself; it was pulled by little white ponies, and he had a special entourage of dwarfs. During the golden age of the three Romanov rulers, Moscow flourished like never before and became more beautiful than other cities. Alexis focused on building new and improved structures where fire had destroyed the old ones, and the boyars followed his lead, starting to build churches on their own or enhance existing ones, even going so far as to present bells, showing how western and modern they had become. Under Theodore, Moscow reached its peak and became known as the city of churches—“Forty-forties” was their count, the Russian equivalent of “seventy times seven,” derived from “sorokov,” an ecclesiastical term and also a “great gross.” It is said that the actual number of churches within the city limits reached 1071.{139} There were twenty-seven “Halls” within the Kremlin palaces, about twelve new courts of justice in town, and eight royal residences in the suburbs. The boyar Dmitri Kaloshinim built a grand church at Devichi Pol-ye, and alongside the academy in the Za-ikono-spasski Monastyr, other schools were established. The crafts from the west were widely practiced, and many new trades were learned and mastered, employing around 4300 foreigners in Moscow’s manufacturing industries and teaching the local citizens. It was during this time that most of the beautiful glass, faience, and metalwork that fills the sacristies was produced, along with the finest ecclesiastical buildings. Some of the most prized antiques in the Treasury (Orujen-ia Palata) date back to this era. During the siege by the Poles, the boyars, while in the Kremlin, converted much of the old silver stored there into cash; the older items had been hidden away or were in the treasures of churches outside the Kremlin. Among the most intriguing antiques here are:—

In the entrance Hall.—The old bell of the Guardians of Novgorod, recast in 1683; the alarm bell of the city of Moscow, recast in 1714 from the old bell of the town; two plates recording the execution of the Streltsi. The staircase has old German suits of mail, some trophies and two pictures, one representing the battle of Dmitri Donskoi against the Tartars at Kulikovo, and the other the baptism of Vladimir the Great.

In the Entrance Hall.—The old bell of the Guardians of Novgorod, recast in 1683; the alarm bell of the city of Moscow, recast in 1714 from the old bell of the town; two plaques commemorating the execution of the Streltsi. The staircase has old German suits of armor, some trophies, and two paintings, one depicting the battle of Dmitri Donskoi against the Tartars at Kulikovo, and the other showing the baptism of Vladimir the Great.

Room 1: Armoury.—Russian armour of the seventeenth century, notably a mounted model of the Voievode of the period; on the left of the entrance a Russian soldier of the same, also the helmet of the hero Mstislavski, and the helmet of the Tsar Mikhail Theodorovich.

Room 1: Armoury.—Seventeenth-century Russian armor, including a mounted model of a Voievode from that time; to the left of the entrance, there's a Russian soldier from the same era, along with the helmet of the hero Mstislavski and the helmet of Tsar Mikhail Theodorovich.

Room 2: Weapons.—Chiefly fire-arms used in Russia from the fifteenth to the eighteenth century arranged chronologically, of which those in cases XVIII and XIX are the most interesting;{140} in the cases XVI and XVIII will be found the weapons of foreign manufacture, among them the sporting gun presented to the Tsar Mikhail in 1619 by Fabian Smith; against the wall are the guns the monks of St Sergius used to defend the monastery at Troitsa against the Poles in 1609; below these the saddle of Prince Pojarski. Among the standards around the pillars are the sacred colours carried by Dmitri at Kulikovo, of Ivan the Terrible against Kazan (No 59), of Alexis Mikhailovich against the Poles (No 24), of the Streltsi, of Peter the Great’s first regiment of marines (No 1), and the lion and unicorn with which Yermak conquered Siberia. The helmets of Kosma Minin, Prince Pojarski, of Nikita Romanof, Yaroslaf II., and Alexander Nevski.

Room 2: Weapons.—This section showcases firearms used in Russia from the fifteenth to the eighteenth century, arranged in chronological order. The items in cases XVIII and XIX are particularly noteworthy; {140} meanwhile, the weapons in cases XVI and XVIII include foreign-made arms, such as the sporting gun given to Tsar Mikhail in 1619 by Fabian Smith. Along the wall, you'll see the guns used by the monks of St. Sergius to protect the monastery at Troitsa from the Poles in 1609, along with the saddle of Prince Pojarski below these. Among the flags lifted around the pillars are the sacred colors carried by Dmitri at Kulikovo, Ivan the Terrible against Kazan (No 59), Alexis Mikhailovich against the Poles (No 24), the Streltsi, Peter the Great's first marine regiment (No 1), and the lion and unicorn with which Yermak claimed Siberia. The helmets displayed are those of Kosma Minin, Prince Pojarski, Nikita Romanof, Yaroslav II, and Alexander Nevski.

Room 3: Trophies.—Modern.

Room 3: Trophies.—Contemporary.

Room 4: Regalia.—The twelfth century crown of Vladimir Monomachus; the sixteenth century crown of the Tsars of Kazan; that of Ivan Alexievich (1680) and of Mikhail Theodorovich, the Imperial crown, that of Georgia, globes, sceptres—note particularly the beautiful workmanship from the conquered kingdom of Georgia—and the orb reputed to have been presented by Basil and Constantine in 988, together with the golden chain collar and piece of the “true cross.” Among these insignia, most curious are the Barmi, metal collars worn at the coronation, of which one of the earliest has the eagle, lion, griffin, and unicorn—Byzantine symbols—and excellent coloured enamel, but said to have been remade by a Moscow goldsmith in the sixteenth century. The thrones include that of ivory brought to Russia in 1472 by Sophia Paleologus; Persian throne sent to Boris Godunov, in 1605, it is studded with more than 2000 gems; the double throne of the Tsars Ivan and Peter was made at Hamburg and is so constructed that the curtain at the back might screen the Tsarevna Sophia who used to station herself there either to watch or prompt her young brothers. In a casket is the code of the Tsar Alexis on sheets of parchment.

Room 4: Regalia.—The 12th-century crown of Vladimir Monomachus; the 16th-century crown of the Tsars of Kazan; the crowns of Ivan Alexievich (1680) and Mikhail Theodorovich, the Imperial crown, the crown of Georgia, globes, scepters—note especially the beautiful craftsmanship from the conquered kingdom of Georgia—and the orb that is believed to have been given by Basil and Constantine in 988, along with the golden chain collar and a piece of the "true cross." Among these insignia, the Barmi are particularly interesting; they are metal collars worn during the coronation, one of the earliest featuring the eagle, lion, griffin, and unicorn—Byzantine symbols—and excellent colored enamel, but it's said to have been remade by a Moscow goldsmith in the 16th century. The collection includes an ivory throne brought to Russia in 1472 by Sophia Paleologus; a Persian throne sent to Boris Godunov in 1605, which is adorned with over 2,000 gems; and the double throne of Tsars Ivan and Peter, made in Hamburg, designed so that the curtain at the back could hide the Tsarevna Sophia, who would sit there to either watch or cue her younger brothers. Inside a casket is the code of Tsar Alexis on sheets of parchment.

Room 5: Plate.—To the left on entering are the enamel ware, metal, wood, ivory, and glass, household plate of Russian manufacture in the seventeenth century of which the best are those of coloured enamel and niello. The loving cup presented by the patriarch Nikon to the Tsar Alexis; a ring of the unfortunate Eudoxia (wife of Peter I.) and a number of more or less uninteresting objects of that monarch’s period; and a fine numismatic collection that will attract the enthusiast.

Room 5: Plate.—On the left when you enter, you'll find enamelware, metal, wood, ivory, and glass, all household items made in Russia during the seventeenth century, with the best pieces being those made of colored enamel and niello. There's a loving cup given by Patriarch Nikon to Tsar Alexis, a ring belonging to the unfortunate Eudoxia (wife of Peter I.), and a bunch of other less interesting items from that time; plus, a great coin collection that will appeal to enthusiasts.

Ground Floor: Carriages and Harness.—The state chariot sent to Boris Godunov by Queen Elizabeth, carriages with mica{141} windows, closed carriages of the Tsaritsas, the miniature conveyance of the young prince Peter, some relics of Napoleon; portraits of the sovereigns of Russia, and the model of the palace with which Catherine II. intended to cover the Kremlin; of the old palace at Kolomenskœ. There also is the only portrait of Maria Mniszek, and a picture representing her marriage with the false Dmitri.

Ground Floor: Carriages and Harness.—The royal chariot sent to Boris Godunov by Queen Elizabeth, carriages with mica{141} windows, closed carriages of the Tsaritsa, the small carriage of young Prince Peter, some artifacts from Napoleon; portraits of the rulers of Russia, and the model of the palace that Catherine II intended to build over the Kremlin; from the old palace at Kolomenskœ. Also included is the only portrait of Maria Mniszek and a painting depicting her marriage to the false Dmitri.

Golden Moscow extended far beyond the Kremlin; one of its most characteristic corners is the Vosskresenski Vorot, where stands the little chapel sacred to the Iberian Mother of God, the exact copy of a most venerable ikon, brought in 1648 from Mount Athos, for which this chapel was erected by the Tsar Alexis. The picture shows a scratch on the right cheek, the work of an infidel, who was converted by seeing the blood that instantly exuded from the wound. The adornments are a brilliant crown, with a veil of pearls, a large gem on the brow, another on the shoulder; gold brocade with enamelled plaques representing angels’ heads, and the usual lavish decoration of the vestments, complete this unusual ikon, which is probably the most venerated of any in Moscow. The chapel is exceedingly rich and always surrounded by worshippers; thirteen silver chandeliers with tapers are always burning before the ikonostas, and to this day the Tsar on visiting Moscow dismounts at this chapel before entering the Kremlin. The architecture of the wall and gate is a modification of the Russian style of the 16th century as influenced by the purely utilitarian or military style of Podolia and north-east Germany, but the spires that crown the old square towers are of a later date and are probably due to the love of the Tsar Alexis for the Gothic which he tried in vain to blend with the heavy low wooden models of early Russia. The buildings of this period are mostly characterised by the quaint mixture of Lombard and Gothic, but there is one fragment, the ruins of the archiepiscopal palace at{142} the Krutitski, which exhibits the more ornate style then considerably followed for “Halls,” in which the influence of Byzantium predominates. The Krutitski monastery was first established within the Kremlin, but many centuries ago was transferred to the suburbs near the Krasnœ Kholmski Bridge, where the remains of the seventeenth century “dwelling” of the metropolitan may now be seen serving as the gateway to the entrance of a barracks. It is fronted with glazed tiles of many colours, yellow and green are the most conspicuous, and of many shapes. The window casements are purely Byzantine, but the vaulted archways and the roof are as markedly Russian. Only its outer side has been left in its original state, with the quaint designs, particularly that of the “Busy Bee,” glaring from the gaudy tiles; the other side, that within the courtyard, is now covered with the usual distemper (v. p. 122).

Golden Moscow stretched well beyond the Kremlin; one of its most distinctive spots is the Vosskresenski Vorot, where a small chapel dedicated to the Iberian Mother of God stands. This chapel is an exact replica of a venerable icon brought from Mount Athos in 1648, commissioned by Tsar Alexis. The image bears a scratch on the right cheek, inflicted by a non-believer, who converted upon seeing the blood that immediately flowed from the wound. The adornments include a dazzling crown with a veil of pearls, a large gem on the brow, another on the shoulder, gold brocade with enameled plaques depicting angels’ heads, and the usual extravagant decoration of the vestments, which makes this icon probably the most revered in Moscow. The chapel is incredibly opulent and always filled with worshippers; thirteen silver chandeliers with candles are continuously lit in front of the iconostasis, and to this day, the Tsar stops at this chapel before entering the Kremlin when visiting Moscow. The architecture of the wall and gate is a variation of the Russian style from the 16th century, influenced by the practical or military design of Podolia and northeastern Germany. However, the spires topping the old square towers were added later, likely due to Tsar Alexis's fondness for Gothic architecture, which he unsuccessfully tried to blend with the heavier, low wooden designs of early Russia. The buildings from this period are mainly defined by a charming mix of Lombard and Gothic styles, but there is one fragment, the ruins of the archiepiscopal palace at{142} the Krutitski, that showcases the more elaborate style commonly used for “Halls,” where Byzantine influence predominates. The Krutitski monastery was initially established within the Kremlin but was moved to the suburbs near the Krasnœ Kholmski Bridge many centuries ago. Here, you can still see the remains of the 17th-century “dwelling” of the metropolitan, which now serves as the entrance to a barracks. It's adorned with colorful glazed tiles, with yellow and green being the most prominent, in various shapes. The window frames are distinctly Byzantine, while the vaulted archways and the roof are unmistakably Russian. Only its outer side remains in its original state, featuring unique designs, especially that of the “Busy Bee,” which stands out from the vibrant tiles; the other side, facing the courtyard, is now covered with the usual distemper (v. p. 122).

Doubtless much of the fine work on other buildings that have survived the fires of the past two centuries is similarly hidden beneath plaster and many coatings of thick body colour, but it is unlikely that it will be discovered until the old buildings themselves are in course of demolition, so this one perfect example, which is but little known and seldom visited, may be regarded as the sole existing memorial of that school of Greeks and Byzantines which so powerfully influenced Muscovite construction during the reigns of Alexis and Theodore II.

Doubtless, a lot of the great work on other buildings that have survived the fires of the past two centuries is also hidden under plaster and layers of thick paint, but it’s unlikely to be discovered until the old buildings are being demolished. So, this one perfect example, which is not widely known and rarely visited, can be seen as the only remaining memorial of that school of Greeks and Byzantines that significantly influenced Muscovite architecture during the reigns of Alexis and Theodore II.

The literary culture was derived from Poland, and is not remarkable for strength or beauty: Slavinietski confined himself to dogma; the many-sided Polotsi, artist, administrator, pedagogue and poet, wrote several volumes, and helped in the adaptation of old-world stories for dramatic representation. In addition to several plays such as “The Prodigal Son,” “Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego” and “Esther,” which{143}

The literary culture came from Poland and isn’t particularly notable for its strength or beauty. Slavinietski limited himself to dogma, while the versatile Polotsi—who was an artist, administrator, educator, and poet—wrote several volumes and contributed to adapting old stories for plays. Besides several works like “The Prodigal Son,” “Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego,” and “Esther,” which{143}



VOSSKRESENSKI VOROT AND IBERIAN CHAPEL

VOSSKRESENSKI VOROT AND IBERIAN CHAPEL

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Voskresenski Gate and Iberian Chapel

{144}

{144}

{145}

{145}

were performed within the walls of the Uspenski Cathedral, profane history afforded such themes as the “Siege of Troy” and “Alexander the Great” for the amusement of the court in the private hall. Native themes were not so general: “The Judgment of Chemiaki” was one; such plays as the “Good Genius,” “The Mirror of Justice,” appear to have been derived from the Arabs, and it is said that many themes from the Hindu “Panchatantra” were also utilised. Prince Galitzin spoke Latin as fluently as a German Professor; the tsarevna Sophia was his equal in that tongue; and the princess, so far from being satisfied with the routine of the terem, amused herself in writing a tragedy and a comedy in verse, both of which were performed in Moscow. There seems to be no doubt that great liberty was accorded her; but she, unfortunate in the choice of her advisers, became ambitious, and herself was the principal figure in one of the greatest of the real dramas Moscow has furnished. The “Tranquil” Tsar, as Alexis became to be called, amassed great wealth and amused himself in building a fleet for the Caspian Sea, which the water-brigand, Stenki Razin, the pirate of the Volga, promptly destroyed; and then Alexis, like Peter, played with toy boats on the ornamental lake he had made in the Kremlin. To him, much more truly than to Peter, do Karamzin’s lines apply:—

were performed within the walls of Uspenski Cathedral, while secular history provided themes like the “Siege of Troy” and “Alexander the Great” for the entertainment of the court in the private hall. Native themes were not as common: “The Judgment of Chemiaki” was one; plays such as “The Good Genius” and “The Mirror of Justice” seem to have been inspired by Arab stories, and it’s said that many themes from the Hindu “Panchatantra” were also used. Prince Galitzin spoke Latin as fluently as a German professor; Tsarevna Sophia was just as skilled in that language; and the princess, rather than being content with the routine of the terem, spent her time writing a tragedy and a comedy in verse, both of which were performed in Moscow. There seems to be no doubt that she was granted considerable freedom; however, unfortunate in her choice of advisors, she became ambitious and was the central figure in one of the greatest dramas that Moscow has produced. The “Tranquil” Tsar, as Alexis came to be known, accumulated great wealth and enjoyed building a fleet for the Caspian Sea, which was promptly destroyed by the water pirate Stenki Razin, the notorious Volga pirate; then Alexis, like Peter, played with toy boats on the ornamental lake he had created in the Kremlin. To him, much more truly than to Peter, do Karamzin’s lines apply:—

"Russia had a noble Tsar," Respected everywhere: He enjoyed a father’s love, He used a father's power, And sought his children's happiness “And their happiness was his.”

He constructed much of the old Moscow still visible; not a church or a monastery of earlier date but he rebuilt, extended, or improved. Outside the{146} Kremlin, throughout the different zones of the town, beyond the last ramparts far away into the forests that skirted the suburbs, the marks of his work, churches, palaces and halls, testify to the immensity and riches of this Moscow of the Tsars; wherever one may go in or about the Moscow of to-day, that of the seventeenth century cannot be wholly escaped.{147}

He built much of the old Moscow that we can still see today; not a church or monastery from earlier times that he didn't rebuild, expand, or improve. Outside the{146} Kremlin, across the various parts of the city, extending beyond the last fortifications out into the forests that border the suburbs, the evidence of his work—churches, palaces, and halls—shows the grandeur and wealth of this Tsarist Moscow. No matter where you go in or around modern Moscow, you can’t completely escape the influence of the seventeenth century.{147}

CHAPTER VIII

The Kremlin

“The Kremlin is our Sanctuary and our Fortress; the source of our strength and the treasury of our Holy Faith.”

“The Kremlin is our sanctuary and our fortress; the source of our strength and the treasury of our holy faith.”

Viazemski.

Viazemski.

RUSSIANS very rightly regard the Kremlin as their Holy of Holies. All that Moscow is to Russia, the Kremlin is to Moscow. Nowhere else are so many and diverse relics grouped in so small a space; no place of its size is so rich in historical associations. It contains what is best worth seeing in Russia, it is what is best worth knowing. The people know this; know that—as their poet Medich tersely expresses its value—“Here it is that the great Russian eagle raised its eyrie and spread its immense protecting wings over an enormous empire.” To the antiquary, of beauty, to the tourist in search of distraction, the Kremlin is equally attractive. To see it to best advantage, all who visit Moscow for the first time should make the tour outside the walls before entering by any one of its five practicable gates; or, if the complete circuit—some two miles—cannot conveniently be made then, instead of entering by the nearest gate from the Kitai Gorod, let the hurried visitor at least drive across the Moskvoretski Bridge, along the quay on the south side of the river, and, returning by the Kammeny Most, make an entrance by either the Borovitski or the Troitski Gate.{148}

RUSSIANS rightly see the Kremlin as their sacred place. Everything Moscow is to Russia, the Kremlin is to Moscow. Nowhere else can you find so many different relics in such a small area; no other location of its size carries so much historical significance. It showcases the best sights in Russia and the most important knowledge. The people understand this; as their poet Medich succinctly puts it, “Here is where the great Russian eagle built its nest and spread its enormous protective wings over a vast empire.” The Kremlin is appealing to historians, beauty lovers, and tourists looking for entertainment alike. To appreciate it fully, everyone visiting Moscow for the first time should tour the outside of the walls before entering through any of its five accessible gates. If making the complete two-mile circuit isn’t feasible, then instead of using the nearest gate from the Kitai Gorod, the hurried visitor should at least drive across the Moskvoretski Bridge, along the quay on the river's south side, and return via the Kammeny Most, entering through either the Borovitski or the Troitski Gate.{148}

The exact position of the wall of white stone, built in the reign of Dmitri Donskoi (1367), is unknown; in all probability it was within the space at present enclosed. The wall of burnt tiles, erected during the reign of Ivan III., was the work of Aleviso Fioraventi, an Italian architect; but a few years later, between 1485 and 1492, the present wall was raised on the foundations of the old one, in part by Italian workmen, in part by native artisans. This wall, repaired from time to time, has escaped all the fires and disasters which wrought such havoc elsewhere in the Kremlin; but in its original state consisted of three distinct parapets, set back and rising above each other over the ditch, much as the tiers of the old towers still remaining. The wall, the inmost of the three, is of an exaggerated Italian style, the battlements unnecessarily deep. The towers and gates are various: some as the Spasski and Troitski, Gothic; some as the Borovitski and the Gun Towers, Russian; others bastard and nondescript. The Borovitski, Tainitski, and the similar smaller square pyramidal towers, are clearly copies of the older wooden erections on the earlier walls. The design is that of carpenters, not of masons. The green tiles are the original covering; the secret of making them has been lost. For centuries the wall was painted white, the present brick colour is an innovation.

The exact location of the white stone wall, built during the reign of Dmitri Donskoi (1367), is unknown; it was likely within the area currently enclosed. The wall made of burnt tiles, constructed during the reign of Ivan III, was designed by Aleviso Fioraventi, an Italian architect. However, a few years later, between 1485 and 1492, the current wall was built on the foundations of the old one, partly by Italian workers and partly by local artisans. This wall, which has been repaired occasionally, has survived all the fires and disasters that caused so much destruction elsewhere in the Kremlin. Originally, it consisted of three distinct parapets, set back and rising above each other over the ditch, similar to the tiers of the old towers still standing. The innermost wall is in an exaggerated Italian style, with unnecessarily deep battlements. The towers and gates vary: some, like the Spasski and Troitski, are Gothic; others, such as the Borovitski and Gun Towers, are Russian; with a few being a mix and hard to categorize. The Borovitski, Tainitski, and other smaller square pyramidal towers clearly mimic the earlier wooden structures on the old walls. The design reflects the skills of carpenters rather than masons. The green tiles are the original covering; the technique for making them has been lost. For centuries, the wall was painted white; the current brick color is a recent change.



KREMLIN—RAMPART AND GUN TOWER

KREMLIN—WALL AND WATCHTOWER

An early writer states that “the wall is two miles about, and it hath sixteen gates and as many bulwarks.”{149} It is better to be precise. The length of the wall is 1 mile 700 yards, and it follows exactly the contour and windings of the hill, forming an irregular triangle; the thickness varies from 14 to 20 feet, the height from 30 to 70 feet. Throughout the entire length there is a rampart 9 feet wide and a low parapet on the inner side. This walk is paved with stone flags, and is reached from any of the towers and by special stairways within the wall.

An early writer mentions that “the wall is two miles long, and it has sixteen gates and just as many bastions.”{149} It's better to be specific. The wall measures 1 mile and 700 yards, closely following the shape and curves of the hill to create an irregular triangle; its thickness ranges from 14 to 20 feet, while its height varies between 30 and 70 feet. Along the entire length, there is a rampart that is 9 feet wide, along with a low parapet on the inner side. This pathway is paved with stone slabs and can be accessed from any of the towers and via special stairways built into the wall.

The Borovitski Gate, surmounted by a tower 200 feet high (see page 299), preserves the name of the forest (Bor), with which the hill was long ago covered, its official name is the Prechistenka Gate; here all that remains of the old church of the Nativity of St John the Baptist is conserved in the chapel on the right of the gate in entering. In the second storey is the Royal Chapel of St John, one of the ten churches of the palace; in it a service is held once a year, to which worshippers are summoned by ringing the bells on the third storey of the tower. By this gate the Tsars left the Kremlin on other than state occasions, by it Napoleon’s troops entered.

The Borovitski Gate, topped by a 200-foot tower (see page 299), keeps the name of the forest (Bor) that used to cover the hill. Its official name is the Prechistenka Gate. Here, the remains of the old church of the Nativity of St John the Baptist are preserved in the chapel to the right as you enter. On the second floor is the Royal Chapel of St John, one of the ten churches in the palace, where a service is held once a year. Worshippers are called in by the bells ringing from the third floor of the tower. Through this gate, the Tsars exited the Kremlin for occasions that weren't state-related, and it was also how Napoleon's troops entered.

Turning towards the river, the round tower at the corner of the wall was used at one time as a water reservoir for the palace gardens. Peter the Great had need of all the lead he possessed when building his new capital on the Neva, and the tower was then dismantled. It suffered from the mines exploded by the French in 1812; in 1856 it was used to store certain valuables removed from St Petersburg.

Turning towards the river, the round tower at the corner of the wall was once used as a water reservoir for the palace gardens. Peter the Great needed all the lead he had when building his new capital on the Neva, so the tower was taken down. It was damaged by the mines set off by the French in 1812; in 1856, it served to store certain valuables taken from St Petersburg.

The first tower eastward from the “Chateau d’Eau” is the old granary, “Jitny Dvor,” now used by the priest of the adjoining church of the Annunciation. According to the legend on the wall at this point a vision of the Annunciation was seen; to commemorate which this church was built.{150}

The first tower east of the “Chateau d’Eau” is the old granary, “Jitny Dvor,” which is now used by the priest of the nearby church of the Annunciation. According to the legend on the wall at this spot, a vision of the Annunciation was witnessed, which is why this church was constructed.{150}

The next tower is over the Tainitski or “Secret” Gate, a postern leading to the river, now practicable for pedestrians only. On this spot there has been a gate ever since the Kremlin was first enclosed; it was at one time used for the procession of January 6, on its way to the river, but “The Blessing of the Water” is now performed from the New Cathedral of our Saviour.

The next tower is above the Tainitski or “Secret” Gate, a small door that leads to the river, which is now only open for pedestrians. There has been a gate here ever since the Kremlin was first enclosed; it was once used for the procession on January 6, heading to the river, but “The Blessing of the Water” is now held at the New Cathedral of our Savior.

The wall then runs eastward as far as the round tower near the Moskvoretski Bridge, then turns north as far as the Spasski Gate. The corner comprised within this length of the wall and a straight line from the Tainitski to the Spasski Gate is full of story. The first two towers have now no name; the next is that of the Metropolitan Peter; after the corner tower, the first is that of Constantine and Helen, the next the Tsarina’s tower, then comes the small open tower in the wall itself and quite close to the Spasski Tower. It was at this corner, at first within the Kremlin itself, later outside on the Grand Place that the public executions took place. The wall here has prison cells within its vaulted arches, dungeons are beneath the towers, the corner tower once an oubliette, is still supposed to have the remains of the iron blades and spikes, upon which the prisoners fell, projecting from its walls; in the tower of Constantine and Helen were the instruments of torture used to extort confessions, and the church of the same name is that to which the accused were taken to make their oath before being led to the rack or cast into some secret dungeon. The Tsarina’s Tower, now a dwelling and storehouse, has no pleasant history; the small tower in which once hung the great bell brought from Novgorod is popularly believed to have been constructed by Ivan Groznoi to afford him a better view of the executions, but, if authorities may be believed, on such occasions he more{151} often figured as an actor than an onlooker. However this may be, it is undoubtedly the truth that of this portion of the Kremlin much that is interesting will some day be written. Sneguirev and other writers are content to describe it in very general terms; Fabricius, who for eight years was employed in the Kremlin and knows it more thoroughly than most men, in his monumental work on the Kremlin, scamps this section, although giving minute details respecting other towers and portions of the wall. It is not accessible to the public, and special permission from the commandant of the fortress is now required before admission is given to the rampart walk.

The wall then extends eastward to the round tower near the Moskvoretski Bridge, then turns north to the Spasski Gate. The area inside this stretch of the wall, along with a straight line from the Tainitski to the Spasski Gate, is filled with history. The first two towers have no names; the next one is dedicated to Metropolitan Peter; after the corner tower, you have the one of Constantine and Helen, followed by the Tsarina’s tower, then a small open tower directly in the wall, which is quite close to the Spasski Tower. It was at this corner, first inside the Kremlin and later outside on the Grand Place, that public executions were held. The wall here has prison cells within its vaulted arches, dungeons are located beneath the towers, and the corner tower, once an oubliette, is still thought to have remnants of iron blades and spikes sticking out of its walls, where prisoners fell. The tower of Constantine and Helen housed torture devices used to extract confessions, and the church of the same name was where the accused were taken to swear an oath before being subjected to torture or thrown into a secret dungeon. The Tsarina’s Tower, now a residence and storage facility, has a grim history; the small tower that once held the great bell brought from Novgorod is believed by many to have been built by Ivan Groznoi so he could have a better view of the executions, but if you believe the accounts, on those occasions he was more often an actor than an observer. Regardless, it’s true that much interesting material about this part of the Kremlin will eventually be written. Sneguirev and other authors are satisfied to describe it in very vague terms; Fabricius, who spent eight years working in the Kremlin and knows it better than most, barely covers this section in his extensive work on the Kremlin, even though he provides detailed accounts of other towers and sections of the wall. It’s not open to the public, and special permission from the commandant of the fortress is currently needed to gain access to the rampart walk.

The Spasski (Redeemer) Gate, constructed in the reign of Ivan III. (1491), by Peter Antonio Solarius of Milan, was at first known as the Florovski gate from a church dedicated to St Florus in its vicinity. It bears the following inscription:—

The Spasski (Redeemer) Gate, built during the reign of Ivan III (1491) by Peter Antonio Solarius from Milan, was originally called the Florovski gate, named after a church dedicated to St. Florus nearby. It features the following inscription:—

“Johannes Vassilii Dei gratia magnus Dux Volodomiræ, Moscoviæ. Novoguardiæ, Iferiæ, Plescoviæ, Veticiæ, Ougariæ, Permiæ, Volgariæ et aliarum totiusque Roxiæ dominus: anno 30 imperii sui has turres condere jussit, et statuit Petrus Solarius Mediolanensis, anno nativitatis Domini 1491.”

“Johannes Vassilii, by the grace of God, the great Duke of Vladimir, Moscow, Novogorod, Iveria, Pleskowitz, Veticia, Hungary, Perm, Volga, and lord of all of Russia: in the 30th year of his reign, he ordered the construction of these towers, and Peter Solarius of Milan set them up in the year of our Lord 1491.”

When the church of the Holy Trinity was built this gate took the name of the “Jerusalem Gate,” because the Palm Sunday procession passed beneath it. In 1626 during the reign of the Tsar Mikhail Theodorovich, Christopher Galloway, an English clockmaker, constructed the spire and placed therein a striking clock, which, however, was subsequently removed. After various changes, in 1737 the Tsarina Elizabeth Petrovna caused the one now in use to be placed there. The building itself is formed of thick double walls, between which are passages and staircases of wood and stone; brick buttresses connect the walls and support the upper storeys. The second is{152} the clock tower; the third of octagonal form, has eight arches on which the spire is carried. Over the entrance is the miraculous ikon of the Redeemer, brought back from Smolensk by the Tsar Alexis in 1647. It is to this picture that the orthodox attribute the raising of the siege of Moscow by the Tartars under Makhmet-Ghiree in 1526; it is still held in great veneration, and it is customary for all to uncover whilst passing through the gate. Formerly an omission to do so was punished with two score and half compulsory prostrations. The Redeemer Gate is the state entrance to the Kremlin; by it the Tsars entered and left on all important occasions. Ivan III. passed through after quelling the revolt at Nijni Novgorod; Ivan “Groznoi” after taking Kazan; Vasili Shooiski after the delivery of Moscow from the Poles; here the people went to meet the young Tsar Michael Romanof after his election. The remains of Shooiski were brought through this gate, and by it passed the funeral processions of the Tsars Peter II., Alexander I. and Alexander II. Since the eighteenth century the Tsars have made their state entry to the Kremlin for the coronation by the Redeemer Gate. Criminals executed near the Lobnœ Mesto addressed their last prayers to the ikon above its portal; near it the “hundreds” of Streltsi were executed by order of Peter the Great, and in his reign the heterodox who refused to shave their heads paid a fine on passing it. The French tried to blow up the gate with gunpowder, but it was saved by the timely intervention of the Cossacks.

When the church of the Holy Trinity was built, this gate was named the "Jerusalem Gate" because the Palm Sunday procession went beneath it. In 1626, during Tsar Mikhail Theodorovich's reign, Christopher Galloway, an English clockmaker, constructed the spire and installed a striking clock, which was later removed. After various changes, in 1737, Tsarina Elizabeth Petrovna had the current clock placed there. The building itself has thick double walls, with wooden and stone passages and staircases in between; brick buttresses connect the walls and support the upper levels. The second level is the clock tower; the third level, which is octagonal, has eight arches supporting the spire. Above the entrance is the miraculous icon of the Redeemer, brought back from Smolensk by Tsar Alexis in 1647. The Orthodox people attribute the lifting of the siege of Moscow by the Tartars under Makhmet-Ghiree in 1526 to this picture; it is still held in great reverence, and it is customary for everyone to uncover their heads when passing through the gate. Failing to do so used to result in a punishment of fifty compulsory prostrations. The Redeemer Gate serves as the main entrance to the Kremlin; it is through this gate that the Tsars entered and exited on significant occasions. Ivan III passed through after quelling the revolt at Nijni Novgorod; Ivan "Groznoi" after capturing Kazan; Vasili Shooiski after freeing Moscow from the Poles; and here the people gathered to welcome the young Tsar Michael Romanof after his election. The remains of Shooiski were brought through this gate, and the funeral processions of Tsars Peter II, Alexander I, and Alexander II passed through it as well. Since the eighteenth century, the Tsars have entered the Kremlin for coronations through the Redeemer Gate. Criminals executed near Lobnœ Mesto offered their last prayers to the icon above its entrance; near it, the “hundreds” of Streltsi were executed by order of Peter the Great, and during his reign, those who refused to shave their heads were fined when passing it. The French attempted to blow up the gate with gunpowder, but it was saved by the timely intervention of the Cossacks.

The Nikolski Gate on the north-east was also built by Peter Solarius, but has been several times restored, having suffered by fire and from other disasters. Tokhtamysh entered the Kremlin by this gate; so did the troops of Sigismund III., and it was here that{153} Edigei most strongly assaulted the Kremlin, here that the Krim-Tartars ineffectually tried to gain an entrance in 1551, and here that the battle raged between the Poles and Russians for the possession of Moscow. Like the Spasski Gate it also has its miraculous ikon. It is a mosaic of St Nicholas of Mojaisk. “The dread of perjurers and the comfort of those in pain,” before it litigants made their solemn oaths preliminary to the hearing of the cause. The inscription upon it records how, when the French attempted to blow it up, the ikon escaped destruction.

The Nikolski Gate in the northeast was also built by Peter Solarius but has been restored several times due to fire and other disasters. Tokhtamysh entered the Kremlin through this gate, as did the troops of Sigismund III. It was here that Edigei fiercely attacked the Kremlin, here that the Crimean Tatars unsuccessfully tried to enter in 1551, and here that the battle raged between the Poles and Russians for control of Moscow. Like the Spasski Gate, it also features a miraculous icon. It's a mosaic of St. Nicholas of Mojaisk—“the terror of perjurers and the comfort of the suffering”—where litigants made their solemn oaths before their cases were heard. The inscription on it notes that when the French tried to blow it up, the icon survived the destruction.

“In the year 1812, during the time of the invasion by the enemy almost the whole of this strong tower was demolished by the explosion of a mine; but, by the wonderful power of God, the holy image of the greatly favoured by God, here designed, and, not only the image, but the pane of glass covering it, as also the lantern with the candle, remained uninjured.

“In 1812, during the enemy's invasion, almost the entire strong tower was destroyed by a mine explosion; however, by the incredible power of God, the holy image of the highly favored here depicted, as well as the pane of glass covering it and the lantern with the candle, remained unharmed."

“Who is greater than God, our God? Thou art the God, the marvellous God, who doest miracles by Thy saints.”

“Who is greater than God, our God? You are the God, the amazing God, who performs miracles through your saints.”

This gate is the most generally used entrance to the Kremlin, and in the tower above the law archives of the town are now stored.

This gate is the most commonly used entrance to the Kremlin, and the town's law archives are now stored in the tower above.

Northward from the Nikolski gate there is an abrupt descent to the corner tower—which is polygonal, not round like the others—for here is the old bed of the river Neglinnaia. Formerly the stream was dammed up near its junction with the Moskva so as to constitute an impassable moat, and thus protect the western side of the Kremlin. Nevertheless the wall is continued at the same height for its whole length. The arsenal, a commonplace building, extends from the corner tower to the Troitski gate, the monotony of its dreary line broken by two characteristic gun-towers on the wall. In the Alexander Gardens, outside the Kremlin, arches and rough masonry may be seen, and possibly mistaken for a part of the foundations of the Kremlin{154} wall; they are only decorations dating from the Exhibition held there in 1872.

North of the Nikolski gate, there’s a steep drop to the corner tower, which is polygonal rather than round like the others, as it sits over the old bed of the Neglinnaia River. In the past, the river was dammed near where it meets the Moskva to create an impenetrable moat, protecting the western side of the Kremlin. Still, the wall continues at the same height along its entire length. The arsenal, a rather ordinary building, stretches from the corner tower to the Troitski gate, with its dull line interrupted by two distinct gun towers on the wall. In the Alexander Gardens outside the Kremlin, you can see arches and rough masonry that might be mistaken for part of the Kremlin's foundation; however, they are merely decorations from the Exhibition held there in 1872.{154}

The Troitski (Trinity) Gate was constructed to give access to the palaces in the Kremlin from the suburb on the other side of the Neglinnaia, in the seventeenth century occupied almost entirely by Court servants and artisans. Towards the close of the eighteenth century this quarter was a slum, the chief haunt of the robbers and desperadoes of Moscow; thence came the men who fired the city during the French occupation. The tower over the gate, in the Gothic style, was added by Galloway early in the seventeenth century and has been twice restored; the rooms in it are now used by the staff in charge of the old archives stored in the various towers of the Kremlin. The bridge is protected by a barbican, the Kutaïfa, a large white tower of original design, the work of Italians, about 1500, battlemented and once furnished with gates and portcullis. The French entered and left the Kremlin by this route. It is the only gate in the Kremlin without a chapel, the church of the Trinity once adjoining having been demolished.

The Troitski (Trinity) Gate was built to provide access to the palaces in the Kremlin from the neighborhood on the other side of the Neglinnaia, which in the seventeenth century was mostly occupied by court servants and artisans. By the late eighteenth century, this area had become a slum, known as a major hangout for robbers and criminals in Moscow; it was from here that people set the city on fire during the French occupation. The tower above the gate, designed in the Gothic style, was added by Galloway in the early seventeenth century and has been restored twice; today, the rooms there are used by the staff managing the old archives stored in various towers of the Kremlin. The bridge is protected by a barbican, the Kutaïfa, a large white tower with a unique design created by Italians around 1500, featuring battlements and once equipped with gates and a portcullis. The French entered and exited the Kremlin through this route. It is the only gate in the Kremlin that doesn't have a chapel, as the church of the Trinity that used to be next to it has been demolished.



BELVEDERE OF PLEASURE PALACE

Viewpoint of Pleasure Palace

About midway along the wall between the Troitski and Borovitski gates appear the bright-coloured roofs and gables of an old Russian house, the Potieshni Dvorets, whose striking architecture, together with that of the characteristic smaller towers on the walls, relieves the ugliness of the service buildings on the{155} left and the heavy façade of the Treasury building on the right. This side of the Kremlin should be seen from the far side of the gardens, or from the street beyond.

About halfway along the wall between the Troitski and Borovitski gates, you can see the brightly colored roofs and gables of an old Russian house, the Potieshni Dvorets. Its stunning architecture, along with the smaller characteristic towers on the walls, adds a touch of beauty to the otherwise unattractive service buildings on the{155} left and the heavy façade of the Treasury building on the right. This side of the Kremlin looks best from the far side of the gardens or from the street beyond.

The best view of the Kremlin is that seen from the south end of the Moskvoretski bridge (see page 13.) The balconies of the Hotel Kokoref command the same view, one which reveals at a glance more that is characteristic of Moscow than even the bird’s-eye view from the dome of Ivan Veliki. In the foreground the river and quays; beyond, the walls of the Kremlin with towers in all styles; the fantastic pinnacles of Vasili Blajenni; the blunted spires of the Vossnesenski convent, behind which rise the gilded domes of the Chudov church and the great cupola of the hall of St Catherine in the Senate. Beyond the striking Alexander memorial rises the belfry of Ivan Veliki, and around it cluster the gilded and gay-coloured domes of the cathedrals, then, further to the left, the long façade of the Palace, the pyramidal tower of the Borovitski gate, and, apparently near by, the huge golden dome of the new Cathedral. (See page 299.)

The best view of the Kremlin is from the south end of the Moskvoretski bridge (see page 13). The balconies of the Hotel Kokoref offer the same view, which instantly shows more of what defines Moscow than even the aerial view from the dome of Ivan Veliki. In the foreground, you see the river and quays; beyond that, the walls of the Kremlin with towers of all styles; the extraordinary peaks of Vasili Blajenni; the rounded spires of the Vossnesenski convent, behind which rise the gilded domes of the Chudov church and the great dome of the hall of St Catherine in the Senate. Beyond the impressive Alexander memorial stands the belfry of Ivan Veliki, surrounded by the shiny and colorful domes of the cathedrals. Further to the left, you can see the long façade of the Palace, the pyramidal tower of the Borovitski gate, and seemingly close by, the huge golden dome of the new Cathedral. (See page 299.)

Entering the Kremlin by the Nikolski gate, to the right is the arsenal, to the left the Senate (Law Courts), reaching the transverse route from the Troitski gate, the barracks are in front, the buildings of the service corps to the right, the Chudov monastery to the left; continuing straight on, a large open space is reached; then on the left is the smaller palace, on the far side of the square is the Alexander memorial; close by, on the right, the Synod, then, railed off, the Sobornia Ploshchad with the cathedrals and beyond them the Grand Palace. In the centre rises Ivan Veliki tower which serves as belfry for all the cathedrals.

Entering the Kremlin through the Nikolski gate, to the right is the arsenal and to the left is the Senate (Law Courts). Following the path that connects to the Troitski gate, you’ll see the barracks in front, the service corps buildings on the right, and the Chudov monastery on the left. Continuing straight, you reach a large open area; on the left is the smaller palace, and across the square is the Alexander memorial. Nearby, on the right, stands the Synod, then, enclosed, is the Sobornia Ploshchad along with the cathedrals and, further back, the Grand Palace. In the center rises the Ivan Veliki tower, which acts as the belfry for all the cathedrals.

The cathedrals are, for the most part, described in detail in “Moscow of the Ecclesiastics”; the palaces{156} in the chapter on “Moscow of the Tsars,” and the Chudov and Vossnesenski monasteries in chapter xii.; here the other buildings and sights of the Kremlin may be mentioned.

The cathedrals are mostly described in detail in “Moscow of the Ecclesiastics”; the palaces{156} can be found in the chapter on “Moscow of the Tsars,” and the Chudov and Vossnesenski monasteries are covered in chapter xii.; other buildings and attractions in the Kremlin are also worth mentioning.

First and foremost to treat of Ivan Veliki; of Moscow and its bells.

First and foremost, let's talk about Ivan the Great, Moscow, and its bells.

According to tradition the tall bell tower has a very ancient origin but as a matter of fact it was constructed at the close of the sixteenth century to find employment for a starving population. Its foundations are on a level with the river bed, 120 feet below the surface; its height above is 320 feet, built in five storeys, the first four octagonal, the topmost cylindrical. In the eighteenth century it was considered one of the wonders of the world, and to this day the orthodox invariably cross themselves when passing it. Dedicated to St John and containing in the basement a chapel to the same saint, it is supposed to owe its name to this, but tradition states that it was constructed by one John (Ivan) Viliers whose patronymic has been corrupted into Veliki—that is, “great” or “big.”

According to tradition, the tall bell tower has very ancient origins, but in reality, it was built at the end of the sixteenth century to provide work for a starving population. Its foundations are at the same level as the riverbed, 120 feet below the surface; its height above is 320 feet, divided into five stories, with the first four being octagonal and the topmost one cylindrical. In the eighteenth century, it was considered one of the wonders of the world, and to this day, the faithful always cross themselves when passing by. Dedicated to St. John and housing a chapel to the same saint in its basement, it's believed to have received its name from this, but tradition states that it was built by one John (Ivan) Viliers, whose last name has been altered to Veliki—which means "great" or "big."

There are 450 steps to the gallery under the cupola, whereon is an inscription of which the following is a translation:—

There are 450 steps to the gallery under the dome, where there is an inscription that can be translated as follows:—

“Under the protection of the Holy Trinity and by order of the Tsar and Grand Duke Boris Theodorovich autocrat of all the Russias, and of his son the Tsarevich and Grand Duke Theodore Borisovich, this church has been completed and gold-crowned the second year of their reign. A.M. 7180.”[A]

“Under the protection of the Holy Trinity and by the command of Tsar and Grand Duke Boris Theodorovich, autocrat of all the Russias, and his son, Tsarevich and Grand Duke Theodore Borisovich, this church has been completed and gold-crowned in the second year of their reign. A.M. 7180.”[A]

[A] Date erroneous: built 1590-1600 A.D.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Date incorrect: built 1590-1600

Adjoining Ivan Veliki is another tower, that of the Assumption, in which are hung the larger bells, and still further to the north a third belfry with a pyramidal spire, known as the Tower of Philaret.

Adjoining Ivan Veliki is another tower, that of the Assumption, where the larger bells are hung, and further to the north is a third belfry with a pyramidal spire, known as the Tower of Philaret.

The chapel of St John is on, or near, the spot occupied by a small wood church first erected in 1320;{157} it contains several ikons of interest. On the first storey under the dome of the Assumption Tower is a chapel dedicated to St Nicholas, replacing a fourteenth-century church in the Kremlin. It is specially visited by the orthodox about to marry, and contains some ikons removed from the church of St Nicholas of Galstun, demolished during the reign of Alexander I. (1816). A deacon of the old church, Ivan Theodorof, introduced printing into Russia, and in 1567 produced a book of hours on Moscow. Hence, the book depôt lodged in the tower. Very characteristic of Moscow are these three towers, of different styles of architecture, massed to form one building; that the three should all be white is a pleasing convention which has long endured. It is needless to state that there is an excellent view from the upper storeys, one well worth the toilsome ascent. Moreover the bells are interesting; though some visitors are content with an examination of the great Bell of Moscow which, broken and flawed, stands upon a pedestal at the foot of the Ivan Veliki tower.

The chapel of St. John is located on or near the site of a small wooden church first built in 1320;{157} it features several notable icons. On the first floor beneath the dome of the Assumption Tower is a chapel dedicated to St. Nicholas, which replaced a 14th-century church in the Kremlin. This chapel is especially visited by Orthodox couples about to get married and houses some icons that were moved from the Church of St. Nicholas of Galstun, which was demolished during Alexander I's reign in 1816. A deacon from the old church, Ivan Theodorof, brought printing to Russia and published a Book of Hours in Moscow in 1567. Hence, the book repository is located in the tower. Characteristically Moscow are these three towers, each with different architectural styles, combined to form a single structure; the fact that all three are white is a charming tradition that has persisted for a long time. It's worth mentioning that the view from the upper floors is excellent and well worth the challenging climb. Additionally, the bells are intriguing; while some visitors are satisfied just to see the Great Bell of Moscow, which, broken and flawed, stands on a pedestal at the base of the Ivan Veliki tower.

The art of bell-founding first practised at Nola in Campania in the ninth century, has been known in Russia since the fourteenth; in 1553 a bell of about 15 tons was cast in Moscow and hung in a wooden tower. Since that date many large bells have been cast and recast. The largest, the Tsar Kolokol, the “Great Bell of Moscow,” is supposed to have been first cast in the sixteenth century, probably during the reign of Boris Godunov; in 1611 a traveller states that in Moscow is a bell whose clapper is rung by two dozen men; in 1636, a fire in the Kremlin caused the bell to fall and it was broken. In 1654 it was recast and then weighed some 130 tons; it was 2 feet thick and its circumference over 50 feet. It was suspended at the foot of the tower, and the wooden beam supporting it being burned by the fire of 1706 it once more{158} fell to the ground and broke. It was recast by order of the Empress Anne in 1733, but it is doubtful whether it was hung. From 1737 to 1836 it lay beneath the surface. By the order of the Tsar Nicholas, De Ferrand raised it from the pit and mounted it on the pedestal it now occupies. It is 2 feet thick, 21 feet high (26 feet, 4 inches with ball and cross) 68 feet in girth, and weighs 185 tons. The fragment is 7 feet high and weighs 11 tons. The figures represent the Tsar Alexis and the Empress Anne. It bears a long inscription:—

The art of bell-making, first practiced in Nola, Campania in the ninth century, has been in Russia since the fourteenth century. In 1553, a bell weighing about 15 tons was cast in Moscow and hung in a wooden tower. Since then, many large bells have been cast and recast. The largest, the Tsar Kolokol, known as the “Great Bell of Moscow,” was probably first cast in the sixteenth century during Boris Godunov’s reign. In 1611, a traveler noted a bell in Moscow whose clapper was rung by two dozen men. In 1636, a fire in the Kremlin caused the bell to fall, breaking it. It was recast in 1654 and then weighed about 130 tons; it was 2 feet thick and its circumference was over 50 feet. It was hung at the base of the tower, and when the wooden beam supporting it was burned in the fire of 1706, it fell to the ground and broke again. It was recast by order of Empress Anne in 1733, but it’s uncertain if it was ever hung. From 1737 to 1836, it lay buried. By order of Tsar Nicholas, De Ferrand raised it from the pit and placed it on the pedestal it sits on now. It is 2 feet thick, 21 feet high (26 feet, 4 inches including the ball and cross), 68 feet in girth, and weighs 185 tons. The fragment stands 7 feet high and weighs 11 tons. The figures represent Tsar Alexis and Empress Anne. It has a long inscription:—

“Alexis Michaelovich of happy memory, Autocrat of Great and Small Russia and of White Russia, gave the order that for the Cathedral of the pure and glorious Assumption of the Holy Virgin, a bell should be cast with 8000 poods of copper, in the year of the world 7162 and of the birth of Jesus Christ our Saviour, 1645. This bell was used in the year 7176 (A.D. 1668), and served until the year of the creation 7208 and of Jesus Christ 1701; in which last year on the 19 June it was broken in a great fire that destroyed the Kremlin: it was mute until the year of the creation ... and of our Lord.... By the command of the majestic Empress-Autocrat Anna Ivanovna, for the glory of God, of the Holy Trinity, and in honour of the Holy Virgin, in the Cathedral of her glorious Assumption, they melted the metal of the old bell of 8000 poods, damaged by the fire and added thereto 2000 poods of new metal, the year of the world 7241 and of the birth of our Saviour 1734, and the fourth of the glorious reign of Her Majesty.”

“Alexis Michaelovich, remembered fondly, the Autocrat of Great and Small Russia and White Russia, ordered a bell to be cast for the Cathedral of the pure and glorious Assumption of the Holy Virgin, using 8000 poods of copper, in the year 7162 of the world and 1645 since the birth of Jesus Christ our Savior. This bell was used in the year 7176 (A.D. 1668) and remained in service until the year 7208 of the creation and 1701 of Jesus Christ; in that last year, on June 19, it was broken in a great fire that destroyed the Kremlin and fell silent until the year of creation ... and of our Lord.... By the command of the magnificent Empress-Autocrat Anna Ivanovna, for the glory of God, the Holy Trinity, and in honor of the Holy Virgin, they melted down the metal of the old bell, weighing 8000 poods, which had been damaged in the fire, and added 2000 poods of new metal in the year 7241 of the world and 1734 since the birth of our Savior, marking the fourth year of Her Majesty's glorious reign.”

“Thirty-four bells hang in these three towers; the largest is the “big bell” of the Uspenski Sobor, which is in the middle tower and on the lowest tier. It was cast in 1817 by Bogdanof, to replace the bell broken when the tower was wrecked by the mine exploded beneath it in 1812. A bell of 7 tons is the largest in the tower of Ivan, which, originally founded in 1501 by Afanasief, has been subsequently recast; the next storey has three old bells and amongst those of the{159} highest storey are two “silver” bells. The oldest here dates from 1550; other old bells, Russian, Dutch, and others, are hung in the belfry of Spass na Boru, in that of St Michael in the courtyard of the Chudov Monastery, and in the belfry of the Vossnesenski Convent. Russian bells are not swung, but are sounded by moving the clapper, to the tongue of which the bell rope is attached; the clapper of the “Kolokol” is 14 feet in length and 6 feet in circumference. The famous bells of Moscow are:—

“Thirty-four bells hang in these three towers; the largest is the “big bell” of the Uspenski Sobor, which is in the middle tower on the lowest tier. It was cast in 1817 by Bogdanof, to replace the bell that broke when the tower was destroyed by the mine that exploded beneath it in 1812. A 7-ton bell is the largest in the tower of Ivan, which was originally founded in 1501 by Afanasief and has been recast since then; the next level has three old bells, and among those in the {159} highest level are two “silver” bells. The oldest one here dates from 1550; other old bells, Russian, Dutch, and more, are hung in the belfry of Spass na Boru, in that of St. Michael in the courtyard of the Chudov Monastery, and in the belfry of the Vossnesenski Convent. Russian bells aren’t swung; instead, they’re rung by moving the clapper, which is attached to the bell rope. The clapper of the “Kolokol” is 14 feet long and 6 feet in circumference. The famous bells of Moscow are:—

“The Tsar Kolokol, 185 tons; Assumption or ‘Big Bell’—in use—64 tons; The Thunderer (Reut), 30 tons, cast by Chokov in 1689, it also fell in 1812 but was not broken; The Every Day (Vsednievni), 15 tons, cast in 1782; The Seven-hundredth (Semisotni), 10 tons; Bear (Medvied), 7 tons; Swan (Lebeda), 7 tons; Novgorodsk, 6 tons; The ‘Wide’ Bell (Shirokoi), 4½ tons; Slobodski, 4½ tons; Rostovski, 3 tons.”

“The Tsar Kolokol, weighing 185 tons; Assumption or ‘Big Bell’—currently in use—64 tons; The Thunderer (Reut), 30 tons, cast by Chokov in 1689, which also fell in 1812 but wasn’t broken; The Every Day (Vsednievni), 15 tons, cast in 1782; The Seven-hundredth (Semisotni), 10 tons; Bear (Medvied), 7 tons; Swan (Lebeda), 7 tons; Novgorodsk, 6 tons; The ‘Wide’ Bell (Shirokoi), 4½ tons; Slobodski, 4½ tons; Rostovski, 3 tons.”

The casting of the great bells was made a state function as well as a church ceremony; as late as the nineteenth century, the old form of blessing the bell was followed in the case of the Big Bell, which is described at length by Dr Lyall who was present:—

The casting of the great bells was made a state function as well as a church ceremony; as late as the nineteenth century, the traditional way of blessing the bell was followed in the case of the Big Bell, which is described at length by Dr. Lyall, who was present:—

“On the 17th March 1817, the Archbishop Augustine went into the cavity in which the metal was to be run, and sprinkled the place with holy water, as also the metals to be used in founding the bell; gave his benediction to the masters of the foundry, and called the workmen to receive his blessing and kiss the cross. The molten metal ran by a gutter into the mould; and, the casting finished, the Archbishop again gave thanks to God. The leading inhabitants were present at the casting, and freely threw in gold and silver trinkets. On the 23rd February 1819 this bell was removed from the foundry. It was placed on an oak sledge, and after the Te Deum had been sung, a willing crowd seized the many ropes attached and drew the sledge down the Srietenka and Lubianka to the Kusnetski Most, Mokhovaya, and the whole length of the Kremlin wall to the Borovitski Gate by which it made its entrance, and reached the Belfry of Ivan Veliki, where the Te Deum was sung again. It was hung in the summer of 1819.”

“On March 17, 1817, Archbishop Augustine went into the space where the metal was going to be poured and sprinkled the area with holy water, along with the metals to be used for casting the bell. He gave his blessing to the foundry masters and called the workers to receive his blessing and kiss the cross. The molten metal flowed through a channel into the mold, and once the casting was done, the Archbishop thanked God again. Local residents attended the casting and generously contributed gold and silver trinkets. On February 23, 1819, this bell was taken out of the foundry. It was placed on an oak sled, and after the Te Deum was sung, an eager crowd grabbed the many ropes attached and pulled the sled down the Srietenka and Lubianka streets to Kusnetski Most, Mokhovaya, and along the entire length of the Kremlin wall to the Borovitski Gate, where it made its entrance and reached the Belfry of Ivan Veliki, where the Te Deum was sung again. It was hung in the summer of 1819.”

{160}

{160}

Closely allied to the art of the bell-maker was that of cannon-founder, and the Kremlin contains some curious and excellent specimens of old weapons. The most striking is the huge gun known as the Tsar Pushka, “King of Guns,” familiarly as the “drobovnik” (fowling piece), which was cast in the reign of Theodore Ivanovich (1586), by one Chokof. It weighs 36 tons, and is of too large calibre and too weak metal ever to have been used as a weapon. When Peter I. after the battle of Narva, ordered old cannon and church bells to be cast into new ordnance, this was spared. So was the mortar by its side, for it was cast by the false Dmitri, who not only took a great interest in the manufacture of fire arms, but tested them himself. Among the cannon arranged along the barrack terrace is “The Unicorn” cast in 1670; the carriage of this, of the Tsar Pushka, and of others are new, made by Baird, of St Petersburg. Along the front of the arsenal are arranged the 875 cannon, 365 French, taken from “the twenty nations” who invaded Russia with Napoleon.

Closely connected to the art of bell-making was that of cannon founding, and the Kremlin holds some interesting and impressive examples of old weaponry. The most notable is the massive cannon known as the Tsar Pushka, “King of Guns,” informally called the “drobovnik” (fowling piece), which was cast during the reign of Theodore Ivanovich in 1586 by a man named Chokof. It weighs 36 tons and is too large in caliber and made of too weak a metal to have ever been used as an actual weapon. When Peter I, following the battle of Narva, ordered old cannons and church bells to be melted down into new artillery, this one was left untouched. So was the mortar beside it, which was cast by the false Dmitri, who not only had a keen interest in making firearms but also tested them himself. Among the cannons lined up along the barrack terrace is “The Unicorn,” cast in 1670; the carriages for this, the Tsar Pushka, and others are new, made by Baird from St. Petersburg. In front of the arsenal, there are 875 cannons arranged, 365 of which are French, taken from “the twenty nations” that invaded Russia with Napoleon.

It has already been stated that the Kremlin was at one time a complete city; to a certain extent it is so still. Again and again buildings have been destroyed and restored; streets made, and swept away. In sinking the foundations for the Alexander memorial the debris of three distinct ruins superimposed showed how one town has succeeded another, and as at that point, so at many others. The exercising ground was long covered with dwellings; there were the hostelries of the Krutitski monastery, the houses of the priests, seminaries, private dwellings—at one time as many as twenty streets were to be found within the Kremlin walls. Under the barracks and the Chudov monastery are immense vaults of ancient brick; below the Synod are known to be two large chambers which have not{161}

It has already been mentioned that the Kremlin used to be a complete city; to some extent, it still is. Buildings have been destroyed and rebuilt many times; streets have been created and erased. When they dug the foundations for the Alexander memorial, they found layers of debris from three different ruins, showing how one town has replaced another, similar to many other places. The parade ground used to be filled with homes; there were inns from the Krutitski monastery, priests' houses, seminaries, and private residences—at one time, there were as many as twenty streets within the Kremlin walls. Beneath the barracks and the Chudov monastery are huge vaults made of ancient brick; below the Synod, there are known to be two large chambers that have not{161}



CHURCH OF OUR SAVIOUR BEHIND THE GOLDEN GATES

CHURCH OF OUR SAVIOUR BEHIND THE GOLDEN GATES



CHURCH OF OUR SAVIOUR BEHIND THE GOLDEN GATES

CHURCH OF OUR SAVIOR BEHIND THE GOLDEN GATES

{162}

{162}

{163}

{163}

been examined, and, in the very centre of the Kremlin, between the Tsar Pushka and the Chudov Monastery, but three feet beneath the pavement, is the basement of an old edifice, vaults of white stone, probably the remains of the palace of the Tsar Boris Godunov. The smaller palace is built upon the side of an early cemetery; at one time in the open space near Ivan Veliki criminals were publicly executed and the ukases of the Tsar proclaimed. In the same way that the Kremlin is honeycombed with vaults for the storage of great quantities of food and munitions of war, it is penetrated by different conduits for the water drawn from the bed of the neighbouring stream; a supply so plentiful and constant that the Tsar Alexis used it to flow through great lead bottomed tanks and ornamental lakes, whereon, like later Tsars, he amused himself with a toy fleet.

been examined, and right in the center of the Kremlin, between the Tsar Pushka and the Chudov Monastery, just three feet below the pavement, is the basement of an old building, vaults of white stone, likely the remains of the palace of Tsar Boris Godunov. The smaller palace is built beside an early cemetery; at one time, in the open area near Ivan Veliki, criminals were publicly executed and the ukases of the Tsar were announced. Just as the Kremlin is filled with vaults for storing large amounts of food and military supplies, it is also crisscrossed by various pipelines that carry water from the nearby stream; a supply so abundant and consistent that Tsar Alexis used it to flow through large lead-bottomed tanks and ornamental lakes, where, like later Tsars, he entertained himself with a toy fleet.

The railed in Sobornia Ploshchad has been from time immemorial the Grand enclosure. Here the religious processions formed, and form; here Dmitri Ivanovich unfurled the black standard before going out to give battle to Mamai; here most Tsars have passed to their coronation, or have walked with their brides to the altar for the wedding sacrament; across it the princes and Tsars of Moscow have been carried to their last resting place. Outside that door crouched the excommunicated Ivan Groznoi, from this the frenzied people dragged their priest, towards that the threatened metropolitan bravely made his way to officiate at a forbidden mass. Before the Grand entrance (Krasnœ Kriltso) foreign ambassadors drew up in pomp to make their calls of state, on that same terrace Ivan with his staff transfixed the foot of the brave messenger of the not less bold Kourbski, there, too, he gazed at the comet supposed to foretell his death. To this place the basket for the petitions of{164} the people was daily lowered from the Tsar’s palace window; on this spot fell the body of the murdered false Dmitri. Here at different times have gathered Tartar envoys, merchant venturers, turbulent Streltsi; the famished, the terrified and the pestilent stricken; Polish soldiers, French grenadiers, foreign fightingmen as a bodyguard, the dreaded “opritchniki”; bountiful boyards, Napoleon’s riff-raff; humble Russians to petition, pious ones to pray, grateful ones to return thanks.

The fenced-in Sobornia Ploshchad has been the Grand enclosure since ancient times. This is where religious processions began and still take place; here, Dmitri Ivanovich raised the black standard before going out to battle Mamai; here, most Tsars have passed for their coronation or walked with their brides to the altar for their wedding. Across this space, the princes and Tsars of Moscow have been carried to their final resting places. Outside that door crouched the excommunicated Ivan Grozny; from here, the frenzied crowd dragged their priest, and towards that direction, the courageous metropolitan bravely made his way to officiate at a forbidden mass. Before the Grand entrance (Krasnœ Kriltso), foreign ambassadors arrived in grandeur to make their official visits; on that same terrace, Ivan and his staff pinned the foot of the daring messenger sent by the equally bold Kourbski, and he also looked at the comet that was believed to forecast his death. At this location, a basket for the petitions of{164} the people was lowered daily from the Tsar’s palace window; on this spot fell the body of the murdered false Dmitri. Different groups have gathered here at various times: Tartar envoys, merchant adventurers, restless Streltsi; the starving, the terrified, and the plague-stricken; Polish soldiers, French grenadiers, foreign fighters as bodyguards, the feared “opritchniki”; generous boyars, Napoleon’s riff-raff; humble Russians to ask for favors, pious individuals to pray, and grateful ones to give thanks.

The imaginative visitor may conjure up amidst the buildings whatever scene he will from the history of Moscow and find adequate setting. May picture state pageantry; church ceremonial; military display; the expression of perfervid piety; the ruin following fearful disaster—whether wrought by the hand of man or the act of God. Such scenes that the walls will seem to echo in turn the laughter of homely merry-making, the huzzahs of victory, the wails of the afflicted, the uproar of the turbulent, the sighs of the worshipper—for here every emotion has been many times expressed by the varying multitudes that have thronged these courts.

The imaginative visitor can envision any scene from Moscow's history among the buildings and find the right backdrop. They might picture grand state celebrations, church ceremonies, military parades, passionate expressions of faith, or the devastation that follows a tragic event—whether caused by humans or nature. In such moments, the walls seem to resonate with the laughter of joyful gatherings, cheers of victory, cries of the suffering, chaos of the unruly, and the sighs of worshippers—because here, every emotion has been repeatedly expressed by the diverse crowds that have filled these spaces.

Entering by the tower of Philaret, the Church of the Twelve Apostles is on the extreme right, the Cathedral of the Assumption immediately in front, that of the Archangels on the left, opposite it is the Cathedral of the Annunciation communicating with the royal palaces by a terrace from which descends the wide flight of steps which as their name, Krasnœ Kriltso, indicates is the grand or state entrance to the palace. It was on this terrace that the Tsars of old allowed the people to see “the light of their eyes,” and there that those of noble race stood to be “beholden of the people.” At one time this flight had the usual porch at the foot, and a red roof above, just as the approaches to the old{165} churches and the modern house, Dom Chukina off the Tverskaia. Fires have destroyed the roofs and now an awning only is used upon state occasions. These steps flank the old Granovitaia Palace and on its other side, in an obscure corner, almost behind the Cathedral of the Assumption, is the Holy Spot of the Kremlin, being to the church what the Krasnœ Kriltso was to the state.

Entering through the Philaret Tower, the Church of the Twelve Apostles is to the far right, with the Cathedral of the Assumption directly in front and the Cathedral of the Archangels on the left. Opposite it is the Cathedral of the Annunciation, connected to the royal palaces by a terrace that leads down the broad flight of steps, known as Krasnœ Kriltso, which serves as the grand or state entrance to the palace. It was on this terrace that the Tsars of the past let the people see "the light of their eyes," and where nobles stood to be "beholden of the people." At one time, this flight had a typical porch at the bottom with a red roof overhead, similar to the entrances of old churches and the modern building, Dom Chukina off Tverskaia. Fires have destroyed the roofs, and now only an awning is used during state occasions. These steps border the old Granovitaia Palace, and on the other side, in a hidden corner almost behind the Cathedral of the Assumption, is the Holy Spot of the Kremlin, serving the church in the same way that Krasnœ Kriltso served the state.

It is the old entrance to the private apartments of the Patriarchs, and the chapel of the metropolitans, that known as the Pecherski Bogeimateri, raised on the site of the earliest stone edifice built in the Kremlin. Founded by Jonas it suffered the fate of most buildings in Moscow, but was always rebuilt in much the same style, and still conserves many characteristics of the most ancient of Moscow churches. The present building is composed of the fragments left from the fires of 1626, 1637, 1644 and 1682. The roof is vaulted, supported by four columns; the walls have pictures of the virgin and saints, and above the altar is that of the Madonna. The ikonostas has four stages and is adorned with most venerable ikons, notably those of “The Reception of the sacred vestments of the Virgin” of the Virgin of Vladimir (an early copy), and of the Holy Trinity, before which are ancient candelabra with the remains of tapers made like the old rushlights and gaily coloured. The inscription is to the effect that they were placed there by the Patriarch Joseph in 1643 and 1645. The old chandelier in the centre is by Sviechkov, a master craftsman of the Tsarian workshops in 1624. The Virgin of Pechersk, brought from Kiev, is hung upon the wall and surrounded with portraits of Peter, Alexis, Jonas, Philip, and other of the patron saints of Moscow: before this ikon all must bow or suffer eternal punishment. The church is never closed; day and night it{166} is visited by pious pilgrims and the sacred lamp is ever burning before the ikon. It communicates with the corridor of the Terem, and behind it rise the domes of the churches within the palace, notably those of the Saviour behind the Golden Gates and St Catherine’s: near them the roof of the Terem and the walls of the Granovitaia Palace complete a picture wholly Muscovite; but, if tradition may be trusted, the work upon the most picturesque portion, St Catherine’s, is due to an Englishman, one John Taylor, in the service of the Tsars.

It is the old entrance to the private apartments of the Patriarchs and the chapel of the metropolitans, known as the Pecherski Bogeimateri, built on the site of the earliest stone structure in the Kremlin. Founded by Jonas, it endured the same fate as many buildings in Moscow but was consistently rebuilt in a similar style, retaining numerous characteristics of the oldest churches in Moscow. The current building is made from fragments left over from the fires of 1626, 1637, 1644, and 1682. The roof is vaulted and supported by four columns; the walls feature images of the Virgin and saints, with a depiction of the Madonna above the altar. The ikonostas has four tiers and is decorated with revered ikons, notably “The Reception of the Sacred Vestments of the Virgin,” an early copy of the Virgin of Vladimir, and the Holy Trinity, in front of which are ancient candelabra with remnants of colorful tapers resembling old rushlights. The inscription states that they were placed there by Patriarch Joseph in 1643 and 1645. The old chandelier in the center was created by Sviechkov, a master craftsman from the Tsar’s workshops in 1624. The Virgin of Pechersk, brought from Kiev, hangs on the wall surrounded by portraits of Peter, Alexis, Jonas, Philip, and other patron saints of Moscow: before this ikon, everyone must bow or face eternal punishment. The church is never closed; day and night, it{166} is visited by devout pilgrims, and the sacred lamp continually burns before the ikon. It connects to the corridor of the Terem, and behind it rise the domes of the churches within the palace, particularly those of the Savior behind the Golden Gates and St. Catherine’s. Nearby, the roof of the Terem and the walls of the Granovitaia Palace complete a scene that is distinctly Muscovite; however, if tradition is to be believed, the work on the most picturesque area, St. Catherine’s, is credited to an Englishman, John Taylor, who served the Tsars.

On Palm Sundays there used to form in the little square before the porch the head of that procession in which the Tsar led the Patriarch, seated upon an ass, by the Redeemer Gate to the Lobnœ Mesto. Peter the Great turned the procession to mere burlesque, mounting the Patriarch upon an ox and himself playing the buffoon. Here, too, were the miracle plays and church mysteries performed in the seventeenth century, and here the church processions still form for the more stately pageants of to-day.

On Palm Sundays, a procession would start in the small square in front of the porch, where the Tsar would lead the Patriarch, who was seated on a donkey, through the Redeemer Gate to Lobnœ Mesto. Peter the Great turned the procession into a comedy by putting the Patriarch on an ox and acting like a clown himself. This was also the location for miracle plays and church mysteries performed in the seventeenth century, and today, church processions still gather here for the more grand celebrations.

The only old private dwelling remaining within the Kremlin is that now known as the Potieshni Dvorets, or “palace of amusements,” which was originally the house of the boyards Miloslavski and was acquired by the crown after the marriage of the Tsar Alexis with Maria Miloslavski. The interior has now nothing of particular interest, but the exterior is an excellent example of Russian architecture as modified by mid-European influence in the late seventeenth century. Part of the third and fourth storeys instead of retreating, in the Russian style, is made to project, but the “belvedere,” with a balcony all round, is retained for the top storey; retained, too, are the bulbous pillars which serve as, or decorate the side posts of doors and windows, and the long pendant keystones to form the{167} double-arch instead of a lintel; all of which are peculiar to Russian architecture.

The only old private residence left in the Kremlin is the Potieshni Dvorets, or “palace of amusements,” which was originally the home of the Miloslavski boyars and was taken over by the crown after Tsar Alexis married Maria Miloslavski. The interior doesn't have much of interest now, but the exterior is a great example of Russian architecture influenced by Central European styles in the late 17th century. Instead of receding like in traditional Russian style, part of the third and fourth floors projects outward, but the “belvedere” with a surrounding balcony is kept for the top floor; the distinctive bulbous pillars that either serve as or decorate the door and window posts, along with the long hanging keystones that create the{167} double-arch instead of a lintel, are also preserved, all of which are unique to Russian architecture.



POTIESHNI DVORETS (PLEASURE PALACE)

POTIESHNI DVORETS (PLEASURE PALACE)

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Pleasure Palace

Several explanations for the common use of the {168}ogival arch, the bulbous dome, and the double arch with hanging keystones, have been advanced by antiquaries, but none are altogether satisfactory. The errors have possibly resulted from studying masonry to the exclusion of carpentry, and the early Slavs were users of wood—not of stone or brick. It may be that these forms were due to the execution in light elastic wood of arches and vaults copied from foreign work composed of voussoirs, but such is unlikely. Assuming that round wood poles, the stems of the plentiful young birch trees, and wattles were the materials of which the frames of the early dwellings were constructed, then such forms naturally result.

Several explanations for the common use of the {168}ogival arch, the rounded dome, and the double arch with hanging keystones have been put forward by historians, but none are entirely convincing. The confusion might come from focusing on masonry without considering carpentry, and the early Slavs primarily used wood—not stone or brick. It's possible that these designs were influenced by the construction of arches and vaults in light, flexible wood that were modeled after foreign structures made of stone blocks, but that seems unlikely. If we assume that round wooden poles, the stems of plentiful young birch trees, and woven branches were what the early houses were built from, then these shapes make sense.

If the ends of poles are stuck into the earth, and the opposite extremities brought to a common centre and weight—as that of the roof—added, the timbers will sag and a concave section result. That this was one Russian form of roof, the illustration of the Belvedere of the Terem exemplifies (see page 117), where the curve is purposely exaggerated for the purpose of decorative effect. If, instead of being placed loosely in the earth to allow of this set, the poles are thrust down deep into the soil or otherwise made immovable and the upper extremities forcibly brought in towards the centre and fastened there, then when the weight of the roof bends the poles, they will bulge outward in the middle, and when the weight of the roof has been so adjusted as to correct the curve in order to give to the structure the desired greatest possible interior space for domestic accommodation, then the bulbous dome naturally results if the poles be arranged in a circle. The ogival arch is only a section of that.

If the ends of poles are stuck into the ground, and the opposite ends are brought together at a common center with weight added—like that of the roof—the timbers will bend and form a concave shape. This was one Russian style of roof, as shown in the illustration of the Belvedere of the Terem (see page 117), where the curve is intentionally exaggerated for decorative effect. If, instead of being placed loosely in the ground to allow for this bending, the poles are driven deep into the soil or otherwise made stable, and the upper ends are forcibly brought toward the center and secured there, then when the weight of the roof bends the poles, they will bulge outward in the middle. When the weight of the roof is adjusted to correct the curve to provide the maximum possible interior space for living, a bulbous dome will naturally form if the poles are arranged in a circle. The pointed arch is just a section of that.

Granted that if the poles cross each other near the tops a more or less concave cone will result—as exemplified in the tepoes of the American Indians—yet if instead of two or three poles, many more have to be brought to the common apex it will be{169} easier not to cross them but bind all firmly to each other—or a central post—then the ogival section must result. If a single pole is bent to form the support of a roof and both its extremities are thrust into the ground, the horseshoe arch is obtained as soon as the weight of the roof acts upon such supports. If, instead of the single pole, two shorter ones are taken and instead of being lashed together to form the pointed arch the upper extremities are brought towards each other and downwards and then lashed, a more rigid bow is obtained, and this is the crude form of the double arch with pendant keystone so common in Moscow; and its use generally is over doorways, etc., where a wide span with great stability is required, and with poles as the only available material this form gives rigidity not obtainable by bending to any other so simple form.

If the poles cross each other near the top, they'll create a somewhat concave cone, like what's seen in the tepoes of Native Americans. However, if instead of two or three poles, many more are brought to a common point, it's easier to not cross them but securely bind them all together—or to a central post—resulting in an ogival shape. When a single pole is bent to support a roof and both ends are pushed into the ground, the horseshoe arch forms as soon as the roof's weight is applied to the supports. If, instead of one long pole, two shorter ones are used and instead of tying them together to create a pointed arch, the upper ends are brought toward each other and downward, then tied together, a more rigid bow is formed. This is a basic version of the double arch with a hanging keystone that's commonly seen in Moscow. This design is typically used over doorways, etc., where a wide span with strong support is needed, and when poles are the only material available, this shape provides stability that can't be achieved by bending into any other simple form.

The form of arched vault that had served as the lowly dwelling of a primitive people was retained in its entirety for the roof of later and larger buildings; the walls, whether of logs or shaped timber, served as imposts, just as the soil had done, and so the bulbous domes, the square and oblong attic roofs with their characteristic gonflements have been retained. It is merely an example of the persistence as decoration of forms which were originally wholly utilitarian. This is particularly the case with the double arch where the pendant keystone descends to the level of the imposts and is of course supported from the lintel when executed in masonry. Another characteristic Russian form is the circular arch of masonry, which has the voussoirs of the intrados of the usual regular form but of the extrados slightly elevated at the corner to indicate the “ogival arch,” which was the common form of the wooden arch in Moscow. As already stated (ch. ii.) the early forms of Russian dwellings may{170} be studied from the models in the Historical Museum; one peculiarity is that each successive storey is set back from that immediately below instead of projecting as in the half-timbered houses, of mediæval England. In addition to the belvederes of the Terem and Potieshni Dvorets, it is noticeable in the towers of the Kremlin wall. They were originally of timber and the earlier form is retained—even to the double walls and tiers—so necessary to a wooden bulwark, but quite foreign to the method of the Italian masons who erected these buildings. The steep roofs of the towers is also common and convenient in constructing with timber, but needless and difficult when working with tiles and bricks. So long as these remain the wooden original Moscow cannot be wholly forgotten.

The arched vault that once served as a simple home for a primitive people was fully preserved as the roof for later, larger buildings; the walls, made of logs or cut timber, acted as supports, just like the soil had, leading to the preservation of bulbous domes and the characteristic square or rectangular attic roofs. This is simply an example of how decorative forms have persisted that were originally functional. This is especially true for the double arch, where the hanging keystone lowers to the level of the supports and is naturally supported by the lintel when made of masonry. Another distinct Russian style is the circular masonry arch, which has the normal shapes for the inner stones but is slightly elevated at the corners of the outer stones to indicate the "ogival arch," a common feature of wooden arches in Moscow. As mentioned previously (ch. ii), early Russian dwellings can be seen in models at the Historical Museum; one unique aspect is that each subsequent floor is set back from the one below instead of extending out like in the half-timbered houses of medieval England. This is also evident in the towers of the Kremlin wall, where the belvederes of the Terem and Potieshni Dvorets stand out. They were originally built from wood, and the earlier style, complete with double walls and tiers essential for a wooden fortress, is still visible, although it's quite different from the methods used by the Italian masons who built these structures. The steep roofs of the towers are also common and practical for timber construction, but they become unnecessary and challenging when working with tiles and bricks. As long as these structures exist, the original wooden Moscow cannot be completely forgotten.

The attempt to retain the pyramidal or retreating form when building with bricks has resulted in a distinctly Muscovite style for towers and spires. Instead of a parapet on the walls of the tower, a tier of small circular arches is imposed, and form the crowns of these, also set back, spring the voussoirs of a second tier, and in like manner other tiers until the desired height is reached for the spire, or the cylindrical shaft that is to support the dome, or whatever other ornament is used to crown the structure. One of the best examples of this form is the church of the Nativity on the Mala Dmitrovka, which was built in the “golden” period of Moscow—1625-1680—when for all buildings of first importance masonry had supplanted the use of wood (see p. 181). The earlier form may be seen in the roof of the Blagovieshchenski Sobor; and the varieties of pattern are reproduced in the attic roofs of the Historical Museum building.

The effort to maintain a pyramidal or receding shape when constructing with bricks has led to a unique Moscow style for towers and spires. Instead of having a parapet on the tower walls, there’s a row of small circular arches, and from the tops of these, which are also set back, emerge the voussoirs of a second row, and similarly other rows until the spire reaches the desired height, or the cylindrical shaft that will support the dome, or any other decoration used to top off the structure. One of the best examples of this style is the Church of the Nativity on Mala Dmitrovka, built during Moscow's "golden" period—from 1625 to 1680—when masonry had replaced wood for significant buildings (see p. 181). The earlier style can be seen in the roof of Blagovieshchenski Sobor, and various patterns are reflected in the attic roofs of the Historical Museum building.

The absurdity of the pendant keystone in the double{171} arch is demonstrated by the arch over the doorway to the courtyard of the synod, and the lintels of doors and windows of the Potieshni Dvorets.

The ridiculousness of the pendant keystone in the double{171} arch is shown by the arch over the entrance to the courtyard of the synod, as well as the lintels of the doors and windows of the Potieshni Dvorets.

The magnificent monument to the Great Tsar Liberator, Alexander II., is the latest addition to the Kremlin, that heart of Moscow which echoes the glorious past of the Russian empire and is its true Pantheon. None have graced it more than those early Romanofs whose work is evident in every ancient building, but still more imperishable was the noble labour of him to whom this generation has expressed its gratitude in an imposing and characteristic memorial to the most loved Tsar.{172}

The impressive monument to the Great Tsar Liberator, Alexander II, is the newest feature of the Kremlin, the center of Moscow that reflects the glorious history of the Russian empire and serves as its true Pantheon. None have contributed more than the early Romanovs, whose influence is visible in every historic building, but even more enduring was the noble effort of the man to whom this generation has paid tribute with a striking and distinctive memorial to the beloved Tsar.{172}

CHAPTER IX

Moscow of the Ecclesiastics

"Come, brothers! You can bow your heads,
Before the magnificent and holiest Moscow; Where the ancient altars of our land,
Where shrines of saints and icons stand,
Our innermost sanctuary.” —Borozdna.

HOLY Moscow, so reverently and affectionately regarded by the orthodox as the Mother of the Church, is to them more than a mere agglomeration of sacred shrines and ecclesiastical edifices. Neither the churches—though they are numerous and important enough to warrant the familiar appellation—nor yet the wonder-working, incorruptible remains and the miraculous ikons most endear Moscow to the true-believer—for there are such elsewhere which receive like humble homage. Holy Moscow comprises all that has served to nurse and sustain the faith amidst infidel aggression; the white-walled and golden-crowned city is symbolic of the lasting reward of heroic endeavour in the upward struggle of the race towards supremacy. Not indestructible itself, but its spirit undying; razed time after time only to appear again greater and more glorious than before, Moscow seems to the Russian not so much a part of the national entity personified in empire, as the very soul of his race; possessed, even as each individual, with strength to endure adversity and unfailing vigour to accomplish a predestined purpose. Traditions{173} of divine intervention; the finding and promulgation of Law; much that is miraculous and legendary as well as all that is credible in early national history the Russian associates with Moscow, and feels what the stranger cannot be made to perceive, may even fail to comprehend, for the outward and visible sign of the living spirit that actuates the Church is but faint and imperfect, even as performance is so often but an inadequate rendering of intention. Although the sanctity of Moscow may not be apparent to the unorthodox, the observer will expect some characteristics of motive to stand revealed in externals. But to the uninitiated the ritual of the Russian Church is bewildering, and the true significance of such symbols as are exhibited in ecclesiastical architecture and ornament is likely to be missed by over accentuating the importance of whatever may be unusual. For many, who are quite ignorant of its tenets and practice, the Eastern Church has an irresistible fascination; the danger is that these, on a first acquaintance will over-praise such details as they may appreciate and too hastily condemn others they may not rightly comprehend, and fail to arrive at a just conclusion by means of further study when no longer attracted by the novelty of the subject. To confine oneself to the consideration of externals is insufficient, being tantamount to the act of one who, absolutely ignorant of card games, endeavours to obtain an idea of the amusement derived from their play by careful examination of the accurate printing and careful finish of certain cards in the pack. On the other hand an attempt to convey by words alone an accurate idea of the full teaching of the Eastern Church is foredoomed to failure, and the most that can be done is to indicate the broad lines of the policy that has actuated it, and risk such errors as must accrue from possible mistranslations of meaning.{174}

HOLY Moscow, deeply respected by the Orthodox as the Mother of the Church, is much more to them than just a collection of holy sites and church buildings. It’s not just the numerous and significant churches, or even the miraculous remains and icons that endear Moscow to true believers—such treasures exist elsewhere and are met with the same humble reverence. Holy Moscow represents everything that has nurtured and upheld faith in the face of infidel challenges; the white-walled, golden-crowned city symbolizes the enduring reward of courageous efforts in humanity’s struggle for greatness. Though not indestructible, its spirit remains eternal; it has been destroyed time after time, only to rise again greater and more glorious than before. To the Russian, Moscow is not merely a part of the national identity embodied in the empire, but the very soul of their people; possessing, like each individual, the strength to endure hardships and the relentless energy to fulfill a destined purpose. Traditions of divine intervention, the discovery and spread of Law, and all that is miraculous and legendary—as well as credible facets of early national history—are associated with Moscow. Russians feel what outsiders may not understand or perceive, for the visible signs of the living spirit of the Church are often faint and imperfect, much like how performances can sometimes fail to convey true intentions. While the sanctity of Moscow may not be clear to those outside the faith, an observer might expect to see some motives revealed through external characteristics. However, for the uninitiated, the rituals of the Russian Church can be overwhelming, and the deeper meaning of symbols seen in church architecture and decoration can easily be missed if one focuses too much on what seems unusual. For many who know little about its beliefs and practices, the Eastern Church is irresistibly fascinating; the risk is that they may overly praise some details they admire and hastily criticize others they don’t fully grasp, missing out on a fair assessment through further study once the novelty wears off. Limiting oneself to just the external aspects is inadequate, much like someone completely unfamiliar with card games trying to understand the enjoyment of them by only examining the quality of the printed cards. Conversely, any attempt to convey the full teachings of the Eastern Church through words alone is destined to fall short; all that can be done is to highlight its main principles while risking errors from potential mistranslations of meaning.{174}

All Christian races treasure some legend as to the conversion of their forefathers by one of the Apostles. The Russians are no exception, and, in any event, the introduction of Christianity into their country took place in the heroic age.

All Christian cultures have some story about how their ancestors were converted by one of the Apostles. The Russians are no different, and, in any case, the introduction of Christianity into their land happened during a heroic time.

“Novgorod, a city of great antiquity, having been founded by Rha, a grandson of Noah and son of Japhet, was visited by the Apostle St Andrew who wished to preach the gospel. The people would not listen to him, and having disrobed the saint threw him bound into a scalding bath. The saint distressed, and almost suffocated by the vapour, called out ‘ιδρωσα’ (I sweat), whence the name Russia. Other histories state that the conversion of the race took place some thousand years later, when, strange as it may appear, the Polyans were first called Russ, as some think from ‘ros,’ the old German name for ‘horse.’ There is a tradition that Vladimir the Great, having conquered fresh territory, became tired of his pagan gods and expressed a desire to embrace a newer faith. With the Christianity of Rome he would have nothing to do, for, he said, his relations in the west had embraced that, and yet were always at war and without good fortune. The Karaïm Jews of South Russia wished to convert him, but when he learned that they were exiled from the land of their fathers and had no country of their own, he refused, saying they were receiving the harvest of their sins and that he had no wish to cause his people to share their punishment. Then hearing that at Constantinople another religion was professed he sent delegates thither to observe and judge whether or not it would suit him. These Russians were astonished at the many lights in the temple; were moved by the singing and the stately procession of deacons, sub-deacons and others to and from the sacristy, and, particularly, at the humble manner in which the people prostrated themselves when the priests appeared. The ritual they did not understand and asked their guides what it all meant. ‘All that we have seen,’ they said, ‘is awful and majestic, but what seems to us supernatural is the young men who have white wings and dazzling robes, and cry “Holy! Holy! Holy!” in mid-air—this truly surprises us.’ ‘What?’ answered the guides, ‘do you not know that angels come down from heaven to our services?’ ‘You are right,’ said the Russians; ‘it is enough—more we do not wish to see; let us return to our country and tell of that which we have already seen.”

“Novgorod, a city of great age, was founded by Rha, a grandson of Noah and son of Japhet. The Apostle St. Andrew visited it to preach the gospel. The people didn’t listen to him and, after undressing him, threw him into a scalding bath. The saint, distressed and nearly suffocated by the steam, cried out ‘sweated’ (I sweat), from which the name Russia is derived. Other accounts say that the conversion of the people happened a thousand years later, when, strangely enough, the Polyans were first called Russ, possibly from ‘ros,’ the old German word for ‘horse.’ There’s a tradition that Vladimir the Great, after conquering new lands, grew tired of his pagan gods and wanted to adopt a new faith. He wanted nothing to do with Roman Christianity, claiming that his relatives in the west practiced it but were always at war and unlucky. The Karaïm Jews of South Russia tried to convert him, but when he found out they were exiled from their homeland and had no country, he refused, saying they were suffering the consequences of their sins and he didn’t want his people to share in their punishment. Then, upon hearing that another religion was practiced in Constantinople, he sent delegates there to observe and determine if it would be suitable for him. The Russians were astonished by the many lights in the temple; they were moved by the singing and the grand procession of deacons, sub-deacons, and others moving to and from the sacristy, particularly impressed by how humbly the people prostrated themselves when the priests came. They didn’t understand the rituals and asked their guides what everything meant. ‘Everything we have seen,’ they said, ‘is awe-inspiring and majestic, but what seems supernatural to us are the young men with white wings and dazzling robes who shout “Holy! Holy! Holy!” in mid-air—this truly amazes us.’ ‘What?’ the guides replied. ‘You don’t know that angels come down from heaven to our services?’ ‘You’re right,’ said the Russians; ‘that’s enough—more we don’t want to see; let’s go back to our country and tell what we have already witnessed.”

{175}

{175}

If the early chronicles may be trusted, the Bible was first translated into Slavic by Cyril and Methodius, two Greek monks of Byzantium, about the year 863, and so prior to the advent of the Norseman Rurik. In all probability, the faith was spread by proselytising clergy, in part helped by the devotion of the noble women of Byzantium who wedded with the savage Ros, and from the first was wholly independent of the civil power.

If the early records are to be believed, the Bible was first translated into Slavic by Cyril and Methodius, two Greek monks from Byzantium, around the year 863, which was before the arrival of the Norseman Rurik. Most likely, the faith was spread by missionary clergy, aided in part by the commitment of noble women from Byzantium who married the wild Ros, and from the start, it was completely separate from government influence.

Of persecution there was little; Kiev furnished one Vœrœger martyr, and, as elsewhere among heathen, the Christian religion appears to have been readily embraced. Before the Kremlin was raised, before Moscow was, the church was represented on the banks of the Moskva by the little wooden chapel “spass na Boru.” Ivan Kalita was one of the first to recognise the usefulness of the church as an adjunct to civil and military power; he made priests not only welcome in Moscow but all important there. How the reigning princes caused the church in Moscow to rival in authority that of Kiev and, later, to attain supremacy throughout Russia, has already been stated. Of equal importance to the work initiated by any Tsar were the services of St Sergius, founder of the great monastery at Troitsa, which at one time possessed immense tracts of land and owned more than 100,000 serfs. Sergius was born at Great Rostov, and in his youth passed some time near Moscow, and later, having a dozen disciples and the aid of the Patriarch of Constantinople, helped greatly the colonisation of Russia by sending out monks trained at Troitsa. He lived the life of a hermit, and even when abbot did his full share of the menial labour. A commonly seen picture represents him as an old man seated on a rough bench sharing his piece of bread with a bear. Then came St Peter, an apostle sent from Macedonia, who, as a sign “passed through the fire” uninjured; after converting many he settled at Kiev and{176} was of great assistance to George Danielovich in raising the clerical status of Moscow, and to his “incorruptible remains” many miracles are attributed. A large number of relics assigned to him are still preserved in the Uspenski Sobor and the sacristy of the Patriarchs. Next in importance to Moscow was Alexis, the Metropolitan, afterwards canonised. From the earliest times, the clergy, living the life of the people and not that of the military caste, had great influence with citizens and peasants: many times the church has raised the spirit of the nation when oppressed by foreign invaders. It spurred on Ivan III. to overthrow the Mongol rule, and stirred up the people to repulse the Poles and secure national independence. One source of its power has been the use of the vernacular in all services; the church most certainly during the centuries of Tartar dominion also preserved the Slavic tongue from foreign dialects. The clergy have always held it their chief duty to pass on to their successors their faith as they received it. Schism is not tolerated; the slightest modification of ritual is forbidden. The Metropolitans of Moscow were long able to preserve the independence of the church against the encroachments of the reigning princes; Ivan the Terrible’s chief plaint against the clergy was that they exercised their privilege of forbidding the execution of those whom he had condemned to death. Boris Godunov gave Moscow a Patriarch, and added to the power of the church by appointing seven of the clergy to seats in the States Council. When, in 1615, the Tsar Michael met his father, the Patriarch Philaret, on the banks of the Pressenaia (near the Drogomilov Bridge) both bowed low and remained long recumbent, unwilling that either should consider the head of the church superior or inferior to the head of the state. From that time until Philaret’s death in 1639 father and son{177} practically ruled conjointly. Nikon was scarce content to be the equal of his sovereign, and ranked the church above the state: he fell. Peter the Great scornfully suppressed the Patriarchate, but did not arrogate to himself the powers of the head of the church, substituting a synod to be elected from the hierarchy he himself appointed. So it remains to the present day, the reigning monarch having no right, from his position, to interfere in spiritual affairs, yet still controlling the administration of church law.

Of persecution, there was little; Kiev produced one Vœrœger martyr, and, similar to other pagan places, the Christian faith seems to have been easily accepted. Before the Kremlin was built, before Moscow existed, the church was represented by the small wooden chapel "spass na Boru" on the banks of the Moskva River. Ivan Kalita was one of the first to realize the value of the church as a support for civil and military power; he not only welcomed priests in Moscow but made them very important there. The way the ruling princes helped the church in Moscow compete with the authority of Kiev and eventually become dominant across Russia has already been discussed. Alongside the work started by any Tsar, the contributions of St. Sergius, the founder of the great monastery at Troitsa, were equally significant; at one point, it owned vast lands and more than 100,000 serfs. Sergius was born in Great Rostov and spent some time near Moscow in his youth, later gathering a dozen disciples and receiving support from the Patriarch of Constantinople, which greatly aided the colonization of Russia as he sent out monks trained at Troitsa. He lived the life of a hermit, and even as an abbot, he participated in manual labor. A common depiction shows him as an old man sitting on a rough bench sharing his bread with a bear. Then came St. Peter, an apostle sent from Macedonia, who, as a sign, "passed through the fire" unharmed; after converting many people, he settled in Kiev and was a great help to George Danielovich in elevating the clerical status of Moscow, with many miracles attributed to his “incorruptible remains.” Numerous relics assigned to him are still kept in the Uspenski Sobor and the sacristy of the Patriarchs. Next in importance to Moscow was Alexis, the Metropolitan, who was later canonized. From the earliest days, the clergy, living among the people rather than as a military class, wielded considerable influence over citizens and peasants: the church has often uplifted the nation's spirit when oppressed by foreign invaders. It inspired Ivan III to overthrow Mongol rule and rallied the people to repel the Poles and secure national independence. One source of its strength has been the use of the vernacular in all services; throughout the centuries of Tartar domination, the church certainly helped to protect the Slavic language from foreign dialects. The clergy always considered it their main duty to pass on their faith to their successors as they received it. Schism is not tolerated; even the slightest change in ritual is prohibited. The Metropolitans of Moscow were able to maintain the church's independence against the encroachments of reigning princes for a long time; Ivan the Terrible’s main complaint against the clergy was that they exercised their right to forbid the execution of those he had sentenced to death. Boris Godunov established a Patriarch in Moscow and strengthened the church's power by appointing seven clergy members to the States Council. When, in 1615, Tsar Michael met his father, Patriarch Philaret, by the banks of the Pressenaia (near the Drogomilov Bridge), both bowed deeply and remained long in that position, unwilling for either to appear superior or inferior to the other. From that moment until Philaret’s death in 1639, father and son effectively ruled together. Nikon was rarely satisfied with being equal to his sovereign and positioned the church above the state: he fell from power. Peter the Great dismissively abolished the Patriarchate but did not claim the powers of the church’s head, instead establishing a synod elected from the hierarchy he appointed. This system continues to this day, with the reigning monarch having no right to interfere in spiritual matters, yet still overseeing the administration of church law.

In matters of belief the Eastern church nearly approaches the Anglican, the main divergence is that whereas the Anglican and Roman churches agree that the Holy Ghost proceeds from the Father and the Son, the Eastern Church holds that it proceeds from the Father only. The bible may be read; the church may interpret its teaching, “for the traditions of the church have been maintained uncorrupted through the influence of the Holy Spirit.” God the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, “perfectly equal in nature and dignity,” may alone be worshipped; but homage may be paid to the Virgin Mary, and reverence shown to the saints, to ikons and to relics. That this may not be abused, bishops at their consecration are requested to promise that “honour shall be shown to God only, not to the sacred ikons, and that no false miracle shall be ascribed to them.... The moshi or incorruptible remains which are so greatly venerated, are the corpses of those long dead, whose burial-place has been forgotten and is made known by a supernatural manifestation. These remains must not be subject to the ordinary process of decay, and may possess such virtue as to miraculously cure the sick—which is the quality usually attributed to them.”

In terms of beliefs, the Eastern Church is quite similar to the Anglican Church, with the main difference being that while the Anglican and Roman churches agree that the Holy Spirit comes from both the Father and the Son, the Eastern Church believes it comes from the Father alone. The Bible can be read, and the church is responsible for interpreting its teachings, “because the traditions of the church have been kept intact through the influence of the Holy Spirit.” God the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit, “perfectly equal in nature and dignity,” are the only ones to be worshipped; however, honor can be given to the Virgin Mary, and respect shown to the saints, icons, and relics. To prevent any misuse of this, bishops at their consecration are asked to promise that “honor shall be given to God only, not to the sacred icons, and that no false miracle shall be attributed to them.... The moshi or incorruptible remains that are highly revered are the bodies of those who have long since passed away, whose burial sites have been forgotten and revealed through a supernatural manifestation. These remains must not undergo the usual process of decay, and they may hold the ability to miraculously heal the sick—which is the characteristic usually associated with them.”

The ecclesiastical architecture of Moscow, or of Russia, is not so complex as it appears to be at first sight; originally the place for Christian worship was but a square log-hut; add an apse at the east end, cover the building with a dome roof supporting a cross to indicate its sacred character, and the external structure of the primitive church is complete. Instead of a dome roof it was found easier, as larger buildings became{178} necessary, to cover with the dome only the centre of the church, which was still further elevated to make more prominent the dome and cross denoting the purpose of the building. Three apses, symbolic of the Trinity, took the place of one; five and seven are sometimes found. When the idea of the original whole dome roof was expressed by four small domes arranged around the higher central one, the model became the permanent type from which all other forms have been elaborated. The primitive type is best exemplified in the church of St Michael within the Chudov monastery, but the cathedrals of the Assumption and of the Archangels, on the Sobornia Ploshchad of the Kremlin, will serve equally well to illustrate the permanent form. The origin and development of the bulbous dome, as well as the size, position and number of secondary domes, may be traced by comparing the various old churches in South Russia, and those of wood, formerly or at present existing in “wooden” Russia. For this purpose a convenient series of framed drawings is to be found on stands in Room β of the Historical Museum. They confirm what has already been stated in the preceding chapter, concerning the origin of Russian architecture, and show that the number of domes—some churches have seventeen, if not more—is immaterial, since all should be so arranged as to increase the importance of the central one. Those in which all are equal in size and height—as the roof over the chapels of the Terem—are quite exceptional. The chief modification arose from the necessity of preserving the structure and its valued contents from the great cold of the winter and the excessive moisture of the summer. To overcome the first difficulty the church was surrounded with a gallery; to obviate the second the floor of the church raised to a higher storey; when the two were combined as in{179} many churches of the sixteenth and seventeenth century, some elaboration of proaulion and Kriltso was natural. The best specimens of this class are the churches of St Nicholas of the Great Cross on the Ilyinka, and of the Assumption on the Pokrovka; the ordinary design is that of the porches and approach to Vasili Blajenni, and of the Blagovieshchenski Sobor before the ground was raised to its present level.

The church architecture of Moscow, and of Russia as a whole, isn't as complicated as it might seem at first glance. Initially, the place of Christian worship was just a square log cabin; add an apse at the east end, cover the building with a dome roof that has a cross on top to signify its sacred purpose, and you've got the basic structure of the early church. As larger buildings became necessary, it was easier to put a dome only over the center of the church, which was raised to make the dome and cross stand out even more. Three apses, representing the Trinity, replaced the single apse; five or seven can sometimes be seen. When the concept of a single dome roof was represented by four smaller domes around a taller central one, this design became the standard from which all other styles evolved. The original type is best showcased in the Church of St. Michael within the Chudov Monastery, but the cathedrals of the Assumption and the Archangels, located in Sobornia Ploshchad of the Kremlin, are also great examples. We can trace the origin and development of the bulbous dome, as well as the size, placement, and number of smaller domes, by looking at various old churches in Southern Russia and those made of wood, either historically or currently, in “wooden” Russia. For this, there's a useful collection of framed drawings on display in Room β of the Historical Museum. These confirm what was covered in the previous chapter about the beginnings of Russian architecture and show that the number of domes—some churches have seventeen or even more—doesn't really matter, as they all need to be arranged to emphasize the main dome. Churches where all the domes are the same size and height—like the roof over the chapels of the Terem—are quite rare. The main change came from the need to protect the building and its valuable contents from the severe cold in winter and the excessive moisture in summer. To tackle the first issue, a gallery surrounded the church; to address the second, the church floor was raised to a higher level. When these two solutions were combined, as seen in many churches from the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries, some embellishments of proaulion and Kriltso were quite natural. The best examples of this style are the churches of St. Nicholas of the Great Cross on the Ilyinka and the Assumption on the Pokrovka; the typical design includes the porches and approach to Vasili Blajenni, as well as that of the Blagovieshchenski Sobor before the ground was raised to its current level.

The belfry, a somewhat late comer to the Russian church, was usually a separate building adjacent to, but not a component part of, the church itself. When masonry superseded wood, the old designs were for the most part retained: so possibly the only other important point of general application is the subsequent employment of the tapering spire—and its modifications of superposed arches, etc.—to support the dome and cross, instead of the cylindrical shaft peculiar to Russian architecture, which last was evidently derived from round towers of very remote origin. The windows are small and unimportant—often mere oblong slits in the wall—and, though the accepted form admits of little modification towards the elaboration of elegance and grace in the design, and the decoration is limited by the ecclesiastical objection to carved figures—and climatic conditions which preclude the employment of projecting mouldings and all fine work in high relief—the brilliant colouring and mural decorations of plane surfaces convey an impression of richness, which, combined with the absence of the usual and conspicuousness of strange decorations, magnify the whole, in many instances, into the resemblance of whatever the imagination may picture as most ornate and brilliant.

The belfry, a somewhat late addition to the Russian church, was usually a separate building next to, but not part of, the church itself. When masonry replaced wood, the old designs were mostly kept: so possibly the only other important point of general application is the later use of the tapering spire—and its variations with superposed arches, etc.—to support the dome and cross, instead of the cylindrical shaft unique to Russian architecture, which evidently came from round towers of very ancient origin. The windows are small and insignificant—often just narrow slits in the wall—and, even though the accepted design allows for little modification to enhance elegance and grace, and decoration is limited by religious restrictions against carved figures—and weather conditions that prevent the use of projecting moldings and intricate relief work—the vivid colors and mural decorations on flat surfaces create a sense of richness, which, when combined with the lack of typical unusual decorations, often make the whole structure appear as ornate and brilliant as one can imagine.

In essentials the interior arrangements of all the churches are similar: east of the pillars that support the central dome, the church is divided by the ikonostas—a development of the rood-screen—which{180} separates the officiating priests from the worshippers. In old churches seats were placed round the walls and stalls provided for persons of high rank, but for long it has been customary for the congregation to stand during the services. Behind the ikonostas is the sanctuary; there females may not enter, nor any male if physically imperfect; it is disclosed to the worshippers during the celebration of Mass by opening the “Royal Doors” in the centre of the ikonostas. There are in all churches sacred ikons, having the place of honour on the ikonostas; decorative and illustrative pictures are placed there also, and the same—as frescoes, or otherwise—around the central columns and along the walls of the church. Usually the north wall is appointed for those pertaining to the saint to whom the church is dedicated; the south wall to the seven councils, the west to other sacred subjects. Although the ikonostas is the equivalent of the rood-screen in the old English churches, it is not only always a fixture, but sometimes a solid partition of masonry, being really that barrier which shuts off the Holy of Holies, that may be entered by the consecrated priests alone, from the rest of the temple. It is always decorated, but the high ikonostas, having five, or even seven, tiers of pictures is a development later than the fifteenth century. The “Royal Doors” must have representations of the Annunciation and the four Evangelists, since through this entrance came the glad tidings of the Eucharist; right and left of the doors the Saviour and the Madonna; also, usually, Adam, as the first fallen, and the Penitent Thief as the first redeemed; above, the Trinity; Abraham entertaining the three angels and John the Baptist most frequently figure on the screen, and, on the pillars facing the entrance, the Publican and Pharisee as symbolic of an all inclusive congregation of worshippers.{181}

In essence, the interior layout of all churches is similar: to the east of the pillars supporting the central dome, the church is divided by the ikonostas—a development of the rood-screen—which{180} separates the officiating priests from the worshippers. In older churches, seating was arranged along the walls with stalls for people of high rank, but for a long time, congregations have customarily stood during services. Behind the ikonostas is the sanctuary, which women cannot enter, nor can any man who is physically impaired; it is revealed to the worshippers during the Mass when the "Royal Doors" in the center of the ikonostas are opened. All churches have sacred ikons that take pride of place on the ikonostas; there are also decorative and illustrative images placed there, as well as frescoes or other artworks around the central columns and along the walls of the church. Typically, the north wall is designated for the saint to whom the church is dedicated; the south wall is for the seven councils, and the west wall displays other sacred subjects. Although the ikonostas is the equivalent of the rood-screen in old English churches, it is not only a permanent fixture but can also be a solid masonry partition, serving as the barrier that separates the Holy of Holies, which only consecrated priests may enter, from the rest of the temple. It is always decorated, but a high ikonostas with five or even seven tiers of pictures developed later than the fifteenth century. The "Royal Doors" must depict the Annunciation and the four Evangelists, as this entrance symbolizes the joyful message of the Eucharist; to the right and left of the doors, the Saviour and the Madonna are usually depicted, along with Adam, symbolizing the first fallen, and the Penitent Thief, as representing the first redeemed; above them is the Trinity. Abraham hosting the three angels and John the Baptist frequently appear on the screen, and on the pillars facing the entrance, the Publican and Pharisee symbolize an all-inclusive congregation of worshippers.{181}

In the Sanctuary is a tabernacle or Sinai, upon the altar, and over it a baldachino on which the cross is laid horizontally—or nearly so. In the apse behind

In the Sanctuary is a tabernacle or Sinai, upon the altar, and over it a baldachino on which the cross is laid horizontally—or nearly so. In the apse behind



CHURCH OF THE NATIVITY AND FLIGHT

CHURCH OF THE NATIVITY AND FLIGHT



CHURCH OF THE NATIVITY AND FLIGHT

CHURCH OF THE NATIVITY AND FLIGHT

the altar is the thronos or seat of the head of the church, with other seats for priests on both sides; the choir is a raised dais before the ikonostas.

the altar is the thronos or seat of the head of the church, with other seats for priests on both sides; the choir is a raised platform in front of the ikonostas.

The Russian cross has eight points. To the Latin cross are added the titulus, and a lower diagonal crosspiece which is assumed to be a rest for the feet. Post hoc, propter hoc, and that this rest slants is said to be due to the fact that Christ was lame; others think that{182} its purpose is merely to give the idea of perspective of the hill Golgotha on which the cross was placed, and others as indicating the earthquake, whilst those versed in mystic symbolism will recognise a totally distinct signification.[B] To these last too, the accepted explanations of the crescent from which the cross rises will be insufficient. It was common in Russia prior to the Mongol occupation, so is not the result of placing crosses upon mosques, or intended to denote the subjugation of Mahommedanism to Christianity. More probable is the explanation, that in ancient pictures the Virgin is shown standing upon the crescent, and the cross was later placed by the Russian ecclesiastics to denote that the cross issues from the Mother of God. Maxim, the Greek, in the sixteenth century, declared that the crescent represented Upsilon, the initial of ὑφος, and so is emblematical of the uplifting of the cross; but if its application as a sign of Christian dogma is open to various constructions, all will at once recognise the sign as one of the most ancient and general of mystic symbols.

The Russian cross has eight points. The Latin cross includes the titulus and a lower diagonal crosspiece, which is believed to be a rest for the feet. Post hoc, propter hoc, and the angle of this rest is said to relate to the belief that Christ was lame; others argue that its purpose is simply to create the perspective of the hill Golgotha where the cross was erected, while some think it represents the earthquake, and those familiar with mystic symbolism will see it as having a completely different meaning.[B] For the last group, the common explanations of the crescent from which the cross rises won’t be enough. It was prevalent in Russia before the Mongol invasion, so it’s not a result of placing crosses on mosques or meant to symbolize the dominance of Christianity over Islam. A more likely explanation is that in ancient images, the Virgin is depicted standing on the crescent, and the cross was later added by Russian church leaders to show that the cross comes from the Mother of God. In the sixteenth century, Maxim the Greek stated that the crescent represented Upsilon, the initial of style, symbolizing the lifting of the cross; but while its application as a sign of Christian doctrine may be interpreted in various ways, everyone can recognize the sign as one of the most ancient and universal of mystical symbols.

[B] The Russian cross is derived from the old eastern form of the Greek letter xi.

[B] The Russian cross comes from the ancient eastern version of the Greek letter xi.

The ecclesiastical art of Russia is of a different nature to that of any school of the west. The ikons, or sacred pictures, must be exact copies of the originals, thus the practice supports Gibbon’s contention that the religious value of a sacred image depends for its efficacy upon its resemblance to the original.[C] In Moscow there are several pictures of the Saviour “not made with hands,” being in that respect, and that only, similar to the Veronica and the miraculous image of Edessa. They are not alike, and their origin is not{183} known, but it is conjectured that the initials Ο τ Η, on the nimbus, have been wrongly interpreted as the initials of ot, otsa, Nebesnavo, which means “From Our Father on High” instead of On, Otets, Nash—“He is Our Father.” The Greek characters were little known in Russia, and one of the pictures has this legend in Greek Ο.Ω.Ν. In the same connection it is worth noting that our I.H.S. is a misreading into Latin of ΙΗΕ, the Greek contraction of ΙΗΕΣοὑς, where the long e was mistaken for a capital H, and the dash above it developed into a cross. The ordinary ikons are restricted to fixed types; the artist therefore has never needed to create, only to reproduce. There are no Russian Madonnas, all are replicas of pictures brought from Greece or Byzantium; “the ikon painter knows but one costume, for all places and all times it changeth not; tradition fixes the form of the head, the pose, the proportion, the attitudes and the attributes.” Most are produced by monks and probationers who follow the instructions given in a tenth century MS. by Dionysius of Mount Athos. Rigorously it is only the features of the saint that must be exactly reproduced; in practice it is customary to cover all but the face and hands with thin metal—gold, silver, or gilt, and to ornament the setting lavishly. In the seventeenth century, the golden age of Muscovite ecclesiasticism, there were several branches of ikon painting, not differing sufficiently to warrant the appellation of “schools.” These were known as the Imperial or Court style; the Village, the Strogonov, and the Monastic. Novgorod would have the faces yellow; the Strogonov insisted upon dark green—an introduction from Byzantium, and sometimes known as Khorsunski. Black virgins are not unknown—the result of time upon impure pigments; those with three small scratches on the face are copies of the Iberian Mother of God, a twelfth century ikon{184} of the Virgin. Graven images are not allowed in the Russian Church, being held to be a violation of the second commandment. The only exception is that of St Nicholas. Holy Statues were abolished by order of the Patriarch Philaret, and when these were removed from the churches all went well until hands were laid upon one of the representatives of the patron Saint; no force could stir that; where, by extraordinary means, the statue was broken from the pedestal, the image of the saint reappeared. This is the only figure seen in high relief, and is usually made with the model of a church in his hand. The popularity of the saint may be estimated from the fact, that at one time there were as many as 118 churches in Moscow dedicated to St Nicholas.

The church art of Russia is quite different from any Western style. Ikons, or sacred images, must be exact replicas of the originals, supporting Gibbon’s view that the religious significance of a sacred image relies on how closely it resembles the original.[C] In Moscow, there are several pictures of the Saviour “not made with hands,” which, in that respect alone, are similar to the Veronica and the miraculous image of Edessa. They aren't the same, and their origin is unknown, but it’s believed that the initials Ο τ Η on the nimbus have been misinterpreted as the initials of ot, otsa, Nebesnavo, meaning “From Our Father on High,” instead of On, Otets, Nash—“He is Our Father.” Greek characters were not widely recognized in Russia, and one of the images carries this inscription in Greek Ο.Ω.Ν. It’s also interesting to note that our I.H.S. is a misreading in Latin of ΙΗΕ, the Greek abbreviation for ΙΗΕΣοὑς, where the long e was confused with a capital H, and the dash above became a cross. Standard ikons follow fixed styles; therefore, artists have never needed to create new designs, only to reproduce existing ones. There are no Russian Madonnas; all are copies of images brought from Greece or Byzantium. “The ikon painter has only one costume; it never changes for all places and all times; tradition dictates the shape of the head, the pose, the proportions, the gestures, and the attributes.” Most ikons are made by monks and apprentices following instructions from a 10th-century manuscript by Dionysius of Mount Athos. Strictly speaking, only the saint’s features must be precisely replicated; in practice, it's common to cover everything but the face and hands with thin metal—gold, silver, or gilt—and to embellish the background richly. In the 17th century, the golden age of Muscovite church art, there were several branches of ikon painting, not distinct enough to be called “schools.” These were known as the Imperial or Court style, the Village style, the Strogonov style, and the Monastic style. Novgorod would depict faces in yellow, while the Strogonov style insisted on dark green—a Byzantine influence, sometimes referred to as Khorsunski. Black virgins are also seen, resulting from aging pigments; those with three small scratches on the face are replicas of the Iberian Mother of God, a 12th-century ikon{184} of the Virgin. Graven images are not permitted in the Russian Church, as they are considered a violation of the second commandment. The only exception is St Nicholas. Holy statues were abolished by order of Patriarch Philaret, and everything went smoothly until someone tried to touch a figure of the patron saint; no amount of force could budge it. When, through extraordinary means, the statue was broken from its pedestal, the image of the saint reappeared. This is the only figure depicted in high relief and is usually shown holding a model of a church. The popularity of this saint can be gauged by the fact that at one point, there were as many as 118 churches in Moscow dedicated to St Nicholas.

[C] “By a slow though inevitable progression the honours of the original were transferred to the image; the merit and effect of a copy depends upon its resemblance with the original.”—Gibbon,—Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire, chapter xlix.

[C] “Through a gradual yet unavoidable progression, the honors of the original were passed to the image; the value and impact of a copy rely on how closely it resembles the original.” —Gibbon,—Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire, chapter xlix.

The rites of the Russian Church are complex, and to the unorthodox, perplexing. The celebrant by the minute observance of minor details gives to every act a symbolic meaning, and to even the least significant of them some dogma of the church is attached. The service is in Slavonic, of which the ordinary people do not understand the letter, but can follow the general meaning; it is impressive apart from its significance, and is intended so to be. It commences with a call to worship—the vozglass—singing of psalms; a series of prayers—ektenia—for the welfare of the church, intoned; the evangels or epistles also intoned; “choral and part-singing of unequalled harmony and richness; prayers; consecration of the elements; administration of the sacrament, which the priest takes every service, and the congregation at will, but at least once yearly; thanksgiving, and the parting benediction; chanting and incense-burning are frequent throughout, and asperging is practised at the commencement and termination. For the greater part of the time the “Royal doors” are closed: the deacons remain before the{185} ikonostas, but now and again some enter the Sanctuary for a short time. From time to time priests and acolytes pass to and fro among the congregation, incensing all the sacred ikons in turn. The voice of the officiating priest is raised within, and is answered in deep tones by the deacons without. Now from some unnoticed corner comes a clear ringing chant from many voices, from another a deep single voice is heard intoning the epistle, or evangel, of the day; then suddenly the Royal doors fly open and a glimpse is obtained of the celebrant through thick rolling clouds of incense; the people prostrate themselves and the doors close.” Later the priest emerges and the service has concluded—to the unorthodox stranger of any creed it has been almost meaningless.

The rituals of the Russian Church are intricate and can be confusing for those unfamiliar with them. The priest pays close attention to minor details, giving each action a symbolic meaning, with even the smallest gestures tied to some church doctrine. The service is conducted in Slavonic, a language that most ordinary people don't fully understand but can grasp the overall meaning; it is impressive in its own right and designed to be that way. It begins with a call to worship—the vozglass—followed by singing psalms and a series of intoned prayers—ektenia—for the church's well-being. The gospels or epistles are also intoned, accompanied by "choral and part-singing of unmatched harmony and richness." There are prayers, the consecration of the elements, and the administration of the sacrament, which the priest partakes in at every service, and the congregation can join at their discretion, but at least once a year. This is followed by thanksgiving and the final blessing. Chanting and burning of incense occur frequently, and sprinkling with holy water takes place at the beginning and end. For most of the service, the “Royal doors” remain closed while the deacons stand before the {185} ikonostas, though occasionally some enter the Sanctuary briefly. Periodically, priests and acolytes move among the congregation, incensing each sacred ikon in turn. The voice of the officiating priest rises within, answered by deep tones from the deacons outside. Suddenly, from an unnoticed corner comes a clear, ringing chant from many voices, while a deep single voice can be heard intoning the epistle or gospel of the day. Then, without warning, the Royal doors swing open, revealing the celebrant amid thick, rolling clouds of incense; the people prostrate themselves, and the doors close once more. Later, the priest emerges, signaling that the service has ended—leaving the unacquainted outsider of any belief system feeling almost lost.

The history of Moscow is so intermingled with that of the Russian Church, and the cathedrals of the Kremlin and private chapels of the palace the scene of so many notable events, that the reader will not need a recountal of the stories concerning the historical characters who have made them famous. Here it will suffice if the minor details to be examined are enumerated, and the tale of the struggle between orthodoxy and dissent succinctly related.

The history of Moscow is deeply connected with that of the Russian Church, and the cathedrals in the Kremlin along with the private chapels of the palace have hosted so many significant events that readers don't need a retelling of the stories about the historical figures who have made them famous. Here, it’s enough to list the minor details we'll look into and briefly share the story of the struggle between orthodoxy and dissent.

Uspensky Cathedral

The Cathedral of the Assumption, formerly known as that of the Patriarchs, originated with the Metropolitan Peter, who said to Ivan “Kalita,” “If thou wishest that my old age be graced with peace, content, and fulness, thou wilt raise on this site a grand temple to our Holy Mother of God, then shalt thou likewise be happy, become the most illustrious of the princes of our age, and thy race powerful throughout the earth.” So in 1326 Ivan erected a fine wooden church, which, in 1472, when the wood buildings were being replaced{186}

The Cathedral of the Assumption, formerly known as that of the Patriarchs, began with Metropolitan Peter, who told Ivan "Kalita," "If you want my old age to be filled with peace, happiness, and abundance, you should build a grand temple here for our Holy Mother of God. Then you will also be happy, become the most notable of the princes of our time, and your lineage will thrive across the earth." So, in 1326, Ivan built a beautiful wooden church, which, in 1472, when the wooden structures were being replaced{186}



USPENSKI SOBOR, THE IKONOSTAS

USPENSKI SOBOR, THE IKONOSTAS

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
USPENSKI CATHEDRAL, THE IKONOSTASIS

by those of stone, was taken down and an attempt made by Russian artisans to build its equal in brick. Before this work was complete the walls fell, and Aristotle of Bologna, who had been entrusted with the removal of the Campanile there, and the repair of the leaning tower of Cento, was ordered to construct the cathedral anew. Aristotle taught the Muscovites how to make larger{187} and harder bricks than the pantiles to which they were accustomed; how to turn an arch and make vaulted roofs. He took as his model for this cathedral the church of the Virgin in Vladimir and used the white stone of Kolomna hewn into rectangular blocks which he fastened together with iron cramps.

by those of stone, was taken down and an attempt was made by Russian craftsmen to build an equivalent using brick. Before this work was finished, the walls collapsed, and Aristotle of Bologna, who had been given the job of removing the Campanile there and fixing the leaning tower of Cento, was instructed to reconstruct the cathedral from scratch. Aristotle taught the Muscovites how to make larger{187} and stronger bricks than the pantiles they were used to; how to create arches and build vaulted roofs. He used the church of the Virgin in Vladimir as a model for this cathedral and worked with the white stone from Kolomna, which was cut into rectangular blocks and held together with iron cramps.

Structure.—The foundations are 15 feet below the surface, but the floor of the cathedral was originally seven or more feet lower than at present: height to cupola 128 feet. The walls were strengthened in 1626 after the injury done by the Poles; in 1684 the domes were covered with gilded copper, and the mural decorations restored after the fire of All Saint’s day, 1737, and the French occupation, but otherwise the edifice, is practically as completed in 1497.

Structure.—The foundations are 15 feet below the surface, but the floor of the cathedral was originally seven or more feet lower than it is now: height to the dome is 128 feet. The walls were reinforced in 1626 after damage caused by the Poles; in 1684, the domes were covered with gilded copper, and the mural decorations were restored after the All Saints’ Day fire in 1737 and the French occupation, but otherwise, the building is basically the same as it was when completed in 1497.

The South Porch is closed by the Golden Gates of Korsoun, which were carried from that town to Suzdal, and thence to Moscow—they are actually of coppered iron gilt, divided into twenty compartments exhibiting scenes from biblical history, and below Apollo, Plato, and mythological figures. Before them the Grand Princes of Muscovy were invested with the authority of the Khan by his bashkak during the centuries of the Mongol supremacy. The Royal entrance is by the western doors; the public entrance by those on the north side.

The South Porch is closed off by the Golden Gates of Korsoun, which were brought from that town to Suzdal, and then to Moscow—these gates are made of gilded coppered iron, divided into twenty sections showing scenes from biblical history, along with depictions of Apollo, Plato, and other mythological figures. In front of them, the Grand Princes of Muscovy were granted the authority of the Khan by his bashkak during the years of Mongol rule. The royal entrance is through the western doors; the public entrance is on the north side.

The interior is remarkable for its ikonostas and ikons. The screen is of masonry and descends 10 feet below the surface; it is adorned with frescoes, which may be inspected only when the sacred ikons are removed for that special purpose. The upper range has been recently restored to its condition prior to the French invasion, when the old one was stripped of all its precious metal; the great silver chandelier of 2940 lbs., made in England in 1630, was put in the casting-pot and scales suspended from its place; horses were stabled in the chapel, and tethered to the coffins of the metropolitans. Not content with robbing the sanctuary of its precious metals the French deliberately placed the mannikins from the old suits of armour in the Orujenni Palata as idols in conspicuous positions about the church. The chandeliers are of silver—some 900 lbs. of which in the one from the central cupola is that recovered by the Cossacks from the retreating French: some five tons of precious metal are in the present ikonostas.

The interior is impressive thanks to its ikonostas and ikons. The screen is made of masonry and goes down 10 feet below the surface; it’s decorated with frescoes that can only be seen when the sacred ikons are taken down for that specific purpose. The upper section has recently been restored to its state before the French invasion, when the original was stripped of all its valuable metal; the large silver chandelier weighing 2940 lbs., made in England in 1630, was melted down and scales were taken from its spot; horses were kept in the chapel, tied to the coffins of the metropolitans. Not satisfied with robbing the sanctuary of its precious metals, the French intentionally placed the mannikins from the old suits of armor in the Orujenni Palata, positioning them as idols throughout the church. The chandeliers are made of silver—about 900 lbs. of which from the one in the central cupola was recovered by the Cossacks from the retreating French: around five tons of precious metal are in the current ikonostas.

The ikons include the most prized Mary of Vladimir attributed to St Luke, which was brought from Tsar Grad—Constantinople{188}—to Kief, taken by Andrew Bogoloobski to Vladimir and brought to Moscow on the Tartar invasion. It is regarded as miraculous, having saved the city from Tamerlane, and on subsequent occasions. Tsars and people alike in past generations have regarded this picture as their Palladium. Of its artistic merits it would be idle to write; black with age and discoloured by the accidents incidental to preservation in an oft burned city, it is as represented in the frontispiece. Completely enveloped, but hands and face, in precious metal and handsome garniture, it exhibits a richness of decoration few articles of vertu can equal; the gems alone being valued at upwards of £100,000, and the great emerald itself at £10,000. The next ikon of importance is that of the Holy Virgin of Jerusalem, which, according to tradition, was the work of the apostles. Taken to Constantinople in the fifth century and to Kherson in the tenth, it came thence to Moscow—but others say, it is but a copy, the original having disappeared during the French occupation. On the right of the royal doors is the image of our Saviour in the golden chasuble, painted by the Greek emperor Manuel, and brought from Novgorod the Great in 1478. By its side is an ikon with most brilliant colouring representing the Assumption, which is said to be the work of the metropolitan Peter, the founder of the church; but if it be not his handicraft is still a remarkable specimen of the ikon painter’s art in Russia of the fourteenth century. These, with others, are all on the lower tier. On the tiers above are usually placed: highest, the Madonna and the Infant Jesus, the fathers of the church in pre-mosaic days, portraits of persons mentioned in Genesis; on the second stage, the prophets from Moses to Jesus Christ; on the third, incidents in the life of the Saviour illustrative of church feasts; on the fourth, portraits of the saints of the orthodox church; on the fifth, the sacred ikons.

The icons include the highly valued Mary of Vladimir, attributed to St. Luke, which was brought from Tsar Grad—Constantinople{188}—to Kief, then taken by Andrew Bogoloobski to Vladimir and eventually brought to Moscow during the Tartar invasion. It's considered miraculous, having saved the city from Tamerlane and on several other occasions. Tsars and common people alike in past generations have viewed this image as their Palladium. It's pointless to discuss its artistic merits; darkened with age and stained by the mishaps that come with preservation in a frequently burned city, it appears as shown in the frontispiece. Completely covered, except for the hands and face, in precious metal and beautiful adornments, it demonstrates a richness of decoration that few items of vertu can match; the gems alone are valued at over £100,000, with the large emerald priced at £10,000. The next important icon is that of the Holy Virgin of Jerusalem, which, according to tradition, was created by the apostles. It was taken to Constantinople in the fifth century and then to Kherson in the tenth, from where it made its way to Moscow—but others claim it's just a copy, with the original disappearing during the French occupation. To the right of the royal doors is the image of our Savior in the golden chasuble, painted by the Greek emperor Manuel, and brought from Novgorod the Great in 1478. Next to it is an icon with vibrant colors representing the Assumption, which is said to be created by metropolitan Peter, the founder of the church; but if it isn’t his work, it is still an impressive example of ikon painting from 14th century Russia. These, along with others, are all on the lower tier. Above them are usually arranged: at the highest level, the Madonna and the Infant Jesus, along with the church fathers from pre-mosaic times, portraits of figures mentioned in Genesis; on the second tier, the prophets from Moses to Jesus Christ; on the third, scenes from the life of the Savior that illustrate church feasts; on the fourth, portraits of the saints of the Orthodox church; and on the fifth, the sacred icons.

Other pictures in the cathedral include portraits of the patriarchs and saints; many frescoes on a gold ground are ranged around the four pillars that support the central cupola; and, on the walls, the martyrdoms of orthodox saints are depicted. A bas-relief, supposed to represent St George slaying the dragon, has been identified by Sneguirev as once part of a triumphal arch the Christians erected in Rome to Constantine the Great.

Other images in the cathedral feature portraits of the patriarchs and saints; numerous frescoes on a gold background are displayed around the four pillars that hold up the central dome; and, on the walls, the martyrdoms of orthodox saints are illustrated. A bas-relief, believed to show St. George slaying the dragon, has been identified by Sneguirev as once being part of a triumphal arch that Christians built in Rome to honor Constantine the Great.

The Sanctuary has a tabernacle of precious metal (17 lbs. gold and 17 lbs. silver) on the grand altar, which contains the Host and formerly also held a number of important state{189} papers which were transferred to St Petersburg in 1880. Also a large Bible of Natalia Naryshkin set with gems worth several thousand pounds.

The Sanctuary has a tabernacle made of precious metal (17 lbs. of gold and 17 lbs. of silver) on the grand altar, which holds the Host and used to contain several important state{189} documents that were moved to St. Petersburg in 1880. It also features a large Bible belonging to Natalia Naryshkin, adorned with gems worth several thousand pounds.

The Chapel of Sts. Peter and Paul is before the most northern apse, with the tomb of St Peter immediately on the right when entering; just beyond it is that of the metropolitan St Theognitus; on the left are sacred relics: (a) the “Holy Coat” or a portion of the “tunic” worn by the Saviour; (b) a nail of the true cross; (c) the right hand of St Andrew the Apostle; (d) the head of St Gregory the theologian; and (e) the head of St John Chrysostom. The shrines were profaned by Tokhtamysh, and ransacked by the French. Here in olden times the rulers of the principalities in vassalage to Moscow embraced the cross and swore fealty, and here the metropolitans were appointed to their office.

The Chapel of Sts. Peter and Paul is located at the most northern apse, with St. Peter's tomb directly to the right upon entering; just beyond it is the tomb of the metropolitan St. Theognitus; on the left are sacred relics: (a) the “Holy Coat” or a piece of the “tunic” worn by the Savior; (b) a nail from the true cross; (c) the right hand of St. Andrew the Apostle; (d) the head of St. Gregory the Theologian; and (e) the head of St. John Chrysostom. The shrines were desecrated by Tokhtamysh and looted by the French. In ancient times, the rulers of the principalities loyal to Moscow embraced the cross and pledged their allegiance here, and this is where the metropolitans were appointed to their positions.

The Chapel of St Dmitri of Thessalonica, called “The Peaceable.” is on the south side of the sanctuary. It contains the oldest tomb in Moscow, that of Yuri, brother of Ivan “Kalita,” and it was in this Chapel that Yuri Glinski, brother of Ivan the Terrible’s mother, was slain.

The Chapel of St Dmitri of Thessalonica, known as “The Peaceable,” is located on the south side of the sanctuary. It holds the oldest tomb in Moscow, that of Yuri, who was the brother of Ivan “Kalita.” It was in this Chapel that Yuri Glinski, the brother of Ivan the Terrible’s mother, was killed.

The Chapel of the Virgin Mary is reached by a flight of steps near the south apse, for it is situated under the southern cupola. There the patriarchs were elected. In its sanctuary are: (a) Copy of the gospels, printed in Moscow and presented to the boy-Tsars, Ivan and Peter, with beautiful initials and rich binding, the work of foreign artisans in the palace; (b) an illuminated psalter of the fifteenth century; (c) an illuminated MS. of the gospels by Russian scribes, 1664; (d) a cross of cypress wood, enclosing a piece of the true cross; (e) cross of the Emperor Constantine; (f) Jasper vases which were ornamented with the Latin cross—they were brought from Novgorod, having belonged to the old monastery there, by Ivan. IV.; (g) a sacramental chalice, which was presented to Monomachus by Alexis Cominus, and is used to the present day for the Holy Oil with which the Tsars are anointed at their coronation.

The Chapel of the Virgin Mary is accessed by a flight of stairs near the south apse, as it is located beneath the southern dome. This is where the patriarchs were elected. In its sanctuary, there are: (a) a copy of the gospels, printed in Moscow and given to the boy-tsars, Ivan and Peter, featuring beautiful initials and a rich binding, crafted by foreign artisans in the palace; (b) an illuminated psalter from the fifteenth century; (c) an illuminated manuscript of the gospels created by Russian scribes in 1664; (d) a cross made of cypress wood, containing a piece of the true cross; (e) a cross belonging to Emperor Constantine; (f) jasper vases adorned with the Latin cross—these were brought from Novgorod, having belonged to the old monastery there, by Ivan IV.; (g) a sacramental chalice, which was given to Monomachus by Alexis Cominus, and is still used today for the Holy Oil with which the tsars are anointed at their coronation.

The Tombs of the Patriarchs are ranged along the western wall; that of Jonas is on the north-west, and near the ikonostas is the shrine of St Philip, murdered in Tver by Maluta Skutarov to please Ivan IV.

The Tombs of the Patriarchs are lined up along the western wall; Jonas's tomb is in the northwest, and close to the iconostasis is the shrine of St. Philip, who was killed in Tver by Maluta Skutarov to please Ivan IV.

The Thrones or stalls of the Tsar and Tsaritsa are situated, the first between the south column and the south wall, the second just before the north column; the large stall in front of the south column is for the Patriarch, and dates from the days of Philaret only. The canopy in the south-western corner is{190} for the “Holy Coat” sent by the Shah Abbas, but this is usually kept in the altar of the north chapel.

The Thrones or seats of the Tsar and Tsaritsa are placed, the first between the south column and the south wall, and the second just before the north column; the large seat in front of the south column is for the Patriarch, and dates back to the time of Philaret only. The canopy in the south-western corner is{190} for the “Holy Coat” sent by Shah Abbas, but this is usually kept in the altar of the north chapel.

It is pretty generally known that the Uspenski Sobor is the State Cathedral; that in it the Tsars of Russia must be crowned; there, too, several have been married, foreign princes have renounced their faith and accepted the orthodox religion prior to marriage with the Royal princesses, and there Peter the Great caused his son Alexis to repudiate his right to succeed to the throne: actually it is the mausoleum of the Patriarchs and heads of the Orthodox Church.

It’s widely recognized that the Uspenski Sobor is the State Cathedral; it’s where the Tsars of Russia are crowned, and several have been married there. Foreign princes have converted to Orthodox Christianity before marrying the royal princesses, and it’s also where Peter the Great made his son Alexis give up his claim to the throne. In fact, it serves as the mausoleum for the Patriarchs and leaders of the Orthodox Church.

There is nothing in its architecture that demands comment, the external mural pictures are common place, and from the artistic standpoint the work that merits closest attention and highest praise is the open scroll, bent and hammered metal on the lattices of the different shrines, and almost equally good is much of the chiselled, moulded and other decorative metal work on the ikonostas. It is a typical church, richer in precious metal, sacred ikons and holy relics than other churches in Moscow; it is the pious wish of the guardians of the other churches to make theirs even as is this.

There’s nothing in its architecture that stands out, the external murals are ordinary, and from an artistic perspective, the elements that deserve the most attention and the highest praise are the open scroll and the bent and hammered metal on the lattices of the various shrines. The chiselled, molded, and other decorative metalwork on the ikonostas is almost equally impressive. It’s a typical church, richer in precious metal, sacred icons, and holy relics than other churches in Moscow; the guardians of the other churches aspire to make theirs just like this one.

Archangel Cathedral

The Cathedral of the Archangel Michael is of even plainer appearance than the Uspenski; its south wall has been propped by a common buttress which, pierced for the lancet windows, gives that side much the appearance of a fortress. Its history is similar to that of the other cathedrals; the first wooden church on the site was erected in the twelfth century. Ivan “Kalita” built it anew as the place of sepulture for himself and his descendants. Ivan III. demolished that church and employed the Italian Aleviso to construct the present edifice, consecrated in 1500. It has suffered severely at different times, especially during the French occupation, when an attempt was made to destroy it by exploding a large quantity of spirit the French brought{191} within for the purpose, but this served only to scatter the tombs, wreck the interior and spring the south wall. The church contains the remains of the princes and all the Tsars of Moscow. The petitions of the people laid upon the tombs of the Tsars were taken and read by Peter I. himself. Most of the religious ceremonies peculiar to this church relate to masses for the dead, and homage paid to the memory of ancestors. It has the usual rectangular form, the four central columns, the five cupolas, which the people think always dedicated to the Saviour and the four evangelists. The chapel on the west side is a later addition—the sole remaining one of four, which existed in the seventeenth century. On the south side is a small chamber which was the izba, or Palace of Justice, and below it are vaulted arches which extend almost the whole length of the Kremlin; the original paving is now some 12 feet below the level of the squares adjoining. Here the Tsar’s gift of money was scattered at his coronation. The most noteworthy objects in the church are: the ikonostas, high, brilliant and sparkling with gems; the excellent metal-work of the shrines; the mural paintings—portraits of the Tsars whose tombs are below, and the richly worked palls over the tombs.

The Cathedral of the Archangel Michael looks even simpler than the Uspenski; its south wall is supported by a basic buttress, which, with its lancet windows, gives that side a fortress-like appearance. Its history mirrors that of the other cathedrals; the first wooden church on this site was built in the twelfth century. Ivan “Kalita” reconstructed it as a burial place for himself and his descendants. Ivan III demolished that church and hired the Italian architect Aleviso to create the current structure, which was consecrated in 1500. It has faced significant damage at various times, particularly during the French occupation when there was an attempt to destroy it by detonating a large amount of gunpowder they had brought in for that purpose, which only succeeded in scattering the tombs, damaging the interior, and cracking the south wall. The church holds the remains of princes and all the Tsars of Moscow. The requests of the people left on the tombs of the Tsars were read by Peter I himself. Most of the religious ceremonies specific to this church focus on masses for the dead and honoring ancestors. It has the typical rectangular shape, featuring four central columns and five domes, which the locals believe are dedicated to the Saviour and the four evangelists. The chapel on the west side is a later addition—the only one remaining of the four that existed in the seventeenth century. On the south side, there's a small chamber that used to be the izba, or Palace of Justice, and below it are vaulted arches that run almost the entire length of the Kremlin; the original floor is now about 12 feet below the level of the surrounding squares. Here, the Tsar’s gift of money was scattered at his coronation. The most remarkable features of the church include: the ikonostas, which is tall, bright, and sparkling with gems; the exquisite metalwork of the shrines; the murals—portraits of the Tsars buried below, and the richly decorated palls over the tombs.

The ikonostas is of five stages; the sacred ikons are: (a) The Virgin “Beneficent,” brought to Moscow by the Tsaritsa Sophia Vitovtovna; (b) the Virgin of Tikhvin, the ikon of the Tsaritsa Maria Nagoi, mother of the murdered Tsarevich, Dmitri; (c) St Basil the Great, near the south wall; (d) St Simeon Stylite.

The ikonostas has five levels; the holy icons are: (a) The Virgin “Beneficent,” which was brought to Moscow by Tsaritsa Sophia Vitovtovna; (b) the Virgin of Tikhvin, the icon of Tsaritsa Maria Nagoi, mother of the slain Tsarevich, Dmitri; (c) St. Basil the Great, located by the south wall; (d) St. Simeon Stylite.

The tombs of forty-seven princes of the line of Rurik lie upon the floor: though not arranged in chronological order, no difficulty will be found in recognising any one of them. Only one Emperor, Peter II., grandson of Peter the Great, is buried here; those of the Tsars Michael and Alexis Romanof are on the right hand near the first pillar, surrounded by those of their sons and grandsons. Near is the tomb of the murdered Dmitri, whose portrait in gold is hung on the pillar over the coffin.{192} The silver candelabra before it was presented by the inhabitants of Uglitch where he was murdered when but six years old. Vasili, the blind, is buried near the ikonostas; and by his side lies Ivan III., the maker of middle Moscow and uniter of the Russian-lands. Near the first pillar on the left is the tomb of Alexander, Tsar of Kazan: near the second pillar, the Tsarevich Peter, son of Ibrahim, and grandson of Mamotiakov, once Tsar of Kazan. The remains of Ivan the Terrible are near the high altar, a testimony of the forgiving temperament of prelates of the orthodox church. The tomb is covered with a black pall, indicating that he had been received into the church as a monk before his death. Horsey states that persons passing his tomb uttered a prayer that he might never rise again: to this day, twice yearly, a special mass is celebrated invoking forgiveness for that “burden of sins voluntary or involuntary known to themselves or to themselves unknown” committed on earth by those whose bodies are buried within the church. In a side chapel, dedicated to the martyred Tsar, are the remains of Michael Skopin Shooiski, the popular military hero of the “Times of Trouble,” and a bronze shrine covers the remains of Chernigof and his boyard Theodore, martyred by the Tartars.

The tombs of forty-seven princes from the Rurik dynasty are laid out on the floor: although they aren't in chronological order, it's easy to recognize each one. Only one emperor, Peter II, the grandson of Peter the Great, is buried here; the tombs of Tsars Michael and Alexis Romanov are to the right near the first pillar, surrounded by those of their sons and grandsons. Nearby is the tomb of the murdered Dmitri, with his gold portrait hanging on the pillar above the coffin.{192} The silver candelabra in front of it was given by the people of Uglitch, where he was killed at just six years old. Vasili the blind is buried near the ikonostas, and next to him lies Ivan III, the architect of middle Moscow and unifier of the Russian lands. Near the first pillar on the left is the tomb of Alexander, Tsar of Kazan; near the second pillar is Tsarevich Peter, son of Ibrahim and grandson of Mamotiakov, who was once Tsar of Kazan. The remains of Ivan the Terrible rest near the high altar, a reflection of the forgiving nature of the Orthodox Church leaders. His tomb is draped with a black pall, showing that he was accepted into the church as a monk before he died. Horsey notes that people passing by his tomb would pray that he never rise again: to this day, twice a year, a special mass is held asking for forgiveness for that “burden of sins, voluntary or involuntary, known or unknown” committed on earth by those buried within the church. In a side chapel dedicated to the martyred Tsar are the remains of Michael Skopin Shooiski, the beloved military hero of the “Times of Trouble,” and a bronze shrine covers the remains of Chernigof and his boyar Theodore, who were martyred by the Tartars.

The decorations are mural pictures, dry frescoes of portraits of the Tsars, the best that of Vasili II. habited as a monk: also illustrations of the Last Judgment, the “Symbol of Faith,” and miracles of the Archangel Michael, which represent Russian pictorial art of the seventeenth century.

The decorations are wall paintings, dry frescoes featuring portraits of the Tsars, with the standout being Vasili II dressed as a monk. There are also illustrations of the Last Judgment, the “Symbol of Faith,” and the miracles of the Archangel Michael, showcasing Russian pictorial art from the seventeenth century.

The sacristy contains some very beautiful sacerdotal robes presented to officiating priests on state occasions; the gems on the richer sakkos being exceptionally beautiful. There is also an ornate copy of the gospels brought from Novgorod in 1125; it has picturesque portraits of the evangelists, and characteristic illuminated initials; the golden filigree work on the cover is excellent. A psalter of 1594 has elegant marginal decorations. There were also rich crosses of gold and silver—the one that belonged to Ivan IV. with large pearls, best worth examination—reliquaries, and a curious gold chalice some 7 lbs. weight. Many will be more interested in the fine needle and jewelry work on the elaborated palls of which the church has a great many exquisite specimens.

The sacristy holds some really beautiful priestly robes given to officiating priests during state occasions; the gems on the more luxurious sakkos are particularly stunning. There's also an ornate copy of the gospels brought from Novgorod in 1125, featuring colorful portraits of the evangelists and unique illuminated initials; the golden filigree work on the cover is remarkable. A psalter from 1594 has elegant decorations in the margins. Additionally, there are rich gold and silver crosses—the one that belonged to Ivan IV., adorned with large pearls, is especially noteworthy—along with reliquaries and an interesting gold chalice weighing about 7 lbs. Many people will find the fine needlework and jewelry craftsmanship on the elaborate palls especially captivating, as the church has many exquisite examples.

The relics are not numerous: those which formally belonged to the Tsar Alexis are within a reliquary of the cross above mentioned: and a drop of the blood of John the Baptist is shown under a crystal in one of the ikons.

The relics are not many: those that originally belonged to Tsar Alexis are housed in a reliquary of the cross mentioned earlier; and a drop of John the Baptist's blood is displayed under a crystal in one of the icons.

{193}

{193}

Blagoveshchensk Cathedral



BLAGOVIESHCHENSKI SOBOR

BLAGOVIESHCHENSKI SOBOR

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Blagoveshchensky Cathedral

The Cathedral of the Annunciation is of a more elaborate and picturesque style than either the Uspenski or the Archangelski, which, in part, may be attributed to the fact that it is more intimately connected with the Royal Palaces than they are. Reached directly by the palace terrace, it is the complement of the Krasnœ Kriltso, and was used for the baptism of the royal children, the confessions of the Tsars, and religious ceremonies of a semi-state character. Its earlier designations{194} were, among others, the “Church of the Grand-Ducal Court,” “Church of the Tsarian Vestibule,” and “Church of the Tsarian Treasury,” which clearly indicate the court uses for which it has been employed. It has nine cupolas; the roof of pointed vaults rising tier above tier is most characteristic of Muscovite architecture, and the entrance is by a flight of steps communicating with a covered gallery which surrounds the church, see page 178. Its early history is that of the others; first, a wooden church erected by Andrew in 1291, rebuilt in 1397; in 1409 the walls decorated with pictures by Rublev; in part demolished by Ivan III., who built again from the first floor up, and, completed in 1482, painted during the reign of Vasili Ivanovich; damaged by the fire of 1547 Ivan IV. restored it, and furnished cupolas covered with the gold he seized at Novgorod. The Poles in 1610 and the French in 1812 both spoiled it, but the last only partially, the fact that most of its treasures had been taken away to Vologda probably misleading them so that they did not make a thorough search for the valuables left within. During its recent restoration the architect found that earlier decorations existed beneath the outer coverings of plaster and paint; they were carefully uncovered and remain exposed.

The Cathedral of the Annunciation has a more elaborate and picturesque style than the Uspenski or Archangelski, which may be partly due to its closer connection with the Royal Palaces. It is directly accessible from the palace terrace and complements the Krasnœ Kriltso. It was used for the baptism of royal children, confessions of the Tsars, and religious ceremonies that had some state significance. Its earlier names{194} included the “Church of the Grand-Ducal Court,” “Church of the Tsarian Vestibule,” and “Church of the Tsarian Treasury,” which clearly show its court-related functions. The cathedral features nine domes; the roof, with its tiered pointed vaults, is typical of Muscovite architecture, and the entrance consists of a flight of steps leading to a covered gallery that surrounds the church, see page 178. Its early history mirrors that of the others; it began as a wooden church built by Andrew in 1291 and was rebuilt in 1397. In 1409, the walls were decorated with paintings by Rublev. It was partially demolished by Ivan III, who rebuilt it from the first floor up, completing the work in 1482 during the reign of Vasili Ivanovich. It was damaged in the 1547 fire, and Ivan IV restored it, adding domes covered with the gold he seized in Novgorod. The Poles in 1610 and the French in 1812 both caused damage, but the French did so only partially, likely because most of its treasures had been moved to Vologda, which misled them into not thoroughly searching for valuables left behind. During a recent restoration, the architect discovered earlier decorations under the layers of plaster and paint; these were carefully uncovered and left exposed.

The entrance is by the northern porch within the railed-off Sobornia Ploshchad; among the first mural paintings on the right are portraits of the ancient philosophers, Aristotle, Plato, Ptolemy, Socrates, Thucydides, Zeno, and others, with lengthy quotations from their writings on tablets they support; beyond, representations of the Saviour and the apostles, these pictures dating from 1771, the year of the great plague. The side posts of the doorways, richly carved, are of early sixteenth century native work—and some of the best specimens now extant. The interior{195} of the church is small, and looks even smaller than it really is owing to an elevated tribune, or gallery, against the west wall, which served for members of the Tsar’s family to participate in the services without being exposed to public view, the Tsar himself being on the ground floor, opposite the ikonostas. The parquet is of Jasper mosaic, a present from the Shah to Alexis. Concerning it, an enthusiastic, travelled native author remarks: “It is a facsimile of a mosaic in St Mark’s, Venice; the only difference being that whereas the floor of St Mark’s is uneven, to represent the ripples of the sea and symbolise that Venice rules on the foaming waves, this is quite regular and uniform, emblematic of the vast steppes of which Moscow is the sovereign.”[D]

The entrance is through the northern porch in the fenced-off Sobornia Ploshchad; on the right, the first mural paintings feature portraits of ancient philosophers like Aristotle, Plato, Ptolemy, Socrates, Thucydides, Zeno, and others, with lengthy quotes from their writings on tablets they are holding. Beyond that are images of the Saviour and the apostles, which date back to 1771, the year of the great plague. The side posts of the doorways, richly carved, are remarkable examples of early sixteenth-century local craftsmanship—among the best that still exist today. The interior{195} of the church is small, and it appears even smaller due to an elevated gallery against the west wall, which allowed members of the Tsar’s family to attend services without being seen by the public, while the Tsar himself was on the ground floor, opposite the ikonostas. The floor is made of Jasper mosaic, a gift from the Shah to Alexis. An excited, well-traveled local author notes: “It is a copy of a mosaic in St Mark’s, Venice; the only difference is that while the floor of St Mark’s is uneven, representing the ripples of the sea and symbolizing that Venice rules over the foaming waves, this one is completely even and uniform, symbolizing the vast steppes that Moscow governs.”[D]

[D] This church has the further distinction of being the first supplied with a public clock, which was placed there by Lazarus Serbin, in the seventeenth century. About the south porch the last public discussions were held with dissenters led by the able Pafnuty.

[D] This church is also notable for having the first public clock, installed by Lazarus Serbin in the seventeenth century. Near the south porch, the final public debates took place with dissenters led by the skilled Pafnuty.

Even more interesting are the old mural paintings, pre-Raphælite in point of time and in the argot of the studio “more than pre-Raphælite” in style. The subjects are biblical: the adventures of Jonah; the mysterious visions recorded in the Apocalypse; the punishment of the damned; the glories of Paradise, with much else that is curious. They are already the joy of a “school” and the admiration of Russian antiquaries. Though crude, unreal, and not a little absurd now, in the long ago, among the uncultured people to whom they were first presented, they cannot have failed to impress beholders powerfully, notwithstanding that their influence upon the art of the time was infinitesimal.

Even more fascinating are the old mural paintings, which are pre-Raphaelite in timing and in the studio's jargon “more than pre-Raphaelite” in style. The subjects are biblical: the adventures of Jonah; the mysterious visions described in the Apocalypse; the punishment of the damned; the glories of Paradise, along with many other intriguing themes. They are already the pride of a “school” and the admiration of Russian antiquarians. Although they seem crude, unrealistic, and somewhat absurd now, back in the day, among the unrefined people to whom they were first shown, they must have left a strong impression on viewers, even if their impact on contemporary art was minimal.

The columns are square, from them hang the chains and jewelled crosses worn by former princes. The ikonostas is of five stages, separated by rails of brass and bronze columns—{196}the precious metals with which it was formerly covered were looted by the French. The more remarkable ikons are (a) one of the Saviour’s agony—a typical specimen of Byzantine work in the fourteenth century; (b) the richly decorated Holy Mother of God, known as the Donski Virgin, because carried by Dmitri at Kulikovo; the ikon only was saved, in 1812, the frame was mistaken by the French for copper and has been repaired; the ornaments are modern, except the eighteen portraits of saints on the margin, which are foreign.

The columns are square, and from them hang the chains and jeweled crosses worn by former princes. The iconostasis has five tiers, separated by brass rails and bronze columns—{196}the precious metals that once covered it were stolen by the French. The most notable icons are (a) one depicting the Saviour's agony—a typical example of Byzantine art from the fourteenth century; and (b) the beautifully ornate Holy Mother of God, known as the Donski Virgin, because it was carried by Dmitri at Kulikovo; only the icon was saved in 1812, as the frame was misidentified by the French as copper and has since been repaired; the decorations are modern, except for the eighteen portraits of saints around the edges, which are foreign.

Near the altar are the two crosses of Korsun. There are four chapels on the higher storey; they are quite independent of the church with separate entrances from the gallery. That dedicated to St George is quite modern, but that of the Virgin has one of the most primitive rood-screens to be found in Moscow; on it the ikons are set round with great flat bands of silver; like that of the Saviour, and that of the archangel Gabriel, it quite escaped pillage in 1812. The sacristy—in a small building on the south side—is peculiarly rich in relics, a complete collection of sacred remains brought from Constantinople in 1328. It includes bones of different saints—contained in thirty-two silver and gilt caskets; a reliquary with the sponge used at the Crucifixion of Christ; a portion of the rod with which He was beaten; some drops of His blood; spikes from the crown of thorns; an eight pointed cross, of the wood of the “true cross,” and a fragment of the stone that was rolled away from before the Saviour’s tomb. To them must be added a great number of Russian Tsarian and ecclesiastical antiquities collected in Russia.

Near the altar are the two crosses of Korsun. There are four chapels on the upper level; they are completely separate from the church and have their own entrances from the gallery. The chapel dedicated to St. George is quite modern, but the one for the Virgin has one of the most primitive rood-screens in Moscow; the icons are surrounded by large, flat bands of silver. Like the one of the Saviour and the one of the archangel Gabriel, it was largely untouched during the looting of 1812. The sacristy, which is in a small building on the south side, is particularly rich in relics—a complete collection of sacred remains brought from Constantinople in 1328. It includes bones of various saints, contained in thirty-two silver and gilt caskets; a reliquary with the sponge used at the Crucifixion of Christ; a piece of the rod that was used to beat Him; some drops of His blood; spikes from the crown of thorns; an eight-pointed cross made from the wood of the “true cross”; and a fragment of the stone that was rolled away from the Saviour’s tomb. Additionally, there are a large number of Russian Tsarist and ecclesiastical artifacts collected in Russia.

Fun on the Hill

The church of the Transfiguration, known colloquially as Spass na Boru, St Saviour’s in the Forest, is supposed to be on the site of the first building ever raised on the Kremlin hill—that of the skeet of the hermit who inhabited it prior to the tenth century. The first stone church there dates from 1330; restored in 1380, and rebuilt in 1527, and again restored in 1529, 1554, 1737, and 1856. Still much of its architectural primitiveness has been preserved, but it is typical of a church with monastery attached, as once the case (see page 29). There are now no external{197} mural paintings, but those inside are curious; the small, low belfry is very quaint and the bells now hung there are old foreign bells—among the first brought to Moscow. The central chapel, that of the Transfiguration, is the oldest, the “Royal Doors” are of primitive type. Its sacristy is poor: the relics are those of St Stephen the apostle to the Permians, and some fragments of bones and vestments found during the alterations in the present century. It is best seen in the early morning, a service is held daily, and the church is much visited by those about to marry, for, according to tradition, Sts Yuri, Samon and Aviva, to whom its side chapels are dedicated, are patrons of those whose love affairs do not run smooth. On the higher storey is the chapel of St Stephen the Permian.

The Church of the Transfiguration, commonly known as Spass na Boru or St Saviour’s in the Forest, is believed to be on the site of the first structure ever built on the Kremlin hill—that of the hermit who lived there before the tenth century. The first stone church dates back to 1330; it was restored in 1380, rebuilt in 1527, and again restored in 1529, 1554, 1737, and 1856. Much of its original architectural simplicity has been preserved, but it is characteristic of a church that used to have a monastery attached (see page 29). There are currently no external{197} mural paintings, but the ones inside are quite interesting; the small, low belfry is very charming, and the bells hung there are old foreign bells—among the first brought to Moscow. The central chapel, dedicated to the Transfiguration, is the oldest, and the “Royal Doors” are of a basic style. Its sacristy is lacking: the relics include those of St Stephen the Apostle to the Permians, along with some bone fragments and vestments discovered during renovations in this century. It’s best appreciated in the early morning, with daily services held, and the church is frequently visited by couples getting married, as tradition holds that Sts Yuri, Samon, and Aviva, to whom its side chapels are dedicated, are protectors of those whose love lives face challenges. On the upper level is the chapel of St Stephen the Permian.

Patriarchate of Riznitsa

The Church of the Twelve Apostles and Sacristy of the Patriarchs is on the site of a fifteenth century church on the north side of the Uspenski Sobor. It was built by Nikon and is still used in connection with the synod. It is on the second storey, and above it is the Chapel of St Philip—the private chapel of the Patriarchs after Nikon. In the rooms adjoining are kept the Holy vessels, most valuable church plate, and relics of the patriarchs and the Church. Many are contained in the cases arranged round the walls, the others may be inspected on application to one of the attendants—who will expect adin rubl na chaiu—or to those much interested will be shown by the Sacristan, who will explain their use and relate their history. A complete catalogue may be had, but the best account is that of the learned antiquarian, Sabas, Bishop of Mojaisk, whose book is known to all interested in the lore of the Eastern Church; a French translation of it has been{198} published in which the author’s name is spelled “Savva.” Among the more interesting articles of art workmanship are the panagies or jewelled crosses worn by the Patriarchs and others after consecration to their high office.

The Church of the Twelve Apostles and Sacristy of the Patriarchs is located on the site of a 15th-century church on the north side of the Uspenski Sobor. It was built by Nikon and is still used in connection with the synod. It’s on the second floor, and above it is the Chapel of St. Philip — the private chapel of the Patriarchs after Nikon. In the adjoining rooms are the Holy vessels, valuable church plate, and relics of the patriarchs and the Church. Many items are displayed in cases around the walls, while others can be viewed by asking one of the attendants — who will expect adin rubl na chaiu — or those who are really interested can be shown by the Sacristan, who will explain their use and share their history. A complete catalog is available, but the best account is by the learned antiquarian, Sabas, Bishop of Mojaisk, whose book is known to anyone interested in the lore of the Eastern Church; a French translation has been{198} published where the author's name is spelled “Savva.” Among the more interesting artistic pieces are the panagies or jeweled crosses worn by the Patriarchs and others after being consecrated to their high office.

“Among the objects of greatest antiquity are the sacerdotal robes of the high clergy. They are in the case near the altar; the ‘Omophorium of the sixth Œcumenical Council’ of the catalogue, is said to have belonged to St Nicholas the wonder-worker, Archbishop of Mirliki, and worn by that saint at the Council at Nice: Sabas thinks that it was presented to Alexis by Gregory of Nicea who visited Moscow in 1655, with letters from the Patriarchs of Jerusalem and Constantinople testifying to its genuineness. It belonged to the Patriarch of Alexandria, who was present at the Assembly of the Three Hundred and Eighteen Fathers of the Church, and, latterly, opinion inclines to its having originated with him. Equally ancient is a mitre, easily recognised from other ‘crowns’ in the case by its pointed shape, similar to those of ancient Byzantium. It was presented to the Tsar Theodore; the donor, Miletius Piga, of Alexandria, wrote that, apart from the gems with which it is adorned and the rich material, its age and reputation, it is to be esteemed above its intrinsic value because taken to the Council at Ephesus by Cyril, in 431. The mitre of the Patriarch Job, 1595, differs from those of later date by reason of its very flat top—the shape of a klobook, hat, or ancient crown—rather than a mitre. The mitres ranged with it were constructed by the directions of Nikon, and equal in richness and other details the royal crowns.

“Among the oldest objects are the ceremonial robes of the high clergy. They are in the case near the altar; the ‘Omophorium of the sixth Ecumenical Council’ listed in the catalog is said to have belonged to St. Nicholas the Wonder-Worker, Archbishop of Myra, and was worn by that saint at the Council of Nicaea. Sabas believes it was given to Alexis by Gregory of Nyssa, who visited Moscow in 1655, along with letters from the Patriarchs of Jerusalem and Constantinople confirming its authenticity. It belonged to the Patriarch of Alexandria, who was present at the Assembly of the Three Hundred and Eighteen Fathers of the Church, and more recently, people tend to believe it originated from him. Also ancient is a mitre, easily recognized from other ‘crowns’ in the case by its pointed shape, similar to those from ancient Byzantium. It was given to Tsar Theodore; the donor, Miletius Piga of Alexandria, stated that aside from the gems with which it is adorned and the luxurious material, its age and reputation make it valued beyond its intrinsic worth because it was taken to the Council of Ephesus by Cyril in 431. The mitre of Patriarch Job, from 1595, is distinct from later versions due to its very flat top—the shape of a klobuk, hat, or ancient crown—instead of a mitre. The mitres displayed alongside it were made under the guidance of Nikon and are equal in richness and other details to the royal crowns.”

“Of croziers and their equivalents there are many specimens, the most venerated, however, is that of St Peter, by the altar on the Uspenski Sobor,—the staff that passed from pontiff to pontiff through the centuries. There are three of the five in the sacristy of tau shape and beautiful, they belonged to Philaret; the others to Nikon. The processional cross of Nikon has but four points. Of copes there are forty-one; the oldest is that of Peter, the Metropolitan (1322), used afterwards at the consecration of the Patriarchs. The panagia or pyx worn by a bishop, or higher prelate, is often an exquisite piece of jewelry. That catalogued as No. 4 is of onyx, with a superposed layer having the crucifixion in relievo; on the reverse, a Greek cross, the Emperor Constantine and Helena, his mother. It belonged to the Patriarch Job and has a most beautiful setting{199} of Russian enamel and niello work of the sixteenth century. No. 11 is also of onyx, with ruby and pearl decoration, it appertained to Peter. No. 3. is a sardonyx of elaborate workmanship and unusual size; it has a reliquary containing a fragment of the robe of royal purple with which the Saviour was mockingly invested, and is believed to have been produced to the order of Ivan IV. to commemorate the birth of Dmitri. No. 25 contains an emerald of purest water, three-fifths of an inch in diameter. In another is also a fine emerald which weighs 38 carats. There are in addition jewels, rings, seals, cups, goblets, crosses, and other trinkets of the fathers of the Russian Church, and amongst them an object known as the ‘Antik,’ which has puzzled the learned. It is a shell of mother-of-pearl, shaped like a woman’s breast, and on this in fine gold, beautifully enamelled, the Gorgon’s head, the fanged heads of the serpent-locks intertwined and biting each other. It is on a base of rock-crystal, gold encrusted, and the medallions enamelled with representations of different buildings—it has figured in the inventory since 1648, when it had a double case of dark green velvet. The fine collection of church plate is principally of the seventeenth century and later.

“Of croziers and their equivalents, there are many examples, but the most revered is that of St. Peter, located by the altar on the Uspenski Sobor—the staff that has been passed down from pontiff to pontiff through the centuries. In the sacristy, three of the five are tau-shaped and beautiful; they belonged to Philaret, while the others belonged to Nikon. Nikon’s processional cross has only four points. There are forty-one copes, with the oldest dating back to Peter, the Metropolitan (1322), which was later used during the consecration of the Patriarchs. The panagia or pyx worn by a bishop or higher prelate is often an exquisite piece of jewelry. The one catalogued as No. 4 is made of onyx, featuring a superimposed layer showcasing the crucifixion in relievo; on the back is a Greek cross, along with Emperor Constantine and his mother Helena. It belonged to Patriarch Job and has a stunning setting{199} of Russian enamel and niello work from the sixteenth century. No. 11 is also made of onyx, adorned with ruby and pearl decoration, and it belonged to Peter. No. 3 is a sardonyx of intricate workmanship and unusual size, containing a reliquary with a fragment of the royal purple robe that the Saviour was mockingly dressed in, believed to have been made on the orders of Ivan IV to commemorate the birth of Dmitri. No. 25 features an emerald of the purest quality, measuring three-fifths of an inch in diameter. Another piece also contains a fine emerald weighing 38 carats. Additionally, there are jewels, rings, seals, cups, goblets, crosses, and other trinkets from the fathers of the Russian Church, including an object known as the ‘Antik,’ which has puzzled scholars. It is a mother-of-pearl shell, shaped like a woman’s breast, and beautifully adorned in fine gold, featuring the Gorgon’s head, with fanged heads of intertwined serpent-locks biting each other. It rests on a rock-crystal base, encrusted with gold, and the medallions are enamelled with representations of various buildings. It has been listed in the inventory since 1648, when it had a double case made of dark green velvet. The impressive collection of church plate is primarily from the seventeenth century and beyond.”

“In the adjoining Mirovarennaya Palata, the Holy Chrism is prepared every other year, in strict conformance with the original instruction. It is, when prepared, taken in sixteen silver phials to the Uspenski Sobor and then at a special service during Lent (usually Holy Thursday) consecrated by the Metropolitan, and further hallowed by the addition of a few drops of the oil from the vessel of ‘Alabaster’ in which the Holy Chrism was first brought into Russia from Constantinople, the vessel having never been emptied, since the quantity taken for this purpose is immediately replaced by the addition of that newly made. The ‘Alabaster’ is a long-necked flask of copper, wholly covered with scales of mother-of-pearl, and is supposed to be of the same size and form as that box of ointment Mary Magdalene offered Jesus.

“In the nearby Mirovarennaya Palata, the Holy Chrism is prepared every two years, following the original instructions closely. Once prepared, it is taken in sixteen silver phials to the Uspenski Sobor and then consecrated by the Metropolitan during a special service in Lent (usually on Holy Thursday). It is further sanctified by adding a few drops of oil from the vessel of 'Alabaster,' which is where the Holy Chrism was first brought to Russia from Constantinople. This vessel has never been emptied, as the amount taken for this purpose is immediately replaced with new preparation. The 'Alabaster' is a long-necked flask made of copper, entirely covered with mother-of-pearl scales, and is believed to be the same size and shape as the box of ointment that Mary Magdalene presented to Jesus."

“The library of the Synod contains about one thousand Slavic MSS. on Church rites and copies of the scriptures, many between the seventh and twelfth centuries, and five hundred Greek MSS. of even earlier date. They were got together by the patriarch Nikon for the purpose of comparison, and restoring the ritual of the Russian Church to its original, or at least earlier, rule. The printed books have mostly been removed to other collections, and the MSS. are of interest only to those well acquainted with the rites of the early Christian Church, and such students are readily granted access to them.”

“The library of the Synod houses about a thousand Slavic manuscripts on church practices and copies of the scriptures, many dating from the seventh to the twelfth centuries, along with five hundred Greek manuscripts from even earlier. These were gathered by Patriarch Nikon for comparison and to restore the practices of the Russian Church to their original or at least earlier standards. Most of the printed books have been moved to other collections, and the manuscripts are mainly of interest to those who are well-versed in the rites of the early Christian Church, and such scholars are easily granted access to them.”

{200}

{200}

Such a brief account does scant justice to one of the finest and most complete collections of ecclesiastical furniture the world has produced; but, interesting as some of the objects are to all beholders, it is to the student of ecclesiasticism that they will appeal with greatest force. To him also, the technique of ritual; the customs appertaining to the dispersion of relics among newly-built churches and restoration of those injured by time and accident; together with many other matters of Church rule and procedure which find illustration in this collection, should prove both attractive and instructive. Of greater general interest is the story of the struggle between orthodoxy and heterodoxy, the rise of heresy and states of different forms of dissent; that dramatic movement of ecclesiasticism which is world wide, continuous, and of perennial concern to all.

Such a brief overview doesn't do justice to one of the finest and most complete collections of church furniture the world has ever seen. While some of the items will interest everyone, they will resonate most strongly with those studying ecclesiastical matters. For them, the details of rituals, the customs related to distributing relics among newly built churches, and restoring those damaged by time and accidents—as well as many other aspects of Church rules and procedures illustrated in this collection—should be both appealing and educational. Of broader interest is the story of the struggle between orthodoxy and dissent, the emergence of heresy, and various forms of disagreement; that dramatic movement in ecclesiasticism that spans the globe, is ongoing, and is a lasting concern for all.

Whatever heresies may have existed in early Russia, with the ascendancy of Moscow these perished, and the prelates had only to guard against the wiles of Rome and to stay its power on the confines of the kingdom. During the reign of Vasili the Blind the unsuccessful attempt of the Metropolitan Isidor to introduce Romish practices intensified the conservatism of the prelates. In 1582, Anthony Possevin, a Jesuit emissary of the Pope, Gregory XIII., had long discussions with Ivan the Terrible in the Granovitaia Palata respecting the union of the Churches. Ivan was outspoken: the emissary returned unsatisfied.

Whatever heresies may have existed in early Russia, they faded away with the rise of Moscow, and the church leaders only had to be cautious of Rome's influence and keep its power at the borders of the kingdom. During Vasili the Blind's reign, the unsuccessful attempt by Metropolitan Isidor to bring in Catholic practices made the church leaders even more conservative. In 1582, Anthony Possevin, a Jesuit envoy from Pope Gregory XIII, had extensive discussions with Ivan the Terrible in the Granovitaia Palata about uniting the Churches. Ivan was straightforward: the envoy left feeling unsatisfied.

The false Dmitri’s view has already been given: he was overthrown and the supremacy of the orthodox prelates increased by Boris Godunov’s initiation of the Patriarchate. The Tsar Michael and his father Philaret appear to have been always in accord, and then the temporal power of the prelates was equal to that of the sovereign. Alexis, a boy of seventeen, was unfortunate in having as collaborator the sturdy Nikon. After his{201} absence in the war against the Poles he found Nikon, as Veliki Gossudar, a title reserved for the Tsars, absolutely autocratic. The Tsar objected to the use of the title by the Patriarch; Nikon resigned his office, and retired to the Vosskresenki Monastery on the Varvarka, expecting Alexis would seek him, but the Tsar did not visit him nor did he appoint another patriarch. Nikon had already given great offence to the clergy for, attracted by some text on one of the ecclesiastical vestments that had been received from Greece, he recognised a considerable difference between the Greek rendering and that current in Slavonic; prosecuting his investigations further he found many discrepancies and tried in all things to revert to the older practice. His action was construed as the introduction of new procedure—and consequently vigorously opposed—and orthodoxy split into two camps; those who agreed with the head of the Church that the ancient practice was correct and should be introduced and the more conservative who would not depart from that to which they had been accustomed, and it is they who are known as the “Old Believers,” for the alterations proposed by Nikon ultimately became general. Although the Patriarch had resigned he continued to receive the clergy and concern himself with the direction of ecclesiastical affairs. In 1654 he angered the people by going into private chapels and houses and removing all copies of the ikon Nerukotvorenni, “not made with hands,” because unlike the ikons of Mount Athos. The priest visited Moscow, and the people paraded the empty ikon cases and the defaced ikons, attributing to this outrage the plague from which so many suffered, and the clergy then left Moscow in large numbers fearing assault. In 1659 the Tsar’s emissaries informed him that he ought no longer to interfere. He thereupon withdrew from Moscow. In Advent 1664 he suddenly reappeared with{202} many monks at early matins in the Uspenski Cathedral, peremptorily ordered the officiating clergy to perform certain offices. The clergy at once apprised the Tsar, who in turn ordered his boyards to command Nikon to leave the Cathedral. Nikon pleaded that he had been instructed by Jonas in a vision to act as he had done, but the Tsar only repeated the command; he stated then that he had power to heal the sick, but the Tsar was inflexible and Nikon retired. At a council in 1666 he was formally deposed, and withdrew to a distant monastery where he continued his researches; he was pardoned by the Tsar Theodore in 1681 but died whilst on his journey to meet his sovereign.

The view of the false Dmitri has already been outlined: he was overthrown, and the power of the orthodox leaders grew as Boris Godunov established the Patriarchate. Tsar Michael and his father Philaret seemed to have always been in agreement, with the leaders of the church holding as much power as the sovereign. Alexis, just seventeen, faced challenges with the strong-willed Nikon as his advisor. After returning from the war against the Poles, he found Nikon, styled as Veliki Gossudar, a title exclusive to Tsars, completely authoritarian. The Tsar objected to the Patriarch using that title; Nikon then resigned and withdrew to the Vosskresenki Monastery on Varvarka, expecting Alexis to seek him out, but the Tsar neither visited him nor appointed a new patriarch. Nikon had already offended many clergymen by noting a significant difference between the Greek translations and the Slavonic texts that were customary, inspired by a text on one of the ecclesiastical garments received from Greece. His further investigations revealed many discrepancies, leading him to attempt a return to older practices. His actions were seen as introducing new procedures—which were met with strong opposition—resulting in a split in orthodoxy: those who supported the patriarch's views on the correctness of ancient practices and those who were conservative and resistant to change, now known as the "Old Believers." Ultimately, the changes proposed by Nikon became widespread. Even after resigning, the Patriarch continued to meet with clergy and manage church affairs. In 1654, he angered the populace by entering private chapels and homes to remove all copies of the ikon Nerukotvorenni, "not made with hands," which were different from those of Mount Athos. The priest's actions led to public demonstrations of empty ikon cases and damaged ikons, with many attributing the plague that afflicted them to this offense. Large numbers of clergy then left Moscow, fearing backlash. In 1659, the Tsar's representatives informed him that he should stop interfering. Consequently, he withdrew from Moscow. During Advent 1664, he unexpectedly returned with many monks for early matins in the Uspenski Cathedral and ordered the officiating clergy to perform specific rites. The clergy quickly informed the Tsar, who instructed his boyars to tell Nikon to leave the Cathedral. Nikon claimed he was acting on directions from Jonas in a vision, but the Tsar reiterated his command. Nikon then asserted he had the power to heal the sick, yet the Tsar remained resolute, and Nikon ultimately retreated. In 1666, he was officially deposed at a council and retreated to a distant monastery to continue his studies. The Tsar Theodore pardoned him in 1681, but he died on his way to meet the Tsar.

Joachim, the succeeding Patriarch, opposed Nikon’s innovations, and held tenaciously to the customary practice and attempted to stifle schism by persecuting relentlessly. He forbade Catholics to worship, banished Jesuits, barely tolerated Calvinists and Lutherans, and burned to death Kullman the German mystic for proclaiming false doctrines. When he died in 1690 he besought Peter to drive all heretics and unbelievers from Russia—it is to him that Peter erected the chapel on the Srietenka. As in 1682 and earlier, the “old believers” had been cruelly tortured for not conforming to the innovations of Nikon, more especially the unfortunate and obstinate Boyarina Morozov and her sister Princess Urusov, so with the change of the head of the Church the people were condemned for such acts as they had previously been commended for performing, and now knew not whom to believe. With the accession of Peter to sole power, and the enforcement by him of practices foreign to former habit, the people associated all his innovations with those purely clerical ones which had recently met with opposition and caused persecution and suffering. It was impossible to stamp out opposition, exile but spread the discontent.{203} When Peter quarrelled with the Church, the clergy were unable to cope with the popular reaction against the innovations of Nikon and his disciples. Peter was at last induced to persecute the noncontents, but these, disgusted with his secular innovations, fled into distant parts of the country and even abroad, where for long they were politically an element of grave danger to the state, but, the rule of Nikon was established and the old believers regarded as Raskolniki, or dissenters.

Joachim, the next Patriarch, opposed Nikon’s changes and held tightly to traditional practices while trying to suppress dissent through relentless persecution. He banned Catholics from worshiping, expelled Jesuits, barely tolerated Calvinists and Lutherans, and executed Kullman, the German mystic, for spreading false doctrines. When he died in 1690, he urged Peter to expel all heretics and unbelievers from Russia—it was for him that Peter built the chapel on the Srietenka. Just like in 1682 and earlier, the “old believers” were brutally tortured for refusing to accept Nikon’s reforms, particularly the unfortunate and stubborn Boyarina Morozov and her sister Princess Urusov. With the change in Church leadership, the people found themselves condemned for actions they had previously been praised for, leaving them unsure of whom to trust. When Peter rose to sole power and enforced practices that were different from the old ways, the people linked all his changes with the clerical ones that had just faced opposition and brought suffering. It was impossible to eliminate dissent; exiling only spread discontent. When Peter clashed with the Church, the clergy struggled to handle the public backlash against Nikon’s innovations and those of his followers. Eventually, Peter was persuaded to persecute the dissenters, but they, disillusioned by his secular changes, fled to remote areas of the country and even abroad, where they posed a significant political threat to the state for a long time. However, Nikon’s rule was established, and the old believers were viewed as Raskolniki, or dissenters.{203}

These, under persecution, and lacking adequate direction again split into two sections; one, the popovtsi, or those who acknowledge the priesthood and depend for their clergy upon schismatics from among the orthodox, who after ordination, find their practice preferable.

These people, facing persecution and lacking proper guidance, split into two groups again; one group, the popovtsi, acknowledges the priesthood and relies on clergy who are schismatics from the orthodox community, preferring their practices after ordination.

They are quite insignificant in comparison with the Bezpopovtsi, or those who do not have ordained priests, but are more powerful because united, whereas the bezpopovtsi number as many different brotherhoods as there are distinct dissenting sects in England. The best known among these are the Dukhobortsi, who deny the divinity of the Holy Ghost, strongly oppose civil authority, refuse to pray for their sovereign or the head of the orthodox church, and consider death by starvation or fire, so long as it is self-wrought, to be the highest duty. Nearly akin to them are the terrible Skoptsi or mutilators, and the fanatic Khlysti, or Flagellants, and many others. To the orthodox church all who are not slavopravni are alike. The civil government has always discriminated between the harmless and those whose tenets are opposed to the welfare of the individual and to the commonwealth.

They are relatively insignificant compared to the Bezpopovtsi, or those without ordained priests, but they are more powerful because they are united. In contrast, the bezpopovtsi consist of as many different brotherhoods as there are unique dissenting sects in England. The most well-known among these are the Dukhobortsi, who deny the divinity of the Holy Ghost, strongly oppose civil authority, refuse to pray for their sovereign or the head of the orthodox church, and consider death by starvation or fire—if self-inflicted—to be their highest duty. Very similar to them are the notorious Skoptsi or mutilators, and the fanatical Khlysti, or Flagellants, along with many others. The orthodox church views all who are not slavopravni as the same. The civil government has always distinguished between those who are harmless and those whose beliefs are harmful to individuals and to society as a whole.

The orthodox regard the discussion as terminated: the Tsaritsa Sophia herself was present in the Granovitaia Palace, at the discussions of the Patriarch with the chief of the Ras Kolniks, a fanatic Nikita. There were stormy scenes; at the close each sect claimed{204} to have the right, and for long afterwards there were frequent discussions between the supporters of both parties, around the porch of the Blagovieshchenski Sobor.

The traditionalists believe the discussion has ended: Tsaritsa Sophia was actually at the Granovitaia Palace during the talks between the Patriarch and Nikita, the extremist leader of the Ras Kolniks. There were intense scenes; by the end, each sect claimed{204} they had the right to their beliefs, and for a long time afterward, there were many debates between the supporters of both sides around the porch of the Blagovieshchenski Sobor.



CHURCH AND GATE OF MARY OF VLADIMIR

CHURCH AND GATE OF MARY OF VLADIMIR



CHURCH AND GATE OF MARY OF VLADIMIR

CHURCH AND GATE OF MARY OF VLADIMIR

Of the churches of the orthodox, the number in Moscow is indeed great; add to these the cathedrals, the new Xram, chapels, monasteries and convents, and the claim of Moscow to its title of City of Churches will not be questioned. It is quite impossible even to enumerate those worth seeing. Instead take a typical street, say the Nikolskaya in the busiest part of the{205} commercial Kitai-Gorod. It contains the Monastery of the Images, Za-ikono-spassky Monastyr—once, 1679, an academy; Church of the Virgin of Kazan, interesting as founded in 1630 by Prince Pojarski; the Nikolævski Monastyr, Greek, founded in 1556, and in 1669, with two churches; opposite it the old Monastery of the Epiphany, Bogoyavlenni, founded in 1396, with a church to Boris and Gleb and several others of lesser note—a large establishment with an extensive cemetery but the buildings of course modern. The Synodalia Typografiia; the printing house of the Synod, founded in 1645, the façade always painted a light blue, with the lion and unicorn, and other Byzantine decorations, in white. Then near the Vladimirski Vorot, the church to the Virgin, dating from the time of the boy-Tsars, Ivan and Peter, and opposite the second largest monastery, and most often used church in the Kitai gorod, that of the Trinity. In all eleven churches or chapels within less than 200 yards—and that is characteristic of Moscow. Among other tserkvi well worth seeing are:—

Of the Orthodox churches, there are indeed many in Moscow; when you include the cathedrals, the new Xram, chapels, monasteries, and convents, Moscow's title as the City of Churches is clearly justified. It's almost impossible to list all the ones worth visiting. Instead, let's take a typical street, like Nikolskaya in the bustling part of the {205} commercial Kitai-Gorod. This street features the Monastery of the Images, Za-ikono-spassky Monastyr—once an academy in 1679; the Church of the Virgin of Kazan, notable because it was founded in 1630 by Prince Pojarski; the Nikolævski Monastyr, a Greek monastery established in 1556, which has two churches dating back to 1669; across from it is the old Monastery of the Epiphany, Bogoyavlenni, founded in 1396, featuring a church dedicated to Boris and Gleb, along with several other lesser-known buildings—a large complex with an extensive cemetery, though the buildings are modern. The Synodalia Typografiia, the printing house of the Synod founded in 1645, has a façade consistently painted in light blue, adorned with a lion, a unicorn, and other Byzantine motifs in white. Then, near the Vladimirski Vorot, there’s the church dedicated to the Virgin, dating back to the time of the young Tsars, Ivan and Peter, and opposite it is the second-largest monastery and the most frequently used church in Kitai-Gorod, that of the Trinity. In total, there are eleven churches or chapels within less than 200 yards—and that’s typical of Moscow. Among other churches well worth seeing are:—

Kitai-Gorod. In the Varvarka: St Barb, St George the Martyr, St Maxim the Confessor, and the Monastery of the Resurrection. In the Ilyinka: St Nicholas of the Great Cross, St Elias. Also the Holy Trinity in the Cherkassky, St Anne in the Zariadi, and of the Virgin of Georgia, but St Ipatius is in the Ipatievski, and St Nicholas near the Moskvretski Bridge.

Kitai-Gorod. On Varvarka: St. Barb, St. George the Martyr, St. Maxim the Confessor, and the Monastery of the Resurrection. On Ilyinka: St. Nicholas of the Great Cross and St. Elias. Also, the Holy Trinity in the Cherkassky, St. Anne in Zariadi, and the Virgin of Georgia, but St. Ipatius is in the Ipatievski, and St. Nicholas is near the Moskvretski Bridge.

Bielo-Gorod. The Srietenka, built by John Taylor; All Saints, the Transfiguration, and the Manifestation.

Bielo-Gorod. The Srietenka, created by John Taylor; All Saints, the Transfiguration, and the Manifestation.

{206}

{206}

CHAPTER X

Moscow of the Citizens

"Fair Moscow crowned: now standing tall
And, sitting on her throne of hills,
"A magnificent structure from the past."
Dmitriev.

PETER “THE GREAT” who is credited with having created the history of Russia did little for Moscow, a town he, after his travels abroad, always despised and constantly distrusted. He evicted the last private owners from the Kremlin, and spoiled its palaces and treasures, but took no measures to enhance its beauty or increase its wealth. It is customary to date progress and civilisation from his reign; an anonymous Russian poet has even written:

PETER “THE GREAT,” who is known for shaping the history of Russia, did very little for Moscow, a city he always looked down on and was suspicious of after his travels abroad. He removed the last private owners from the Kremlin and damaged its palaces and treasures, but he made no effort to improve its beauty or enhance its wealth. It's common to mark the beginning of progress and civilization from his rule; an anonymous Russian poet has even written:

"Russia's power was hidden in the dark of night;
God said, "Let Peter be"—and immediately they came to light.

but, so far as Moscow is concerned, his coming would be more truthfully regarded as of the nature of an eclipse than as the harbinger of light. Probably his reputation is due to the prominence of his person in western Europe—where it is customary to mistake renown for greatness—rather than his achievements.

but, as far as Moscow is concerned, his arrival would be better seen as an eclipse rather than a sign of light. His reputation is likely a result of his visibility in Western Europe—where it’s common to confuse fame with true greatness—rather than his actual accomplishments.

Peter forsook Moscow, left her to the Church, which he served badly—and to her citizens, whom he treated even worse. Benevolence was foreign to his character; he could not mould Moscow to his ideal—if a passing whim can be so termed—but before he realised his{207} impotence in this, he became brutal and fierce. He quarrelled with the Church, cruelly ill used his wife—whom he forsook eventually, shamefully treated his blood-relations—even torturing his half-sisters himself, and was to his subjects such a father as he proved to his own unfortunate son Alexis, who was done to death at his hands; in all these things behaving so savagely that even the strongest were awed into hypocrisy. The citizens of Moscow considered themselves the children of the Father of the people—the Tsar who lived in the Kremlin—who cared for them and never ceased to be anxious for their welfare. He alone was responsible for their direction, with him was the Church, they knew not how to act independently. The streltsi, the fighting men, the armed citizens, were first of the Moscow townsmen to act of their own initiative, but they were disciplined men who trusted their leaders—even when betrayed.

Peter abandoned Moscow, leaving her to the Church, which he served poorly—and to her citizens, whom he treated even worse. Kindness was not in his nature; he couldn't shape Moscow to his ideal—if a passing whim can be called that—but before he realized his{207} inability to do so, he became brutal and fierce. He clashed with the Church, cruelly mistreated his wife—whom he eventually left, shamefully treated his relatives—even torturing his half-sisters himself—and was to his subjects the same kind of father he proved to be to his unfortunate son Alexis, who met a tragic end at his hands; in all these ways behaving so savagely that even the strongest were forced into hypocrisy. The citizens of Moscow saw themselves as the children of the Father of the people—the Tsar who lived in the Kremlin—who cared for them and was always concerned for their welfare. He alone was in charge of their guidance, with the Church alongside him; they didn't know how to act independently. The streltsi, the soldiers, were the first of the Moscow townsmen to take initiative, but they were disciplined men who trusted their leaders—even when betrayed.

Peter exterminated the streltsi, the men who first of all his subjects had supported his claims and protected his rights; it is in connection with the streltsi that Peter is most enduringly associated with Moscow. The scenes of that long struggle were, for the most part, enacted outside the Kremlin; in the Kitai-Gorod of the merchants, in the Bielo-Gorod of the freemen, in the sloboda of the foreign settlers, and the Preobrajenski quarter where Peter was reared. It is this Moscow that has suffered most from the invader and from fire; its memorials of antiquity are few, those appertaining to Peter the Great and his time may be counted on the fingers of one mutilated hand. The most conspicuous marks are those of the Church. Continuing by that route indicated in the last chapter, on issuing by the Valdimirski Gate from the Kitai-Gorod, the road north is the Big Lubianka, running along the crest of the hill towards the old village of{208}

Peter eliminated the streltsi, the men who were the first of his subjects to back his claims and defend his rights; it’s with the streltsi that Peter is most closely linked to Moscow. The scenes of that long struggle mainly took place outside the Kremlin; in the Kitai-Gorod of the merchants, in the Bielo-Gorod of the free citizens, in the sloboda of the foreign settlers, and in the Preobrajenski quarter where Peter grew up. This Moscow has suffered the most from invaders and fire; its ancient landmarks are few, and those related to Peter the Great and his era can be counted on one mutilated hand. The most noticeable reminders are those of the Church. Continuing along the route mentioned in the last chapter, as you exit through the Vladimir Gate from Kitai-Gorod, the road north is the Big Lubianka, running along the top of the hill towards the old village of{208}



SRIETENKA—SDKHAREV BASHNIA

SRIETENKA—SDKHAREV BASHNIA

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
SRIETENKA—SDKHAREV BASHNIA

Kuchko, long since incorporated with the town; on the right hand is the palace of that Count Rostopchin who ordered the destruction of Moscow in 1812; on the left at the corner of the Kuznetski Most is the old church, set apart from time immemorial for the benediction of fruit. As an old writer states, “the Mahommedans would as soon eat pork as a Russian unconsecrated apples.” Further on, also on the left is the old monastery of the Srietenka (Meeting), founded by Vasili Dmitrivich in gratitude of the deliverance of Moscow threatened by the Tartars under Tamerlane in 1397; rebuilt by Theodore II.{209} and containing a chapel to the Patriarch Joachim, constructed by Peter I. in 1706. It has two other old churches, one dedicated to St Nicholas, and the other to the Egyptian Virgin Mary, neither of particular interest. This is a part of Moscow longest inhabited by the peasant class, and continuing on past the boulevard, which marks the old wall of the Bielo-Gorod, the Srietenka traverses the Zemliaa Gorod, or earthen town, until the Sadovia is reached, where was once the by no means formidable rampart of the outer wall; beyond this the Miaschanska continues the road to the Kammer College earth rampart at the Krestovski-Zastava. Beyond that is the highway to Ostankina, the Marina Roshcha, and the village of Mordva. The eighteenth church passed after leaving the Grand Square is dedicated to the Trinity and is remarkable for a number of small shops within its walls, the windows but a couple of feet high and the ceiling so near the pavement that buyers have to stoop or kneel to bargain. An old order forbids that shops be within a church, and a more recent one, any without it. These being neither within nor without continue unmolested. In this district the Streltsi were living at the close of the seventeenth century, and a little further on is the Sukharev Bashnia, Peter’s memorial to the fidelity of a regiment of the force he exterminated. It is a curious pile: an octagonal tower rises 200 feet above the roadway over high archways and a large two-storeyed gallery above them. The beholder who is told that this is like a ship will possess the credulity of Polonius if he assent; but actually Peter modelled it as a ship to serve for the elementary instructions of his future sailors. As all know, Peter derived his idea of ships from the Dutch, but even that explains little and leaves much to the imagination. As remote is the connection of Sukharev with ships{210} and the sea, so if not exactly a suitable monument for an officer of Moscow’s soldiery it was what Peter thought would serve his purpose better than any other design. Its closest connection with ships is at present; as a water tower it is not wholly useless still. Its architecture is not remarkable, a mixture of Lombard with Gothic that might have resulted from copying the Vosskresenski Gate and substituting a tall straight tower for the ornate Gothic spires then the fashion in Moscow. Considered a ship—the tower is the mast, the rooms below are supposed to resemble the poop-deck and quarter-galleries of an old man-of-war. The entrance is by a flight of steps from the Srietenka; in the large room a number of Moscow youths were instructed in arithmetic by a Scotch schoolmaster named Farquharson, and two Christ Church scholars, Gwynne and Graves, whom Peter held practically as prisoners there. Sometimes these pupils were taken to St Petersburgh to drive piles for foundations of the new town, at others they were exercised in elocution and deportment that they might the better represent comedies for the diversion of the Court.

Kuchko, which has long been part of the town; to the right is the palace of Count Rostopchin, who ordered the destruction of Moscow in 1812; to the left, at the corner of Kuznetski Most, is the old church, traditionally designated for the blessing of fruit. As an old writer noted, “the Muslims would just as soon eat pork as a Russian would eat unblessed apples.” Further along, still on the left, is the old Srietenka Monastery, founded by Vasili Dmitrivich in gratitude for saving Moscow from the Tartars under Tamerlane in 1397; it was rebuilt by Theodore II.{209} and includes a chapel dedicated to Patriarch Joachim, constructed by Peter I in 1706. It has two other old churches, one dedicated to St. Nicholas and the other to the Egyptian Virgin Mary, neither of which is particularly notable. This area of Moscow has been inhabited longest by the peasant class, and continuing past the boulevard, which marks the old wall of Bielo-Gorod, the Srietenka goes through the Zemliaa Gorod, or earthen town, until it reaches Sadovia, where there once was a rather unimpressive outer wall; beyond this, Miaschanska continues the road to the Kammer College earth rampart at Krestovski-Zastava. Beyond that is the highway to Ostankina, Marina Roshcha, and the village of Mordva. The eighteenth church you encounter after leaving the Grand Square is dedicated to the Trinity and is notable for having several small shops inside its walls, with windows only a couple of feet high and a ceiling so low that shoppers have to stoop or kneel to negotiate. An old regulation prohibits shops inside a church, and a more recent one prohibits any outside. These shops are neither within nor without and continue without issue. In this district, the Streltsi lived at the end of the seventeenth century, and a little further on is the Sukharev Bashnia, a memorial by Peter to the loyalty of a regiment he wiped out. It's a curious structure: an octagonal tower rises 200 feet above the road, supported by high archways and topped with a large two-story gallery. If someone claims this resembles a ship, they would be as naïve as Polonius if they agree; but in reality, Peter designed it as a ship for the basic training of his future sailors. As everyone knows, Peter got his idea for ships from the Dutch, but that explanation does little to clarify and leaves much to the imagination. Just as the link between Sukharev and ships is weak{210} and the sea, it may not be precisely the right monument for a Moscow officer, but it was what Peter thought would best serve his intended purpose. Its closest association with ships nowadays is that it still functions as a water tower. Its architecture isn’t remarkable, combining Lombard and Gothic styles that likely came from copying the Vosskresenski Gate while replacing the ornate Gothic spires, which were then fashionable in Moscow, with a tall, straight tower. Considering it a ship—the tower acts as the mast, and the rooms below are meant to resemble the poop deck and quarter galleries of an old warship. The entrance is accessed by a flight of steps from Srietenka; in the large room, several young men from Moscow were taught arithmetic by a Scottish schoolmaster named Farquharson, along with two scholars from Christ Church, Gwynne and Graves, whom Peter essentially kept there as captives. Sometimes these students were taken to St. Petersburg to drive piles for the foundations of the new city; at other times, they were trained in elocution and manners so they could better perform comedies for the entertainment of the Court.

The teachers of the school knew nothing of Russian and the scholars only their native tongue—such was Peter’s way. Unhappy the scholars

The teachers at the school didn’t know any Russian, and the students only spoke their native language—such was Peter’s way. Unhappy were the students.

Since the mind is fully gathered and orderly Natural Russian, not German. [E]
[E] "Stoic, sad, quiet, and down," "Being born in Russia doesn't mean I'm deaf and mute."

It is said a lodge of Freemasons used once to meet in a room of the tower, and there not only were “black arts” practised but Peter convened secret meetings of the State Council, a sort of Star Chamber. The society of “Neptune” really consisted of Lefort{211} the Swiss General, Archbishop Theofan, Admiral Apraxin, Farquharson, Bruce, and Princes Cherkassky, Galitzin, Menshikov, and Sheremetiev. Those in fact who were for westernising Russia.

It is said that a Freemason lodge used to meet in a room of the tower, where not only were “black arts” practiced, but Peter held secret meetings of the State Council, a kind of Star Chamber. The society of “Neptune” actually included Lefort{211}, the Swiss General, Archbishop Theofan, Admiral Apraxin, Farquharson, Bruce, and Princes Cherkassky, Galitzin, Menshikov, and Sheremetiev. These were the ones who were in favor of westernizing Russia.

The story of the Streltsi and the part they played in the history of Moscow is worth telling. They originated with the oprichniks of Ivan the Terrible: transformed into a sort of hereditary militia, they fought for Moscow when called upon, and in return were allowed to reside tax free, to trade, to keep shops, mills and ply various handicrafts. Their commandants tried to make serfs of them. When some complained that the colonel of one regiment was keeping back half the pay, Yazikov, the chief of the commanders, ordered these petitioners to be flogged so as to teach them not to complain of those in authority over them. Three days before Theodore II. died, they accused Griboiedov of extortion, cruelty and withholding pay and forcing them to work for him housebuilding, even during Easter week. This complaint reached Dolgoruki: he ordered the messenger to be flogged, but as the man was led away he called to his fellows, “Brothers, I was but obeying your orders,” thereupon they attacked the guard and released him. Complaints became general: it was practically a revolt of the armed citizens the government had to fear. For the moment it yielded. Griboiedov was ordered to Siberia, but after only a day’s imprisonment reinstated. The Streltsi became alarmed. On the death of Theodore they, among themselves, took the oath of fealty to Peter. Sophia and her advisers intrigued and split the Streltsi. One regiment under Sukharev remained faithful to the secret oath, to Peter, the Naryshkins and Matvievs: the others demanded and received their colonels whom they flogged—Griboiedov with the knout, the others with rods—their property was confiscated, and the claims of the Streltsi paid. The Sukharev regiment took Peter and his mother to the Troitsa Monastery for safety, and it is in commemoration of this action that the Tower was built.

The story of the Streltsi and their role in Moscow's history is important to share. They originated from Ivan the Terrible's oprichniks: transformed into a kind of hereditary militia, they fought for Moscow when needed. In return, they were allowed to live tax-free, engage in trade, run shops and mills, and practice various crafts. Their commanders tried to make serfs out of them. When some complained that the colonel of one regiment was withholding half their pay, Yazikov, the chief commander, ordered those who complained to be whipped to teach them not to question authority. Three days before Theodore II died, they accused Griboiedov of extortion, cruelty, withholding pay, and forcing them to help him build a house, even during Easter week. This complaint reached Dolgoruki, who ordered the messenger to be whipped, but as he was being taken away, he called to his fellow Streltsi, “Brothers, I was just following your orders.” Then they attacked the guard and freed him. Complaints quickly spread, practically leading to a revolt among armed citizens that the government had to worry about. For the time being, the government conceded. Griboiedov was ordered to Siberia but was reinstated after just one day's imprisonment. The Streltsi grew concerned. After Theodore's death, they swore loyalty to Peter among themselves. Sophia and her advisors schemed and divided the Streltsi. One regiment under Sukharev remained loyal to the secret oath, to Peter, the Naryshkins, and Matvievs, while the others demanded their colonels, whom they whipped—Griboiedov with the knout, the others with rods—their property was confiscated, and the Streltsi's claims were compensated. The Sukharev regiment took Peter and his mother to the Troitsa Monastery for safety, and in memory of this act, the Tower was built.

The real cause of the later conflict arose from a deeper trouble, the struggle for the throne between the children of Alexis by his first wife, and Peter the eldest of those by his second. Ivan was weak, but his sister Sophia, with her lover Galitzin and a court following opposed to the innovations to be expected of{212} Naryshkins’ friends, supported him most loyally. The Streltsi insisted that Peter should reign conjointly with Ivan and carried their point, but Sophia, as regent, was entrusted with certain powers. Both princes were crowned in 1682, but, owing to intrigues, the court was divided into two factions—the supporters of Ivan and Sophia, of Peter and the Matvievs. The Khovanskis were accused of compassing the death of Theodore, and beheaded. Doubts as to Peter’s parentage were expressed; the trouble made previous to the marriage of Natalia was remembered; others declared that Peter was a changeling, really the son of Dr Van Gaden. Peter himself, according to the picture of his patron saint painted on a board his exact size on the day of birth, was then some twenty inches long by five and a half broad. Moreover, there was a doggerel song of the period:

The real cause of the later conflict came from a deeper issue: the fight for the throne between Alexis's children from his first wife and Peter, the oldest child from his second wife. Ivan was weak, but his sister Sophia, along with her lover Galitzin and a court faction opposed to the changes expected from Naryshkin's allies, supported him loyally. The Streltsi insisted that Peter should reign alongside Ivan and got their way, but Sophia, as regent, was given certain powers. Both princes were crowned in 1682, but due to intrigues, the court became divided into two factions—the supporters of Ivan and Sophia and those of Peter and the Matvievs. The Khovanskis were accused of plotting to kill Theodore and were executed. There were doubts about Peter's parentage; the issues that arose before Natalia's marriage were recalled, and some claimed that Peter was actually a changeling, the real son of Dr. Van Gaden. According to the picture of his patron saint painted on a board his exact size on the day he was born, Peter measured about twenty inches long and five and a half inches wide. Additionally, there was a popular doggerel song of the time:

“What luck, oh, what joy! The Tsar has been given
A heir, yes, a boy! Sent to us from heaven!
It's amazing! It's full of laughter and joy,
"Great Peter Alexevich, first lord of the earth!"

Peter is said once to have met his reputed father, a rough haunter of taverns in the foreign suburb. Throwing him roughly to the ground Peter determined to learn whether or not he was his father. “Batuch ka! How should I know—I was not the only one,” the fellow is reported to have answered; but it was only a stale and salacious witticism of the sort Peter loved—certainly not evidence. The struggle was further complicated by camps of orthodox and dissenters. It was fought to the bitter end by Sophia on behalf of her mother’s children, against Peter who was only her father’s son; on behalf of herself too, for she had a lover, and no liking for the seclusion of the cloisters to which the daughters of the orthodox Tsars were{213} relegated because they were of too high birth to wed with their father’s subjects, and their faith—which they were not allowed to relinquish—an effectual barrier to matrimony with a foreign prince. At first the revolt of the Streltsi had little political significance beyond the fact that it was the forcible demand of a part of the citizens for common justice.

Peter is said to have once encountered his alleged father, a rough guy who hung out in taverns in the foreign suburb. Throwing him roughly to the ground, Peter determined to find out if he was indeed his father. “Batuch ka! How should I know—I wasn’t the only one,” the man reportedly replied; but it was just an old, sleazy joke that Peter enjoyed—definitely not proof. The conflict was further complicated by camps of orthodox and dissenters. It was fought to the bitter end by Sophia on behalf of her mother’s children, against Peter who was just her father’s son; on behalf of herself too, because she had a lover and no interest in the isolation of the cloisters where the daughters of the orthodox Tsars were{213} sent because they were too high-born to marry their father's subjects, and their faith—which they couldn’t give up—was a solid barrier to marrying a foreign prince. At first, the revolt of the Streltsi had little political significance beyond the fact that it was the forceful demand of some citizens for basic justice.

For seven years Sophia directed the affairs of state with more or less success; Ivan was simply her tool, with Peter she had greater trouble, and in 1689, after a quarrel with her, he withdrew from Moscow and went to Troitsa. A large party followed him. Sophia feared revolt and appealed to the people in an eloquent address of three hours’ duration.

For seven years, Sophia managed the government with varying degrees of success; Ivan was just her puppet, but she had more difficulties with Peter. In 1689, after an argument with her, he left Moscow and went to Troitsa, taking a large group with him. Sophia was worried about a rebellion and made a passionate three-hour speech to the public.

“Wicked people have sown the seeds of discord; have made my brother Peter believe his life is in danger. Do not credit such rumours. Do not allow these to lead astray those faithful to the throne: they will torture such until they can no longer endure, and nine persons will denounce nine hundred. You know how I have directed the affairs of this state for seven years; have made a glorious peace with Poland, and worsted in battle the Turks and infidels; how I have always thought of your needs and striven for your welfare. As I have already done so shall I continue.”

“Wicked people have spread lies and made my brother Peter believe his life is in danger. Don't believe those rumors. Don’t let them mislead those loyal to the throne: they will torture people until they can’t take it anymore, and nine people will accuse nine hundred. You know how I have managed this state for seven years; I’ve secured a glorious peace with Poland and defeated the Turks and infidels in battle; I’ve always prioritized your needs and worked for your well-being. Just as I have in the past, I will continue to do so.”

Sophia thought she had won over the crowd; instead this speech lost her the support of influential leaders. When Galitzin left Moscow there was a general rush of the people to Peter; then her friends were seized by his order and she tried to escape to Poland, but was captured and imprisoned in the Novo Devichi Convent where she was forced to take the veil as Susannah, and lived in strict confinement until 1704. Ivan was thrust aside; Peter usurped the throne, his weakly half-brother surviving until 1696. Then Peter married Eudoxia Lapukhin, daughter of a boyard. Trouble next arose when Peter, against the advice of nobles and clergy, went abroad and worked like{214} a slave under foreign rulers; it was considered sacrilege of God’s anointed so to do, and of its impolicy there were soon signs, and Peter hurriedly returned to stamp out discontent. He had found a new love, one Anna Mons, a German in Moscow, and would have married her but she slighted him and took one of her own countrymen; his wife he refused to see, accusing her of “certain thwartings and suspicions.” He wished also for proof of Sophia’s connection with the discontent amongst the Streltsi and people; in this, notwithstanding all his energy and cruelty, he was unsuccessful.

Sophia thought she had won over the crowd; instead, this speech cost her the support of powerful leaders. When Galitzin left Moscow, there was a rush of people to Peter; then her friends were seized on his orders and she tried to escape to Poland, but was captured and imprisoned in the Novo Devichi Convent, where she was forced to become a nun as Susannah, and lived in strict confinement until 1704. Ivan was pushed aside; Peter took the throne, with his weak half-brother surviving until 1696. Then Peter married Eudoxia Lapukhin, the daughter of a nobleman. Trouble arose when Peter, against the advice of the nobles and clergy, went abroad and worked like a slave under foreign rulers; it was considered sacrilege for God’s anointed to do so, and soon there were signs of its unwise nature, prompting Peter to hastily return to quell the discontent. He had found a new love, a German woman named Anna Mons in Moscow, and would have married her, but she rejected him and chose one of her fellow countrymen instead; he refused to see his wife, accusing her of “certain thwartings and suspicions.” He also wanted proof of Sophia’s involvement in the discontent among the Streltsi and the people; despite all his energy and cruelty, he was unsuccessful in this.

“Peter on his return reopened the inquiry, and fourteen torture chambers were conducted under his surveillance in the Preobrajenski suburb. The fires were never allowed to burn down, nor the gridirons on which his victims were charred to become cool either by night or day. A most compromising letter from Sophia to the Streltsi is generally considered to be a forged document, made up of stray, incoherent scraps of information wrung from maddened creatures in the torture chamber. Whereas fifteen blows with the knout were equal to a capital sentence, one of the Streltsi was put to the torture seven times and received in all ninety-nine blows, yet confessed nothing. Korpatkov, unable to bear his tortures, killed himself. Others of the Streltsi having been put to the strappado, flogged, and burnt without getting any accusations; the wives, sisters and female relatives of the Streltsi were tortured; so were the ladies and sewing women in attendance on Sophia. Still no evidence was forthcoming. Then Sophia herself was put to the torture, Peter doing the hangman’s work. She never wavered in denying all connection with the movement. Her younger sister, Marfa, was then strung up in turn and all that could be learned of her was that she had apprised her sister Sophia of the return of the Streltsi to Moscow and of their desire to see her rule re-established. Peter was unwearying in his attendance in the torture chambers, and it is said [F] took a fiendish delight in the agony his own wrought cruelties produced on his relatives, but when he failed to obtain evidence he determined to punish indiscriminately. The executions of the Streltsi, like those of Ivan the Terrible’s victims, were in{215} wholesale fashion. Five were beheaded just outside the torture chamber by the Tsar Peter himself; the courtiers of his bodyguard he commanded to do the same, thinking doubtless they would enjoy the shedding of blood even as he did. Two foreigners alone refused to comply with this order. Some 200 Streltsi were crucified, impaled or hanged before Sophia’s windows in the Novo Devichi Convent: but most were executed in the Grand Square under the wall of the Kremlin, viz.:—

“Peter, upon his return, reopened the investigation, and fourteen torture chambers were overseen by him in the Preobrajenski suburb. The fires were never allowed to go out, nor were the gridirons on which his victims were burned allowed to cool either at night or during the day. A highly incriminating letter from Sophia to the Streltsi is generally believed to be a forgery, made up of random, disjointed bits of information extracted from crazed individuals in the torture chamber. While fifteen lashes with the knout were equivalent to a death penalty, one member of the Streltsi endured seven rounds of torture, receiving a total of ninety-nine lashes, yet confessed nothing. Korpatkov, unable to endure the torture, took his own life. Others among the Streltsi were subjected to the strappado, flogged, and burned without giving any accusations; the wives, sisters, and female relatives of the Streltsi were tortured as well; so were the ladies and seamstresses who attended Sophia. Still, no evidence emerged. Then Sophia herself was subjected to torture, with Peter acting as the executioner. She never wavered in denying any connection to the uprising. Her younger sister, Marfa, was then tortured, and all that could be learned from her was that she had informed her sister Sophia of the Streltsi's return to Moscow and their desire to see her rule reinstated. Peter was tireless in his presence in the torture chambers, and it is said [F] took a sadistic pleasure in the pain his own brutal actions inflicted on his relatives, but when he failed to obtain evidence, he decided to punish indiscriminately. The executions of the Streltsi, similar to those of Ivan the Terrible’s victims, were carried out en masse. Five were beheaded just outside the torture chamber by Tsar Peter himself; he commanded his bodyguard courtiers to do the same, likely believing they would enjoy the bloodshed just as he did. Only two foreigners refused to comply with this order. Around 200 Streltsi were crucified, impaled, or hanged before Sophia’s windows at the Novo Devichi Convent; however, most were executed in the Grand Square beneath the Kremlin wall, namely:—

200 onSept.30th, 1698
144"Oct.11th,"
205""12th,"
141""13th,"
109""17th,"
65""18th,"
106""19th,"

“On some occasions a tree was used as a block; the victims placed in rows along it, and their heads struck off by men of Peter’s new guard. Others were hanged; as late as 1727 the heads stuck on pike points stood round the Lobnœ Mesto. In January 1699 came more enquiries, more tortures, more executions, and then the extermination of the Streltsi determined upon. There was a break from 1699 to 1704 as Peter required the remaining Streltsi to aid in the wars against Swedes and others, but after the revolt in Astrakhan, the executions were renewed. Stragglers and deserters from the corps, those related to them and who associated with them, were placed under a ban—they might not be employed by anyone; none might give them food, shelter, or assistance. They perished miserably. In such manner did Peter exterminate the old Muscovite militia.”

“Sometimes, a tree was used as a makeshift execution block; the victims were lined up along it, and their heads were chopped off by members of Peter’s new guard. Others were hanged; as late as 1727, heads mounted on pikes could be seen around the Lobnœ Mesto. In January 1699, there were more investigations, more torture, more executions, and a decision to wipe out the Streltsi was made. There was a pause from 1699 to 1704 as Peter needed the remaining Streltsi to help in the wars against the Swedes and others, but after the revolt in Astrakhan, executions resumed. Stragglers and deserters from the corps, as well as their relatives and anyone who associated with them, were banned—they couldn’t be employed anywhere; no one could give them food, shelter, or help. They died in misery. This was how Peter eliminated the old Muscovite militia.”

[F] Kostomarov, vol. ii. p. 516.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Kostomarov, vol. 2, p. 516.

Peter’s cruelties, like those of Ivan Groznoi, did not pass unnoticed by the Church. His treatment of the Streltsi called forth a fierce denunciation from the Patriarch Adrian, who “beseeched him in the name of the Mother of God to desist.” “Get thee home!” answered Peter, “I know that I reverence God and his most Holy Mother; more, perhaps, than thou dost thyself. It is the duty of my sovereign office, and a duty I owe to God, to punish with the utmost severity crimes that threaten the general welfare.” Unfortunately{216} the Church had been deprived of its privilege of intercession for the life of one accused, and Peter cared nought for the spiritual power of the Church, as already stated. He even with his own hand killed two priests, but afterwards expressed contrition. The Church regarded him almost as anti-christ; the citizens dreaded him and kept out of his way. “The nearer the Tsar the greater the danger,” a proverb of that time was believed in by all. Peter had his proverb also, “the knout is no angel but teaches men to speak the truth,” and even as Ivan did, he went constantly in fear of conspiracies, chiefly dreading his own relations. Eudoxia, now the nun Helena in a convent at Suzdal, was believed to have corresponded with Dositheus an Archimandrite who had predicted, or prayed for, Peter’s death. Glebov was the intermediary in the matter; he was impaled; the prelate was broken on the wheel; a brother of the ex-tsaritsa was tortured and beheaded; thirty others were executed or exiled, and Eudoxia herself flogged and confined in an isolated convent at New Ladoga. Peter, when there were no more conspirators, or accused, offered a bribe of six roubles to all who made secret accusations, and threatened with severe penalties any who held back information. The better to protect his informers from reprisals by the people, they went through the streets with their faces veiled, in order to search for those whose names they did not know, but whom they had overheard in indiscreet speech. The people hid away when “the tongue,” as the masked informer was called, was abroad in the streets, and for days the city would appear to be quite deserted.

Peter's cruelty, much like that of Ivan the Terrible, didn't go unnoticed by the Church. His treatment of the Streltsi led to a strong condemnation from Patriarch Adrian, who “urged him in the name of the Mother of God to stop.” “Go home!” replied Peter, “I know I respect God and His most Holy Mother; maybe even more than you do yourself. It’s my duty as a sovereign to punish the worst offenders who threaten the common good.” Unfortunately{216}, the Church had lost its privilege to intercede for someone accused, and Peter didn't care at all about the Church's spiritual authority, as previously mentioned. He even personally killed two priests but later showed remorse. The Church viewed him almost as an anti-Christ; the citizens feared him and avoided him. “The closer to the Tsar, the greater the danger,” was a saying of that time that everyone believed. Peter had his own saying, “the knout is no angel but teaches men to speak the truth,” and like Ivan, he constantly feared conspiracies, mainly from his own family. Eudoxia, now the nun Helena in a convent at Suzdal, was believed to have corresponded with Dositheus, an Archimandrite who had predicted or prayed for Peter’s death. Glebov was the middleman in this matter; he was impaled; the prelate was broken on the wheel; a brother of the ex-tsaritsa was tortured and beheaded; thirty others were executed or exiled, and Eudoxia herself was flogged and confined to an isolated convent in New Ladoga. Once there were no more conspirators or accusers, Peter offered a bribe of six roubles to anyone who made secret accusations and threatened severe penalties for anyone who withheld information. To better protect his informants from retaliation by the people, they walked through the streets with their faces covered, looking for those whose names they didn't know but whom they had overheard speaking indiscreetly. The people hid away when “the tongue,” as the masked informers were called, was out in the streets, and for days the city would seem completely deserted.

“Peter was hairless and decreed that those who could grow beards should not be allowed to wear them. Ivan Naumov was flogged because he would not shave; 100 roubles was the ordinary fine for wearing a full beard, and many paid the{217} tax repeatedly rather than submit to Peter’s order. These had also to wear a badge with the legend ‘a beard is a useless inconvenience,’ and pay a fine whenever passing the Redeemer Gate. There is a touch of irony in the fact that Peter died of a chill which, may be, the full beard of a Moscow Otets would have prevented. Although Peter was epileptic, he had no mercy for those who suffered similarly. A woman, who in addition to this infirmity was also blind, was put to the torture for disturbing a congregation. A tipsy man had thirty lashes with the knout for committing the like offence. A woman who found strange chalk marks on a barrel of beer in her cellar, knew not what they meant, nor did any one else; but she was put to the torture, and died under it because unable to decipher them. Those whom Peter wished specially to honour he made hangmen. An old boyard who liked not salad, as ‘sour things did not agree with him,’ was made to empty a large bottle of vinegar by Peter; and a Jewess in his company who declined to drink to the extent Peter wished, was there and then beaten by him and made to drink much more.”

“Peter was bald and decided that anyone who could grow a beard shouldn't be allowed to wear one. Ivan Naumov was whipped for refusing to shave; the usual fine for sporting a full beard was 100 roubles, and many people paid the{217} tax repeatedly rather than obey Peter's rule. They also had to wear a badge that read 'a beard is a useless inconvenience,' and pay a fine whenever they passed the Redeemer Gate. It’s a bit ironic that Peter died from a chill that, perhaps, a full beard from a Moscow Otets could have prevented. Even though Peter had epilepsy, he showed no mercy to others who suffered similarly. A woman, who was blind in addition to having this condition, was tortured for disrupting a congregation. A drunk man received thirty lashes with the knout for doing the same thing. A woman who discovered strange chalk marks on a barrel of beer in her cellar didn't know what they meant, and neither did anyone else; yet she was tortured and died for being unable to decipher them. Those whom Peter wanted to honor, he made hangmen. An old boyard who didn’t like salad—since ‘sour things didn’t agree with him’—was forced by Peter to empty a large bottle of vinegar. And a Jewess who didn't want to drink as much as Peter wanted was beaten on the spot and made to drink much more.”

It was an unequal struggle: a powerful autocrat attempting to force a proud, stubborn people from the habits they had been taught to revere, from practices that had made their city great and beautiful. The more successful Peter became the greater was the opposition. His courtiers wore wigs at court, as commanded, but even in the throne room removed them immediately Peter was out of sight. After ten years Peter knew that he could not conquer the Muscovites though he might kill them. As late as 1722, when he had ordered all ladies above ten years of age to appear at a reception, only seventy of the hundreds qualified did as commanded. At St Petersburg it was different. There, no feeling of shame, no loss of dignity followed the, to Moscow citizens, most ridiculous behaviour of westerns. Peter’s son Alexis, the Tsarevich, preferred Moscow and Muscovite customs: in him Moscow trusted, and for this Peter hated him. His friends wished him to enter a monastery until his father’s death and then “as{218} they cannot nail the cowl to one’s head,” throw it off and assume the crown. He did not, and his boast to forsake St Petersburg and reinstate Moscow enraged Peter who, from that time, never ceased to search for conspiracies, prompted by, or on behalf of Alexis, and persecuted his son unmercifully. As all knew the young man was lured to St Petersburg by his mistress, who was lavishly rewarded for her perfidy by Peter, and that there he was repeatedly put to the torture, more than once with Peter himself as executioner, and that he died mysteriously one day after being “put to the question,” i.e. tortured, earlier in the day by a party of whom his father was one.

It was an unfair fight: a powerful ruler trying to force a proud, stubborn people away from the traditions they held dear, from the practices that had made their city great and beautiful. The more successful Peter became, the greater the resistance against him. His courtiers wore wigs at court, as he required, but as soon as Peter was out of sight, they took them off. After ten years, Peter realized that he couldn’t conquer the Muscovites, although he might be able to kill them. As late as 1722, when he ordered all women over ten to attend a reception, only seventy out of the hundreds who qualified actually complied. At St. Petersburg, it was different. There, no one felt shame or loss of dignity over what seemed to the Moscow citizens the most ridiculous behavior of the Westerners. Peter’s son Alexis, the Tsarevich, preferred Moscow and its customs: Moscow trusted him, and for this, Peter despised him. His friends wanted him to enter a monastery until his father's death and then, "as {218} they cannot nail the cowl to one's head," throw it off and take on the crown. He didn’t do this, and his claim to leave St. Petersburg and restore Moscow infuriated Peter, who from that point on never stopped looking for conspiracies related to or instigated by Alexis, and persecuted his son mercilessly. Everyone knew the young man was lured to St. Petersburg by his mistress, who was richly rewarded by Peter for her treachery, and there he was tortured repeatedly, often with Peter himself as the executioner, until he died mysteriously one day after being "put to the question," i.e., tortured earlier that day by a group that included his father.



ST NICHOLAS “STYLITE”

ST NICHOLAS “STYLITE”

The Matviev’s lived in that part of the city just outside the Kitai-gorod, where Alexis had settled a number of little Russians from the newly-acquired territory, the Ukraine. The Marosseika preserves the name of this settlement, and passing up it from the Lubianski Ploshchad, leaving All Saints’ church on the right, Armianski, a street on the left, will soon be reached. There, a couple of hundred yards along, on the left is the old parish church of St Nicholas, built by{219} Mikhail Theodorovich, contiguous to the house of the Matviev’s and the Tsarista Natalia, where is now the tomb of the old voievode—a mean mausoleum, in the classic style. The church shows but few traces of western influence: it is of two storeys like most of the churches of the seventeenth century and is surrounded with a gallery, formerly open, but now glazed between the pillars. Near by is the Lazarev Institute, for the study of eastern languages, and peeping over the trees will be seen the green domes and pink belfry of the Monastery of St John Chrysostom, with five churches of which the oldest was founded by Ivan Vasilievich in 1479; the entrance is from the Zlato-ustinski pereulok. Opposite the Armianski is the Kosmo-Damianski pereulok, with the Lutheran Church founded in 1582 by the Englishman Horsey for the foreign colony.

The Matvievs lived in the part of the city just outside the Kitai-gorod, where Alexis had settled several little Russians from the newly acquired territory, Ukraine. Marosseika still bears the name of this settlement, and if you head up it from Lubianski Ploshchad, leaving All Saints’ church on your right and Armianski street on your left, you’ll soon arrive at your destination. A couple of hundred yards along on the left is the old parish church of St Nicholas, built by{219} Mikhail Theodorovich, right next to the houses of the Matvievs and Tsarista Natalia, where the tomb of the old voievode is now located—a modest mausoleum in the classic style. The church shows few traces of Western influence; it has two storeys like most 17th-century churches and is surrounded by a gallery, which was previously open but is now glazed between the pillars. Nearby is the Lazarev Institute for studying eastern languages, and peeking over the trees, you can see the green domes and pink belfry of the Monastery of St John Chrysostom, which has five churches, the oldest of which was founded by Ivan Vasilievich in 1479; the entrance is from Zlato-ustinski pereulok. Opposite Armianski is Kosmo-Damianski pereulok, featuring the Lutheran Church established in 1582 by the Englishman Horsey for the foreign community.

Continuing along the Marosseika, past the Church of the Assumption (p. 89), an interesting church will be found on the right, that of the Pokrovka (Protection), and further along the same street, where it changes its name to the Basmannia, the church of Vasili Ivanovich built in 1517 and reconstructed in 1751, to which latter date its architecture belongs. Turning into the Sadovia on the left, in the Furmanni pereulok, the second on the left, will be found the oldest large house in Moscow, the residence of Prince Usupov, quite in the style of the early seventeenth century. The entrance is from the Charitonievski Boulevard, the next turning on the left. The whole of this district suffered much from the fires of past centuries and only such buildings as these isolated churches and houses in their own courtyards escaped the general conflagration. A little further along the Sadovia is the “Krasnœ Vorot” or Red Gate to mark the old tower on the outer wall. It was built as a triumphal arch for the Empress Elizabeth on her coronation, when tables spread with{220} viands for the people reached from there to the Kremlin wall. The French made it a butt for musketry practice, using sacred ikons for a bull’s eye.

Continuing along Marosseika, past the Church of the Assumption (p. 89), you'll find an interesting church on the right called Pokrovka (Protection). Further down the same street, which changes its name to Basmannia, is the church built by Vasili Ivanovich in 1517 and renovated in 1751, with its architecture dating back to that latter time. If you turn left onto Sadovia, down Furmanni pereulok, the second street on the left, you'll see the oldest large house in Moscow, the residence of Prince Usupov, designed in the style of the early seventeenth century. The entrance is from Charitonievski Boulevard, the next left turn. This entire area suffered greatly from fires over the centuries, and only isolated buildings like these churches and houses in their courtyards managed to escape the widespread destruction. A little further along Sadovia is the “Krasnœ Vorot” or Red Gate, marking the old tower on the outer wall. It was built as a triumphal arch for Empress Elizabeth during her coronation, when tables full of food for the public stretched from there to the Kremlin wall. The French used it as a target for musket practice, aiming at sacred icons.

Architecture of a different type is to be found in that residential quarter of the city between the Kremlin and the Prechistenka Boulevard. Behind the Riding School is the Mokhovaia, a street to which front both Universities and the Dom Pachkov, an old mansion in which is stored the Rumiantsev art collection and museum of antiquities. The entrance is in the Vogankovski pereulok, near the Znamenka.[G] It contains:—

Architecture of a different kind can be seen in the residential area of the city located between the Kremlin and Prechistenka Boulevard. Behind the Riding School is Mokhovaia, a street that features both universities and the Dom Pachkov, an old mansion that houses the Rumiantsev art collection and a museum of antiquities. The entrance is on Vogankovski pereulok, close to Znamenka.[G] It contains:—

(a) Foreign ethnological museum.

Foreign cultural museum.

(b) The Dashkov ethnographical collection of Slavic antiquities; life size figures of the races inhabiting Russia; in another hall of Slavic races inhabiting Austrian and other adjacent lands.

(b) The Dashkov ethnographic collection of Slavic artifacts; life-size figures representing the different ethnic groups living in Russia; in another hall featuring Slavic groups from Austria and other nearby regions.

(c) Mineralogical collection.

Mineral collection.

(d) Zoological collection; includes mammoth and Muscovite and Siberian fossils.

(d) Zoological collection; includes mammoth and Muscovite and Siberian fossils.

(e) Slav and Christian antiquities, consisting mostly of early specimens of eastern iconography from Mount Athos, and archæological fragments. They are in four rooms on the upper storey, and one ikon of Mosaic is particularly interesting, as are also many of the specimens of Byzantine and Muscovite enamel and niello, including an eleventh century Gold Cross.

(e) Slav and Christian artifacts, mostly featuring early examples of Eastern art from Mount Athos, as well as archaeological pieces. They are located in four rooms on the upper floor, and one mosaic icon is especially noteworthy, along with many examples of Byzantine and Muscovite enamel and niello, including an eleventh-century gold cross.

(f) Picture Galleries.—Copies of Flemish, Spanish, Italian and other schools, and the Pryanichnikov collection of Russian artists, of which the best are: 1-10 by Ivanov; 42, 43, Chiernakov; 65, by Repin; 157, 158, Aviazovski, and 201-203, Chedrin.

(f) Picture Galleries.—Reproductions of Flemish, Spanish, Italian, and other schools, along with the Pryanichnikov collection of Russian artists, which features the best works: 1-10 by Ivanov; 42, 43 by Chiernakov; 65 by Repin; 157, 158 by Aviazovski; and 201-203 by Chedrin.

(g) Manuscripts and early printed Slav books, some very beautifully illustrated. This section is closed during July and August.

(g) Manuscripts and early printed Slavic books, some of which are beautifully illustrated. This section is closed during July and August.

(h) Library of 200,000 standard works, and old prints and engravings.

(h) Library of 200,000 standard works, along with old prints and engravings.

[G] Open daily, 11 till 3; free on Sundays; 20 kopecks entrance on other days.

[G] Open every day from 11 AM to 3 PM; it's free on Sundays; entry costs 20 kopecks on other days.

The Russian school is seen to better advantage on the south side of the Moskva river, in the Tretiakov Galleries (Lavrushenski pereulok; open daily, 10 to{221} 4, except Mondays; admission free, catalogue in French, 20 kopeeks), a collection made by the brothers Paul and Sergius Tretiakov, and now the property of the town. Most of the pictures are modern by native artists; views of Moscow and of the historical and interesting buildings in the town are by no means numerous. Apparently Russian artists have not yet discovered that the Kremlin, as seen from across the river, is as good a subject as is the Piazza San Marco at Venice, or any other hackneyed city scene in Europe.

The Russian art scene is best represented on the south side of the Moskva River, at the Tretiakov Galleries (Lavrushenski pereulok; open daily from 10 AM to 4 PM, closed on Mondays; admission is free, catalog available in French for 20 kopecks), a collection created by brothers Paul and Sergius Tretiakov, now owned by the city. Most of the artwork is modern, featuring local artists; however, depictions of Moscow and its historically significant buildings are relatively few. It seems Russian artists have yet to realize that the view of the Kremlin from across the river can be just as captivating as the Piazza San Marco in Venice or any other well-worn city scene in Europe.

Most noteworthy among the paintings illustrating the history of Moscow are:—The murder of Alexis by Ivan the Terrible, by J. E. Repin (No. 782); a portrait of the same Tsar, by V. N. Vasnetsov (No. 966); The Execution of the Streltsi, by B. J. Surikov (No. 737); St Nikita, the impostor, before the Tsarina Sophia, by B. G. Peroff (No. 733), and the same Tsarina in the Novo devichi Convent during the execution of the Streltsi, by J. E Repin (No. 761). Some of the ancient customs and costumes of Moscow are represented in No. 808, A Boyard Wedding, by C. B. Lebedev, and No. 1367, The Handsel of Innocence, by Polenov—an excellent specimen of this painter’s best work, who does not show to advantage in his views of the Terem (Nos. 1356-1366) and church interiors (Nos. 1349-1355). Instructive also are the sketches Nos. 304-307, made by V. G. Schwartz to illustrate Count A. Tolstoi’s novel “Prince Serebrenni,” and 308-312, those made to Lermontov’s “Bread Seller.”

Most notable among the paintings depicting the history of Moscow are:—The murder of Alexis by Ivan the Terrible, by J. E. Repin (No. 782); a portrait of the same Tsar, by V. N. Vasnetsov (No. 966); The Execution of the Streltsi, by B. J. Surikov (No. 737); St. Nikita, the impostor, before Tsarina Sophia, by B. G. Peroff (No. 733), and the same Tsarina in the Novo devichi Convent during the execution of the Streltsi, by J. E. Repin (No. 761). Some of the ancient customs and outfits of Moscow are depicted in No. 808, A Boyard Wedding, by C. B. Lebedev, and No. 1367, The Handsel of Innocence, by Polenov—an excellent example of this painter’s best work, who doesn't look as impressive in his views of the Terem (Nos. 1356-1366) and church interiors (Nos. 1349-1355). Also worthwhile are the sketches Nos. 304-307, created by V. G. Schwartz to illustrate Count A. Tolstoi’s novel “Prince Serebrenni,” and 308-312, those made for Lermontov’s “Bread Seller.”

Notable pictures taken from scenes in Russian history are:—The Battle of Igor Sviatoslaf’s son against the Polovsti (No. 950), by V. M. Vasnetsov; The “Black Council,” held during the rebellion of monks at the Solovetski Monastery in 1666, by S. D. Miloradovich (No. 742); Peter the Great questioning his son Alexis, by N. N. Gay (No. 636); The Emancipation of the Serfs in 1861, by G. G. Myassoiedov (No. 495), and No. 252, by C. D. Flavitski, the imprisonment of Princess Tarakanov in the fortress of Sts. Peter and Paul, during a rise of the Neva—a sensational incident the truth of which was questioned and disproved, when this picture was exhibited at Paris in 1867. The incident represented in No. 394 by N. B. Nevref, the enforced taking of the veil by the Princess Usupov, was of such common occurrence in mediæval Russia, that no question as to its possibility need be raised. Some of{222} the best of the war pictures of Vereshchagin are in this collection, and other painters have contributed works illustrating the French invasion, and more recent events, in a style quite as original and striking as that of the Russian artist best known in western Europe. In all the subject appears to be far more suggestive and interesting than the craftsmanship. This is often weak, or worse, an unsatisfactory imitation of the most impressive methods of the modern French school.

Notable images captured from scenes in Russian history include:—The Battle of Igor Sviatoslav’s son against the Polovtsi (No. 950) by V. M. Vasnetsov; The "Black Council," which took place during the monk rebellion at the Solovetski Monastery in 1666, by S. D. Miloradovich (No. 742); Peter the Great questioning his son Alexis, by N. N. Gay (No. 636); The Emancipation of the Serfs in 1861, by G. G. Myassoiedov (No. 495); and No. 252, by C. D. Flavitski, showing the imprisonment of Princess Tarakanov in the Sts. Peter and Paul fortress during a rise of the Neva—a sensational incident the truth of which was doubted and disproven when this artwork was shown in Paris in 1867. The event depicted in No. 394 by N. B. Nevref, the forced veiling of Princess Usupov, was so commonly seen in medieval Russia that its possibility isn’t questioned. Some of{222} the best war paintings by Vereshchagin are in this collection, and other artists have contributed works illustrating the French invasion and more recent events, in a style that is just as original and striking as that of the most well-known Russian artist in Western Europe. Overall, the subject matter tends to be far more engaging and interesting than the craftsmanship, which is often weak or, worse, a disappointing imitation of the most impressive techniques of the modern French school.

Religious pictures are numerous and good: N N. Gay is represented in forty-six works which include “The Morning of the Resurrection” (641), “The Remorse of Judas” (642), “The Judgment” (643), “Golgotha” (645), “What is Truth?” (640), and “Christ in Gethsemane” (634). Several of his studies of “Christ on the Cross” may be compared with the work of T. A. Bronnikov, “Campus Scleratus” (461). The conventional style of “Ikon” painting is evident in Nos. 727-730 by M. B. Nesterov, more particularly in the pictures illustrating the life of St Sergius. No. 739, by B. J. Surikov, represents the Boyarina Morosov being removed from among the dissenting sect she did so much to establish.

Religious art is plentiful and well-done: N N. Gay is featured in forty-six pieces, including “The Morning of the Resurrection” (641), “The Remorse of Judas” (642), “The Judgment” (643), “Golgotha” (645), “What is Truth?” (640), and “Christ in Gethsemane” (634). Several of his studies of “Christ on the Cross” can be compared to T. A. Bronnikov's work, “Campus Scleratus” (461). The traditional style of “Ikon” painting is clear in Nos. 727-730 by M. B. Nesterov, especially in the artworks depicting the life of St Sergius. No. 739, by B. J. Surikov, shows the Boyarina Morosov being removed from among the dissenting sect she helped to create.

The lighter, merrier, and more general life of the Russian people is shown in a far greater number of pictures. Pryanichnikov has humour as well as style (416-432), in 542, Maximov shows the arrival of the “wizard” at a village wedding; 682 is an every day village scene representing the homage paid to the ikon on its visits; Yarochenko (701) shows the transport van with its exiles committed for life and the free birds of the air mocking them. Repin depicts truthfully the happy life of the peasants; 766, a dance, 781, “The Unexpected Return,” 797, St Cene. In the same vein are also 857, Lebedev “Farings”; 863, Korovin, The Common Council; 775, 776, Answer of the Zaporogians to Mahomet’s ultimatum; 1221-1224, the Second-hand market at Moscow, and 1256, An Evening’s Amusement, are by V. G. Makovski; The Emigrants, No. 1520, by S. B. Ivanof, is depressing, but in 930 Madam A. L. Rievski shows in “A Moment of Gaiety” the true character of the peasant.

The lighter, happier, and more everyday life of the Russian people is captured in many more pictures. Pryanichnikov combines humor with style (416-432). In 542, Maximov depicts the arrival of the “wizard” at a village wedding; 682 shows a typical village scene where the people pay respect to the ikon during its visits; Yarochenko (701) illustrates the transport van carrying exiles sentenced to life while the free birds in the sky mock them. Repin authentically portrays the joyful lives of the peasants; 766 features a dance, 781 is titled “The Unexpected Return,” and 797 shows St Cene. Similar themes appear in 857, with Lebedev’s “Farings”; 863, Korovin’s The Common Council; 775 and 776, the Answer of the Zaporogians to Mahomet’s ultimatum; 1221-1224, the Second-hand market in Moscow, and 1256, An Evening’s Amusement by V. G. Makovski. The Emigrants, No. 1520, by S. B. Ivanof, is somber, but in 930, Madam A. L. Rievski captures the true spirit of the peasant in “A Moment of Gaiety.”

In the streets Znamenka and Vozdvigenka are some characteristic Russian mansions of the eighteenth century, for it was then that this quarter, which had formerly been inhabited by palace servants and craftsmen, began to take a more aristocratic character. That of Prince Sheremetiev is the most bizarre; there also is the old{223}

In the streets Znamenka and Vozdvigenka, you'll find some typical Russian mansions from the eighteenth century. It was during that time that this area, which had previously been home to palace servants and craftsmen, started to acquire a more aristocratic vibe. The mansion of Prince Sheremetiev is the most unusual; there's also the old{223}



DOM CHUKINA

DOM CHUKINA

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
DOM CHUKINA

town hall and the Foreign Archives. In various parts of the town, even on the south side in the Kaloujskaya, will be found modern mansions, that is, erected or rebuilt since the great fire, in the style of the Moscow of the golden age. One of the best is the Dom Chukina near the Tverskaya Triumfalnia—a monument no visitor can escape seeing. But there is no long street without one or more buildings which attract the attention of the stranger by some idiosyncracy of form or colour. No matter in which direction one may go—in the bustling Kitai-Gorod, the quiet and aristocratic Ostogenka, or the bourgeois Zamoskvoretski—soon will be seen some interesting fane reaching above the buildings that flank the street, and a portal distinguished by its cross and ikon indicate the entrance to the sacred enclosure of{224} some monastery, where, amidst leafy foliage and bright verdure, is quiet and seclusion like that of the oasis of the Temple amidst the dreary turmoil of London’s vastness. Take that very ordinary street, the Nikitskaya for example; it is wholly common place, wedged in between districts devoted to ordinary commerce, and the chilling respectability of moderate affluence, and leads nowhere in particular. Yet even its name is interesting; did it obtain it from the worthy founder of the Romanof dynasty? or from the religious fanatic who argued points of ritual with Sophia and the Patriarch? or from St Nikita, the saint who shut up Satan in a jar and released him only on stipulated and agreed conditions?

town hall and the Foreign Archives. Throughout the town, even on the south side in Kaloujskaya, you can find modern mansions that were built or renovated after the great fire, reflecting the style of Moscow's golden age. One of the best is the Dom Chukina near Tverskaya Triumfalnia—a landmark no visitor can miss. There's hardly a long street without one or more buildings that catch a stranger's eye with their unique shape or color. No matter where you go—in the vibrant Kitai-Gorod, the serene and upscale Ostogenka, or the middle-class Zamoskvoretski—you'll soon spot an intriguing church towering above the surrounding buildings, with a portal marked by its cross and ikon signaling the entrance to the sacred grounds of{224} a monastery, where, amidst lush foliage and bright greenery, you find peace and solitude like that of a temple oasis amid the chaotic expanse of London. Take the seemingly ordinary Nikitskaya street, for instance; it is quite unremarkable, sandwiched between areas of typical commercial activity and the stiff respectability of moderate wealth, leading nowhere in particular. Yet even its name is intriguing; did it come from the esteemed founder of the Romanov dynasty? Or from the religious zealot who debated ritual with Sophia and the Patriarch? Or from St. Nikita, the saint who confined Satan in a jar and only let him out on agreed terms?

It starts from the Alexander Gardens, the old western bank of the stream Neglinnaia that once strengthened the defences of the Kremlin; passes the entrance to the riding school, one of the great things Moscow has produced since the fire of 1812. The length of this building is 360 feet, breadth 168, and its wooden roof, unsupported by perpendicular stanchions, was considered a wonder of the world, when Alexander first manœuvered 2000 infantry, and 1000 cavalry beneath it. Then come the Universities, the old and the new, one on each hand; beyond, on the left, is the Nikitsky Monastery, enclosing four churches, one dating from the founding of the monastery in 1682, at the end of the “golden age.” On the opposite side is the Academy of Science, on this the Conservatorium, facing it a quaint old church of primitive architecture and diminutive size; above its lowly belfry rears the square brick-built tower of an English Church. The house of a boyard here, of a prince there, bear names of note in Moscow’s history, as Gagarin, Galitzin, Chernichev, designate the owners of the houses on either side, and of the side streets{225} to right and left. The further from the Kremlin, the centre, the more frequent and greater the inducement to turn aside to inspect more closely the glittering and gaudy domes of churches, old and new, which are thickly sprinkled over the whole district. Nor can the stranger easily do amiss whichever way he turns. If towards the left, a curious lofty belfry of open masonry will repay careful scrutiny, and reveal close by other domed and pinnacled temples, lost amidst this multitude of white walls and luxuriant verdure. If to the right, two churches in close proximity, of unique design and, probably, oppressive colouring, will encourage to further explorations in the same direction.

It starts from the Alexander Gardens, the old western bank of the stream Neglinnaia that once reinforced the defenses of the Kremlin; it passes the entrance to the riding school, one of the great institutions Moscow has produced since the fire of 1812. The building is 360 feet long and 168 feet wide, and its wooden roof, not supported by vertical columns, was considered a wonder of the world when Alexander first maneuvered 2,000 infantry and 1,000 cavalry beneath it. Then come the universities, old and new, one on each side; further along on the left is the Nikitsky Monastery, which contains four churches, one dating back to the founding of the monastery in 1682, at the end of the “golden age.” On the opposite side is the Academy of Science, and next to it is the Conservatorium, facing a quaint old church with simple architecture and small size; above its lowly belfry stands the square brick tower of an English Church. The homes of a boyar here, a prince there, bear names of significance in Moscow’s history, as Gagarin, Galitzin, Chernichev, name the owners of the houses on either side, and of the side streets{225} to the right and left. The further you go from the Kremlin, the more frequent and enticing the reasons to veer off and take a closer look at the glittering and colorful domes of churches, both old and new, that are scattered throughout the entire area. The visitor won’t go wrong whichever way they turn. If they go left, a curious tall belfry of open masonry will reward careful inspection and reveal nearby other domed and pinnacled temples, hidden among this sea of white walls and lush greenery. If they go right, two churches in close proximity, with unique designs and possibly bold colors, will invite further exploration in that direction.

The oldest churches in the neighbourhood of the Arbat are, Boris and Gleb, 1527; Tikhon, the wonder-worker, 1689; but the Church of the Transfiguration is one of the most beautiful. In the Povarskaya, is that of St Simon Stylite, 1676, and near, another interesting church—Rojdestvenka.

The oldest churches in the Arbat neighborhood are Boris and Gleb, built in 1527; Tikhon, the miracle worker, from 1689; but the Church of the Transfiguration is one of the most beautiful. On Povarskaya, there's the church of St. Simon Stylite, built in 1676, and nearby, there's another interesting church—Rojdestvenka.

Probably Moscow does not charm so strongly by reason of any particular building or style as by the great diversity of its houses and churches, both in design and colouring. More especially in those quarters where the wooden log-houses still linger in their gardens, and where the frame-houses are all made gay with white, cream, blue-gray, yellow and pink body colour, and the roofs of dark green or still darker crimson; there Moscow seems to belong to another world. It is, alas, disappearing fast, and the spacious courtyards, with their trees and the gardens gay with giant lilacs and golden-chain, are being built on, and houses that stand shoulder to shoulder in plain and hideous uniformity level up the largest village to the standard of a modern town made in Germany.

Probably, Moscow isn't so captivating because of any specific building or style, but rather due to the wide variety of its homes and churches, both in design and color. Especially in those areas where wooden log houses still exist in their gardens, and where the frame houses are brightened up with white, cream, blue-gray, yellow, and pink paint, and the roofs are dark green or even darker crimson; there, Moscow feels like it belongs to another world. Unfortunately, this is quickly disappearing, and the spacious courtyards, with their trees and gardens filled with giant lilacs and golden chain, are being replaced. Houses that stand so close together in a plain and ugly uniformity are turning the largest villages into modern towns similar to those in Germany.

There is another aspect of Moscow which the{226} summer visitor can never know. That comes when the thermometer falls from its summer average of 64.9° F. to its winter average of 14° F. This difference of 50° explains much that appears wanton in the architecture of buildings great and small; accounts for the galleries round the outside of the churches, for the extensive vestibules; for thick walls, still thicker roofs, and great spouts; for the plain surfaces and lack of projecting decorations, gargoyles and angular mouldings; for the distempered walls, which alone successfully stand the biting frosts of winter and the blistering summer sun.

There’s another side of Moscow that summer visitors will never experience. It’s what happens when the temperature drops from its summer average of 64.9°F to its winter average of 14°F. This 50°F difference explains a lot of what seems excessive in the architecture of both large and small buildings; it accounts for the galleries surrounding the churches, the large entryways, the thick walls, even thicker roofs, and large drainage spouts; for the plain surfaces and absence of decorative elements like gargoyles and sharp moldings; and for the unpainted walls, which are the only ones that can withstand the harsh winter frosts and the scorching summer sun.

With the change to winter temperature a great quiet comes over the town, wheeled traffic is stopped, sledges glide over the frozen roads, and from the windless sky the great snowflakes can ever be seen idly and slowly floating in their long and leisurely descent to earth. A reddened sun appears for a short time each day in a leaden sky, and Moscow lives, is more active, more itself, than when the light of summer decks its walls and pinnacles in holiday garb. But at whatever season studied, Moscow will reveal traces of the past; will show that she has long smiled under the summer sun of good fortune and been wrinkled by the winter of adversity; scorched, too, by the volcanic fire of her own excesses, but now staid, hoary, strenuous, and of surprising vitality in all—Это матушка Москва.{227}

With the arrival of winter, a deep calm settles over the town. Vehicle traffic comes to a halt, sleds slide over the frozen roads, and in the still sky, large snowflakes drift lazily and slowly down to the ground. A reddish sun makes a brief appearance each day against a gray sky, and Moscow feels more alive, more itself, than when the bright summer light adorns its buildings and towers in festive splendor. No matter which season you observe, Moscow reveals signs of its history; it shows that it has long basked under the warm summer sun of good fortune and has been weathered by the winter of hardship; it has also been scorched by the intense fires of its own excess, yet now stands dignified, aged, resilient, and surprisingly vibrant in all—Это матушка Москва.{227}

CHAPTER XI

Ancient Customs and Quaint Survivals

“The customs are so quirky
As if I would explain everything
"I fear my pen would faint." G. Turberville (1568).

STRANGE and unaccountable to the men of the Elizabethan age were the manners and customs of the Muscovites; at this day, some of the things these early visitors minutely described seem scarcely credible.

STRANGE and hard to understand for the people of the Elizabethan era were the habits and traditions of the Muscovites; even today, some of the details these early visitors described seem almost unbelievable.

In many ways the life of the old boyards was not unlike that of their Tsar. They fought and worshipped and maintained state; bought, sold and sought wealth even as he did. There remain at least two old houses of boyards in Moscow. One, the Potieshni Dvorets in the Kremlin, formerly the dwelling of the Miloslavskis, is at the present time chiefly useful as indicating the architecture of a Russian house in mediæval times; and that only so far as the exterior is concerned, for the internal arrangements have been so many times altered as to bear now but little resemblance to a typical dwelling of the seventeenth century. The other house, the Palata Romanovykh, or Dom Romanof, was at one time the dwelling of the Romanof family and has been restored to as nearly as possible resemble the state in which it was when the Tsar Michael was elected to the throne in 1613. It is situated in the{228} Varvarka, contiguous to the spot on which the English factory stood, and in addition to being a museum of minor antiquities serves well to illustrate some of the habits of the nobles of Moscow in the sixteenth century, for the house belonged to Nikita Romanof, grandfather of the Tsar Michael, who himself gave the house in which his own father was born to the adjoining monastery. Incorporated with those buildings, it shared their vicissitudes; was injured by fire repeatedly, altered, added to, then spoiled and sacked by the French.

In many ways, the life of the old boyars was similar to that of their Tsar. They fought, worshiped, and supported the state; they bought, sold, and sought wealth just like he did. There are at least two old boyar houses left in Moscow. One, the Poteshni Dvorets in the Kremlin, once home to the Miloslavskis, is mostly useful today for showing what the architecture of a Russian house looked like in medieval times; and that’s only related to the exterior, as the interior has been changed so many times that it now barely resembles a typical dwelling from the seventeenth century. The other house, the Palata Romanovykh, or Dom Romanof, was once the home of the Romanov family and has been restored to closely reflect its appearance when Tsar Michael was elected to the throne in 1613. It’s located on Varvarka, next to where the English factory used to be, and in addition to being a museum of minor antiquities, it illustrates some of the habits of the nobles in Moscow during the sixteenth century. This house belonged to Nikita Romanof, the grandfather of Tsar Michael, who gave the house where his own father was born to the nearby monastery. Incorporated with those buildings, it experienced their ups and downs; it suffered from repeated fires, was modified, expanded, and was ultimately damaged and looted by the French.

It is not a large house: the frontage to the Varvarka is scarcely sixty feet and built on sloping ground it presents but one storey to this street. The principal entrance was from its own courtyard, where the south front presents four storeys looking over the Moskva (v. page 108).

It’s not a big house: the front on Varvarka is barely sixty feet wide, and because it’s on a slope, it only shows one story from this street. The main entrance was from its own courtyard, where the south side has four stories overlooking the Moskva (v. page 108).

The ground floor is of undoubted antiquity; brick built, plastered and painted. On this foundation is reared the wooden house in the true Russian style. The low clock tower over the entrance has for a weather vane, a griffin, the arms of the Romanofs; the windows are small, ogival, and glazed with mica panes.

The ground floor is definitely old; it's made of brick, plastered, and painted. On this base stands the wooden house in the authentic Russian style. The short clock tower over the entrance has a griffin as a weather vane, which is the emblem of the Romanovs; the windows are small, pointed, and fitted with mica panes.

It is impossible that in so small a house there could have been any accommodation for the multitude of retainers and body servants a boyard had always about his house. These lived in separate dwellings around the courtyard. The ground floor of Russian houses consisted of cellars and storerooms. In these vaults were kept: wine, mead, kvas, ice, frozen and salted meats and fish. The next storey in this house consists of kitchens and domestic offices—in a house not built upon sloping ground, these would be on the ground floor. The first floor, the Bel étage, which, in all old Russian buildings—houses, churches and shops—is reached by steps very similar to those from the{229} courtyard to the Varvarka street level in the Dom Romanof.

It’s hard to believe that such a small house could have accommodated the large number of servants and attendants a lord usually had. They lived in separate buildings around the courtyard. The ground floor of Russian houses was made up of cellars and storerooms. These vaults held wine, mead, kvas, ice, and frozen or salted meats and fish. The next level of this house had kitchens and service rooms—in houses not built on sloped ground, these would be on the ground floor. The first floor, the Bel étage, is accessed by stairs that are quite similar to those from the{229} courtyard to the Varvarka street level in the Dom Romanof.



KRESTOVAIA IN THE DOM ROMANOF

KRESTOVAIA IN THE DOM ROMANOF

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
KRESTOVAIA IN THE ROMANOV HOUSE

Entering the vestibule from the Varvarka, on the right are two small rooms, one for the use of attendants the other now fitted as a nursery, but undoubtedly originally an ante-chamber. The largest room on this floor is called Krestovaia, or Chamber of the Cross. It was the state-room. Here the boyard received the priests who came at Easter-tide, Christmas, and other feasts and on special occasions to offer congratulations or perform sacred offices. The roof is vaulted, and, in addition to the niches seen in the walls, there are secret recesses for the concealment of treasure. In the “sacred corner” is an ancient ikon, and on the table before it, covered with a rich Persian cloth, are two crosses. The stand, or mountain, was the rack on which, upon all solemn or festive occasions, the family plate was{230} displayed. Among the old treasures preserved here are a cocoa-nut shell mounted as a drinking-cup, and various other curious drinking-cups, bowls, and vases; an equestrian statuette, silver-gilt, of Charles I., a gift from that monarch to the Tsar Michael; two ewers presented by Charles II.; a silver salt cellar, and a puisoir presented by Martha Ivanovna, wife of the Patriarch, to her son the Tsar in 1618. No doubt it was in this room that the great banquets given by the boyard took place, but ordinarily the boyard would eat in his own apartment, his wife in hers. From this room a doorway leads to the private room of the boyard. This “study” is heated by a stove of coloured tiles, variously ornamented and bearing quaint inscriptions and designs, as a tortoise, “There is no better house than one’s own”; doves, “Fidelity unites us.” The cases contain some of the personal attire and weapons of the early boyards and their descendants, as: a silk mantle, some swords and daggers, a staff, the sceptre of the Tsar Michael, riding-boots, walking-sticks, and the like. The high narrow-heeled riding-boots are very curious, so too, on the copper inkstands, as antique in appearance as those of Chaucer’s day, will be seen the lion and unicorn, a Byzantine device often found in Russia. There is also a low seat used for writing, for the Russian placed the paper upon his knees, not on a table; his lines were not straight, and much good paper was wasted.

Entering the foyer from Varvarka, there are two small rooms on the right: one for attendants and the other currently set up as a nursery, though it was originally meant as an antechamber. The largest room on this floor is called Krestovaia, or Chamber of the Cross. It served as the state room. Here, the boyar welcomed priests during Easter, Christmas, and other celebrations to give their congratulations or conduct sacred rituals. The ceiling is vaulted, and besides the niches in the walls, there are hidden recesses for storing treasure. In the “sacred corner,” there's an ancient icon, and on the table in front of it, covered with a rich Persian cloth, sit two crosses. The stand, or mount, was where the family's silverware was{230} displayed on all important or festive occasions. Some old treasures kept here include a coconut shell used as a drinking cup, along with various other unique cups, bowls, and vases; a silver-gilt equestrian statue of Charles I, a gift from that king to Tsar Michael; two ewers given by Charles II; a silver salt cellar; and a puisoir given by Martha Ivanovna, the Patriarch's wife, to her son the Tsar in 1618. This room likely hosted the grand banquets held by the boyar, but typically, the boyar would dine in his own room, and his wife in hers. A doorway from this room leads to the boyar's private room. This “study” is warmed by a colorful tiled stove, decorated with various designs and quirky inscriptions, such as a tortoise saying, “There is no better house than one’s own,” and doves with “Fidelity unites us.” The cases contain some personal clothing and weapons of the early boyars and their descendants, such as a silk mantle, swords, daggers, a staff, the scepter of Tsar Michael, riding boots, walking sticks, and more. The high, narrow-heeled riding boots are quite interesting, and the antique-looking copper inkstands display a lion and unicorn, a Byzantine symbol often seen in Russia. There's also a low seat used for writing, as the Russians placed the paper on their laps instead of on a table; their lines were often crooked, leading to a lot of wasted good paper.

There is an oratory communicating with this four-windowed apartment, also two rooms used as nurseries; one for boys, the other for girls. In these close, small rooms the children were reared, for it was the habit of the Russians not only to hide their children from all strangers, but to keep them from all but their most intimate friends and relatives.

There’s a living room connecting to this four-window apartment, along with two rooms set up as nurseries; one for boys and the other for girls. In these cramped, small rooms, the children were raised, as it was common for Russians not only to keep their children away from all strangers but also to restrict them to only their closest friends and family.

A small doorway leads to a steep narrow staircase{231} communicating with the top storey, the terem or women’s apartments, consisting of a reception room, a bed-chamber and turret; from these rooms the nursery may also be reached by a still narrower staircase. The walls of the reception room are covered with stamped leather, the woodwork is carved in high relief, the stiff benches round the wall have stuffed seats and are covered with brocade. There are a number of old coffers and close wardrobes, also some curious clothing is displayed in cases.

A small doorway leads to a steep, narrow staircase{231} that connects to the top floor, known as the terem or women’s quarters, which includes a reception room, a bedroom, and a turret; the nursery can also be accessed from these rooms via an even narrower staircase. The walls of the reception room are lined with stamped leather, the woodwork is intricately carved, and the stiff benches around the walls have cushioned seats covered in brocade. There are several old chests and tall wardrobes, as well as some interesting clothing displayed in cases.

The four-post bedstead cannot be considered a native institution. It is peculiarly Scandinavian. The English adopted it from the Danes; the English reintroduced it into Russia, finding that the Russians themselves slept either on the stove, or on an eastern divan. More than once the early English ambassadors to Russia have complained that bedsteads were lacking, and it was long before their use became general.

The four-poster bed can't be seen as a native institution. It's specifically Scandinavian. The English took it from the Danes and brought it back to Russia, discovering that the Russians usually slept on the stove or on an eastern divan. More than once, early English ambassadors to Russia complained about the lack of beds, and it took a while before they became widely used.

The boyards kept their women folk hidden away in the terem in almost eastern seclusion. Jenkinson states that “the women be very obedient to their husbands, and are kept straitly from going abroad but at some seasons.” Other travellers write that the women are hardly used by their husbands, who beat them unmercifully; “and the women, though young and strong, never resent even if the husband be old and weak.” Herberstein relates that a foreigner in Moscow married to a Russian woman was upbraided by his wife because he never beat her as Russian husbands did their wives, and that he then beat her to please her; but as subsequently he cut off her legs, and finally her head also, the story is worth nothing as evidence of a custom.

The boyars kept their women hidden away in the terem, almost in eastern seclusion. Jenkinson notes that “the women are very obedient to their husbands and are strictly kept from going out except at certain times.” Other travelers mention that the women are treated harshly by their husbands, who beat them mercilessly; “and the women, despite being young and strong, never complain even if the husband is old and weak.” Herberstein recounts that a foreigner in Moscow married to a Russian woman was scolded by his wife for never beating her like Russian husbands do their wives, and that he then beat her to make her happy; however, since he later cut off her legs and eventually her head, the story isn't credible as evidence of a custom.

Sylvester in his “Domostroi” says a wife ought never to take the title of Lady, but always to look on her husband as Lord. She was to concern herself only with household affairs, and might be treated like a{232} slave; only the husband is enjoined “not to use a too thick stick, or a staffe tipped with iron, nor to humiliate unduly by flogging before men.”

Sylvester in his “Domostroi” says a wife should never call herself Lady, but always view her husband as Lord. She was to focus solely on household matters and could be treated like a{232} slave; the husband is advised “not to use a heavy stick, or a staff with a metal tip, nor to overly humiliate by flogging in front of others.”

Out of doors she was carried in a shuttered litter, and she wore the fata or veil; a special part of the church was assigned women, but the wives and daughters of the boyards usually worshipped in their own private chapels, and went to the Cathedrals but upon special and state occasions. Then it was that suitors caught a glimpse of their future brides, and received glances which bespake love.

Outdoors, she was carried in a covered litter, and she wore the fata or veil; a designated section of the church was set aside for women, but the wives and daughters of the boyars typically worshipped in their own private chapels and only went to the Cathedrals for special state occasions. That was when suitors caught a glimpse of their future brides and exchanged looks that expressed love.

As among eastern nations, the bridegroom usually did not see his wife before marriage. When the preliminaries had been arranged and settled by third parties, the bridegroom sent a present of sweetmeats and a whip to his bride elect, who always spent the night before the marriage ceremony at the house of the bridegroom’s parents. On the day of the marriage he put into one of his boots sweetmeats or a trinket, into the other a whip; the newly wedded wife took off the boots, and to remove first that which contained the trinket was considered the omen of a happy life for the woman. “But if she light on the boot with a whip in it, she is reckoned among the unfortunate and gets a bride-lash for her pains, which is but the earnest penny of her future entertainment.” There were also other little passes during the complex ceremony, the winning of any indicating the mastery during wedded life.

As in some eastern cultures, the groom typically did not see his bride before the wedding. Once everything was arranged by intermediaries, the groom would send a gift of sweets and a whip to his future wife, who always spent the night before the wedding at the groom’s parents' house. On the wedding day, he would place sweets or a small item in one of his boots and a whip in the other; the newly married wife would remove the boots, and if she took off the one with the trinket first, it was seen as a sign of a happy life ahead. “But if she picks the boot with the whip, she is considered unlucky and gets a bride-lash for her trouble, which serves as a down payment for her future experiences.” There were also other small rituals during the elaborate ceremony, with any victory signifying mastery in their married life.

Such was the woman’s lot in the seventeenth century, but much was done to better it before Peter the Great introduced western freedom. Collins wrote in 1674:—

Such was the woman’s fate in the seventeenth century, but a lot was done to improve it before Peter the Great brought in Western freedom. Collins wrote in 1674:—

“The Russian discipline to their wives is very rigid and severe, more inhuman in times past than at present. Yet three years ago a Moscow merchant beat his wife as long as he was able, with a whip two inches round, and then caused her to put on a smock dript in brandy, to which he set fire, and{233} so the poor creature perished miserably in flames. Yet none prosecuted her death, for there is no law against killing a woman, or slave, if it happens on correction. Some of these beasts will tie up their wives by the hair of the head and whip them stark naked. Now parents make better matches for their daughters, obliging husbands to contract to use them kindly, without whipping, striking or kicking them.”

“The way Russian men discipline their wives is very strict and harsh, more inhumane in the past than it is now. However, three years ago, a merchant in Moscow beat his wife with a whip that was two inches thick until he couldn't anymore, then made her wear a smock soaked in brandy, which he set on fire, and{233} as a result, the poor woman died in flames. Yet no one was prosecuted for her death, since there’s no law against killing a woman or a slave if it’s done as punishment. Some of these men will even tie their wives up by their hair and whip them while they’re completely naked. Nowadays, parents arrange better marriages for their daughters, requiring husbands to agree to treat them kindly, without whipping, hitting, or kicking.”

Even Peter’s code was cruel: it was during his reign that Le Bruyn saw a woman executed in Moscow by being buried alive; covered up to her neck in the dank black soil she lived but two days, whereas, on the same authority, there were others who lingered ten or more. In Russia, as in countries further west, the crime of petty treason, the murder of a husband, was considered almost as heinous as high treason, and punished accordingly.

Even Peter’s rule was harsh: during his time, Le Bruyn witnessed a woman being executed in Moscow by being buried alive; she was covered up to her neck in the cold, dark soil and only survived for two days, while, according to the same authority, others endured for ten days or more. In Russia, just like in countries further west, the crime of petty treason—like murdering a husband—was regarded almost as severely as high treason and was punished accordingly.

Kept closely confined to a small apartment, living almost always in heated rooms the Russian ladies had fair complexions; “white cream-and-snow tinged with the faint hue of the inside of a camellia” one poet describes it. Others are not so generous; Turberville writes:

Kept tightly shut in a small apartment and mostly living in heated rooms, the Russian women had fair complexions; “white cream-and-snow tinged with the faint hue of the inside of a camellia,” as one poet puts it. Others are less kind; Turberville writes:

"To buy her paint, he gives his wife an allowance." With which she adorns herself and colors her tan skin; She plays pranks and paints her smoky face,
Brow, lip, cheek, and chin.”

All writers complain that the women painted without art; many blacked their teeth, and stained their nails with henna, a custom which obtained with the wives of Russian merchants to the present century. So, too, after Peter the Great forced women from the seclusion of the terem, it was the custom of ladies to present to each other in public their paint boxes, even as in the west men offered snuff. It was not until after the French invasion that this custom died out, and Pushkin endeavoured to advance the new order{234} by deriding the practice and ridiculing the English governors who followed it. On the other hand, a lady of the court who, much to the chagrin of others, refused to paint her face, was compelled to do so by order of the Tsar, to whom complaint had been made.

All writers complain that women were portrayed poorly; many blackened their teeth and stained their nails with henna, a practice that continued among the wives of Russian merchants into this century. Similarly, after Peter the Great brought women out of the seclusion of the terem, it became common for ladies to exchange their makeup kits publicly, much like men in the west offered snuff. This custom didn’t fade away until after the French invasion, and Pushkin tried to promote a new way by mocking the practice and criticizing the English governors who practiced it. On the flip side, a lady at court who, much to the annoyance of others, refused to wear makeup was ordered to do so by the Tsar after complaints were made to him.{234}

As women were free in the Russia of the Norsemen, the seclusion in the terem was either a custom adopted from Byzantium or, more probably, a precautionary measure to protect them from Tartar invaders. The purpose of these invasions has already been stated, and as on one foray the Tartars are reported to have taken away 400,000 captives from Russia, the hiding of women and children in portions of the dwellings to which men at no time had access was doubtless considered to enhance their chances of escape during the temporary absence of the master in the front of the battle; and from being a temporary retreat it became the ordinary living apartments. But the custom was a town one; not practised by villagers.

As women had more freedom in the Russia of the Norsemen, the seclusion in the terem was likely a custom borrowed from Byzantium or, more probably, a safety measure to protect them from Tartar invaders. The reasons for these invasions have already been mentioned, and during one raid, the Tartars reportedly took away 400,000 captives from Russia. Keeping women and children hidden in parts of the home that men never accessed was probably seen as increasing their chances of escape during the master’s temporary absence at the front lines. What started as a temporary refuge became their regular living spaces. However, this custom was mainly seen in towns and not practiced by those in rural areas.

The Russians were largely flesh eaters, meat and fish constituted the diet not only of the well to do but of the peasants. In the north Le Bruyn found the natives feeding even their beasts on fish, and Ysbrant noted the same practice among the inhabitants east of the Ural. Jenkinson found that the Muscovites had “many sortes of meates, and delight in eating gross meates and stinking fish.” Brandy was served round before eating commenced, a custom that still obtains and was originally derived from the Norsemen. Collins states that horse-flesh was forbidden; also hare, rabbit, and elk. At some seasons veal was forbidden; any thing sweetened with sugar, or candy, on fast days; and, at all times, dishes flavoured with musk, civet and beaver. The chief dish at a banquet given to Herberstein was of swan, served with sour milk, pickled gherkins and plums. There was abundance{235} of corn, and some of the commoner vegetables; the fruits were insipid; except filberts, Herberstein found none of the sweeter kinds of fruit or nuts. Water melons were grown and then, as now, the Russians fed upon many different kinds of fungus; some thirteen varieties found in the neighbourhood of Moscow are edible, but the Russian regards as scarcely wholesome the only mushroom eaten in England.

The Russians mainly ate meat, with both the wealthy and the peasants having meat and fish as staples in their diets. In the north, Le Bruyn observed that the locals even fed their animals fish, and Ysbrant noted the same habit among people east of the Ural Mountains. Jenkinson reported that the Muscovites had “many kinds of meats and enjoyed eating rich meats and strong-smelling fish.” Brandy was passed around before meals started, a tradition that continues today and originally came from the Norsemen. Collins mentioned that horse meat was banned, along with hare, rabbit, and elk. At certain times, veal was also off-limits, as were any sweetened foods or candies on fasting days, and dishes flavored with musk, civet, and beaver were forbidden at all times. A banquet hosted for Herberstein featured a main dish of swan served with sour milk, pickled cucumbers, and plums. There was plenty of corn and some common vegetables; the fruits were generally dull, and aside from hazelnuts, Herberstein found none of the sweeter fruits or nuts. Watermelons were cultivated, and like today, Russians consumed various types of mushrooms; about thirteen edible varieties were found around Moscow, but Russians considered the only mushroom eaten in England to be hardly healthy.

Tea was known to the Russians of the middle ages; some quaint samovars are preserved in the Dom Romanof, but the medieval Russ found his greatest pleasure in drinking mead, brandy and strong liquors. Before drinking it was the custom to blow in the cup; to guests and strangers wine was offered by, or on behalf of, each member of the host’s family, in small cups or glasses, then, to conclude, a huge cup filled to the brim from which it was the correct etiquette to take but a sip.

Tea was known to the Russians during the Middle Ages; some unique samovars are kept in the Dom Romanof, but medieval Russians found the most enjoyment in drinking mead, brandy, and strong spirits. Before drinking, it was customary to blow into the cup; wine was offered to guests and strangers by, or on behalf of, each member of the host’s family, using small cups or glasses, and finally, a large cup filled to the brim was presented, from which it was proper to take just a sip.

In Sylvester’s “Domostroi” the correct etiquette for masters and servants is set forth. At table the diner may “blow his nose, must spit without noise, take care to turn away from the company, and put his foot over the place.” Instead of advising the lord to sell old slaves and cattle, as Cato told the Romans to do, Sylvester requires that old servants who are no longer good for anything must be “fed and clothed, in consideration of their former services.” Then, for the servant; “when a man sends his servant to honest people, he should on arriving knock softly at the door of the grand entrance; when the slave comes to ask what he wants, he must reply ‘I have nought to do with thee, but with him to whom I am sent.’ He must say only from whom he comes, so that the man may tell his master. On the threshold of the chamber he will wipe his feet on the straw. Before entering he will blow his nose, spit and say a prayer. If no one calls Amen! to him, he will say another prayer; if there{236} is still no answer, a third prayer in a louder voice. If still no answer, he may then knock at the door. On entering he must bow before the sacred ikon; then he will explain his errand: he must not touch his nose, or spit, or cough; look neither to right nor left.”

In Sylvester’s “Domostroi,” the proper etiquette for masters and servants is outlined. At the table, a diner may “blow his nose, must spit quietly, ensure he turns away from the group, and put his foot over the area.” Instead of advising the lord to sell off old slaves and livestock, as Cato suggested to the Romans, Sylvester insists that old servants who are no longer useful must be “fed and clothed in acknowledgment of their past services.” Then, for the servant: “when someone sends his servant to reputable people, he should softly knock on the door of the main entrance upon arrival; when the servant comes to inquire what he needs, he must respond, ‘I have nothing to discuss with you, only with the one I’m sent to.’ He should state only his sender's name, so that the person can inform his master. On the threshold of the room, he will wipe his feet on the straw. Before entering, he will blow his nose, spit, and say a prayer. If no one responds with Amen!, he will say another prayer; if there is still no answer, he will say a third prayer louder. If there’s still no response, he may then knock on the door. Upon entering, he must bow before the sacred icon; then he will explain his purpose: he must not touch his nose, spit, or cough, and he should not look to the right or left.”

The Tsars derived much revenue from a cursemay or drinking tavern in each town, which was let out to tenants or bestowed upon some courtier for a year or two, “then, he being grown rich, is taken by the Tsar and sent to the warres again, where he shall spend all that which he hath gotten by ill means, so that the Tsar in his warres is little charged, but all the burden lieth on the poor people.”

The Tsars made a lot of money from a cursemay or drinking tavern in every town, which they rented out to tenants or gave to some courtier for a year or two. “Then, once he becomes wealthy, the Tsar takes him back and sends him to war again, where he spends everything he gained through dishonest means, so that the Tsar in his wars is hardly burdened, while all the weight falls on the poor people.”

Jenkinson writes: “At my being there, I heard of men and women that drunk away their children and all their goods at the Tsar’s tavern, and not being able to pay, having pawned himself, the taverner bringeth him out to the highway, and beates him upon the legs; then they that pass by, knowing the cause and peradventure, having compassion upon him, giveth the money, so he is ransomed.”

Jenkinson writes: “When I was there, I heard about men and women who wasted their children and all their belongings at the Tsar’s tavern. Unable to pay, they would end up pawning themselves, and the tavern owner would drag them out to the highway and beat them on the legs. People passing by, knowing the reason and perhaps feeling a bit sorry for him, would give him money so he could buy his freedom.”

During carnival there were many deaths due to excessive drinking and the extreme cold, for it was then that all had licence to drink and make merry. The Tsar Vasili Ivanievich (1505-1533) gave permission to some of his courtiers to drink at any time, but in order that their habits might not corrupt the people they had to live apart in a special suburb, which was appointed them on the south side of the river, where for a time all the dwellers were known by the name of Nali or “Drinkers.”

During the carnival, there were many deaths caused by excessive drinking and the extreme cold, as it was a time when everyone had the freedom to drink and celebrate. Tsar Vasili Ivanievich (1505-1533) allowed some of his courtiers to drink whenever they wanted, but to prevent their behaviors from affecting the public, they had to live separately in a designated area on the south side of the river, where for a while, everyone there was known as the Nali or "Drinkers."

"People ready to be part of Bacchus's crew, so drinking is their nature,
Drinking is their only desire, the drink is their only pride; The sober mind needs a guide once a day,
And if he goes to his neighbor as a guest,
He doesn't care much for meat, as long as his drink is top quality. Turberville, 1568.

{237}

{237}

The Muscovites knew not how to dance. At their merrymakings they made Tartars and Poles dance to amuse them; their music was obtained from brass hunting horns, trumpets, cymbals and the bagpipes. Kotoshin states that the boyards were “dull, ignorant men, who sit in silence, stroking their beards and making no reply to anything said to them.” The common people amused themselves on the “sway” or sea-saw; they loved to assemble in crowds and to sing and drink together. Some were drawn up and down in chairs, others went round and round in flying-chairs affixed to wheels pivoted, some perpendicularly, others horizontally; in short, the prototypes of the “merry-go-rounds” and “high-flyers” of pleasure fairs in Britain and elsewhere. In winter they sped down ice hills on their small sledges (tobogganing), and few only took pleasure in field sports, trapping birds and animals being part of the business of the lives of most; coursing and falconry the privilege of the Tsar and his suite.

The Muscovites didn't know how to dance. At their celebrations, they had Tartars and Poles dance to entertain them; their music came from brass hunting horns, trumpets, cymbals, and bagpipes. Kotoshin notes that the boyars were “dull, ignorant men, who sit in silence, stroking their beards and replying to nothing said to them.” The common people enjoyed themselves on the “sway” or seesaw; they loved gathering in crowds to sing and drink together. Some were lifted up and down in chairs, while others went round and round in flying chairs attached to wheels, some moving up and down, others side to side; in short, the early versions of the “merry-go-rounds” and “high-flyers” found at amusement fairs in Britain and elsewhere. In winter, they zoomed down ice hills on their small sleds (tobogganing), and only a few found enjoyment in field sports, as catching birds and animals was part of most people's daily lives; coursing and falconry were the privileges of the Tsar and his court.

In winter when the boyard stirred out of doors it was always in his sledge, where he lay upon a carpet in the skin of a polar bear. The sledge was drawn by a single horse “well decked,” a little boy astride its back, and servants of the boyard stood upon the tail of the sledge.

In winter, when the nobleman went outdoors, he always did so in his sled, lying on a carpet made from a polar bear's skin. The sled was pulled by a single horse, decorated nicely, with a little boy sitting on its back, and the nobleman's servants standing on the back of the sled.

As traders they had an unenviable reputation. “The people of Moscow are more cunning and deceitful than all others, their honour being especially slack in business contracts—of which fact they themselves are by no means ignorant for, whenever they traffic with foreigners, they pretend, in order to attain greater credit, that they are not men of Moscow but strangers.” The market was in the Kitai Gorod. There the foreign merchants had their warehouses, and for centuries a Gostinnoi Dvor, not unlike the bazaar of Stamboul, occupied the site of the recently erected New Rows{238} (Novi Riadi), but even at the present day the picturesque is not extirpated from the wholesale market. The Starai Gostinnoi Dvor has quite a charm of its own, and the adventurous sightseer who, not content with passing through it from the Ilyinka, turns off into the alleys furthest from the Krasnœ Ploshchad towards the wall of the Kitai-gorod, will see curious courtyards having large galleries around them; huge hatch-ways communicating with the vast vaults and stores below. Quaint shops line the wall of the Kitai-gorod from the Varvarka gate right up to the Nikolskaya; with a sort of permanent rag fair at that end, where, too, from the introduction of printing, the stalls and shops of the booksellers have been located. Another surviving market for miscellaneous articles—from old ikons and bludgeons to picked up trinkets and immense samovars—is held from six o’clock till noon on Sunday mornings around the Sukharev Bashnia. From time immemorial a great fair for frozen fish and game has been held outside the Kitai-gorod wall as soon as winter’s frost sets in. In this commercial district are various old churches of interest and, in the Cherkassky pereulok, the place of legal combat for those who justified their cause by an appeal to strength and skill.

As traders, they had a pretty bad reputation. “The people of Moscow are more cunning and deceitful than anyone else, especially when it comes to business contracts, and they know it well. Whenever they deal with foreigners, they act like they’re not from Moscow but instead claim to be strangers to gain more credibility.” The market was located in Kitai Gorod. There, foreign merchants had their warehouses, and for centuries a Gostinnoi Dvor, similar to the bazaar in Istanbul, was on the site of the newly built New Rows{238} (Novi Riadi), but even today, the market still has a lot of character. The Starai Gostinnoi Dvor has its own unique charm, and anyone who isn’t satisfied with just walking through it from Ilyinka and instead explores the alleys further away from Krasnœ Ploshchad towards the Kitai-gorod wall will discover interesting courtyards with large galleries around them; massive hatchways connecting to the huge vaults and storage areas below. Unusual shops line the Kitai-gorod wall from Varvarka gate all the way to Nikolskaya, with a kind of permanent rag fair at that end, which is also where the book stalls and shops have been located since printing arrived. Another market that still exists for a mix of items—from old icons and clubs to random trinkets and huge samovars—takes place from six in the morning until noon on Sundays around Sukharev Bashnia. For ages, a large fair for frozen fish and game has been held outside the Kitai-gorod wall once winter frost sets in. This commercial district is also home to various interesting old churches, and in Cherkassky pereulok, there’s a place for legal disputes where people settled their issues through strength and skill.



WALL OF THE KITAI-GOROD. VARVARKA VOROT

WALL OF THE KITAI-GOROD. VARVARKA GATE

In the administration of justice much was lacking,{239} the principle of the paternal rule of the sovereign necessitating direct appeal by means of a petition. Later, a Prikase or office of direction was established, and this was followed by others empowered with the control of affairs relating respectively to carmen, Siberia, criminals, etc. As in all countries, misdemeanours against the property or liberties of individuals was regarded as a matter for personal redress by the party aggrieved; only those against the crown called for the active interference of the sovereign through his body-guard. The use of torture and some western methods of judicial procedure were introduced by Sophia Palealogus and the Italians who followed her, and were grafted upon native customs.

In the administration of justice, there was a lot lacking,{239} as the principle of the sovereign's paternal rule required direct appeals through petitions. Later, an office of direction called a Prikase was established, followed by others responsible for managing affairs related to carmen, Siberia, criminals, and so on. Like in all countries, offenses against the property or rights of individuals were seen as matters for personal redress by the affected party; only those against the crown required the active intervention of the sovereign and his guards. The use of torture and some Western judicial methods were introduced by Sophia Paleologus and the Italians who came after her, and these were combined with local customs.

In the reign of Ivan the Terrible, legal procedure was as follows:—

In the time of Ivan the Terrible, the legal process was as follows:—

“When any dispute arises they appoint, in the first place, the land owners to act as judges, and these if unable to settle the dispute, refer the case to a higher magistrate. The complainant asks the magistrate for leave to summon his adversary to court; the leave granted, he calls an attendant (sergeant), cites the accused and hurries him along to the court. The attendant keeps scourging the man about the shins with the knout, until he can bring forward someone who on his behalf can satisfy the law. If he has no friend to go bail for him, the sergeant, grasping him by the neck, drags him along and subjects him to blows, until before the court to plead his cause. If it be a suit to recover a debt, the defendant is asked by the magistrate whether he is in debt to the plaintiff, and replies that he is not in his debt. Then the judge asks, ‘In what form can you make denial!’ The defendant answers, ‘Upon my oath.’ Thereupon the sergeant is forbidden by the magistrate to administer further blows, until the evidence makes the case clearer.

“When a dispute arises, they first appoint the landowners as judges. If they can't resolve the issue, they refer the case to a higher magistrate. The complainant asks the magistrate for permission to summon their opponent to court; once granted, they call an attendant (sergeant), who cites the accused and rushes them to court. The attendant keeps hitting the accused on the shins with a whip until he finds someone who can vouch for him. If he has no friend to bail him out, the sergeant grabs him by the neck, drags him along, and hits him until he reaches the court to defend himself. In a debt recovery case, the magistrate asks the defendant if he owes the plaintiff money, and the defendant says he does not. Then the judge asks, ‘How can you deny this?’ The defendant replies, ‘I swear it’s true.’ The magistrate then tells the sergeant to stop hitting the defendant until the evidence clarifies the case.”

“The Muscovites are exempt from a great curse to a community, in that they have no pettifogging lawyers. Every man conducts his own case, and the plaint of the pursuer and defence of the accused are submitted to the prince in the form of written petitions, craving for a just sentence at his hands. When each party has supported his case with all the arguments available, the judge asks the accuser whether{240} any arguments remain. He answers that he himself, or his champion for him, will, with a strong hand, make good his accusation on the person of his opponent, and he further demands leave to engage with him in single combat. Liberty to fight is accorded both disputants, who rush simultaneously to the onset. But if one or both be not strong enough to fight, they engage professional pugilists as substitutes. These men enter the lists armed, chiefly with a war-club and a hunting-pole. The fighting is on foot. He whose champion is beaten is cast at once in prison, where he is most shamefully treated, until he ends his dispute with his enemy. If of high rank it is not allowed to get proxies. If a poor man has incurred a debt, and is unable to pay, the creditor carries him off and makes him labour for him, yea he even lets out his services on hire to someone else, until by his labour he fills up the amount of his debt.”

“The people of Moscow are free from a major problem that many communities face; they don’t have petty lawyers. Everyone handles their own cases, and both the complaint from the accuser and the defense from the accused are presented to the prince as written petitions, asking for a fair judgment from him. Once each side has given all their arguments, the judge asks the accuser if there are any more points to make. He replies that he, or his representative, will strongly prove his accusation against the other person, and he requests permission to fight him in single combat. Permission to fight is granted to both parties, who charge at each other at the same time. However, if one or both are too weak to fight, they hire professional fighters as substitutes. These fighters enter the arena armed mainly with a war club and a hunting pole. The fighting takes place on foot. The loser of the fight is immediately thrown in jail, where he is treated very shamefully until he resolves his dispute with his opponent. If someone is of high status, they cannot have a substitute. If a poor man takes on a debt and can’t pay, the creditor takes him away and makes him work for them, even renting out his services to others until he earns enough to pay off the debt.”

Harry Best, an Englishman, made good his claim against a defaulter in a trial by combat, which resulted in an immediate petition by the Muscovites to the Tsar, to forbid foreigners engaging in the lists with citizens. As for criminals: thieves were imprisoned and knouted but were not hanged for a first offence; for a second offence, a thief lost the nose or an ear and was branded on the forehead; the third offence was punished with crucifixion, which was a customary penalty long after the days of Ivan IV. Impalement in various ways was also practised; heretics were burned; false-coiners boiled in oil; during winter the condemned were thrust under the ice and drowned. The long category of barbarous punishments borrowed from the west, being minutely followed in addition to excisions, amputations, mutilations and cruelties of local origin. One of these may be mentioned, “the death by 10,000 pieces,” when the condemned was cut away bit by bit and the parts seared to prevent death by hæmorrhage before it was necessary to attack a vital part. Another form of it was to insert a hook under a rib and pull the bone out of the side—the Muscovite equivalent of the{241} western method of extorting money from Jews by the extraction of tooth after tooth. Ivan “Groznoi” practised even worse cruelties. The widow of one of his victims he put astride a coarse rope and drew her to and fro upon it until sawn through—in this rivalling the excesses of enthusiastic religious persecutors in the Netherlands. More refined was his fiendish practice of hanging in the doorway of a boyard’s house his wife, child, or some other loved one of the boyard, then compel the man to go to and fro past the corpse that day by day became more repulsive. Worse even than this did Ivan “Groznoi,” the cruel Tsar, but his worst need not be mentioned unless, at some future time, men name him not the “Terrible,” but call him the “Great.”

Harry Best, an Englishman, successfully claimed against a defaulter in a trial by combat, which led to an immediate request from the Muscovites to the Tsar to ban foreigners from competing against citizens. As for criminals: thieves were imprisoned and whipped but were not hanged for a first offense; for a second offense, a thief lost a nose or an ear and was branded on the forehead; the third offense was punished by crucifixion, which remained a common penalty long after the time of Ivan IV. Various forms of impalement were also used; heretics were burned; counterfeiters were boiled in oil; during winter, the condemned were pushed under the ice and drowned. The long list of brutal punishments, taken from the West, was meticulously followed along with other local practices including excisions, amputations, and mutilations. One notable punishment was “death by 10,000 cuts,” where the condemned was sliced bit by bit, with the wounds cauterized to prevent bleeding before vital organs were targeted. Another method involved inserting a hook under a rib and pulling the bone out of the side—the Muscovite equivalent of the{241} Western practice of extorting money from Jews by extracting their teeth one by one. Ivan “Groznoi” practiced even worse atrocities. He put the widow of one of his victims on a coarse rope and sawed her in half, rivaling the excesses of fanatical religious persecutors in the Netherlands. A more chilling tactic was his practice of hanging the wife, child, or another loved one of a boyar in the doorway of their home, forcing the man to walk past the increasingly grotesque corpse day after day. Even worse acts were committed by Ivan “Groznoi,” the cruel Tsar, but those need not be mentioned unless, in the future, people refer to him not as “Terrible,” but as “Great.”

In the days of Peter the Great men were still impaled or crucified; were burned in small pens filled with straw; were beheaded on a block and “hanged as elsewhere.” Le Bruyn says, one day he saw a man burned alive, and in another part of the town a woman buried, with small tapers burning near her; and “all executions with such silence, that what takes place at one end of the town is unknown at the other.” Afterwards, were such barbarities as the Empress Elizabeth ordered to be inflicted upon the Boyarina Lapunof, and still later such cruelties as the Countess Soltikov exercised on her serfs. In fact the tale of Moscow’s woe was not told until the advent to the throne of that greatest of dead Tsars, Alexander II., the true reformer of Russia.

In the time of Peter the Great, people were still impaled or crucified; they were burned in small pens filled with straw; beheaded on a block and “hanged like elsewhere.” Le Bruyn mentions that one day he saw a man burned alive, and in another part of town, a woman buried with small candles burning beside her; and “all executions were done in such silence that what happens at one end of town is unknown at the other.” Later, there were the brutal punishments that Empress Elizabeth ordered for Boyarina Lapunof, and even later, the cruelty that Countess Soltikov inflicted on her serfs. In fact, the story of Moscow’s suffering wasn’t revealed until the rise to the throne of that greatest of deceased Tsars, Alexander II., the true reformer of Russia.

In the olden days the bearers of too illustrious names were forbidden to marry; others might not marry without permission first obtained; leave was necessary before one could carry arms. In times of peace it was unusual for weapons to be worn, a staff shod with steel took the place of sword or dagger, the voievodes only{242} wore side arms generally. Trade was the privilege of the Tsar, and those to whom he granted the right; pen work was always done by humble secretaries or diaks—in the end they became the masters, rather than the servants of their employers.

In the past, people with prestigious names were not allowed to marry; others couldn’t get married without first getting permission. You needed approval before you could bear arms. In peaceful times, it was rare to see weapons being carried; a staff with a steel tip replaced a sword or dagger, and only the voievodes typically wore sidearms. Trade was a privilege of the Tsar and those he authorized; writing was always carried out by lowly secretaries or diaks—ultimately, they became the ones in charge rather than just the helpers of their bosses.{242}

In their bearing towards their superiors, ecclesiastic and secular, the Russian was abject in his deference; the customary mode of address being similar to that of the east. In Byzantium the petitioner prostrated himself and called, “May I speak and yet live?” In Moscow the Russ cried, “Bid me not to be chastised, bid me speak, I the humble, etc.,” and in Russian a petition, literally, is a “beating of the forehead” before superiority. Peter the Great did much to discourage the abject prostration of his subjects before the property of the crown, but as late as the reign of the Emperor Nicholas some serfs were compelled to uncover when passing any mansion of their lord, whilst other nobles expressly forbade it. The Church never expressly forbade prostration before sacred objects as Peter did before secular property, so in that, the old custom survives. But it is probably owing to the earlier use, and not particularly to the image of our Saviour over the Spasski Gate, that it is customary still to uncover when passing to or from the Kremlin by the state entrance. For in Russia when a practice has been once enjoined by a person in authority it will be continued until expressly forbidden. It is said that many years ago a distinguished visitor to one of the royal residences inquired why it was thought necessary to station a sentry in the centre of a grassplot in the pleasure grounds. It was then discovered that once upon a time, a Tsaritsa, long deceased, had noticed an early snow-drop budding forth at that spot, and expressed her wish that the flower should be protected. To ensure its safety a sentry mounted guard, and so{243} for many years, day and night, in all seasons, a sentry continued to be posted there; for, although the circumstances had been forgotten, the order was conscientiously obeyed.

In their interactions with their superiors, both religious and secular, Russians were very submissive in their respect; the way they addressed others was similar to Eastern customs. In Byzantium, petitioners would prostrate themselves and say, “May I speak and still live?” In Moscow, a Russian would say, “Please don’t punish me, let me speak, I the humble, etc.,” and in Russian, a petition literally means “a beating of the forehead” before someone of higher status. Peter the Great worked hard to discourage this extreme submission from his subjects in front of the crown's possessions, but even as late as Emperor Nicholas's reign, some serfs had to take off their hats when passing their lord’s mansion, while other nobles specifically prohibited it. The Church never formally prohibited prostration before sacred objects as Peter did for secular property, so that old custom still exists. However, it’s likely due to the earlier tradition, rather than the image of our Savior over the Spasski Gate, that people still uncover their heads when entering or leaving the Kremlin through the main entrance. In Russia, once a practice is established by someone in authority, it typically continues until it’s explicitly forbidden. It’s said that many years ago, a notable visitor to one of the royal residences asked why there was a sentry stationed in the middle of a lawn in the gardens. It turned out that a long-dead Tsarina had once seen an early snowdrop blooming in that spot and wished for it to be protected. To ensure its safety, a sentry was assigned to guard it, and so for many years, day and night, through all seasons, a sentry was posted there; for, even though the reason was forgotten, the order was faithfully followed.

The rites of the orthodox church are not subject to change, and the ceremonies of to-day are practically the same as they were centuries ago. One of the most characteristic is connected with the periodical removal of some sacred picture from its ikonostas to a special service in a church dedicated to some other saint, or associated with a particular episode in the life of our Saviour. After a preliminary service, the ikon is taken down and reverently borne away by the priests appointed, attended by prelates, deacons, acolytes, choristers and the bearers of “standards.” These standards—znamia, literally “token”—are akin to the banners of the western Church; they are of diverse form, usually of metal, adorned with gems, and always have either a representation of a saint or some sacred symbol upon them. Some are but a fit setting to a small ikon; many are beautiful specimens of metal work, others are of curious design, all are attractive; and when, sometimes to the number of a hundred or more, they are carried aloft through the streets of the old town, they add greatly to the stateliness of an impressive pageant.

The rituals of the Orthodox Church don't change, and the ceremonies we have today are basically the same as they were centuries ago. One of the most distinctive ones involves the periodic removal of a sacred image from its ikonostas for a special service in a church dedicated to another saint, or connected to a specific event in the life of our Savior. After a preliminary service, the ikon is carefully taken down and carried away by the assigned priests, accompanied by bishops, deacons, altar servers, choir members, and the holders of "standards." These standards—znamia, meaning "token"—are similar to the banners of the Western Church; they come in various shapes, usually made of metal, decorated with gems, and always feature either a representation of a saint or some sacred symbol. Some simply serve as a backdrop for a small ikon; many are stunning examples of metalwork, others have unique designs, all are eye-catching; and when, at times numbering a hundred or more, they are held high through the streets of the old town, they greatly enhance the grandeur of an impressive procession.

It is on such occasions as these—and they are many—that the attitude of the people towards their church may be studied with advantage, and the beholder will realise how strong is the affection of the orthodox for all that pertains to their religion. The great reverence shown the symbols, the fervour and sincerity of the greeting, are convincing evidence of deeply-rooted belief, simple piety and existing close relations between the Church and people. In short, a procession of this kind does more than suggest the religious phase of mediævalism, it is a revelation of its actual potency.{244}

It’s during moments like these—and there are many—that you can really see how the people feel about their church, and anyone observing will understand just how strong the affection of the faithful is for everything related to their faith. The deep respect shown towards the symbols, the warmth and sincerity of the greetings, all serve as clear proof of a deeply held belief, genuine devotion, and a strong connection between the Church and its community. In short, a procession like this not only highlights the religious aspect of medieval times, but also reveals its real power.{244}

Easter is of course the great festival; then the Great Bell of Moscow thunders forth that Christ has risen, and the people embrace each other and with pious glee call “Vosskresenni Khristos” much as in the west acquaintance greet each other with good wishes at the new year. Students of comparative ecclesiasticism cannot afford to miss witnessing the celebration of the feast in Moscow any more than they can that in Rome.

Easter is definitely the major celebration; then the Great Bell of Moscow booms to announce that Christ has risen, and people hug each other and joyfully shout “Voskresenni Khristos,” similar to how people in the West greet each other with good wishes at New Year. Students of comparative church studies can’t miss experiencing the celebration of this feast in Moscow any more than they can in Rome.

On Trinity Sunday not only are the churches strewn with newly cut herbage and decorated with budding branches, but all houses “sport greenery”—it is a combination of the old time customs of May-Day and Yuletide in the west. The sacred ikons figure in all ceremonies, and private individuals in times of distress requisition them. They are conveyed with considerable pomp to the bedside of the dying, or to the homes of the fortunate, pious in their rejoicing. The church is all inclusive and makes no distinction; is as ready to comfort the most notorious sinner as it is the devout communicant of irreproachable rectitude and honour.

On Trinity Sunday, not only are the churches filled with freshly cut grass and decorated with budding branches, but every home is adorned with greenery. This tradition blends the old customs of May Day and Christmas in the West. Sacred icons play a role in all ceremonies, and individuals in need often request them. They are brought with great ceremony to the bedside of the dying or to the homes of those celebrating their good fortune. The church is all-embracing and makes no distinctions; it is just as ready to comfort the most notorious sinner as it is to support the devout communicant of impeccable virtue and honor.

The ikon most desired is that known as the Iberian Mother of God, whose chapel stands before the Vosskresenski Gate. Close by a carriage and six remains in attendance, and usually towards evening it starts forth on long journeys across the town, its round often unfinished when morning dawns. Its place on the ikonostas is filled by a copy, but the original is at once restored on its return. Men uncover as the carriage passes by; those near, when it is carried to or from a house, prostrate themselves or attempt to kiss it, some endeavour so to arrange that the picture must be carried over them. Another ikon in request is that kept at the Vladimirski Vorot; all have great homage paid them. Priests, drivers, attendants, are uncovered, even in the depth of winter; and to be appointed to any post in connection with it{245} is counted a great honour. It is said that the offerings of the thankful in return for the privileges conferred by “visiting” have amounted to as much as £10,000 in a single year in respect of one picture alone. This money is part of the church revenue—the servants attending with the ikon receiving presents in addition.

The most sought-after icon is the Iberian Mother of God, whose chapel stands by the Vosskresenski Gate. Nearby, a carriage and six horses wait, and usually, in the evening, it sets off on long journeys across town, often still unfinished when morning arrives. A copy fills its spot on the iconostasis, but the original is quickly restored upon its return. Men uncover their heads as the carriage passes; those nearby, when it's taken to or from a house, prostrate themselves or try to kiss it, with some trying to position themselves so the picture is carried over them. Another popular icon is housed at the Vladimirski Vorot; all receive great honor. Priests, drivers, and attendants uncover their heads, even in the depths of winter; being assigned to any duty related to it{245} is considered a great privilege. It's said that the donations from the grateful in return for the blessings of “visiting” have totaled as much as £10,000 in a single year for just one picture. This money contributes to the church's income, with the attendants of the icon receiving additional gifts.



A CHASTOK

A chastok

Originally the private ikon was a picture of the patron saint of its owner. As every day in the year is a saint’s day, the saint of the day on which a person happened to be born was considered his patron; often he took that saint’s name, if some other were chosen then the recipient must be christened on the day assigned to that saint, and thus the “name” day is distinct from the birthday and is observed, whilst the anniversary of one’s birth may or may not be celebrated. Often, indeed usually, an ikon of the Virgin now occupies the “sacred corner.” It is so placed that it must be visible on entering the room and receive the obeisance of the orthodox; it is also, as it were, to be a witness of all that takes place before it. To do anything wrong in the presence of an ikon makes the fault the greater; persistent evil-doers screen the ikon before wilfully transgressing. It was even made one of the charges in the indictment of the false Tsar Dmitri that he neglected to veil the ikon the day of his marriage. To western minds such an attitude is as incomprehensible as the action related in one of Tolstoi’s stories, of the pious peasants who, about to{246} murder their offspring, knelt reverently by the hole they had made in the ice and prayed to God that He would protect and bless them. But the Russian understands.

Originally, the private icon was a picture of the patron saint of its owner. Since every day of the year is a saint’s day, the saint assigned to the day a person was born was considered their patron; often, they took that saint’s name. If another saint was chosen, the recipient had to be baptized on that saint’s day, which means the “name” day is different from the birthday and is celebrated, while the anniversary of one’s birth may or may not be recognized. Usually, an icon of the Virgin takes the place in the “sacred corner.” It is positioned so that it is visible upon entering the room, requiring respect from the Orthodox believers; it is also meant to witness everything that happens before it. Doing anything wrong in front of an icon makes the wrongdoing even worse; persistent wrongdoers cover the icon before intentionally misbehaving. One of the accusations against the false Tsar Dmitri was that he failed to veil the icon on his wedding day. To Western minds, this attitude is as puzzling as the action depicted in one of Tolstoy’s stories, where pious peasants, about to murder their child, knelt reverently by the hole they had made in the ice and prayed to God for His protection and blessing. But the Russian understands.

The private ikon, or some other sacred picture, always precedes the corpse at the funerals of the orthodox. The obsequies of the wealthy are still conducted with great pomp; the modern practice of hiding the coffin beneath wreaths and crosses being combined with the more austere solemnities of a statelier age. The church of St Sophia, on the south side of the Moskva, opposite the Kremlin, is much used in connection with military funerals and those of a public character. The peasant’s coffin is simply covered with a pall, and the bier carried through the streets shoulder-high, with no other pomp than the ikon reverently borne some paces ahead of the cortege. The hands of the dead one are closed over a paper on which is printed a prayer for the repose of his soul, the deceased’s baptismal name being written in, and this is the only justification for the assertions of the early writers that “the Russ when he dies hath his passport to Saint Nicholas buried with him.”

The private icon, or another sacred image, always leads the way for the casket at orthodox funerals. The funerals of the wealthy are still held with a lot of ceremony; the modern trend of covering the coffin with wreaths and crosses is combined with the more serious rituals of a grander era. The Church of St. Sophia, located on the south side of the Moskva, across from the Kremlin, is frequently used for military and public funerals. The peasant’s coffin is simply draped with a cloth, and the bier is carried through the streets at shoulder height, with no more fanfare than the icon held reverently a few steps in front of the procession. The deceased's hands are clasped over a paper that has a prayer printed on it for the peace of their soul, with their baptismal name written in, which is the only reason for the early writers' claims that “the Russ when he dies has his passport to Saint Nicholas buried with him.”

If it is the practice to decorate the ikon with presented jewels, it was not only counted a sin but a crime to take any back again. Collins says that the punishment for so doing was the loss of a hand, as befell a woman “who thought she had but lent to the image” she favoured. With the private ikon “they do as they will, decorating the ikon one day and with the same tawdry themselves the next,” an indication that the ignorant peasant may treat his ikon much as the West African negroes treat their fetiches.

If it's common to decorate the icon with offered jewels, it was considered not just a sin but a crime to take any back. Collins notes that the punishment for this was losing a hand, as happened to a woman who believed she had only lent to the image she favored. With their private icons, "they do as they please, decorating the icon one day and using the same cheap things themselves the next," suggesting that the uninformed peasant may treat his icon much like the West African people treat their fetishes.

A common object in Moscow of to-day is the watch-tower or chastok, where night and day sentinels patrol{247} on the look out for fires, not nowadays so frequent or so disastrous as formerly, since the erection of wooden houses within the town limits has been forbidden. In summer, when the signal is run up on the staff, numerous one horse drays, each with a small barrel of water, hurry to the scene and in somewhat primitive fashion attempt to quench the conflagration. If a wooden house the fire usually subsides when the roof with its thick layer of earth between rafters and plates collapses. Dearly paid for experience has taught the Muscovite how the spread of fires may best be stopped where water is scarce and hydrants far distant. Primitive and mediæval in many things, Moscow reveals how the people of long past ages overcame the difficulties incidental to life in large cities, and a great fire will bring together such an array of water carts as will convince the beholder of the very thorough organisation of a department charged with the duty of safeguarding public safety.

A common sight in modern-day Moscow is the watchtower, or chastok, where guards patrol day and night{247}, keeping an eye out for fires. These incidents aren't as frequent or devastating as they used to be, since building wooden houses within city limits has been banned. In summer, when the alert goes up, numerous one-horse carts, each carrying a small barrel of water, rush to the scene and in a somewhat outdated way try to put out the fire. If it's a wooden house, the flames usually die down when the roof collapses, thanks to its thick layer of earth between the rafters and beams. Hard-earned experience has taught Muscovites how to effectively stop fires when water is scarce and hydrants are far away. Primitive and medieval in many respects, Moscow shows how people from long ago dealt with the challenges of life in large cities. A big fire will gather a significant number of water carts, proving the thorough organization of the department responsible for public safety.

Even the vehicles exhibit a survival from mediævalism since each horse is harnessed beneath a duga or piece of bent wood intended to strengthen the shafts, as it is by them alone the load is hauled, and traces are unknown. The duga, just as it is to-day, was used with the first wheeled vehicles introduced to Russia and will persist for aye. But the observant stranger will not lack entertainment in Moscow, especially if he shows generous toleration of primitive customs. If a house be building, the simple and superstitious working man, his original intention being now directed by the church to a manifestation of piety, will first raise above all the scaffolding a well made, often decorated, cross, so seeking a blessing from the good by the same sign that his early ancestors sought to appease the powers of evil. The carter, whose horse drops with heat sickness, will get the animal on his legs again and cause him three times{248} to cross the duga he purposely places thwartwise. To those versed in symbols an act as easy to understand as the every day remedy of the kitchenmaid who puts the poker across the bars of the grate to prevent the newly lighted fire from being extinguished—a not commendable practice yet effective epithem. Sprite ridden the Moscow peasant is still, but though “it” moves him to do many things of which he knows not the reason, merely obeying the prompting intuitively, he has forgotten what this “it” is that must be appeased. A bridge, a girder cantilever across a wide estuary or a couple of planks across a ditch, is not finished till some trifle has been cast into the water, in this the mujik being not unlike the skipper of a Grimsby trawler who tosses a new coin into the ocean before lowering his net.

Even the vehicles show a remnant of medieval times since each horse is harnessed under a duga or piece of bent wood meant to strengthen the shafts, as only they pull the load, and traces are unknown. The duga, just like today, was used with the first wheeled vehicles brought to Russia and will keep on being used forever. However, the observant visitor will find plenty of entertainment in Moscow, especially if they are open-minded about primitive customs. When a house is being built, the simple and superstitious worker, now guided by the church toward an expression of faith, will first raise a well-made, often decorated, cross above all the scaffolding, seeking a blessing from the good by the same symbol that his early ancestors used to appease evil spirits. The carter, whose horse is suffering from heat exhaustion, will get the animal back on its feet and make it cross the duga he purposefully places sideways three times. To those familiar with symbols, this action is as easy to understand as the everyday remedy of a kitchen maid who places the poker across the fireplace to stop a newly lit fire from going out—a not ideal practice, but one that works. The Moscow peasant is still influenced by spirits, and although “it” drives him to do many things of which he doesn't understand the reason, simply following his instincts, he has forgotten what this “it” is that needs to be appeased. A bridge, a cantilever over a wide river, or even just a couple of planks over a ditch isn't considered complete until something small is thrown into the water, making the mujik similar to the captain of a Grimsby trawler who tosses a new coin into the ocean before lowering his net.

The enthusiast may attempt to trace the direct connection between baksheesh, nachai, and the extortion of gratuities generally, with the ancient practice of trifling sacrifices to some mythical demon; both old as the offer of a cock by Socrates to Æsculapius, and world-wide as the application of a door-key to the spine as a cure for nasal hæmorrhage. In such matters may hap Moscow is as other towns, and neither mediæval nor peculiar.

The enthusiast might try to draw a direct link between baksheesh, nachai, and the general practice of demanding tips and the ancient ritual of small offerings to some mythical demon; both as old as Socrates offering a rooster to Æsculapius and as widespread as using a door key on the spine as a remedy for nosebleeds. In this regard, Moscow could be just like any other city, neither medieval nor unique.

But whosoever of a summer’s night will wander into the suburbs will hear the policeman on his round beating two pieces of wood together with aggravating rhythm. If the listener be country-bred the noise will remind him of the farm boy of old days who, with wooden clapper, scared birds from the corn. If he be so curious as to examine the instrument he will find it to be a piece of board with a handle, and a wooden ball attached to it with a piece of twine. The knocking of the two together to produce an intermittent whirr is accomplished by a curious turn of the wrist. The watchman will explain that the noise is to warn garden-robbers and other depredators of his coming, or to advise{249} his employers that he is about his duty. The most learned ethnologist of the west says that an identical instrument, handled in the same manner, is employed by the minor priests of a wild race in the far far east to drive away evil spirits from the native temple.

But anyone who takes a stroll through the suburbs on a summer night will hear the policeman on his beat tapping two pieces of wood together in an annoying rhythm. If the listener grew up in the countryside, the sound will remind him of the farm boy from the old days who used a wooden clapper to scare birds away from the corn. If he's curious enough to check out the instrument, he'll find it's just a board with a handle and a wooden ball attached by some twine. The clapping together to create a sporadic whirring sound is done with a unique flick of the wrist. The watchman will explain that the noise is meant to warn would-be thieves and other troublemakers of his approach, or to let{249} his employers know that he’s on duty. The most knowledgeable ethnologist in the west says that a similar instrument, used in the same way, is employed by the minor priests of a remote culture in the far east to drive away evil spirits from their local temple.

Further a-field—a twenty-five kopeck ride on a lineika from the Trubaya—Ostankina is reached. There is a curious and elegant church of red brick built by Moscow artisans in the golden age, at the cost of the boyard Mikhail Cherkassky. Near by is a great wooden palace, stuccoed and prim, the property of the Sheremetievs. Passing through its park where Le Bruyn shot his great crane flying by a single bullet from his musket, and where the upper reaches of the Yauza are still haunted by wild fowl, is a thick wood to the north of the stream, and in the middle of that near the path, a clearing where at midday a drove of mares are coralled and milked by men who speak a strange tongue, and are of quite different appearance to the Muscovites. A mile further on is their village, near a large pool. It is a poor, insignificant, rather dirty and very untidy place. Mordva its name; Mordva its people, whose ancestors, many centuries ago, left their home among the Altai Mountains on the confines of Manchuria and spread westward over Russia, fighting with their later conquerors almost to their own extermination. Various isolated groups of this once powerful race are scattered about Russia, mixing but little with its people. These, who through long centuries have been resident in the heart of Muscovy, seems as incongruous and impossible as would be the present occupation of Hampstead Heath by survivors of ancient Picts in the full glory of their primitive customs. It is nearest to the great towns that primitive methods and beliefs persist most strongly, and just as in the villages about London, antiquated farming implements{250} and old country superstitions are more plentiful than in the rural districts of England, so near Moscow the old customs and manners die hard. In villages within easy walk of the Kremlin, mediæval practices are rife, especially during the celebration of marriages, and the performance of minor domestic pageants. The curious, if persistent and lucky, may see the bowl of Tantalus presented to the mother of the bride of yesterday, and as the liquor escapes the cup by the hole in its bottom from which the profferer has removed his finger, guess at the significance of the custom and speculate as to its origin.

Further out—a twenty-five kopeck ride on a lineika from the Trubaya—you reach Ostankina. There's an interesting and elegant church made of red brick, built by Moscow artisans during the golden age, funded by the boyar Mikhail Cherkassky. Nearby stands a large wooden palace, adorned and neat, owned by the Sheremetievs. As you walk through its park, where Le Bruyn shot his magnificent crane with a single shot from his musket, and where the upper parts of the Yauza are still filled with wildfowl, you find a thick forest to the north of the stream. In the middle of that, near the path, there's a clearing where, at midday, a group of mares is gathered and milked by men who speak a strange language and look quite different from the Muscovites. A mile further down is their village, close to a large pond. It's a poor, insignificant, somewhat dirty, and very messy place. It's called Mordva; the people are also called Mordva, whose ancestors left their home in the Altai Mountains on the Manchurian border many centuries ago and spread west across Russia, fighting against their later conquerors almost to their own extinction. Various isolated groups of this once powerful race are scattered throughout Russia, mixing very little with its people. Those who have lived in the heart of Muscovy for centuries seem as out of place and impossible as if Hampstead Heath were occupied by survivors of the ancient Picts still displaying their primitive customs. It's in the larger towns that ancient methods and beliefs linger most fiercely; just as in the villages around London, outdated farming tools and old-country superstitions are more common than in the rural areas of England, near Moscow, the old customs and traditions are tenacious. In villages within walking distance of the Kremlin, medieval practices are prevalent, especially during marriage celebrations and minor local events. Those who are curious, if fortunate, might witness the bowl of Tantalus presented to the mother of the bride from yesterday, and as the liquid escapes the cup through the hole in its bottom, from which the presenter has removed his finger, they can speculate on the meaning of the custom and its origins.



PETROVSKI MONASTYR

PETROVSKI MONASTYR

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Petrovski Monastery

{251}

{251}

Within the town almost every old building has its legends. Very diverse are those connected with the Lobnœ Mesto on the Grand Square. It derived its name—literally “the place of a skull”—from the Golgotha that was erected there for the Easter Passion play which was performed yearly before the church of the Trinity disappeared. From time immemorial it has been the place of public assembly, being to Moscow what St Paul’s Cross was to old London, and the perron to Liége. Therefore, as all who have studied the migration of symbols will know, not only is it of very early origin, but associated with stories in some form common to all peoples.

Within the town, almost every old building has its legends. The ones linked to the Lobnœ Mesto on the Grand Square are quite varied. It got its name—literally “the place of a skull”—from the Golgotha that was set up there for the Easter Passion play, which was held every year before the church of the Trinity vanished. From ancient times, it has been the place for public gatherings, serving Moscow in the same way St Paul’s Cross did for old London, and the perron did for Liège. So, as anyone who has looked into the migration of symbols will know, not only does it have very early roots, but it’s also tied to stories that are somewhat universal across different cultures.

Another almost universal superstition is in Moscow attached to the Sukharev Bashnia, which is supposed to be the feminine complement of the Ivan Veliki tower in the Kremlin. The people call the Sukharev the jena (wife) of Ivan, and, according to tradition, Jack and Jenny get nearer to each other every year.

Another nearly universal superstition in Moscow is linked to the Sukharev Bashnia, which is thought to be the feminine counterpart of the Ivan Veliki tower in the Kremlin. People refer to the Sukharev as the jena (wife) of Ivan, and according to tradition, Jack and Jenny grow closer to each other every year.

Visitors for whom folk-lore has no attraction will look for the picturesque in Moscow. The most characteristic view, the prospect the tourist expects, is that seen by turning westward along the boulevard from the Lubianka, and keeping along the south footpath, near the wall, watch the old town appear little by little as the brow of the hill is reached. Houses—of all sorts and colours—a façade like that of a classic temple, domes blue, green and golden, the red tower of a Chastok, a medley of roofs and walls, all these will appear framed in the foliage of the trees on the boulevards, and those overhanging the walls of the Rojdestvenka Convent, until the valley of the Neglinnaia is right below and the crosses and domes of the Petrovski Monastery are disclosed to view. Then it is time to cross the road to the centre of the boulevard and see Moscow unfold itself—walls and towers changing like{252} the coloured fragments in a kaleidoscope. Opposite, where the bank rises to the Strastnoi Monastery, was once the old village of Vissotski—older, it is said, than Moscow town, or Kremlin, or even the hall of Kuchkovo and the twelfth century hamlet on the Chisty Prud at the back.

Visitors who aren't interested in folklore will look for the picturesque sights in Moscow. The most iconic view, the one that tourists expect, can be seen by turning west along the boulevard from the Lubianka and staying on the south sidewalk near the wall, watching the old town gradually appear as you reach the top of the hill. Houses—of all kinds and colors—adorned with a façade resembling a classic temple, blue, green, and golden domes, the red tower of a Chastok, and a mix of roofs and walls will all come into view framed by the foliage of the trees along the boulevards and those overhanging the walls of the Rojdestvenka Convent, until the valley of the Neglinnaia lies directly below and the crosses and domes of the Petrovski Monastery come into sight. Then it's time to cross the road to the center of the boulevard and watch Moscow unfold itself—walls and towers shifting like{252} colorful fragments in a kaleidoscope. Across the way, where the bank rises to the Strastnoi Monastery, was once the old village of Vissotski—reportedly older than Moscow itself, the Kremlin, or even the hall of Kuchkovo and the twelfth-century hamlet at Chisty Prud in the back.

Again, ascend the belfry of St Nikita in the Goncharevskaya; time—the very early morning, and see the rising sun glitter on the domes of the Kremlin, and the churches of the Bielo Gorod; or, when it has long passed the meridian, watch the afterglow reflected from the thousand domes, tinting the white walls from the balcony of Krinkin’s on the Hill of Salutation. Stay on and watch the great white town, silent, reposeful and glorious, fade into the haze of the “white-night”; see it shimmering in the moonlight, or the glare of midday sun; sparkling feebly in the blue star light, or glowing like a new-cast ingot in the blackness of winter’s midnight; see it how, when and where you may, solve the enigma of its vitality if you can—but neither doubt its strength, nor question its beauty.

Once again, climb the bell tower of St. Nikita in Goncharevskaya; it’s very early morning. Watch the rising sun sparkle on the domes of the Kremlin and the churches of Bielo Gorod; or, when the sun has long passed its highest point, see the afterglow reflected from the thousands of domes, coloring the white walls from the balcony of Krinkin’s on the Hill of Salutation. Stay a while and watch the great white city, quiet, majestic, and glorious, fade into the haze of the “white night”; see it glimmer in the moonlight, or shine in the midday sun; twinkle softly in the blue starlight, or glow like a freshly cast ingot in the darkness of winter’s midnight; observe it however and whenever you can, try to unravel the mystery of its vitality if you dare—but never doubt its strength, nor question its beauty.

Гигантской рукой Ты, как факел прогресса; И над маленькой рекой
Стал велик и знаменит!

{253}

{253}

CHAPTER XII

The Convents and Monasteries

"These are the places of meditation,—these
The scenes where ancient bards drew their inspiring breath Ecstatic feelings; and withdrew from the world,
Talked with angels and eternal beings,
On kind errands focused.”—Thomson.

RUSSIAN monks all belong to one order, that based on the rule of St Basil the Great, practically the only order of “black” clergy recognised by the Eastern Church. The first monastery in Russia was founded by St Anthony, a Russian who, after living some time on Mount Athos, returned to Kiev, and there, in 1055, conjunctly with St Theodosius, established the Pecherski Monastery, on the same rule as that of the Studemi—one of the strictest of the clerical institutions in Constantinople. The Pecherski still ranks highest among the monasteries of Russia. The one of greatest importance in Moscow, though not the most ancient, is that of the Miracles (Chudov) founded in the fourteenth century by St Alexis, the Metropolitan. It stands within the Kremlin, between the two Imperial palaces, on a spot which long ago was a part of the enclosure around the dwelling of the Tartar bashkak, or “resident.” At the time when one Chani-Bek was khan, his wife, Taidula, fell ill and was healed by Alexis, to whom out of gratitude she presented her gold signet ring with its effigy of the Great Dragon, and a site for the{254} Monastery of the Miracles. The first building was erected in 1365, and the monastery long served as the residence of the primates of Moscow; it has been many times destroyed and rebuilt; the present building dates from the reign of the first Romanof, and, at the time of writing, is in course of extensive alteration. Passing before the Church, with the curious paper ikon outside, a large gateway will be found in the angle where the Chudov buildings abut against those of the smaller Imperial palace; passing through this, the visitor will find himself in a large Courtyard; the Church of St Michael is on the right, a small railed-in cemetery among the trees on the left. The Monastery, a mean, dilapidated, straggling two-storeyed building, extends almost completely around the quadrangle; the chief rooms, on the bel-étage, communicate with a long outside covered gallery, closely resembling the yard of an old London inn, which is reached by the perron in the western corner. The Church of St Michael, the Archistratigus, was built conjointly with the Monastery in 1365, rebuilt in 1504, and later restored in its primitive style, so has preserved even more than any other church in Moscow the original character of Muscovite ecclesiastic architecture. The interior is well worth seeing, but access is not easy; the best time is after early matins, which are celebrated about thrice weekly at 7 A.M.

RUSSIAN monks all belong to one order, based on the rules of St. Basil the Great, and it's basically the only order of “black” clergy recognized by the Eastern Church. The first monastery in Russia was founded by St. Anthony, a Russian who, after spending some time on Mount Athos, returned to Kiev and, in 1055, together with St. Theodosius, established the Pecherski Monastery, following the same rules as those of the Studemi—one of the strictest clerical institutions in Constantinople. The Pecherski still ranks as the most prestigious among the monasteries in Russia. The most significant one in Moscow, though not the oldest, is the Monastery of Miracles (Chudov), founded in the fourteenth century by St. Alexis, the Metropolitan. It is located within the Kremlin, between the two Imperial palaces, on a spot that was once part of the enclosure around the residence of the Tartar bashkak, or “resident.” When Chani-Bek was khan, his wife, Taidula, fell ill and was healed by Alexis, who was later gifted her gold signet ring featuring an image of the Great Dragon, along with the site for the {254} Monastery of Miracles. The first building was constructed in 1365, and the monastery has served many times as the residence of the primates of Moscow; it has been destroyed and rebuilt numerous times, with the current structure dating back to the reign of the first Romanof and, at the time of writing, undergoing extensive renovations. Passing in front of the Church, where there's a curious paper ikon outside, visitors will find a large gateway at the corner where the Chudov buildings meet those of the smaller Imperial palace; as they pass through, they'll enter a large courtyard. The Church of St. Michael is on the right, with a small fenced-in cemetery among the trees on the left. The Monastery is a modest, rundown two-story building that surrounds almost the entire quadrangle; the main rooms on the bel-étage connect to a long covered gallery outside, resembling the yard of an old London inn, accessible via the steps in the western corner. The Church of St. Michael, the Archistratigus, was built alongside the Monastery in 1365, rebuilt in 1504, and later restored to its original style, making it one of the best-preserved examples of Muscovite ecclesiastic architecture. The interior is definitely worth a visit, but access isn't easy; the best time to go is after early matins, which are celebrated about three times a week at 7 A.M.

The frescoes are very primitive, and for Moscow, original. The old-fashioned low ikonostas is of a type common to “wooden Russia”; the ancient ikons call only for the attention of the student, but on the High Altar is a tabernacle in the form of a church with twelve domes which has wider interest. It is the work of Remizov in the reign of Mikhail Theodorovich. Within the courtyard, traces of Tartar graves have been found; and the cemetery contains the tombs of Edeger—the last “Tsar” of Kazan, 1565—and of many Moscow{255} families, as the Trubetskis, Kovanskis, Sherbatovs, etc. The state rooms are still used by the head of the Church in Moscow; they look out towards Ivan Veliki, immediately above the little window at which the Holy Bread is sold. Although the monastery has been the scene of many important events in connection with the history of the Church and of Moscow—it was here that Maxim, the Greek, studied, and Latin was first taught, 1506—there is nothing either in the refectory or common rooms connected with them, for the monastery was erected during the plague riots of 1771 and spoiled by the French. The church of the Patriarch Alexis is entered from the Tsar’s Square through a portico, of a pseudo-Gothic style, designed by Kasakov in the eighteenth century, but the church itself was constructed in 1686, and the remains of St Alexis the Metropolitan then conveyed there in the presence of the Tsarevna Sophia and the boy-Tsars Ivan V. and Peter I. It occupies the site of an earlier church founded in 1483, and contains the incorruptible remains of the Saint. Alexis, the wonder-worker, was descended from a boyard family named Pleskov. Born in 1292, he passed twenty-two years of his life in Moscow, a student of the Bogo-yavlenski Monastery; after admission he was for twelve years one of the household of the Archbishop, and later became bishop of Vladimir, and Metropolitan of Kief.

The frescoes are very basic, but for Moscow, they're unique. The old-fashioned low ikonostas is typical of "wooden Russia"; the ancient ikons mainly attract the attention of students, but the High Altar features a tabernacle shaped like a church with twelve domes, which is of broader interest. It's the work of Remizov from the reign of Mikhail Theodorovich. Within the courtyard, they've found traces of Tartar graves, and the cemetery contains the tombs of Edeger—the last "Tsar" of Kazan from 1565—and many Moscow families like the Trubetskis, Kovanskis, and Sherbatovs. The state rooms are still used by the head of the Church in Moscow; they overlook Ivan Veliki, just above the small window where the Holy Bread is sold. Although the monastery has been the site of many significant events in the history of the Church and Moscow—it’s where Maxim the Greek studied and Latin was first taught in 1506—there’s nothing in the refectory or common rooms linked to those events, as the monastery was built during the plague riots of 1771 and later damaged by the French. You enter the church of Patriarch Alexis from Tsar’s Square through a portico in a pseudo-Gothic style, designed by Kasakov in the eighteenth century, but the church itself was built in 1686, and the remains of St. Alexis the Metropolitan were brought there in the presence of Tsarevna Sophia and the young Tsars Ivan V and Peter I. It stands on the site of an earlier church founded in 1483 and contains the incorruptible remains of the Saint. Alexis, the wonder-worker, came from a boyar family named Pleskov. Born in 1292, he spent twenty-two years of his life in Moscow as a student at the Bogo-yavlenski Monastery; after his admission, he served for twelve years in the Archbishop's household, later becoming the bishop of Vladimir and Metropolitan of Kief.

His care of the two child princes of Moscow, his direction of Dmitri Donskoi and sturdy championship of Moscow, and his efforts to maintain its supremacy, endeared him to the people. When he died in 1378, at the age of eighty-five, he was buried within the Chudov monastery he had founded; there in 1439 his remains were discovered undecayed, and miraculous qualities attributed to them. In 1519, Balaam the Metropolitan informed Vasili Ivanovich, then the reigning Grand-Duke, that the blind in visiting the{256} tomb of Alexis were restored to sight. Since that date the memory of Alexis has been held in highest reverence by the orthodox, and in the public esteem he ranks with St Peter, first among the Patron Saints of Moscow. Consequently the church is one of the richest; it was spoiled by the French, who cast the silver shrine of the saint into the melting pot, and his moshi were found under a heap of lumber after the flight of Napoleon. Much of the decoration is new, but in the style of the time of Alexis Mikhailovich, of which the pavement is particularly characteristic. The new shrine is of silver, so are the royal doors of the sanctuary; for them some 420 lbs were needed, and the tabernacle, the chandeliers and the elaborate ikonostas are all of sterling metal, and there is a magnificent archiepiscopal mitre presented by Prince Potemkin. The original coffin of the saint, is preserved in a glass case near the silver shrine, and by it are kept the identical pastoral staff he used in Moscow, and other personal relics. Among these are manuscript copies of the New Testament executed by the saint, as also his holograph will. The library has some hundreds of old illuminated and other manuscript books, including a psalter of the thirteenth century, and a collection of old printed books of the seventeenth century. This church, the adjoining chapel of the Annunciation, and the monastery are all closely associated with the introduction of pedagogy to Moscow; it was here that the first scholastic seminary for priests was founded, and later an academy was developed. It became customary for parents to bring their children hither before their entry to any school, in order that the blessing of St Alexis might be asked, and some peasants of the village at one time owned by the saint make a pilgrimage to his shrine on his name day, and pray for their “Lord.” The sacristy has a valuable{257} collection of old plate; the crosses, panagies, mitres, vases, goblets, etc., are remarkable for their beauty and rich decoration, and second only to those of the collection in the sacristy of the Patriarchs.

His care for the two young princes of Moscow, his leadership of Dmitri Donskoi, and his strong support for Moscow endeared him to the people. When he died in 1378 at the age of eighty-five, he was buried in the Chudov monastery he had founded; there in 1439, his remains were found to be undecayed, and miraculous qualities were attributed to them. In 1519, Balaam the Metropolitan informed Vasili Ivanovich, the reigning Grand Duke, that the blind who visited the{256} tomb of Alexis were restored to sight. Since then, the memory of Alexis has been held in the highest regard by the Orthodox, and in public esteem, he ranks with St. Peter as one of the foremost Patron Saints of Moscow. As a result, the church is one of the richest; it was plundered by the French, who melted down the silver shrine of the saint, and his moshi were found buried under a pile of lumber after Napoleon's retreat. Much of the decoration is new, but it reflects the style of Alexis Mikhailovich's time, particularly in the pavement. The new shrine is made of silver, as are the royal doors of the sanctuary; they required around 420 lbs of silver, and the tabernacle, chandeliers, and elaborate ikonostas are all made of sterling metal, along with a magnificent archiepiscopal mitre presented by Prince Potemkin. The original coffin of the saint is preserved in a glass case near the silver shrine, along with the exact pastoral staff he used in Moscow and other personal relics. Among these are manuscript copies of the New Testament created by the saint, as well as his handwritten will. The library contains hundreds of old illuminated and other manuscript books, including a thirteenth-century psalter and a collection of old printed books from the seventeenth century. This church, the nearby chapel of the Annunciation, and the monastery are all closely linked to the introduction of education in Moscow; it was here that the first seminary for priests was founded, and later an academy was established. It became common for parents to bring their children here before they started school to ask for St. Alexis's blessing, and some peasants from the village once owned by the saint make a pilgrimage to his shrine on his name day to pray for their “Lord.” The sacristy holds a valuable{257} collection of old silverware; the crosses, panagies, mitres, vases, goblets, and more are notable for their beauty and rich decoration, ranking just below those in the sacristy of the Patriarchs.

Naturally the Monastery of the Miracles is closely associated with the more renowned of the wonder-working ikons of Russia. The most celebrated now existing there are: the trimorphic paper ikon of the Holy Trinity, that of St Nicholas the wonder-worker, and that of St Anastasia. In 1771, when Moscow was decimated by the plague, it was believed that the ikon of the Virgin (Bogoloobski) at the Varvarka Vorot wrought miraculous cures. It was so thronged by worshippers and the pestilent stricken that, as a measure of precaution, the Archbishop Ambrose ordered its immediate removal to the Chudov monastery, but the maddened people gathered in the Kremlin and threatened that they would not leave a stone of the monastery standing unless the ikon was at once restored. The Archbishop was forced to give way. The next day he was dragged by the mob from the Donskoi monastery where he was hiding and massacred by the enraged populace. This was on the 17th September: from that date the plague declined and the daily death-rate of 700 returned to the normal average with the advent of winter.

Naturally, the Monastery of the Miracles is closely linked to some of the most famous miracle-working icons of Russia. The most well-known ones currently there are: the trimorphic paper icon of the Holy Trinity, the icon of St. Nicholas the miracle-worker, and the icon of St. Anastasia. In 1771, when Moscow was ravaged by the plague, people believed that the icon of the Virgin (Bogoloobski) at Varvarka Vorot performed miraculous cures. It became so crowded with worshippers and the sick that, as a precaution, Archbishop Ambrose ordered it to be moved immediately to Chudov Monastery. However, the desperate crowd gathered in the Kremlin and threatened to destroy the monastery if the icon wasn’t returned right away. The Archbishop had to give in. The next day, he was dragged out by the mob from Donskoi Monastery, where he had been hiding, and was killed by the furious crowd. This happened on September 17th; from that day on, the plague started to decline, and the daily death rate of 700 returned to a normal average with the arrival of winter.

Flanking the eastern wall of the Chudov Monastery are the buildings of the Convent of the Ascension (Vossnesenski), the entrance to which is from the large square of the Kremlin near the Redeemer Gate. There are some indications that this nunnery is of greater antiquity than 1393, the date usually assigned its foundation. Eudoxia, the wife of Dmitri Donskoi, organised the institution, and, after taking the veil there, ordered that it was to be her place of sepulture also. The buildings were destroyed in 1483—ninety years{258} after their erection—again in 1547, 1571, 1612, 1701, and last of all on the great fire of All Saints’ Day, 1737. Its successive rebuildings are due to the great veneration of the orthodox for the tombs of their ancestors, and from 1407 its cemetery ranked first as the place of sepulture for the consorts of the rulers of Muscovy; some thirty-five were interred within its walls between 1407 and 1738.

Flanking the eastern wall of the Chudov Monastery are the buildings of the Convent of the Ascension (Vossnesenski), which you enter from the large square of the Kremlin near the Redeemer Gate. Some evidence suggests that this nunnery is older than 1393, the year usually cited as its founding date. Eudoxia, the wife of Dmitri Donskoi, established the institution, and after taking her vows there, designated it as her burial place. The buildings were destroyed in 1483—ninety years{258} after they were built—again in 1547, 1571, 1612, 1701, and finally in the great fire of All Saints’ Day in 1737. Its repeated rebuildings are due to the deep respect the Orthodox have for their ancestors' tombs, and since 1407, its cemetery has been the primary burial site for the spouses of the rulers of Muscovy; about thirty-five were laid to rest within its walls between 1407 and 1738.

“It is said that when Eudoxia retired to the convent in 1389, although she observed the appointed fasts rigorously and within the walls wore heavy weights and performed arduous penances, she still took great interest in the affairs of the outer world, and when visiting dressed in rich robes befitting her former state. This gave rise to much scandal, which she refuted by exhibiting to her accusers the effects of her self-imposed penances. When Tokhtamysh destroyed the building in 1393 she not only devoted herself to the task of founding a better community, but did so much work among the sick and indigent that she more than retrieved her character, being worshipped almost as a saint and canonised under her adopted name of Euphrosina, revered through many generations.”

“It is said that when Eudoxia retired to the convent in 1389, she strictly observed the designated fasts and wore heavy weights and performed tough penances within the convent walls. However, she remained very interested in the outside world and would dress in luxurious clothing that reflected her former status when she went out. This led to a lot of gossip, which she addressed by showing her accusers the results of her self-imposed penances. When Tokhtamysh destroyed the building in 1393, she not only dedicated herself to creating a better community but also worked tirelessly among the sick and needy, restoring her reputation so much that she was almost worshipped like a saint and was canonized under her chosen name of Euphrosina, revered for many generations.”

The cells are mean, and the low plain façade not unlike those of English alms-houses of the eighteenth century. It was in this nunnery that Maria Mniszek was housed prior to her marriage with the false Dmitri, and here, too, that Maria Nagoi was forced to recognise the same impostor as her own murdered son. The Cathedral of the Ascension, like that of St Michael in the Chudov, is of a primitive type, preserving many of the characteristics of the original building erected by the Tsar Vasili Ivanovich in 1518; the five domes have not, however, the common bulbous cupolas, these resemble inverted cups—an original type. The interior has the customary four pillars supporting the central dome; there is an ikonostas with four tiers reaching to the arched roof. Of the sacred pictures the most remarkable are that of the Virgin and that of the{259} Ascension; there is also a curious one in the north chapel dedicated to Mary the Mother of the Afflicted.

The cells are unwelcoming, and the plain exterior is similar to those of English almshouses from the eighteenth century. It was in this convent that Maria Mniszek lived before her marriage to the false Dmitri, and it is also here that Maria Nagoi was forced to acknowledge the same impostor as her murdered son. The Cathedral of the Ascension, like St. Michael's in the Chudov Monastery, is of a basic style, retaining many features of the original building built by Tsar Vasili Ivanovich in 1518; however, the five domes do not have the usual bulbous cupolas but instead resemble inverted cups—an original design. The interior has the typical four pillars supporting the central dome, and there is an ikonostas with four tiers that extend to the arched ceiling. Among the sacred images, the most notable are those of the Virgin and the Ascension; there is also an interesting one in the north chapel dedicated to Mary, the Mother of the Afflicted.

The tombs of the Grand Duchesses are arranged along the frescoed walls, north, west and south; some are of the white stone used in the earliest buildings in Moscow, others of brick; formerly the portraits of those interred were painted on the walls over their tombs, now many are covered with splendidly worked palls of native design. The remains of Eudoxia (St Euphrosina) are in a modern shrine of silver, replacing that taken by the French; on the right, near the south wall, is the tomb of another Eudoxia (Shtrchnev), the wife of Mikhail Theodorovich; then come the tombs of the Miloslavski and Naryshkin, wives of his son the Tsar Alexis, and the last tomb of all is that of another Eudoxia, the much tortured first wife of Peter the Great. Four of the six, or more, wives of Ivan the Terrible also lie here. In the sacristy among many rich relics are two exquisitely decorated copies of the gospels; the enamel work and enrichment with gems is the most characteristic of the Russian art handicrafts. Not less excellent are the two golden processional crucifixes presented by the Tsar Michael. Such is the summer church of the convent, to which there is a grand ceremonial procession on Palm Sunday, and one on the second Sunday after Trinity to commemorate the great fire of 1737.

The tombs of the Grand Duchesses are lined along the frescoed walls to the north, west, and south; some are made of the white stone used in the earliest buildings in Moscow, while others are brick. In the past, portraits of those buried here were painted on the walls above their tombs, but now many are covered with beautifully crafted palls of local design. The remains of Eudoxia (St. Euphrosina) are housed in a modern silver shrine, which replaces the one taken by the French; to the right, near the south wall, is the tomb of another Eudoxia (Shtrchnev), the wife of Mikhail Theodorovich. Next are the tombs of the Miloslavski and Naryshkin, who were wives of his son, Tsar Alexis, and the last tomb belongs to yet another Eudoxia, the severely mistreated first wife of Peter the Great. Four of the six or more wives of Ivan the Terrible also rest here. In the sacristy, among many valuable relics, are two beautifully adorned copies of the Gospels; the enamel work and gem embellishments are distinctive features of Russian craftsmanship. Equally impressive are the two golden processional crucifixes presented by Tsar Michael. This is the summer church of the convent, where there is a grand ceremonial procession on Palm Sunday and another on the second Sunday after Trinity to commemorate the great fire of 1737.

The winter church, dedicated to St Michael, is the chapel of Honour of St Theodore of Persia and was built in the eighteenth century only. In addition to a much venerated ikon of the virgin, painted in 1739, there is preserved one of the greatest antiquities of Moscow—a bas relief representing St George the Conqueror (Pobiedonostzev), the head uncovered, which originally was one of the decorations of the Redeemer Gate near by. It was transferred thence to the Church of St{260} George, which was destroyed by the fire of 1737, a conflagration that threatened the convent also, but was stayed by the miraculous ikon of the Virgin of Kazan, now placed in the adjoining new church of St Catherine the Martyr. This is a modern building on the site of a fine old church of the seventeenth century, and of a Russified-Gothic style serves to show, from an artistic point of view, how disastrous is the attempt to combine native designs with those of the west. On the ground floor of the western range of buildings are the ovens, etc., where the Holy Bread is prepared, and the nuns of the convent are celebrated throughout Russia for the excellence of their work with the needle and brush, their copies of the ikons of these churches being in particular request.

The winter church, dedicated to St. Michael, is the chapel of Honor of St. Theodore of Persia and was built only in the eighteenth century. In addition to a highly revered ikon of the Virgin, painted in 1739, there is one of Moscow's greatest antiquities—a bas relief depicting St. George the Conqueror (Pobiedonostzev), with his head uncovered, which originally decorated the nearby Redeemer Gate. It was moved from there to the Church of St{260} George, which was destroyed in the fire of 1737, a blaze that also threatened the convent but was halted by the miraculous ikon of the Virgin of Kazan, now located in the new church of St. Catherine the Martyr next door. This modern building stands on the site of a fine old church from the seventeenth century, and in a Russified-Gothic style, shows how disastrous it can be to mix native designs with those from the West, from an artistic perspective. On the ground floor of the western range of buildings are the ovens and other places where the Holy Bread is prepared, and the nuns of the convent are famous throughout Russia for their exceptional needlework and painting, with their copies of the ikons from these churches being especially sought after.

The monasteries outside the Kremlin have much the character of small fortified towns, and are the stronger and, architecturally, the more interesting the greater the distance at which they are situated from the town. To visit them, drive out to the Simonov—four miles from the centre of the town—and pass the Krutitski Vorot and the Novo Spasski; the Spasso-Andronievski and the Pokrovski on the return. On the south side of the river to the Danilovski and the Donskoi; to the west the Zachatievski and Novo Devichi. The others, of minor interest are:—Monasteries of St Nicholas, Epiphany, Znamenski, Petrovski, Srietenka, and Alexis; Convents: St Nikita, Rojdestvenka, and Strastnoi.

The monasteries outside the Kremlin resemble small fortified towns, and they become more impressive and architecturally interesting the farther they are from the city. To visit them, drive to Simonov—four miles from the city center—and pass by Krutitski Vorot and Novo Spasski; then visit Spasso-Andronievski and Pokrovski on the way back. On the south side of the river, check out Danilovski and Donskoi; to the west are Zachatievski and Novo Devichi. The others, which are of lesser interest, include the monasteries of St. Nicholas, Epiphany, Znamenski, Petrovski, Srietenka, and Alexis; and the convents of St. Nikita, Rojdestvenka, and Strastnoi.

Simonov Monastery

St Sergius founded the monastery in 1370, but it was not moved to its present site on a hill commanding the Moskva until twenty years later. It educated St Jonah in the fifteenth century, and when he became Metropolitan it increased in importance, but was later{261} surpassed by the Troitsa, and although it owned 12,000 souls—male serfs—in the eighteenth century, it has never attained the leading position, nor even that expected of it. The present walls were built during the reign of Theodore I. but, finished in 1591, they could not keep out the Poles, who completely sacked the monastery in 1612. It is a line, strong looking, dreamy old place, somewhat dilapidated and overgrown with verdure. The wall is half a mile long, commanded by wonderful spire-like towers, some 130 feet high, crowned with two-storeyed domed watch rooms, which look like huge dovecots. There is a covered rampart walk all round, and from the tower near the river, a subterranean passage to the Lizin Prud, a holy well at one time much visited by the sick who had faith in its miraculous healing properties. Some six churches are within its walls, one the Cathedral of the Assumption, a massive building, consecrated in 1405, and having a somewhat bizarre appearance, its façade, in the Byzantine style, being also painted in three colours to represent quadrangular facets. It is a building quite foreign to Muscovite style; reminiscent rather of the old country churches of Portugal. The ikon of greatest celebrity is that of God the Father, richly decorated, and once, it is said, blessed by St Sergius, when it was carried with the troops of Dmitri against the Tartars under Mamai.

St. Sergius founded the monastery in 1370, but it wasn't moved to its current location on a hill overlooking the Moskva until twenty years later. It educated St. Jonah in the fifteenth century, and when he became Metropolitan, it gained importance, but was later{261} surpassed by the Troitsa. Even though it had 12,000 male serfs in the eighteenth century, it never reached the leading role that was expected of it. The current walls were built during the reign of Theodore I, but by the time they were finished in 1591, they couldn’t keep out the Poles, who completely sacked the monastery in 1612. It’s a long, strong-looking, somewhat dreamy old place, a bit run-down and overgrown with greenery. The wall is half a mile long, featuring impressive spire-like towers that rise about 130 feet high, topped with two-story domed watchrooms that resemble giant dovecotes. There’s a covered walkway around the ramparts, and from the tower near the river, a hidden passage leads to the Lizin Prud, a holy well once frequently visited by the sick who believed in its miraculous healing powers. Inside its walls are about six churches, including the Cathedral of the Assumption, a massive building consecrated in 1405, which has a somewhat unusual look, with a façade in the Byzantine style painted in three colors to resemble quadrangular facets. This structure is quite different from the Muscovite style and is more reminiscent of the old country churches of Portugal. The most famous icon is that of God the Father, richly decorated and said to have been blessed by St. Sergius when it was carried with Dmitri's troops against the Tartars under Mamai.



SIMONOV MONASTYR

SIMONOV MONASTERY

{262}

{262}

A Moscow merchant defrayed the cost of the great belfry, 330 feet high, and under the refectory is buried the renowned Field-Marshall Bruce; the sacristy is rich in vestments and some ornamental work of the Tsar Alexis’s Masterskaya in the Kremlin. The most famous inmate was Simeon Bekbulatov the converted Tsar of Kazan, whom Ivan Groznoi made Tsar of Moscow for twelve months; his tomb will be shown. The charm of the Simonov is derived from its stillness, its out of the world air, its roominess, the matured trees, the ample orchard, the long rampart walk, the excellent views of Moscow, the many quaint nooks near the old stores, the grateful shade of pleasant bosquets and the orderly negligence that suggests contentment—an ideal home for dreamers, for cheery mysticism and the inception of unhurried philosophies.

A Moscow merchant covered the expenses of the great belfry, which is 330 feet tall, and underneath the refectory lies the famous Field-Marshall Bruce. The sacristy is filled with vestments and some decorative work from Tsar Alexis’s Masterskaya in the Kremlin. The most well-known inhabitant was Simeon Bekbulatov, the converted Tsar of Kazan, whom Ivan Groznoi appointed as Tsar of Moscow for twelve months; his tomb is available for viewing. The appeal of the Simonov comes from its tranquility, its serene atmosphere, its spaciousness, the mature trees, the extensive orchard, the long rampart walkway, the stunning views of Moscow, the many charming corners near the old stores, the welcome shade of pleasant groves, and the tidy disarray that suggests a sense of contentment—an ideal place for dreamers, for cheerful mysticism, and the beginnings of relaxed philosophies.

The New Spasski

The new monastery of the Saviour, so called because in the fifteenth century removed from the Kremlin to its present site, is pleasantly situated near the Moskva river not far from the Krasnœ Kholmski bridge. Its walls were of wood until the invasion of Devlet Ghiree, after which an attempt appears to have been made to turn all the outlying monasteries into fortresses for the better protection of Moscow. One peculiarity of the Spasski Monastyr is that the towers which flank the wall are all different, one is pentagonal, one round, one hexagonal, and so others vary—some are squat, others have tapering spires from the towers; the belfry is 220 feet high. Its claim to greatness is not due to the spirited defence it made to the Polish attack, but to the fact that within its Cathedral of the Transfiguration, one of the five churches within the walls, is a picture “Neruko-tvorenni,” not made with{263} hands. “In the year 1645, in the town of Khlinov, in the porch of the Church of the Trinity, before the image of our Saviour not made with hands, Peter Palkin, blind three years, stood and worshipped and miraculously received his sight.” The Tsar Alexis ordered the picture to be brought to Moscow for the Spasski Monastery, and a copy of it to be sent to Khlinov, or Viatka. The church is also adorned with a set of fresco portraits illustrating the genealogy of the Tsars of Moscow, from Olga to Alexis: corresponding therewith, the portraits of the Kings of Israel. Behind the ikonostas are some extraordinary mural paintings of the Tsars Michael and Alexis, founders of the cathedral. The Church of the Protection, to the south of the cathedral, was built in 1673 to the memory of the Patriarch Philaret, and a third church, near the cells of the monks, was built in 1652 by Nicholas Cherkassky, to whose family Moscow owes several fine churches. The monastery was the favourite burying place of such noble Moscow families as the Yaroslavskis, Gagarins, Sherbatevs, Naryshkins and Romanofs, whose ancestors are mostly interred in a crypt here, the last being Vasili Yurivich Zakharin.

The new Monastery of the Savior, named because it was moved from the Kremlin to its current location in the 15th century, is nicely located near the Moskva River, not far from the Krasnœ Kholmski bridge. Its walls were originally made of wood until the invasion by Devlet Ghiree, after which it seems there was an effort to convert all the surrounding monasteries into fortresses for better protection of Moscow. One unique feature of the Spasski Monastery is that the towers along the wall are all different; one is pentagonal, another is round, one is hexagonal, and others vary—some are squat while others have tall, tapering spires. The belfry stands at 220 feet tall. Its significance doesn’t come from its spirited defense against the Polish attack, but from the fact that within its Cathedral of the Transfiguration, one of the five churches inside the walls, is a picture “Neruko-tvorenni,” not made by human hands. “In 1645, in the town of Khlinov, in the porch of the Church of the Trinity, Peter Palkin, who had been blind for three years, stood and worshiped before the image of our Savior not made by human hands, and miraculously regained his sight.” Tsar Alexis ordered the picture to be brought to Moscow for the Spasski Monastery, with a copy sent to Khlinov or Viatka. The church is also decorated with a series of fresco portraits depicting the genealogy of the Tsars of Moscow, from Olga to Alexis, which correspond to the portraits of the Kings of Israel. Behind the ikonostas are remarkable mural paintings of Tsars Michael and Alexis, the founders of the cathedral. The Church of the Protection, located south of the cathedral, was built in 1673 in memory of Patriarch Philaret, and another church, near the monks' cells, was built in 1652 by Nicholas Cherkassky, whose family is credited with several beautiful churches in Moscow. The monastery became a favored burial place for noble Moscow families such as the Yaroslavskis, Gagarins, Sherbatevs, Naryshkins, and Romanovs, whose ancestors are mostly interred in a crypt here, with the last being Vasili Yurivich Zakharin.

The monastery of St Andronievski was founded by St Alexis the metropolitan who made a vow, when in a storm at sea during his voyage to Constantinople. The relics of St Andronie are preserved in a silver shrine. All these monasteries were pillaged and profaned by the French, the Andronievski suffered perhaps more than the others since there some monks were shot.

The St Andronievski Monastery was established by St Alexis the metropolitan, who made a vow during a storm at sea while traveling to Constantinople. The relics of St Andronie are kept in a silver shrine. All these monasteries were looted and desecrated by the French, and the Andronievski probably suffered the most, as some monks were killed there.

Donskoy Monastery

This monastery is in no way connected with Dmitri Donskoi but owes its name to a picture of the Virgin Mary, presented by the Don Cossacks (Kazak = soldier) after the great victory over Khazi-Ghiree and his army of 150,000 Mongols advancing against Moscow in 1591: they were repulsed by the army{264} raised by Boris Godunov and the miraculous intervention of the ikon of the Cossacks, and the grateful Theodore built the monastery on the field of their defeat as a fit shrine for the ikon, which had been set up as the standard of the defenders of Moscow. A church pageant on August 19th (old style) commemorates the victory. The white walls and red turrets are copied from those of the Novo Devichi. The principal church was founded in 1684 by Catherine, daughter of the Tsar Alexis, and differs from those of Moscow town in being of red brick. The smaller Church of the Virgin is the older, founded in 1592; the three others are of the eighteenth century.

This monastery has no connection to Dmitri Donskoi but gets its name from a picture of the Virgin Mary, given by the Don Cossacks after their major victory over Khazi-Ghiree and his army of 150,000 Mongols who were advancing on Moscow in 1591. They were pushed back by the army{264} gathered by Boris Godunov and the miraculous intervention of the ikon of the Cossacks. Grateful for the victory, Theodore built the monastery on the site of their defeat as a proper shrine for the ikon, which had been used as the banner of Moscow's defenders. A church festival on August 19th (old style) commemorates this victory. The white walls and red turrets are inspired by those of Novo Devichi. The main church was established in 1684 by Catherine, daughter of Tsar Alexis, and is different from those in the town of Moscow since it’s made of red brick. The smaller Church of the Virgin is the older one, founded in 1592, while the other three were built in the eighteenth century.

The Cossacks were the means of enriching the church by recovering the silver looted by the French. The decorations are for the most part quite modern, and the paintings by an Italian. The cemetery has fine monuments, and there the people resort on summer evenings for the shade of the trees and restfulness of this peaceful retreat. Further along the Kalujskaya is the Alexandrina Palace, formerly the property of the Orloffs, with its celebrated pleasaunce “sans souçi,” extending to the wooded bank of the Moskva, with pretty views of Moscow and one excellent one of the Church of the Saviour seen alone at the extremity of a fine avenue of great trees.

The Cossacks helped enrich the church by retrieving the silver taken by the French. The decorations are mostly quite modern, and the paintings are by an Italian artist. The cemetery features beautiful monuments, and people go there on summer evenings to enjoy the shade of the trees and the peacefulness of this serene spot. Further along the Kalujskaya is the Alexandrina Palace, once owned by the Orloffs, with its famous "sans souci" garden that stretches to the wooded bank of the Moskva, offering lovely views of Moscow, including a stunning view of the Church of the Savior at the end of a grand avenue lined with tall trees.

Danilovskiy Monastery

This has the advantage of being the oldest establishment of its kind in Moscow. Founded in the Kremlin by Daniel in 1272, it was transferred in 1330, and in the reign of Ivan IV. rebuilt on its present site. The walls are less ornate than those of the other fortifications of their time; the machecoules with superposed loop-holes over the gun-ports are also unusual and the polygonal corner towers have greater symmetry than those of Simonov or Novo Spasski. The chief object of interest within the building is the silver shrine of the founder placed in the church by the Tsar Alexis in 1652. The other two churches are commonplace, but in the cemetery is the tomb of Gogol, one of the most original of Muscovite authors.

This holds the distinction of being the oldest establishment of its kind in Moscow. Founded in the Kremlin by Daniel in 1272, it was moved in 1330, and during the reign of Ivan IV, it was rebuilt on its current site. The walls are less decorative than those of other fortifications from that era; the machicolations with overlapping loopholes above the gun ports are also uncommon, and the polygonal corner towers have more symmetry than those at Simonov or Novo Spasski. The main point of interest inside the building is the silver shrine of the founder, placed in the church by Tsar Alexis in 1652. The other two churches are pretty ordinary, but in the cemetery lies the tomb of Gogol, one of the most unique Muscovite authors.

The Zamoskvoretski quarter, south of the river,{265} was in mediæval times little better than a swamp and long uninhabited. The Mongols settled there later, and Tartar names indicate some streets, as Balchoog, “quagmire,” and Bolotnaia, “swamps;” as late as the reign of the Great Catherine, the Island where is now the Babygorodskaia (little town) was open waste land, and there the rebel impostor Pugatchev, brought to Moscow in an iron cage, was beheaded in 1773. A raised road Krimski-val, above the fen-land leads from the Donskoi Monastyr to the Krimski Most, the tubular bridge over the river near the Ostogenka. It obtained its name from the fact that the Krim Tartars in their attacks on Moscow always crossed the river at that point, and it is still better known as Krimski Brode or “ford.”

The Zamoskvoretski quarter, south of the river,{265} was little better than a swamp in medieval times and was largely uninhabited for a long time. The Mongols later settled there, and some streets still bear Tartar names, like Balchoog, meaning “quagmire,” and Bolotnaia, meaning “swamps.” As recently as the reign of the Great Catherine, the area where the Babygorodskaia (little town) now stands was open wasteland, and it was there that the rebel impostor Pugatchev was brought to Moscow in an iron cage and executed in 1773. A raised road called Krimski-val runs above the marshy land, connecting the Donskoi Monastyr to the Krimski Most, a tubular bridge over the river near Ostogenka. It got its name because the Krim Tartars would always cross the river at that point during their attacks on Moscow, and it is still better known as Krimski Brode or “ford.”

New Maiden Convent

West of the Krimski Most, where the river makes a wide sweep and on three side bounds a large tract of low lying land, is the Maidens’ Field, which tradition asserts is the locality of the market at which the Tartars in old times purchased Muscovite girls for the Mohammedan harems in Constantinople and Ispahan. Historians contend that the name is derived from the convent established there since 1525. There is no doubt that this was established in the early years of the sixteenth century to commemorate the recapture of Smolensk by Vasili III. It is also indisputable that there were already convents existing within Moscow and that Novo Devichi Monastyr means simply New Monastery for Women. Helen, “the maid,” was the first abbess of this, and may have given it the name, but it was customary in Moscow, before and since, to name the convents after the dedication, as Conception, Nativity, Passion, etc., so some earlier use of the popular appellation “Maidens’ Field” is more probable.{266}

West of the Krimski Most, where the river curves widely and is bordered by low-lying land on three sides, is the Maidens' Field. Tradition holds that this is where Tartars used to buy Muscovite girls for the Mohammedan harems in Constantinople and Ispahan. Historians argue that the name comes from the convent established there in 1525. It's clear that this convent was founded in the early 1500s to celebrate Vasili III's recapture of Smolensk. It's also certain that there were already convents in Moscow, and Novo Devichi Monastyr simply means New Monastery for Women. Helen, “the maid,” was the first abbess, and she may have named it, but it was common in Moscow, before and after, to name convents after their dedications, like Conception, Nativity, Passion, etc., so an earlier use of the popular name “Maidens' Field” is more likely.{266}

The convent is two miles distant from the Kremlin, but also on the river bank, though a tank serving as a moat actually separates it from the present raised embankment of the Moskva. The walls were built by the same Italians who completed the walls of the Kremlin, and are of the same type, but round and square towers alternate and both have some of the heavy florid decoration so common in Moscow. The single and double dropped-arch is most conspicuous, and the quaintness of the architecture is accentuated by the glaring disparity of the colouring—dead white for the walls and interior of the open turrets, dark Indian red for the tops of the towers and masonry above the corbels of the machecoules. The belfry is of five lofty stages en retraite surmounted with a gilded bulbous dome and immense cross; its colours are pink and white with neutral facings: yellow, green, rose-pink picked out with white or darker tints are used for the other churches; that over the gateway being white with green roof, and both green and blue are used lavishly elsewhere for the roofs of the buildings within the enclosure, which together with the gold on domes and crosses, gives to the convent-fortress a beauty that is wholly eastern.

The convent is two miles from the Kremlin, located on the riverbank, though a tank acting as a moat separates it from the current raised embankment of the Moskva. The walls were built by the same Italians who finished the Kremlin’s walls, and they’re of a similar style, featuring alternating round and square towers, both adorned with heavy, ornate decorations typical of Moscow. The single and double dropped-arch stands out prominently, and the unique architecture is highlighted by the stark contrast in colors—dead white for the walls and the insides of the open turrets, dark Indian red for the tops of the towers and the masonry above the corbels of the machicolations. The belfry has five tall stages en retraite, topped with a gilded bulbous dome and a massive cross; its colors are pink and white with neutral accents: yellow, green, and rose-pink are highlighted with white or darker shades used for the other churches; the one over the gateway is white with a green roof, and green and blue are generously used for the roofs of the buildings within the enclosure, which, along with the gold on the domes and crosses, gives the convent-fortress a beauty that is truly eastern.

The two churches Vasili founded have been preserved and others added. They are—

The two churches that Vasili founded have been preserved, and more have been added. They are—

Church of the Assumption, with a chapel dedicated to the Holy Ghost.

Church of the Assumption, featuring a chapel dedicated to the Holy Spirit.

Church of St Ambrose, of Milan.

St. Ambrose Church, Milan.

Church of The Transfiguration of the Virgin.

Church of the Transfiguration of the Virgin.

Church of The Protection of the Virgin.

Church of the Protection of the Virgin.

Chapel of SS. Balaam and Jehosaphat, beneath the belfry.

Chapel of Saints Balaam and Jehosaphat, under the bell tower.

Church of St James the Apostle, founded in gratitude of the preservation of the monastery on St James’s day 1812.

Church of St. James the Apostle, established in appreciation for the protection of the monastery on St. James’s Day 1812.

The cathedral church with chapels to the Archangel Michael; to SS. Prokhor and Nikanor; to St Sophia and the sister graces, Vera, Nadejda, and Lubov (Faith, Hope and Charity). Here the daughters of Alexis Mikhailovich are buried, as also Eudoxia (Helena), first wife of Peter I. On the ikonostas is a very early copy of the Iberian Mother of God, before that ikon was taken to Smolensk in 1456.

The cathedral church has chapels dedicated to the Archangel Michael, Saints Prokhor and Nikanor, St. Sophia, and her sister virtues, Faith, Hope, and Charity. Here lie the daughters of Alexis Mikhailovich, as well as Eudoxia (Helena), the first wife of Peter I. On the iconostasis is a very early copy of the Iberian Mother of God, made before that icon was taken to Smolensk in 1456.

Its history is unimportant. Julia the wife of its founder was forced to take the veil here in 1563 when Vasili intended to marry Helena Glinski; Boris Godunov and his sister Irene lived within it during the six weeks following upon the death of Theodore I. Notwithstanding its apparent strength, during the times of trouble Vasili Shoviski after various struggles to retain it, was forced to give it up to the invading

Its history doesn’t really matter. Julia, the wife of its founder, was compelled to become a nun here in 1563 when Vasili planned to marry Helena Glinski. Boris Godunov and his sister Irene stayed there for six weeks after the death of Theodore I. Despite its seeming strength, during the times of trouble, Vasili Shoviski struggled to keep it but eventually had to surrender it to the invaders.

{267}

{267}



NOVO DEVICHI CONVENT

NOVO DEVICHI CONVENT

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
NEW MAIDEN CONVENT

{268}

{268}

{269}

{269}

Poles. Peter the Great imprisoned his sister Sophia within its walls, and executed many of the streltsi before her windows that their agony might awe her bold spirit. Some years after he made it a foundling hospital, and 250 infants were housed there before the Hospitalrie Dom was built; it was abolished in 1725. Napoleon visited it in 1812 and at first it suffered little; the King of Naples ordering divine service to be celebrated daily as usual, but later Davoust was billeted there, and after the disaster the French before quitting it did their utmost to blow up the belfry, the cathedral and stores. The nuns at considerable risk interrupted the fired train and, by their intrepidity and subsequent perseverance in combating the fire, saved the convent from destruction.

Poles. Peter the Great locked his sister Sophia away within its walls and executed many of the streltsi outside her windows to intimidate her strong spirit. A few years later, he turned it into a foundling hospital, where 250 infants were cared for before the Hospitalrie Dom was built; it was closed down in 1725. Napoleon visited in 1812, and initially, it suffered little damage; the King of Naples ordered daily church services to continue as usual. However, later on, Davoust was stationed there, and after the defeat, the French tried to blow up the belfry, the cathedral, and the stores before leaving. The nuns, at great risk to themselves, disrupted the fuse and, through their bravery and determination to fight the fire, saved the convent from being destroyed.

Russian monasteries and convents are not rigorously closed to the public like those of the Roman church. Generally from sunrise to sunset the great gates stand open that all may enter who desire to do so; and the nuns, so far from being secluded from the world, are rather encouraged to go out into it, both on errands of charity and, at need, to supplement by their own handicraft a too scanty income. For the most part the cells are shared in common by three inmates who unite their daily rations of tea, salt, and black-bread, and whilst the infirm sisters busy themselves in copying ikons or producing lace, needle-work and the like, the more active go into the town to dispose of the produce. In convents as elsewhere the Russian rule holds good that one’s room is inviolate: strictly private if the inmates wish, yet open to whomsoever it is their pleasure to entertain.

Russian monasteries and convents aren't as strictly closed to the public as those of the Roman church. Generally, from sunrise to sunset, the large gates are open for anyone who wants to enter; and the nuns, rather than being isolated from the world, are actually encouraged to engage with it, both for charitable causes and, when necessary, to help make a meager income through their own crafts. Typically, the living quarters are shared among three residents who combine their daily supplies of tea, salt, and black bread. While the sisters who are ill focus on copying icons or making lace and textiles, the more active ones go into town to sell their creations. In convents, like anywhere else in Russia, the principle that one's room is a private space applies: it can remain strictly private if the residents choose, yet open to anyone they want to invite.

{270}

{270}

CHAPTER XIII

Moscow of the English

“O, how glad was I that the Tsar took notice of those few Englishmen.”—Horsey.

“O, how glad was I that the Tsar noticed those few Englishmen.”—Horsey.

MOSCOW still bears witness to the thoroughness of English handicraft just as it shows the unmistakable impress of the French heel. When the discovery of the new world by Columbus had awakened England to enterprise and adventure, among the expeditions fitted out to find new markets for English manufactures was one of three ships sent on the advice of Sebastian Cabot, to the Arctic seas in 1553. Sir Hugh Willoughby was in command; Richard Chancellor, a young protégé of Sir Henry Sydney, his able lieutenant, and King Edward VI. himself the patron. The merchant venturers each found £25 for the undertaking; £6000 in all was subscribed; two Tartars in the King’s stable were interrogated as to that land on “the East of the Globe,” but they answered nothing at all that was in point. Three ships sailed from Rudcliff Harbour on the 20th May, but a few days later a storm separated them. Chancellor sailed on, and notwithstanding “the counsel of three friendly Scotchmen” to proceed no further, he reached the White Sea where he awaited the coming of his chief. Sighting a smack he got the men on board; they at once fell prostrate to kiss his feet but he himself raised them, “an act of humanity that won for him much goodwill.” The natives dared{271} not trade without leave of their prince, and in some six weeks an invitation was given Chancellor to proceed from Kholmogori (Archangel) to Moscow. There he was sumptuously entertained. Furnished with a reply to King Edward’s letter and permission to trade, he returned to London. In April 1555, Chancellor was again sent to Moscow; the Tsar in the meanwhile had found the remains of Sir Hugh Willoughby’s other two ships, the crews of which had been starved to death. The result of this second voyage was the establishment of the Russia Company at Kholmogori and Moscow, and the visit of a Russian envoy to the Court of St James’s. Ill-luck attended the return voyage; Chancellor, his son and seven Russians, were drowned when their ship was wrecked, near Kinnaird Head.

MOSCOW still showcases the skill of English craftsmanship, just as it reflects the distinct mark of the French heel. When Columbus discovered the New World, it sparked a sense of adventure and enterprise in England. Among the expeditions organized to seek new markets for English goods was one consisting of three ships, sent to the Arctic seas in 1553 on the recommendation of Sebastian Cabot. Sir Hugh Willoughby was in charge, with Richard Chancellor, a young protégé of Sir Henry Sydney, as his capable lieutenant, and King Edward VI. as the sponsor. The merchant adventurers each contributed £25 for the venture, totaling £6000 raised; two Tartars from the King’s stable were questioned about the land “to the East of the Globe,” but they provided no relevant information. Three ships set sail from Rotherhithe Harbour on May 20th, but a few days later, a storm separated them. Chancellor continued onward, and despite “the advice of three friendly Scots” to stop, he reached the White Sea and waited for his captain. Spotting a ship, he had the crew board; they immediately fell to the ground to kiss his feet, but he helped them up, “a gesture of kindness that earned him a lot of goodwill.” The locals did not dare trade without their prince's permission, and after about six weeks, Chancellor received an invitation to travel from Kholmogori (Archangel) to Moscow. There, he was lavishly hosted. Given a response to King Edward’s letter and permission to trade, he returned to London. In April 1555, Chancellor was sent back to Moscow; in the meantime, the Tsar had discovered the remains of Sir Hugh Willoughby’s other two ships, whose crews had starved. This second voyage led to the establishment of the Russia Company in Kholmogori and Moscow, and a Russian envoy visiting the Court of St James’s. Unfortunately, disaster struck on the return voyage; Chancellor, his son, and seven Russians drowned when their ship was wrecked near Kinnaird Head.

The English were not deterred by untoward events, and pressed trade briskly. They had to deal with a sovereign whose methods were detestable and whose aim was a political and matrimonial alliance with the Tudors, not commercial intercourse with the English people; the Tsar was foiled, and the English traders succeeded. No doubt the venturers were misled by the too glowing reports of their servants, who represented Russia as a new Indies. Wondrous were the stories they gave of the country and its inhabitants; of the immense wealth of the Tsar; of the strange animals that roamed in the forests. Of these last one was the “Rossmachia,” which devoured food so ravenously that it had to pass between great growing trees in order to reduce its distended stomach—an animal not identified; another was the Ass-camel, having the attributes of both these beasts, which was so far believed in as to figure in the arms of the Eastland Company and is thought to be the yak. To these early voyagers, earnest and austere in their new-found protestantism, the religion of the Muscovites seemed idolatrous, and{272} to their prejudiced writings, reproduced by generation after generation, many of the still current misconceptions concerning the Eastern Church are due.

The English weren’t put off by unfortunate events and continued to trade energetically. They had to deal with a ruler whose methods were awful and whose goal was a political and marital union with the Tudors, not trade with the English people; the Tsar was thwarted, and the English traders prevailed. No doubt the adventurers were misled by their servants' overly optimistic reports, which portrayed Russia as a new Indies. They shared amazing stories about the country and its people; about the immense wealth of the Tsar; and about the unusual animals that roamed the forests. One of them was the “Rossmachia,” which devoured food so greedily that it had to squeeze between large growing trees to relieve its bloated stomach—an unidentified animal. Another was the Ass-camel, which had characteristics of both creatures and was so widely believed in that it appeared in the arms of the Eastland Company and is thought to be the yak. To these early explorers, serious and strict in their newfound Protestantism, the religion of the Muscovites appeared idolatrous, and{272} many of the still prevalent misconceptions about the Eastern Church stem from their biased writings, passed down through generations.

The Governors of the Russia Company were hard-headed, bargain-driving tradesmen, with no soul for empire or an attempt had been made by them to conquer and annex Russia for their sovereign and their country. Profitable trade was their one aim and the extravagances of their servants and apprentices their increasing lament. Many were the complaints, piteous the explanations; anger on the part of the employer, indignation and desertion on the part of the unlucky apprentices.

The governors of the Russia Company were tough, deal-making businesspeople, with no interest in building an empire or trying to conquer and take over Russia for their king and country. Their only goal was profitable trade, and they increasingly complained about the extravagances of their workers and apprentices. There were many complaints, and the explanations were often pitiful; employers were angry while the unlucky apprentices felt indignant and often left.

Ivan did not pay for the goods he had, or his chancellor would not; none dared trade but by his leave; his subjects feared to buy the merchants’ goods lest their sovereign might still require them for himself. The governors paid no heed to the customs of the country or the needs of their apprentices—foundlings and charity—reared orphans—no furs were to be worn; the ells of cloth allowed annually were in no case to be exceeded, and the use of horses forbidden; “if it be against the manner of that countrie we will make it the manner rather than forbear our money with losse to clothe them otherwise, or maintain them to ride when we go afoot. Let the horses and mares be sold.”

Ivan didn't pay for the goods he had, and neither did his chancellor; no one dared to trade without his permission. His subjects were afraid to buy from the merchants in case their ruler decided he needed those goods for himself. The governors ignored the customs of the country and the needs of their apprentices—foundlings and charity-raised orphans—no furs were allowed; the amount of cloth permitted each year could never be exceeded, and using horses was banned. “If this goes against the customs of that country, we will change the customs rather than lose our money to clothe them differently or support them riding while we walk. Let the horses and mares be sold.”

So ordered the governors their full-powered servant Anthony Jenkinson, who was further commanded to “reduce our stipendiaries to a better order in apparel; forbid them riding, for such excessiveness corrupteth all good natures, bringeth obloquy to our nation and also loss to ourselves.” “Item 34” of this long command is “no dogs, bears, or superfluous burdens to be kept; no bond-men or women to wait upon them.” “Item 39, they shall pay for their apparel not at cost price but at the selling price in Russia.” Among other things the unfortunate ill-clad apprentice bore in{273} the frozen north during arctic winter was punishment for the company’s misdoings, but the governors, “doubt that Alcock’s death proceeded from asking for payment of our debts, as Edwardes writes, but that he either quareled inadvisedly or else constrained the people touching their religion, laws, or manners, being given wisdom wolde to mislike and mock other strangers.” No wonder the English left the factory and tried to make a living for themselves, but withal there were many of the right grit among them, to wit, Anthony Jenkinson who passed through Moscow in 1558 determined upon finding a way to the Indies by the Caspian. This intrepid adventurer reached Ispahan with the goods of the Russia company and returned burdened with rich barter and precious gifts. Later he fitted out a fleet on the Caspian and made war on the Turcomans with some success, an undertaking the difficulties of which can scarcely be estimated seeing that he could communicate with England only by way of Archangel,—a port closed by ice for one half of the year. Jenkinson had not only to contend with pirates on the Volga, but was warned that the Danes might attempt to seize his ships,—Primrose, 240 tons; John Evangelist, 170; Anne, 160; Trinitie, 140;—as they passed the wardhouse (Vardso) “where be enemies that do mislike the newe found trade by seas to Russia.” Sigismund II., King of Poland, tried his utmost to stop the traffic, “sending messengers with pretended letters of thanks to English merchants in order to make the Tsar, Ivan, suspicious of them.

So ordered the governors their fully empowered servant Anthony Jenkinson, who was also instructed to “put our paid workers in better order when it comes to clothing; forbid them from riding, as such excess corrupts all good nature, brings disgrace to our nation, and causes us losses.” “Item 34” of this lengthy command states “no dogs, bears, or unnecessary burdens to be kept; no bonded men or women to serve them.” “Item 39” specifies that they shall pay for their clothing not at cost price but at the selling price in Russia. Among other things, the unfortunate poorly dressed apprentice endured in{273} the frozen north during the Arctic winter, which was punishment for the company's wrongdoings. However, the governors “doubt that Alcock’s death was due to asking for payment of our debts, as Edwardes writes, but rather that he either quarreled foolishly or forced the people regarding their religion, laws, or customs, being given wisdom might to disapprove and mock other strangers.” No wonder the English left the factory and attempted to make a living independently, though there were many among them with true grit, like Anthony Jenkinson, who passed through Moscow in 1558 with the determination to find a route to the Indies via the Caspian Sea. This brave adventurer reached Ispahan with the goods of the Russia company and returned loaded with valuable trade and precious gifts. Later, he organized a fleet on the Caspian and fought against the Turcomans with some success, an undertaking whose challenges can hardly be measured, considering he could only communicate with England through Archangel—a port closed by ice for half of the year. Jenkinson not only had to deal with pirates on the Volga but was also warned that the Danes might try to capture his ships—Primrose, 240 tons; John Evangelist, 170; Anne, 160; Trinitie, 140—while passing the wardhouse (Vardso), “where there are enemies who dislike the newfound sea trade to Russia.” Sigismund II., King of Poland, did his utmost to halt the trade, “sending messengers with false letters of thanks to English merchants to make the Tsar, Ivan, suspicious of them.”

He fitted out ships in Dantzig to capture English ships bound for the Narva, and threatened Elizabeth that loss of liberty, life, wives and children awaited those who should carry wares and weapons to the Muscovite who was not only the enemy of the King of Poland but the hereditary foe of all free nations.” Among{274} other of the company’s servants who distinguished themselves were Southam and Spark who discovered the water-way from the White Sea to Novgorod, and so got goods thither without such risk as was run from Russia’s enemies on the Baltic when sent by Narva. The Flemings and Germans were jealous of the new traders and made many misrepresentations concerning both persons and goods. They themselves furnished an inferior staple, but the simple people were made to prefer it to English cloth which, as it would not shrink as theirs did, could not be new.

He outfitted ships in Danzig to capture English vessels heading to Narva and warned Elizabeth that those transporting goods and weapons to the Muscovite would face loss of freedom, life, and family. The Muscovite was not only the enemy of the King of Poland but also the hereditary foe of all free nations. Among{274} the company's servants who stood out were Southam and Spark, who found the waterway from the White Sea to Novgorod, allowing them to deliver goods there with less risk than what was posed by Russia’s enemies in the Baltic when sent via Narva. The Flemings and Germans were envious of the new traders and spread many false claims about both the individuals and their merchandise. They provided an inferior product, but the naive people were misled into preferring it over English cloth, which didn’t shrink like theirs did, making it seem old.

Jerom Horsey was an apprentice or underling of the Russia company at Moscow; he attracted the Tsar’s attention by his expert horsemanship and his wit when the Tsar questioned him respecting the Russian ships building at Vologda for the Caspian. Horsey answered that with others he had admired their “strange fashion.” Ivan would know what he meant by this description. “I mean that the figure heads of lions, dragons, eagles, elephants and unicorns were so skilfully, so richly adorned with gold and silver, and painted in bright colours.” “A crafty youth to commend the work of his own countrymen,” remarked Ivan, and then asked about the English Fleet, but was displeased when Horsey described the Queen’s flag as “one before which all nations bow.” These traders were not the only British in Moscow, others were brought as prisoners by Ivan on his return from the devastation of Novgorod.

Jerom Horsey was an apprentice with the Russia company in Moscow. He caught the Tsar's attention with his great horsemanship and cleverness when the Tsar asked him about the Russian ships being built in Vologda for the Caspian. Horsey responded that, along with others, he had admired their "strange style." Ivan would understand what he meant by that. "I mean that the figureheads of lions, dragons, eagles, elephants, and unicorns were so skillfully and richly decorated with gold and silver, and painted in bright colors." "A clever young man praising the work of his countrymen," Ivan remarked, and then he inquired about the English Fleet, but he was not pleased when Horsey described the Queen's flag as "one that all nations salute." These traders weren't the only Brits in Moscow; Ivan had brought others back as prisoners after devastating Novgorod.

“At which time, among other nations, there were four score and five poor Scotch soldiers left of 700 sent from Stockholm, and three Englishmen in their company brought many other captives, in most miserable manner, piteous to behold. I laboured and employed my best endeavours and credit—not only to succour them but with my purse, and pains, and means got them to be well placed at Bulvan near the Moskva. And although the Tsar was much inflamed with fury and wrath{275} against them, torturing and putting many of these Swede soldiers to death—most lamentable to behold—I procured the Tsar to be told of the difference between these Scots, now his captives, and the Swedes, Poles and Lithuanins his enemies. That they were of a nation of strangers; remote; a venturous and warlike people, ready to serve any Christian prince for maintenance and pay, as they would appear and prove, if it pleased His Majesty to employ and spare them such maintenance. They were out of heart; no clothes; no arms; but would show themselves of valour even against his mortal enemy the Tartar. It seems some use was made of this advice for shortly the best soldiers were put apart and captains of each nation appointed to govern the rest. Jeamy Lingett for the Scottish men, a valiant, honest man. Money, clothes, and daily allowance for meat and drink was given them; horses, hay and oats; swords, piece and pistols were they armed with—poor snakes before, looke now cheerfully. Twelve hundred of them did better service against the Tartar than twelve thousand Russians with their short bows and arrows. The Krim-Tartars, not knowing then the use of muskets and pistols, struck dead on their horses with shot they saw not, cried:—‘Awaye with those new devils that come with their thundering puffs,’ whereat the Tsar made good sport. Then had they pensions and lands allowed them to live upon; matched and married with the fair women of Livonia; increased into families, and live in favour of the prince and people.”—Horsey.

“At that time, among other nations, there were eighty-five poor Scottish soldiers left out of 700 sent from Stockholm, along with three Englishmen who brought many other captives, suffering horribly and pitiful to see. I worked hard and used all my influence—not only to help them but also with my money, efforts, and resources got them settled in Bulvan near the Moskva. And even though the Tsar was extremely angry and furious towards them, torturing and executing many of those Swedish soldiers—most distressing to witness—I made sure the Tsar was informed of the difference between these Scots, now his captives, and the Swedes, Poles, and Lithuanians, his enemies. They were from a distant nation, adventurous and warlike people, eager to serve any Christian prince for fair pay, as they would show if His Majesty decided to employ them and provide such support. They were demoralized, lacking clothes and arms, but were willing to display their bravery even against his mortal enemy, the Tartar. It seems my advice was taken to heart because soon the best soldiers were separated, and captains from each nation were appointed to lead the rest. Jeamy Lingett for the Scottish men, a brave, honest man. They were given money, clothes, and a daily allowance for food and drink; horses, hay, and oats; swords, guns, and pistols for arms—poor wretches before, now looked cheerful. Twelve hundred of them performed better against the Tartar than twelve thousand Russians with their short bows and arrows. The Krim-Tartars, not knowing the use of muskets and pistols, fell dead on their horses from shots they couldn't see, shouting: ‘Away with those new devils that come with their thundering puffs,’ which amused the Tsar greatly. Then they were granted pensions and lands to live on; they paired off and married the beautiful women of Livonia; grew into families, and lived in favor with the prince and people.”—Horsey.

Unhappily their good treatment was not long continued. Soon Ivan set a thousand of his opritchniks “to rob and spoil them,” and their sufferings were terrible. Some escaped into the English House, and were clad and relieved there, “but,” says Horsey, “we were in danger of great displeasure in so doing.” But Horsey, a man of wide sympathies, did not confine his aid to men of his own country; he was instrumental in saving many other of the captives of Ivan’s wars in the west, who were quartered in a special suburb, the nemetski sloboda, “by my mediation and means, being then familiar and conversant in the Court, well known and respected of the best favourites and officers at that{276} time, I procured liberty to build them a church, and contributed well thereunto; got unto them a learned preaching minister, and divine service and meeting of the congregation every Sabath day, but after their Lutheran profession.” These people “soon grew in good liking” of the Muscovite citizens, “living civilly, but in doleful mourning manner for their evil loss of goods, friends, and country.” Horsey was the man chosen by Ivan to take a private message to Queen Elizabeth in answer to the important communication she had sent him by Anthony Jenkinson. The Tsar provided him with horses, and a guard as far as the confines of his territory, but “forbear to tell you all the secrets entrusted to you, lest you should fall into my enemy’s power and be forced to betray them, but you will give to the Queen, my loving sister, the contents of this bottle,” and the Tsar himself secreted a small wooden spirit-flask among the trappings of the young rider’s horse.

Unfortunately, their good treatment didn’t last long. Soon, Ivan sent a thousand of his opritchniks “to rob and spoil them,” and their suffering was terrible. Some escaped to the English House, where they were clothed and helped, “but,” says Horsey, “we risked great displeasure by doing so.” However, Horsey, a man with broad sympathies, didn’t limit his aid to his fellow countrymen; he played a key role in saving many other captives from Ivan’s wars in the west, who were housed in a special suburb, the nemetski sloboda. “Through my mediation and means, being familiar and well-respected at Court among the best favorites and officials at that{276} time, I secured permission to build them a church and contributed significantly to it; I arranged for them a learned preaching minister, and ensured divine service and congregation meetings every Sabbath, albeit after their Lutheran practices.” These people “quickly became well-liked” by the Muscovite citizens, “living respectfully but in a sorrowful way due to their great loss of goods, friends, and homeland.” Horsey was the person chosen by Ivan to carry a private message to Queen Elizabeth in response to the vital communication she had sent via Anthony Jenkinson. The Tsar provided him with horses and an escort as far as the edge of his territory, but “I won't reveal all the secrets entrusted to you, in case you end up in my enemy’s hands and are compelled to betray them, but you will convey to the Queen, my dear sister, the contents of this bottle,” and the Tsar himself hid a small wooden spirit-flask among the gear of the young rider’s horse.

Horsey had engaged upon a daring undertaking, and had an adventurous journey. It was winter; Russia was beset by Ivan’s enemies, who hated the English for the help given the Muscovite ruler. As soon as he crossed the border he feigned to be a refugee, but was taken as a spy and cast into prison. The governor of the castle, hearing that he came from Moscow, would learn some news of his daughter, who had been carried away a captive by Ivan’s troops. She was among those whom Horsey had helped to settle in the Sloboda, and he gave so good an account of her, that the grateful jailer liberated him and helped him forward on his long journey. When he passed through the Netherlands the merchants gave a banquet in his honour and, for favours he had rendered the foreigners in Moscow, presented him with a silver bowl full of ducats. Horsey returned the ducats, as he says, “not without{277} afterwards repenting of this,” but kept the bowl to remind him of their good will. He reached England, and was received by the Queen and indicted by the sordid governors of the Russia company, who made a number of trivial and baseless charges. He returned to Russia more than once, got the extravagant demands of the company conceded, some thousands of roubles were “preened from the shins of Shalkan, the Chancellor,” and after living through the “troublous times” he finally settled in England; was married, knighted, and lived far into the seventeenth century.

Horsey had taken on a bold challenge and had an adventurous journey. It was winter; Russia was surrounded by Ivan’s enemies, who despised the English for supporting the Muscovite ruler. As soon as he crossed the border, he pretended to be a refugee, but was mistaken for a spy and thrown into prison. The governor of the castle, learning that he was from Moscow, wanted to know news about his daughter, who had been kidnapped by Ivan’s troops. She was among those Horsey had helped to settle in the Sloboda, and he spoke so highly of her that the grateful jailer freed him and aided him on his long journey. When he passed through the Netherlands, the merchants hosted a banquet in his honor and, for the favors he had done for them in Moscow, presented him with a silver bowl filled with ducats. Horsey returned the ducats, as he says, “not without{277} afterwards repenting of this,” but kept the bowl to remind him of their goodwill. He reached England, where he was welcomed by the Queen and accused by the petty governors of the Russia company, who made several trivial and unfounded charges. He returned to Russia multiple times, got the excessive demands of the company accepted, some thousands of roubles were “squeezed from the pockets of Shalkan, the Chancellor,” and after enduring the “troublous times,” he eventually settled in England; got married, was knighted, and lived well into the seventeenth century.

Probably his “good friends” at court were Nikita Romanof, grandfather of the first elected Tsar, and Boris Godunov with whom Horsey was always on excellent terms. Ivan sent a couple of hundred of his opritchniks to pillage the house of his father-in-law Nikita Romanof, and the English then sheltered the family in their house close by, and supplied them with food and stuffs “for they had been stripped of all they possessed.” In its turn the English House suffered; it was burned by the Tartars in 1591, and the inmates huddled in the cellar for days, lost Spark, the explorer, Carver, the first apothecary in Moscow, and others, but the survivors rushed out during a lull in the conflagration and made their way through the smoke and flames to the Kremlin, where they were helped over the wall. In 1611 it was again destroyed by fire, in the struggle between Pojarski and the Poles, and finally destroyed during the French invasion. Its site is now occupied by the Siberian Podvor, in the Varvarka. It was not rebuilt, but a plot of land between the Broosovski and Chernichefski Pereuloks—the streets that connect the Tverskaya and Nikitskaya behind the Governor-General’s residence—was granted the colony by Alexander I., and there a new English church, parsonage and library have been erected.{278}

Probably his “good friends” at court were Nikita Romanof, the grandfather of the first elected Tsar, and Boris Godunov, with whom Horsey always had a great relationship. Ivan sent a couple of hundred of his opritchniks to raid the house of his father-in-law, Nikita Romanof, and the English then sheltered the family in their nearby home, providing them with food and supplies “for they had been stripped of all they possessed.” In return, the English House suffered; it was burned by the Tartars in 1591, and the residents huddled in the cellar for days, losing Spark, the explorer, Carver, the first apothecary in Moscow, and others, but the survivors rushed out during a break in the fire and managed to get through the smoke and flames to the Kremlin, where they were helped over the wall. In 1611, it was destroyed again by fire during the conflict between Pojarski and the Poles, and finally, it was destroyed during the French invasion. Its site is now occupied by the Siberian Podvor, in Varvarka. It was not rebuilt, but a plot of land between Broosovski and Chernichefski Pereuloks—the streets connecting Tverskaya and Nikitskaya behind the Governor-General’s residence—was granted to the colony by Alexander I., where a new English church, parsonage, and library have been built.{278}

The early settlers were chiefly traders, but they also coined silver money and made weapons; it was usual for the Tsar to honour the house by a ceremonial call early in the new year, and towards the autumn, the Tsar and Court accompanied the merchants the first stage of their homeward journey towards Archangel, and gave them a parting feast and toast at a picnic in the forest—a custom observed by Peter I. until he founded St Petersburgh. Their status was, and is, that of foreign guests, and they were subject to the common law and custom. William Barnsley of Worcester appears to have been the first Englishman exiled to Siberia. Ivan the Terrible thought him too familiar in his behaviour towards the Tsaritsa, so banished him, but he returned after twenty-six years, hale and very wealthy. Giles Fletcher, father of Phineas Fletcher, the poet, obtained an undertaking that Englishmen should not be put to the torture or put on the put-key—whipping block—before condemnation. His own book on Muscovy was promptly suppressed on the petition of the Russia Company, whose members so far from supporting the rights of their countrymen, were not altogether displeased that an escaped apprentice—or other roving Englishman—if not roasted, “yet were scorched.” Peter the Great put to death the beautiful Miss Hamilton, a lady of honour to his wife Eudoxia and nearly related to his own mother’s foster-parents, but he is said to have accompanied her to the scaffold and picked up the head as it dropped from the block and pressed his lips to hers.

The early settlers were mainly traders, but they also minted silver coins and made weapons; it was common for the Tsar to honor the household with a ceremonial visit at the start of the new year, and in the autumn, the Tsar and his Court would accompany the merchants for the first leg of their journey back home towards Archangel, treating them to a farewell feast and toast in the forest—a tradition kept by Peter I until he established St. Petersburg. Their status was, and still is, that of foreign guests, and they were subject to the usual laws and customs. William Barnsley of Worcester seems to have been the first Englishman exiled to Siberia. Ivan the Terrible deemed him too familiar in his conduct towards the Tsaritsa, so he was banished, but he returned after twenty-six years, healthy and very wealthy. Giles Fletcher, the father of poet Phineas Fletcher, secured a promise that Englishmen would not be tortured or subjected to the whipping block before a conviction. His own book about Muscovy was quickly banned at the request of the Russia Company, whose members, far from supporting their fellow countrymen's rights, were not entirely unhappy that an escaped apprentice—or wandering Englishman—if not executed, was still "scorched." Peter the Great executed the lovely Miss Hamilton, a lady-in-waiting to his wife Eudoxia and closely related to his mother’s foster-parents, but it is said that he accompanied her to the scaffold, picked up her head as it fell from the block, and pressed his lips to hers.

There were Englishwomen in Moscow in the sixteenth century, for, apart from the anecdote respecting Ivan’s treatment of them, Jane Richard, the widow of his physician, the notorious Dr Bomel, was sent back to England in 1583, and in 1602 John Frenchman founded the Apteka in Moscow in 1586, and returned{279}

There were English women in Moscow in the sixteenth century. Aside from the story about Ivan’s treatment of them, Jane Richard, the widow of his doctor, the infamous Dr. Bomel, was sent back to England in 1583. In 1602, John Frenchman established the Apteka in Moscow in 1586 and returned{279}



TOWER OVER THE REDEEMER GATE (SPASSKI VOROT)

TOWER OVER THE REDEEMER GATE (SPASSKI VOROT)



TOWER OVER THE REDEEMER GATE (SPASSKI VOROT)

TOWER OVER THE REDEEMER GATE (SPASSKI VOROT)

to Moscow with his wife and family in 1602. From the complaints of the Russia Company of their young employees, it would appear that married men were sent out, “as also a Divine to exhort the single to righteous conduct,” quite early in its history. From these people who lived apart from the citizens and enjoyed certain{280} privileges, the Russians derived new ideas as to woman’s place in the household, and many families adopted the foreign customs long before Peter “commanded” that the terems should be thrown open and the example of the Court followed by all.

to Moscow with his wife and family in 1602. From the complaints of the Russia Company about their young workers, it seems that they sent out married men, “as well as a cleric to encourage the singles to live righteously,” quite early in its history. From these individuals who lived separately from the citizens and enjoyed certain{280} privileges, the Russians gained new perspectives on a woman's role in the household, and many families adopted foreign customs long before Peter “ordered” that the terems should be opened up and that everyone should follow the Court’s example.

The visible memorials of the early English settlers in Moscow may be found about the Kremlin in such works as the great central tower, Ivan Veliki, built by John Villiers, the beautiful Church of St Catherine—that behind the Golden Gate (v. p. 161) accredited to John Taylor; and, still more characteristic, those Gothic towers which rise so majestically above the Troitski and Spasski Gates. In them the influence of the east is scarcely to be discovered, even such use as is made of the ogival arch being quite as native to the Gothic of the later period as to the Russian architecture, whilst those forms of decoration common to Moscow prior to, and during, the seventeenth century are as completely ignored as the designs of the Italian builders of the wall these Gothic towers crown. In the view illustrated the belfry tower of the Church of St Catherine also figures, in not unpleasing contrast with the more severe, and beautiful, but commoner architecture adopted by Galloway.

The visible memorials of the early English settlers in Moscow can be found around the Kremlin in structures like the impressive central tower, Ivan Veliki, built by John Villiers, and the stunning Church of St. Catherine located behind the Golden Gate (v. p. 161), attributed to John Taylor. Even more characteristic are the Gothic towers that rise majestically above the Troitski and Spasski Gates. The eastern influence is hardly evident in them; even the use of the pointed arch is just as much a part of late Gothic style as it is of Russian architecture. Furthermore, the decorative forms typical of Moscow before and during the seventeenth century are completely overlooked, just like the designs from the Italian builders of the wall that these Gothic towers top. The illustrated view also features the belfry tower of the Church of St. Catherine, which offers a pleasant contrast to the more austere, beautiful, yet more common architecture adopted by Galloway.

Foreign craftsmen flocked to Moscow during the glorious reign of Alexis, and the Russia Company prospered, but the English settlers received a temporary check when the quarrel rose between King and Parliament. Alexis, in gratitude for favours shown his ancestors by the English, sent Charles grain and furs, and banished those who declared for the Commonwealth. He annulled the charter of the Russia Company when Cromwell succeeded, and would have no intercourse with the Protector. In this, as in most matters, Cromwell ultimately obtained his own way. The difficulty was smoothed away by Cromwell’s{281} roaming ambassador, the able Bradshaw, who did not even need to visit Russia to accomplish so little. Trade was re-opened, and later Alexis corresponded with the great Englishman. During the reign of Peter all foreign residents, not military leaders, were oppressed—their wages were withheld that they might not escape the country and agreements and contracts disregarded, but there was no open enmity between the races save for a short time subsequent to the seizure of Malta, which act greatly embittered the Emperor Paul against the English. The Marquess of Carmarthen obtained a tobacco monopoly from Peter the Great, who on his return to Moscow now punished as severely those of his subjects who would not acquire the habit as he had previously done those who indulged it. But he disregarded the provisions of the contract and the result was that Queen Anne’s representative at Moscow was instructed to send home the workmen and secretly destroy all the material and machines in the factory at Moscow. The envoy and his secretary “spent long hours and nights” in accomplishing this service with their own hands—probably the last actual direct interference of the British Crown with matters commercial and industrial, for it failed of its ultimate purpose, and brought disaster.

Foreign craftsmen flocked to Moscow during the significant reign of Alexis, and the Russia Company thrived, but the English settlers faced a temporary setback when tensions rose between the King and Parliament. Out of gratitude for the favor shown to his ancestors by the English, Alexis sent Charles grain and furs and banished those who supported the Commonwealth. He canceled the charter of the Russia Company when Cromwell took over and refused to engage with the Protector. Ultimately, Cromwell got his way in most matters. The issue was resolved by Cromwell’s roaming ambassador, the skilled Bradshaw, who didn’t even need to visit Russia to achieve so little. Trade was reopened, and later Alexis communicated with the prominent Englishman. During Peter’s reign, all foreign residents, except military leaders, were oppressed— their wages were withheld to prevent them from leaving the country, and agreements and contracts were ignored, but there was no open hostility between the nations except for a brief period following the capture of Malta, which severely angered Emperor Paul against the English. The Marquess of Carmarthen secured a tobacco monopoly from Peter the Great, who, upon his return to Moscow, punished his subjects who wouldn’t adopt the habit just as harshly as he had those who did. However, he ignored the terms of the contract, resulting in Queen Anne’s representative in Moscow being instructed to send the workers home and secretly destroy all the materials and machinery in the Moscow factory. The envoy and his secretary “spent long hours and nights” completing this task with their own hands—likely the last direct intervention of the British Crown in commercial and industrial affairs, which ultimately failed and led to disaster.

Scotch soldiers of fortune found their opportunities in Russia, and made the most of them. One of the best known among them is the sturdy Patrick Gordon, who entered the Swedish service under the grandfather of Charles XII.; was captured by the Poles and served them until taken prisoner by Alexis. The Tsar had heard that Gordon had taken pity upon Russian captives in Warsaw, and at his own cost fed them, so sent for him that he might thank him personally for the “favours shown to the poor captives in Warsaw,” whereupon Gordon offered his sword to{282} Moscow, and served faithfully. One Alexander Gordon, who claimed cousinship, found his way to Moscow, and was made an officer by Peter “for that he, single handed, thrashed seven Russian officers who had insulted him.” He also married a daughter of Patrick Gordon, and wrote the best contemporary biography of Peter I. Crawford helped the Gordons to form a regiment of regular soldiers, and Field-Marshal Bruce with Gordon rendered such valuable services, that Peter instituted the Order of St Andrew, for distinguished military services, and these Scotchmen were the first to be decorated.

Scotch soldiers seeking fortune found their chances in Russia and took full advantage of them. One of the most famous among them is the tough Patrick Gordon, who joined the Swedish army under the grandfather of Charles XII; he was captured by the Poles and served them until he was taken prisoner by Alexis. The Tsar had heard that Gordon had shown kindness to Russian captives in Warsaw, even feeding them at his own expense, so he called for him to personally thank him for the "help given to the poor captives in Warsaw." In response, Gordon offered his sword to Moscow and served faithfully. One Alexander Gordon, claiming to be a relative, made his way to Moscow and was appointed an officer by Peter "for single-handedly defeating seven Russian officers who had insulted him." He also married one of Patrick Gordon's daughters and wrote the best contemporary biography of Peter I. Crawford assisted the Gordons in forming a regiment of regular soldiers, and Field-Marshal Bruce, along with Gordon, provided such valuable services that Peter created the Order of St. Andrew for distinguished military service, with these Scots being the first to receive the award.

After the peace of Tilsit Napoleon wished Alexander to banish or imprison the English in Russia, but the Tsar answered, “Their ancestors have been here during past centuries and I shall not treat my old friends so ill as to consider them enemies; if they choose to remain in Russia none shall molest them.” They suffered during the French occupation of Moscow; their Church was burned, and the residence of their pastor as well as their own warehouses and dwellings. It is said that one Englishman, more astute than most, buried his treasure and a little less deep interred the body of a French soldier. The marauders seeing the newly-turned earth dug until they reached the body of their comrade, but sought no further, and the next year the Englishman removed his treasure intact. During the Crimean war, the only inconvenience the English residents suffered was the loss of trade. The police doubted whether it was lawful for the community to offer up prayers for the defeat of the Russians—the Queen’s enemies—and the matter was referred to the Emperor Nicholas, who answered that the English were “to be allowed to pray for whomsoever and whatsoever they pleased.” From the English settlers have descended men who have distinguished{283} themselves, as amongst poets, Lermontof (Lear-month); amongst diplomats, Count Balmaine (Ramsay of Balmaine) and Prince Menzikov (Menzies); among soldiers, Barclay de Tolly (from a Scotch Protestant refugee) and Skobelev (Scobie); amongst architects, Sherwood, designer of the Historical Museum, and Parland, architect of the Memorial Cathedral, St Petersburg, and in other walks of life, others the equals of these. The colonists have but one policy—to support the Government—and do not fuse freely with the Slavs. Some still cling tenaciously to the nationality of their ancestors, whilst in dress, language, manners and aspirations indistinguishable from those Russians of the class with whom they associate. Pathetic figures some; reluctant to relinquish the passport that alone links them with the land of their fathers, looked at askant by the Britons newly out, a nuisance to diplomatists, and a puzzle to the “orthodox.”{284}

After the peace of Tilsit, Napoleon wanted Alexander to either expel or imprison the English in Russia, but the Tsar replied, “Their ancestors have been here for centuries, and I won’t treat my old friends so badly as to consider them enemies. If they choose to stay in Russia, no one will bother them.” They faced hardship during the French occupation of Moscow; their church was burned down, and their pastor’s home, along with their warehouses and homes, were destroyed. It’s said that one Englishman, smarter than most, buried his treasure and not too deep beneath it, buried the body of a French soldier. The looters, seeing the disturbed soil, dug until they found their comrade’s body but didn’t dig any further, and the next year the Englishman retrieved his treasure untouched. During the Crimean War, the only trouble the English residents faced was losing trade. The police were unsure if it was legal for the community to pray for the defeat of the Russians—the Queen’s enemies—and they referred the issue to Emperor Nicholas, who responded that the English should “be allowed to pray for whoever and whatever they wanted.” From these English settlers have come individuals who have made a name for themselves, such as the poet Lermontov; among diplomats, Count Balmaine and Prince Menzikov; among soldiers, Barclay de Tolly and Skobelev; among architects, Sherwood, who designed the Historical Museum, and Parland, the architect of the Memorial Cathedral in St. Petersburg, along with others equally accomplished in various fields. The colonists share one policy—to support the government—and don’t easily mix with the Slavs. Some still hold onto their ancestral nationality, while in dress, language, behavior, and aspirations, they are indistinguishable from the Russians of their social class. They are often seen as pathetic figures, unwilling to give up the passport that connects them to their homeland, viewed suspiciously by newly arrived Britons, considered a nuisance by diplomats, and a mystery to the “orthodox.”

CHAPTER XIV

The French Invasion—and after

"Now, Robber! Look at what you've done:
Come, get ready for the conflict. This land we're fighting for is ours—
And God's revenge is close to you!
Zhukovski "Napoleon."

NOT unfrequently Russia has been treated by the powers of western Europe with less consideration for justice than they have observed in their dealings with each other, but on no occasion has a civilised country more grossly outraged the sense of right than did France by its memorable campaign of 1812. It is possible that Napoleon still felt piqued because his offer to enter the Russian army had been declined by Zaborovski in 1789—a rejection which the old general had many times keenly regretted long before 1812—and it may be that Napoleon resented his refusal by the Princess Katerina, and was disgusted that the hand of the Princess Anna, which he had subsequently sought in marriage, had been bestowed in preference upon a German princelet. It is idle to suppose that technical breaches of the treaty of Tilsit by Russia—who was unable to stop commercial relations with England—were anything more than a mere pretext for the war. Like the wolf in the fable who had determined to devour the lamb that had disturbed the lower waters of the stream, any excuse served{285} this wickedly ambitious upstart to gratify his lust for further spoils and military glory. Doubtless Napoleon—before whom Latin and Teutonic kings bowed low and their subjects trembled when he but feigned to unsheath his sword—expected that the formidable preparations he made for war would awe Russia into submission, and thus gratify his vanity: but Russia heeded his bluster as little as did England, so, with the eyes of Europe upon him, he had no option but to drink up the liquor he had uncorked. Russia doubted his seriousness, but regarded the inevitable with equanimity. It seemed improbable that France, after centuries of enlightenment and progress, with its professed love of philosophy, art and culture, should raid Russia for pelf—just as Tartars, Kalmucks, and hordes of rough unlettered barbarians out of Asia had done in ages past. If it were so to be, Russia doubted not but she could triumph over the forces of the west even as she had done over those of the east.

NOT infrequently, Russia has been treated by the powers of Western Europe with less consideration for justice than they have shown in their dealings with one another. However, there has been no instance where a civilized country has more grossly offended a sense of right than France did during its infamous campaign of 1812. It's possible that Napoleon still felt slighted because his offer to join the Russian army had been turned down by Zaborovski in 1789—a rejection that the old general regretted many times before 1812—and he may have also resented the Princess Katerina's refusal and been annoyed that Princess Anna, whom he later pursued for marriage, was given to a German prince instead. It's pointless to think that Russia's minor violations of the treaty of Tilsit—since they couldn't cut off trade with England—were anything more than a flimsy excuse for war. Like the wolf in the fable who decided to devour the lamb that disturbed the waters of the stream, any excuse was enough for this wickedly ambitious upstart to satisfy his cravings for more plunder and military fame. Doubtless, Napoleon—before whom both Latin and German kings bowed low and whose subjects trembled when he even pretended to draw his sword—thought that the massive preparations he made for war would intimidate Russia into submission, thereby feeding his ego. However, Russia paid little attention to his bluster, just as did England. So, with all of Europe watching, he had no choice but to deal with the consequences of his actions. Russia was doubtful about his seriousness but faced the inevitable with calmness. It seemed unlikely that France, after centuries of enlightenment and progress, with its professed admiration for philosophy, art, and culture, would invade Russia for wealth—just as the Tartars, Kalmucks, and hordes of rough, uneducated barbarians from Asia had done in ages past. If that were to happen, Russia had no doubt that she could triumph over the forces of the West just as she had over those of the East.

On the 10th June 1812 the French army crossed the Niemen unopposed, and five days later occupied Vilna, where Napoleon expected attack, but, unmolested for eighteen days, moved on towards Vitebsk. The Russian army, commanded by Barclay de Tolly, did nothing more than cause the invaders to manœuvre unceasingly, and advance further into the country. On the banks of the Dvina Napoleon thought to end the campaign of 1812; recuperate his army and march against Moscow the following spring; but as yet no action had been fought, so he again hurried on after the Russians, this time towards Smolensk.

On June 10, 1812, the French army crossed the Niemen River without opposition, and five days later, they took over Vilna, where Napoleon anticipated an attack. However, for the next eighteen days, he faced no resistance and continued moving toward Vitebsk. The Russian army, led by Barclay de Tolly, did little more than force the invaders to keep maneuvering and push deeper into the country. On the banks of the Dvina, Napoleon hoped to wrap up the 1812 campaign, regroup his army, and march on Moscow the following spring. But since no battles had yet taken place, he hurried after the Russians again, this time heading toward Smolensk.

It is held that the withdrawal of the Russians disconcerted Napoleon; but he had already met other armies than the English, so to him this retreat of his enemy was not new. He expected to come up with the Russians at Smolensk, but Barclay de Tolly,{286} although assuring the inhabitants of their safety, sent away the treasure and had determined to abandon the town. It was garrisoned by but one regiment when Neverovski fell back upon it after his engagement with the French at Krasnœ. Raevski, sent to his aid, entrenched his troops and determined to hold the town until the two armies under Tolly and Bagrateon, then encamped on the left bank of the Dnieper, should arrive. But they fell further back instead of advancing, and after one day’s fighting, with terrible loss, the Russians evacuated after setting fire to the town. Napoleon remained there four days, then followed the Russians towards Moscow. Notwithstanding his proclamations of amity towards the peasants, his promises of freedom for the serfs, the people began to realise that the march of the Grande Armée was as disastrous as an incursion of the Tartar Horde. The country was devastated; the houses were pillaged; the owners shot; churches deserted; horses stabled in the sacred places; holy ikons burnt; matrons and maidens ravished by these heroes of the “twenty nations” of the west. Resistance there must be and the villagers took up arms; Kutuzov took chief command of the army, but Barclay de Tolly still gave his advice, and General Sir Robert Wilson remained tactical counsellor. On August 24th (old style) the Russians gave battle on the banks of the Moskva, near Borodino. In this “battle of the generals” about 120,000 men were engaged on each side, and 80,000 were killed, among them 18 generals and 15 other officers of high rank in the French army; and 22 commanding officers on the Russian side. Over 50,000 corpses and 30,000 dead horses were found in the field of battle, and though the Russians retreated, the French halted five days, then they moved forward upon Moscow, being nearly starved and quite tired of the war. Kutuzov had then to decide whether{287} or not to risk another battle in an attempt to save Moscow.

It’s believed that the Russians’ retreat unsettled Napoleon; however, he had faced other armies besides the English, so this pullback by his enemy was nothing new to him. He expected to catch up with the Russians in Smolensk, but Barclay de Tolly, while assuring the residents of their safety, sent away the treasure and decided to abandon the town. It was only defended by one regiment when Neverovski fell back to it after his fight with the French at Krasnœ. Raevski, sent to help, fortified his troops and planned to hold the town until the two armies under Tolly and Bagration, which were camped on the left bank of the Dnieper, arrived. Instead of advancing, they fell back further, and after a day of intense fighting with heavy losses, the Russians evacuated after setting the town on fire. Napoleon stayed there for four days before following the Russians toward Moscow. Despite his declarations of goodwill toward the peasants and promises of freedom for the serfs, the people began to realize that the advance of the Grande Armée was as devastating as an invasion by the Tartar Horde. The land was ravaged; homes were looted; owners were shot; churches abandoned; horses were stabled in sacred spaces; holy icons were burned; women were assaulted by these heroes of the "twenty nations" of the west. The villagers decided to resist and took up arms; Kutuzov took overall command of the army, while Barclay de Tolly continued to provide advice, and General Sir Robert Wilson remained as a tactical advisor. On August 24th (old style), the Russians engaged in battle on the banks of the Moskva, near Borodino. In this "battle of the generals," around 120,000 men fought on each side, resulting in 80,000 casualties, including 18 generals and 15 other high-ranking officers in the French army, and 22 commanding officers on the Russian side. Over 50,000 bodies and 30,000 dead horses were recovered from the battlefield, and although the Russians retreated, the French halted for five days before they moved forward toward Moscow, nearly starving and exhausted from the war. Kutuzov then had to decide whether to risk another battle in an attempt to save Moscow.

At the Council of War, held at Fili. Barclay de Toily said that when it was a matter of the salvation of Russia, Moscow was only a city like any other. Other generals, like Grabbe, declared that although it would be glorious to die before Moscow, the question they had to decide was not what would add to their glory, but to the defeat of the enemy. Prince Eugen of Wurtemburg held that honour ought to be placed before all, and that Moscow ought to become the tomb of every true Russian, all should choose death rather than flight. Wilson, whose object was rather the defeat of Napoleon than the preservation of Russia, said Moscow, to them, must be only a city, “like any other.” Ermolev, Ostermann, Beningsen and others were in favour of a last battle. “Amid such diverse counsel.” said Kutuzov, “my head, be it good or bad, must decide for itself,” and he ordered a retreat through the town, but he himself would not enter it, and wept as he hurriedly passed the suburbs.

At the Council of War held at Fili, Barclay de Toily stated that when it came to saving Russia, Moscow was just another city. Other generals, like Grabbe, argued that while it would be honorable to die at Moscow, the real question was not about their glory but about defeating the enemy. Prince Eugen of Wurtemburg insisted that honor should come first, claiming that Moscow should become the grave of every true Russian, and that everyone should choose death over retreat. Wilson, whose main goal was to defeat Napoleon rather than to save Russia, said that for them, Moscow should be seen as just another city. Ermolev, Ostermann, Beningsen, and others supported a final battle. “With such different opinions,” Kutuzov said, “my mind, whether good or bad, must make its own decision,” so he ordered a retreat through the town, but he refused to enter it and wept as he hurriedly passed the outskirts.

During the first decade of the eighteenth century there were joyous days in Moscow; in 1801 Alexander was crowned; in 1803 he revisited the town when there were public rejoicings for the victories over the Turks; when in 1812, after the outbreak of hostilities Alexander came to Moscow, the patriotic citizens promised to raise 80,000 men in that district and equip them. The Tsar returned to St Petersburg and appointed Count Rostopchin governor; a clever man, courtier, wit, cynic, he proved an able administrator, possessed the gift of inciting and controlling the uneducated masses, so his plan to destroy the city escaped opposition from the inhabitants.

During the early 1800s, Moscow experienced some happy times; in 1801, Alexander was crowned; in 1803, he came back to the city during public celebrations for the victories over the Turks; and in 1812, after hostilities began, Alexander visited Moscow again, where the patriotic citizens pledged to raise 80,000 men in the area and equip them. The Tsar returned to St. Petersburg and appointed Count Rostopchin as governor; he was smart, a courtier, witty, and cynical, proving to be an effective administrator who had the ability to motivate and manage the uneducated masses, which allowed his plan to destroy the city to go unopposed by the locals.

Rostopchin studied the peasants’ ways and knew how to throw dust in the eyes of all. “I do everything to gain the goodwill of everybody. My two visits to the Iberian Mother of God, the freedom of access I allow to all, the verification of weights and measures, even the fifty blows with a stick to a sub-officer who made the mujiks wait too long for their salt, have won me the confidence of your devoted and faithful{288} subjects. I resolved at any disagreeable news to question its truth; by this means I weaken the first impression and before there is time to verify it, other news will come which will need to be attended to.” The Government mistrusted the people, most of whom are serfs, and might allow themselves to be tempted by the proclamations of “freedom for all” which were issued by Napoleon. Rostopchin gave the patriot Glinka 300,000 roubles to be used as would best serve the interests of Moscow, but Glinka returned the money, for all were ready enough to resist the invader. Rostopchin invented victories: he caused news of one by Ostermann and another by Wittgenstein to be promulgated, and though sensible people did not believe him, the ignorant were faithful to the end. “Fear nothing,” he said to the citizens; “a storm has come; we will dissipate it; the grist will be ground into meal. Some think Napoleon is coming to stay; others that he thinks only to skin us. He makes the soldiers expect the Field-Marshal’s baton, beggars think to get gold, and while such simpletons await him, he takes them by the neck and hurls them to death.” Again: “I will answer with my head that the scoundrel shall not enter the city; if he attempts this I shall call on all. Forward, comrades of Moscow! Let us out to fight. We shall be 100,000; we shall take with us the ikon of the Virgin, 150 guns and be sure we shall finish the affair one and all.” After Borodino he issued another proclamation: “Brothers, we are many and ready to sacrifice life for the salvation of our land, and prevent the scoundrel entering Moscow; you must help. Moscow is our mother; she has suckled us, nursed us, enriched us. In the name of the Mother of God I call on you to help to defend the Holy Places of Moscow, of Russia! Arm yourselves how you can, on foot or horseback, take only enough food for three days, go with the Holy Cross, preceded by the standards from the Churches, and assemble on the three Hills. I shall be there, and together we will exterminate the invaders. Glory in Heaven for those who go! Eternal peace for those who die! Punishment at the Last Day for all who hold back!”

Rostopchin studied the peasants’ ways and knew how to deceive everyone. “I do everything to win the goodwill of everyone. My two visits to the Iberian Mother of God, the open access I provide for all, the checks on weights and measures, and even the fifty lashes I gave to a sub-officer who made the peasants wait too long for their salt have earned me the trust of your loyal and faithful{288} subjects. I decided that whenever I hear bad news, I will question its truth; this way, I weaken the initial reaction and before it can be confirmed, new news will arrive that will need attention.” The Government distrusted the people, most of whom were serfs, and might fall for Napoleon's proclamations of “freedom for all.” Rostopchin gave the patriot Glinka 300,000 roubles to use in a way that would best serve the interests of Moscow, but Glinka returned the money, as everyone was ready to resist the invader. Rostopchin invented victories: he spread news of one by Ostermann and another by Wittgenstein, and although sensible people didn’t believe him, the ignorant remained loyal to the end. “Fear nothing,” he told the citizens; “a storm has come; we will face it; we will grind through it. Some think Napoleon is coming to stay; others believe he’s just looking to take what he can. He makes soldiers expect the Field-Marshal’s baton, and beggars think they’ll get gold, and while these fools wait for him, he grabs them by the neck and throws them to their doom.” Again: “I will put my head on the line that the scoundrel won’t enter the city; if he tries, I will call on everyone. Forward, comrades of Moscow! Let’s go out to fight. We will be 100,000 strong; we will take with us the ikon of the Virgin, 150 guns, and we will make sure to finish this together.” After Borodino, he issued another proclamation: “Brothers, we are many and ready to give our lives for the salvation of our land and to prevent the scoundrel from entering Moscow; you must help. Moscow is our mother; she has nurtured us and enriched us. In the name of the Mother of God, I call on you to help defend the Holy Places of Moscow, of Russia! Arm yourselves as you can, whether on foot or horseback, take only enough food for three days, go with the Holy Cross, led by the standards from the Churches, and gather on the three Hills. I will be there, and together we will defeat the invaders. Glory in Heaven for those who go! Eternal peace for those who die! Punishment on Judgment Day for all who hold back!”

To the last Rostopchin nursed the illusion of the citizens; he told them men were at work upon some wonderful military engine—a fire balloon—which would destroy the French army instantaneously. Meanwhile the Archbishop Augustine, who had ordered the procession{289} through the town of the ikons of the Iberian Mother of God, the Virgin of Smolensk, was instructed to take the sacred treasures to Vladimir. Rostopchin had but one serious complaint against Kutuzov; he had asked for three days’ notice if the town was to be abandoned, he got but twenty-four hours. Everything of value that could be removed was packed and sent away; there was a general exodus on the night of the 1st September (old style) and Rostopchin left with the Russian army, the rear-guard of which was quitting the city by the Preobrajenski suburb at the same time that the advance-guard of the French army entered it by the Dragomilov Zastava. Before he left Rostopchin opened the prisons, gave the lowest class the entry to the arsenal, and ordered the stores to be fired; also, he put to death one Vereshchagin, accused of publishing Napoleon’s proclamation, a deed that was no less criminal because needless. And here Rostopchin’s work ended; if he had received longer notice of Kutuzov’s decision to abandon the town he would doubtless have saved more of the valuable portable property of state and church, and might have destroyed the town. With reference to all the correspondence that ensued as to the party responsible for the firing of Moscow, it can be said only that Rostopchin and the Russians would like to have had the credit for making a so magnificent sacrifice, but it was of political expedience that the Russians should believe the destruction of the holy places and their revered city directly due to the invader.

To the end, Rostopchin held onto the illusion for the citizens; he told them that people were working on some amazing military machine—a fire balloon—that would instantly destroy the French army. Meanwhile, Archbishop Augustine, who had organized the procession{289} through the town with the icons of the Iberian Mother of God and the Virgin of Smolensk, was instructed to take the sacred treasures to Vladimir. Rostopchin had one major complaint against Kutuzov; he had requested three days’ notice if the town was going to be abandoned, but he only received twenty-four hours. Everything valuable that could be moved was packed up and sent away; there was a mass exodus on the night of September 1st (old style), and Rostopchin left with the Russian army, whose rear guard was leaving the city through the Preobrajenski suburb at the same time the French army’s advance guard was entering through the Dragomilov Zastava. Before he left, Rostopchin opened the prisons, let the lowest class into the arsenal, and ordered the stores to be set on fire; he also executed one Vereshchagin, accused of publishing Napoleon’s proclamation—a crime that was no less serious just because it was unnecessary. And this was where Rostopchin’s role ended; if he had received more notice about Kutuzov’s decision to abandon the town, he would likely have saved more of the valuable portable property of the state and church, and might have destroyed the town. Regarding all the correspondence that followed concerning who was responsible for the burning of Moscow, it can only be said that Rostopchin and the Russians would have liked to take credit for making such a grand sacrifice, but for political reasons, it was better for the Russians to believe that the destruction of their sacred places and cherished city was directly caused by the invader.

The apologists of Napoleon attribute his misconduct of the campaign to ill-health; as likely as not the thwarting of his plans by the enemy, his defeats and doubtful victories caused his illness. Whether his genius failed him or not, there can be no doubt of the magnitude of the conception and the utter ineptitude{290} exhibited in its execution. After Borodino his generals lost faith in him; they remained taciturn and morose, until at two o’clock on the afternoon of September the 2nd, the staff obtained their first view of Moscow from the summit of the Poklonnaya Hill, the “salutation” point of the Sparrow Hills. In the bright sunlight of the early autumn, the city, resplendent with gold domes and glittering crosses, seemed the fitting goal for their long deferred hopes and they of one accord raised a joyful shout, “Moscou! à Moscou!

The supporters of Napoleon blame his poor performance in the campaign on his poor health; it's just as likely that the enemy's interference with his plans, along with his defeats and uncertain victories, led to his illness. Whether his brilliance deserted him or not, there’s no doubt about the scale of his vision and the total incompetence{290} shown in its execution. After Borodino, his generals lost confidence in him; they stayed quiet and gloomy until two o’clock in the afternoon on September 2nd, when the staff got their first glimpse of Moscow from the top of Poklonnaya Hill, the “salutation” point of the Sparrow Hills. In the bright autumn sunlight, the city, shining with golden domes and sparkling crosses, appeared to be the perfect destination for their long-awaited dreams, and together they cheered, “Moscou! à Moscou!

Even Napoleon expressed his admiration and delight, and received the warm congratulations of his now enthusiastic generals. It was rumoured that an officer had arrived from the town to discuss terms of surrender: Napoleon halted, but grew uneasy when the expected messenger could not be found and there were no signs of an approaching delegate or of that deputation of gorgeously robed boyards he had fondly hoped would attend his coming to surrender the keys of the Kremlin and sue for his clemency towards the citizens. An hour before he had commanded Count Duronelle to hurry on to Moscow and arrange for the ostentatious performance of the customary ceremony. He was now told that the town had been abandoned by the officials, that the citizens had forsaken it, but Moscow, empty it is true, was at his feet. Murat had found a few stragglers, amongst them a French type-setter, and these wretched fugitives were ordered before the staff, and by their spokesman begged for protection. “Imbecile” was the only word Napoleon trusted himself to answer. His chagrin, his wounded self-love, his mortification at the unexpected turn of affairs unnerved him. One of the Russian prisoners describes the effect of the news thus:—

Even Napoleon showed his admiration and excitement, receiving warm congratulations from his now-enthusiastic generals. There were rumors that an officer had come from the town to discuss terms of surrender: Napoleon stopped but grew anxious when the expected messenger couldn’t be found, and there were no signs of an approaching delegate or that group of elegantly dressed boyards he had hoped would come to hand over the keys of the Kremlin and plead for his mercy towards the citizens. An hour earlier, he had ordered Count Duronelle to rush to Moscow and set up the grand performance of the usual ceremony. Now he was informed that the officials had abandoned the town, and the citizens had left it, but Moscow, empty as it was, lay at his feet. Murat had found a few stragglers, including a French typesetter, and these unfortunate refugees were brought before the staff, where their spokesman begged for protection. “Fool” was the only word Napoleon allowed himself to say in response. His disappointment, hurt pride, and embarrassment at the unexpected turn of events left him shaken. One of the Russian prisoners described the impact of the news like this:—

“Napoleon was thoroughly overcome and completely lost his self-control. His calm and regular step was changed into{291} a quick, uneven tread. He kept looking around him, fidgetted, stood still, trembled all over, looked fierce, tweaked his own nose, pulled a glove off and put it on again, tore another glove out of his pocket, rolled it up into a ball, and, as if in deep thought, put it into his other pocket, again took it out, and again put it back, pulled the other glove from his hand, then quickly drew it on again, and kept repeating this process. This went on for an hour, during which the generals standing behind him remained like statues, not even daring to move.”

“Napoleon was totally overwhelmed and completely lost his self-control. His calm and steady stride turned into a quick, uneven walk. He kept looking around, fidgeting, standing still, shaking all over, looking fierce, pinching his own nose, pulling a glove off and putting it back on, tearing another glove out of his pocket, rolling it up into a ball, and, as if deep in thought, putting it into his other pocket, taking it out again, and putting it back, pulling the other glove off his hand, then quickly putting it back on again, and repeating this over and over. This went on for an hour, during which the generals standing behind him remained like statues, not even daring to move.”

Various accounts are given respecting the first entry of the troops into Moscow. Some of the inhabitants who remained, having faith in the assurances of Rostopchin, welcomed the invaders believing them to be some of the foreign allies of the Russian army. An official who had not been able to escape states that he saw some serfs carrying arms from the arsenal, one, who was intoxicated had a musket in one hand and in the other a carbine, for remarking upon the folly of such an armament, the man threw first the musket then the carbine at him, and a crowd of rioters rushed from the arsenal all armed, as the advance-guard of the French approached. The captain begged an interpreter to advise the crowd to throw down their arms and not engage in an unequal struggle, but the ignorant people, excited if not intoxicated, fired a few rounds accidentally, or by design, and the French thereupon made use of their artillery, and a wild fight ensued. After some ten or a dozen had been sabred, the others asked for quarter, and received it. Another story is to the effect that some of the armed citizens mistaking a general for Napoleon, fired at him as he approached the Kremlin and were then charged by his guard and put to flight. When later, Napoleon rode up to the Borovitski Gate, a decrepid soldier, a tottering veteran, too stubborn to forsake his post, resolutely blocked the way and was mercilessly struck down by the advance-guard.

Various accounts describe the first time the troops entered Moscow. Some of the residents who stayed, trusting Rostopchin's reassurances, welcomed the invaders, thinking they were foreign allies of the Russian army. An official who couldn’t escape reported seeing some serfs carrying weapons from the arsenal. One drunk man had a musket in one hand and a carbine in the other; when he was mocked for his ridiculous armament, he threw the musket first, then the carbine at the official. A crowd of rioters rushed out from the arsenal, all armed, as the French advance guard approached. The captain pleaded with an interpreter to tell the crowd to drop their weapons and avoid an uneven fight, but the confused, possibly drunk, crowd fired a few shots—whether accidentally or on purpose. The French then used their artillery, leading to a chaotic battle. After about ten or a dozen people were killed, the rest begged for mercy and received it. Another story suggests that some armed citizens mistook a general for Napoleon and shot at him as he neared the Kremlin, only to be charged by his guards and scattered. Later, when Napoleon rode up to the Borovitski Gate, an old soldier, a trembling veteran too stubborn to leave his post, bravely stood in the way and was mercilessly struck down by the advance guard.

The fires commenced the same evening that the{292} French entered the town; there were no engines available and the soldiers, hungry and joyful, disregarded the danger and attended to their more immediate needs. Rostopchin had ordered that the contents of the “cellars” should be burned, but there was no lack of liquor, and the conquerors were not to be denied. As the “Warriors” sing in Zhukovski’s epic:—

The fires started the same evening the{292} French came into town; there were no fire engines around, and the soldiers, feeling both hungry and happy, ignored the danger and focused on their immediate needs. Rostopchin had commanded that the contents of the “cellars” should be burned, but there was plenty of liquor, and the conquerors refused to go without. As the “Warriors” sing in Zhukovski’s epic:—

"Oh, yes!—the ruby stream to drain
Is pride and pleasure of glory—
Wine! You conqueror of worry and sorrow,
You are the hero’s treasure.”

So whilst rank and file caroused, the small beginnings of the great conflagration were neglected and men were powerless to cope with the later developments, though some worked like Trojans. The stores of oil, of spirits, the inflammable wares in the Gostinnoi Dvor were ignited, and although Marshal Mortier worked well to extinguish the fires near the Kremlin, the lack of engines and the continuous outbursts of fresh fires, made complete success impossible. The looting of the town commenced at once; soon the greedy soldiers left their partly cooked rations to search for valuables, even the sentinels forsook their posts and they fought with the rabble from the prisons for such goods as seemed most easily removed. In time, not content with such as had been abandoned, they commenced to rob from the person; women were spoiled of head-dresses and gowns, the men fought with each other for the temporary possession of pelf. The only lights for this unholy work were the torches all carried and the fires the looters set ablaze in order that they might see. When Napoleon thought the conflagration was the result of a preconcerted scheme he ordered all incendiaries to be shot, and then none durst carry a light by night without risk of being there and then shot by{293} some predatory soldier on his own initiative, or, not less surely executed in due form after a mock court-martial at dawn of day.

So while the regular troops celebrated, the early signs of the massive fire were ignored, leaving people unable to handle the later chaos, even though some worked tirelessly. The oil, spirits, and flammable goods in the Gostinnoi Dvor caught fire, and although Marshal Mortier did his best to put out the flames near the Kremlin, the lack of fire engines and the constant outbreak of new fires made it impossible to succeed completely. The town was immediately looted; soon, the greedy soldiers abandoned their half-cooked meals to hunt for valuables, and even the sentinels left their posts to fight with prisoners for whatever seemed easiest to take. Eventually, not satisfied with what had been left behind, they started robbing people directly; women were stripped of their headpieces and dresses, while men fought each other for temporary possession of treasures. The only light for this wicked activity came from the torches everyone carried and the fires the looters started so they could see. When Napoleon believed the fire was part of a coordinated attack, he ordered all arsonists to be shot, causing everyone to refrain from carrying a light at night for fear of being shot on the spot by a predatory soldier or, just as likely, facing execution after a sham court-martial at dawn.{293}

Discipline was lax; among the soldiery of the army of occupation, many bold souls did just as they wished, and of their enormities, their cruelties and shameful orgies, nothing need be written. Others had leave of absence—a licence to pilfer. They not only ransacked the occupied houses, but dragged people from their hiding places, harnessed them to carts, with bayonet and worse urged them on, heavily laden, through burning streets, and saving themselves from the crumbling walls and roofs, saw their miserable captives crushed, buried, or struggling among the burning debris, and abandoned to their fate. In the immediate neighbourhood of the Kremlin the pilfering was official; in the Cathedral of the Assumption, great scales and steelyards were set up, and outside two furnaces, one for gold the other for silver, were kept ever burning to melt down the settings torn from the sacred pictures, the church vessels, the gilt ornaments, aye, even the decorations on the priests’ robes. Horses were stabled in the cathedrals and churches; Marshal Davoust slept in the sanctuary with sentinels on both sides of the “royal doors” of the ikonostas. “Destroy that mosque,” was Napoleon’s peremptory order to one of his generals with reference to the Church of the Protection of the Virgin, but he delayed executing the order finding this cathedral convenient as a stable and storehouse. At first the fire was most severe in the warehouses flanking the Grand Square and along the quays. It spread most rapidly amidst the great stores on the south side of the river. The Balchoog was a sea of flame and the whole of the Zamoskvoretski quarter was practically destroyed. On the other side the burning Gostinnoi Dvor ignited neighbouring stores{294} in the Nikolskaya, Ilyinka and elsewhere on the Kitai Gorod. The gleeds carried by a north wind threatened the palaces in the Kremlin—where, under a cloud of sparks, the buildings glowed red and seemed to many to be also burning. The ammunition had already been brought there and caused the French great anxiety. Napoleon, after a peaceful night in the royal palace, was unwilling to believe that the tires were other than accidental, but as the day waned and the fires increased in number as well as size, he grew agitated and exclaimed, “They are true to themselves these Scythians! It is the work of incendiaries; what men then are they, these Scythians!”

Discipline was loose; among the soldiers of the occupying army, many daring individuals did whatever they pleased, and there’s no need to write about their horrific actions, cruelties, and disgraceful parties. Some had leaves of absence—a license to steal. They not only looted the occupied homes but also dragged people from their hiding spots, forced them to pull carts, and pushed them on with bayonets and worse, heavily burdened, through the burning streets. While avoiding crumbling walls and roofs, they watched as their miserable captives were crushed, buried, or struggled in the burning debris, left to their fate. In the immediate vicinity of the Kremlin, the looting was official; in the Cathedral of the Assumption, large scales and weights were set up, and two furnaces were kept constantly burning outside—one for gold and the other for silver—to melt down the decorations taken from sacred images, church vessels, gilded ornaments, and even the decorations on the priests’ robes. Horses were stabled in the cathedrals and churches; Marshal Davoust slept in the sanctuary with sentinels on both sides of the "royal doors" of the ikonostas. “Destroy that mosque,” was Napoleon’s firm order to one of his generals regarding the Church of the Protection of the Virgin, but he delayed carrying out the order, finding the cathedral convenient as a stable and storehouse. Initially, the fire was most intense in the warehouses flanking the Grand Square and along the quays. It spread quickly through the large stores on the south side of the river. The Balchoog was a sea of flames, and nearly the entire Zamoskvoretski quarter was practically obliterated. On the other side, the burning Gostinnoi Dvor ignited nearby stores in Nikolskaya, Ilyinka, and other areas of Kitai Gorod. The embers carried by the north wind threatened the palaces in the Kremlin—where, under a cloud of sparks, the buildings glowed red and appeared to many to be burning. The ammunition had already been moved there, causing great anxiety among the French. After a calm night in the royal palace, Napoleon was reluctant to believe that the fires were anything but accidental, but as the day wore on and the fires grew both in number and size, he became anxious and exclaimed, “These Scythians are true to themselves! This is the work of arsonists; what kind of men are these Scythians!”

He passed the next night in the Kremlin, but not at rest. It was with the greatest difficulty that the soldiers on the roof of the palace disposed of the burning fragments that at times fell upon the metal like a shower of hail. The heat was intense; the stores of spirits exploded, and blue flames hid the yellow and orange of the burning timbers and darted with lightning rapidity in all directions, a snake-like progress through the denser parts of the town, firing even the logs of wood with which the streets were at that time paved. When the fire reached the hospitals, where 20,000 unfortunate wounded lay almost helpless, scenes of unmitigated horror were witnessed by the invaders unable to succour, and chiefly intent on their own safety. The famous Imperial Guard stationed in the Kremlin was divided into two sections; one was occupied in struggling against the fire, the other held all in readiness for instant flight. At last the Church of the Trinity caught fire, and whilst the Guard at once set about its destruction, Napoleon, with the King of Naples, Murat, Beauharnais, Berthier and his staff, left the Kremlin hurriedly for the Petrovski Palace. The Tverskaya was ablaze, passage by that way impossible;{295} the party crossed for the Nikitskaya but in the neighbourhood of the Arbat lost their way, and after many adventures and near escapes found the suburbs, and by a roundabout route reached the Palace at nightfall. In many places the fire had burned out by September the 5th, and that night a heavy rain, luckily continued during the next day, stopped the spread of the fire, and on Sunday the 8th, Napoleon returned over the still smouldering embers to his old quarters in the Kremlin. Amidst or near by the cinders of the capital, Napoleon remained for more than a month. The remaining inhabitants suffered great hardships; some fraternised with the French soldiers and helped in quenching fires, but parties accused of incendiarism were still led out almost daily to execution. The French residents were in a most pitiable condition; Napoleon could not or would not do anything for them; they, and the rest of the citizens, with many of the soldiers were soon threatened with starvation.

He spent the next night in the Kremlin, but not peacefully. The soldiers on the roof of the palace struggled to manage the burning debris that occasionally fell on the metal like a hailstorm. The heat was intense; supplies of alcohol exploded, and blue flames masked the yellow and orange of the burning wood, shooting out in all directions like a snake moving through the denser parts of the town, igniting even the wooden logs that paved the streets. When the fire reached the hospitals, where 20,000 injured people lay almost helpless, the invading forces witnessed unimaginable horror, focused mainly on their own safety. The famous Imperial Guard stationed in the Kremlin was split into two groups; one fought the fire, while the other prepared for an immediate escape. Eventually, the Church of the Trinity caught fire, and while the Guard hurried to put it out, Napoleon, along with King Murat of Naples, Beauharnais, Berthier, and his staff, rushed out of the Kremlin toward the Petrovski Palace. The Tverskaya Street was on fire, making it impossible to pass; the group crossed to Nikitskaya but got lost near the Arbat, and after many challenges and narrow escapes, finally reached the suburbs and took a roundabout path to the Palace as night fell. By September 5th, in many areas the fire had burned out, and that night, a heavy rain, which thankfully continued the next day, halted the fire's spread. On Sunday the 8th, Napoleon returned over the still-smoldering ruins to his old quarters in the Kremlin. Amidst the ashes of the capital, Napoleon stayed for over a month. The remaining residents faced severe hardships; some worked alongside the French soldiers to help extinguish fires, but groups accused of arson were still taken out to be executed almost daily. The French residents were in a truly desperate situation; Napoleon could neither help nor chose to help them, and they, along with the rest of the citizens and many soldiers, soon faced starvation.

This campaign more than any other undertaking of his life, reveals the despicable character of Napoleon as a man; even as a commander he seemed to have lost grip of the serious situation of his troops: he, who at one time could never make a mistake now only happened on the right thing by accident, and that rarely. In an impoverished province, amidst a famished population, he could not possibly winter his army, but acted as though he intended to do so. He made stupid speeches respecting the career of Peter the Great; read up the proclamations of Pugatchev, hoping to find in them something which would enable him to incite the people to rebel; tried even to make allies of the Tartars, and failed; at the same time he sent again and again to Alexander professing warm personal friendship and readiness to conclude peace. Alexander heard his{296} overtures with silent contempt. The Russian generals were mercilessly harassing the divisions of the Great Army in the provinces, and armed bands of peasants sought revenge on those invaders who had violated women and children, and desecrated the churches.

This campaign, more than any other effort in his life, shows the awful character of Napoleon as a person; even as a commander, he seemed to have lost touch with the serious situation of his troops. He, who once could do no wrong, now only stumbled upon the right decisions by chance, and that rarely. In a poor province, among a starving population, he had no chance of wintering his army, yet acted as if he planned to do so. He gave foolish speeches about the life of Peter the Great; read up on Pugatchev's proclamations, hoping to find something that would help him incite the people to revolt; even tried to win over the Tartars, but failed. At the same time, he kept reaching out to Alexander, expressing warm friendship and a desire to make peace. Alexander listened to his{296} proposals with silent disdain. The Russian generals were ruthlessly harassing the divisions of the Great Army in the provinces, and armed groups of peasants sought revenge on those invaders who had attacked women and children and desecrated the churches.

On October the 6th, Napoleon decided to begin his retreat on the morrow, and that same evening drew up a scheme for the visit of a Parisian theatrical company to Moscow and its installation there. Of precious metal from the churches of the Kremlin, nearly five tons of silver and four and a half hundredweights of gold had been melted into ingots. The great wooden cross, thirty feet in length, which surmounted Ivan Veliki, had been regilt at great cost but the year before, and the French, thinking it solid gold, threw it down. Like all the crosses, it was of worthless material, but contained a small cross of pure gold, which these disgusted pillagers failed to find.

On October 6th, Napoleon decided to start his retreat the next day. That evening, he set up a plan for a Parisian theater company to visit Moscow and get settled there. Nearly five tons of silver and four and a half hundredweights of gold from the churches of the Kremlin had been melted into ingots. The large wooden cross, which stood thirty feet tall on top of Ivan Veliki, had been regilt at a high cost just the year before. The French, thinking it was solid gold, knocked it down. Like all the crosses, it was made of worthless material, but it contained a small pure gold cross that these frustrated looters failed to find.

When the time came for Napoleon to leave Moscow he was unwilling that any should know his intention. “Perhaps I shall return to Moscow,” he said to one of his company, but as he had already given orders to Lariboisiere, the chief of artillery, to destroy the Kremlin, he doubtless, better than anyone else, knew that this could not be. Napoleon thought to destroy everything of value left standing in the town; walls, towers, palaces, churches, convents, monasteries—all were ruined. “The defeat of Murat at Tarutin forced Napoleon to hurry away earlier than he intended, and to Marshal Mortier was left the task of destruction. He having made the requisite preparations left during the night of the 11-12th October, and, not far from Fili, gave the signal by cannon for the firing of the mines. It was a terrible explosion in the darkness and stillness of night; it killed some and wounded many, and was followed quickly by minor explosions at different points.”{297}

When it was time for Napoleon to leave Moscow, he was reluctant to let anyone know his plans. “Maybe I’ll come back to Moscow,” he told one of his associates, but since he had already ordered Lariboisiere, the chief of artillery, to destroy the Kremlin, he surely understood that this wouldn’t be possible. Napoleon aimed to obliterate everything of value that remained in the city; walls, towers, palaces, churches, convents, and monasteries—all were destroyed. “Murat’s defeat at Tarutin forced Napoleon to leave sooner than he had planned, and it was Marshal Mortier who was tasked with the destruction. After making the necessary preparations, he left during the night of October 11-12 and, not far from Fili, signaled with cannon fire to detonate the mines. It was a horrific explosion in the darkness and silence of the night; it killed some and wounded many, followed quickly by smaller explosions at various points.”{297}

Napoleon failed even in this attempt; the damage done was trifling—the tower over the Nikolski Gate fell, so did one at the corner of the Kremlin wall. There were breaches here and there, but churches and other buildings remained intact. It is said that the heavy rain destroyed the trains of gunpowder to the mines, from which subsequently sixty tons of the explosive were taken. Fesanzac states Mortier intentionally used powder of bad quality, not wishing to destroy the buildings; it is more probable that he used the best he could get and that the director of artillery was unwilling to waste serviceable munitions of war he might require later.

Napoleon failed even in this attempt; the damage was minimal—the tower above the Nikolski Gate collapsed, as did one at the corner of the Kremlin wall. There were some breaches here and there, but churches and other buildings remained untouched. It's said that the heavy rain ruined the trains of gunpowder leading to the mines, from which sixty tons of the explosive were later extracted. Fesanzac claims Mortier purposely used low-quality powder because he didn't want to destroy the buildings; however, it's more likely that he used the best available and that the artillery director was reluctant to waste usable munitions he might need later.

The story of the retreat of the Grande Armée is well known and need not be recapitulated here. If the French and their allies suffered, the peasants also endured terrible hardships. Shot down for defending the honour of their wives and daughters; for protecting their property; for refusing to honour the false hundred rouble notes Napoleon had ordered to be printed in order to reward his soldiers; on any and every other pretence whatever, they yet accomplished a terrible revenge, harassing the invaders to the last. The French slew and destroyed; wrecked old walls, desecrated churches, and in sheer spite threw the spoil they could not carry further into the rivers and lakes. Wilson urged Kutuzov to engage the refugees, whom he termed ghosts roaming too far from their graves, but Kutuzov trusted to the cold and the distance to wear out the remnant of the great army. He underestimated the powers of human endurance, some 70,000 escaped of the half million or more that had invaded Russia. Napoleon, that “incomparable military genius,” does not appear on this occasion to have possessed the astuteness even of the mediæval Tartar Khans, who on their invasions withdrew “without{298} ostensible cause” at the end of the season. More selfish than they, he saved himself by deserting his men. They died like flies on the approach of winter; some were burned during their sleep by outraged peasants; more were slipped through holes in the ice; many reached Vilna only to be entrapped by the Russian soldiers, or, if still more unfortunate, tossed from the upper windows of the Ghetto and kicked to death by old polish Jewesses in the streets. Piteous? Yes, but it is the pity one feels for the burglarious murderer who falls on the spikes of the area railings. The invasion of the twenty nations had even such inglorious ending; its effect upon the Muscovites was similar to that which followed a great Tartar raid; it was unexpected—disastrous, and, as long as remembered, engendered in the Russ that same distrust of the west it had previously entertained of the east.

The story of the retreat of the Grande Armée is well known and doesn’t need to be repeated here. While the French and their allies suffered, the peasants went through horrible hardships too. They were shot for defending the honor of their wives and daughters, for protecting their property, for refusing to accept the fake hundred-rouble notes Napoleon ordered to be printed to pay his soldiers, and for countless other reasons. Yet, they achieved a terrible form of revenge, harassing the invaders until the end. The French killed and destroyed; they wrecked old walls, desecrated churches, and out of spite threw away what they couldn’t carry into the rivers and lakes. Wilson urged Kutuzov to engage the refugees, whom he called ghosts wandering too far from their graves, but Kutuzov relied on the cold and the distance to wear down the remaining men of the great army. He underestimated human endurance; about 70,000 escaped from the more than half a million that invaded Russia. Napoleon, that “incomparable military genius,” didn’t seem to have the cleverness of the medieval Tartar Khans, who retreated “without apparent reason” at the end of the season. More selfish than they, he saved himself by abandoning his men. They died like flies as winter set in; some were burned in their sleep by outraged peasants; more fell through holes in the ice; many reached Vilna only to be captured by Russian soldiers or, if even more unfortunate, thrown from the upper windows of the Ghetto and kicked to death by elderly Polish women in the streets. Sad? Yes, but it’s the kind of pity you feel for a burglar-murderer who falls onto spikes. The invasion by the twenty nations had a similarly inglorious end; its impact on the Muscovites was like the aftermath of a major Tartar raid—it was unexpected, disastrous, and as long as they remembered, it created the same distrust of the West that they had previously held toward the East.

In Moscow there are now few traces of the French invasion, for its effect was general rather than particular. The palace occupied by Napoleon has been destroyed; in its place the Tsar Nicholas built his new Imperial residence, from the windows of which may still be seen the old Borovitski Gate, by which Napoleon first entered and last left the Kremlin. Beyond that gate there is now an immense and stately pile, the magnificent new Cathedral of Our Saviour, built by the people in gratitude for their deliverance from the invaders. A monument that furnishes conclusive evidence that the spirit of earnestness which actuated the old cathedral builders is not yet extinct in Russia.

In Moscow, there are now few signs of the French invasion, as its impact was more widespread than specific. The palace taken over by Napoleon has been destroyed; in its place, Tsar Nicholas built his new Imperial residence, from the windows of which you can still see the old Borovitski Gate, where Napoleon first entered and then left the Kremlin. Beyond that gate, there's now a massive and impressive structure, the beautiful new Cathedral of Our Saviour, built by the people in gratitude for their liberation from the invaders. This monument proves that the dedication and spirit of the old cathedral builders are still alive in Russia.

One other memorial of the times will attract the attention of visitors to the Kremlin: arranged along the front of the arsenal, opposite the Senate House, are ranged the cannon captured from, or abandoned by, the Grande Armée. The inscriptions, one in French the other in Russian, on the plates to the{299}

One more reminder of the past will catch the attention of visitors to the Kremlin: lined up in front of the arsenal, across from the Senate House, are the cannons captured from or left behind by the Grande Armée. The inscriptions, one in French and the other in Russian, on the plates to the{299}



BOROVITSKI GATE AND ST SAVIOUR’S CATHEDRAL

BOROVITSKI GATE AND ST SAVIOUR’S CATHEDRAL



BOROVITSKI GATE AND ST SAVIOUR’S CATHEDRAL

Borovitski Gate and St. Saviour’s Cathedral

{300}

{300}

{301}

{301}

right and left of the principal entrance set forth the origin of these trophies. Most of the weapons have the Napoleonic initial boldly engraved upon the breech; actually only 365 are French; there are 189 Austrian, 123 Prussian, 40 Neapolitan, 36 Bavarian, 1 Westphalian, 12 Saxon, 1 Hanoverian, 70 Italian, 3 Wurtemburgian, 8 Spanish, 22 Dutch, 5 Polish—in all 875.

right and left of the main entrance displayed the origin of these trophies. Most of the weapons have the Napoleonic initial clearly engraved on the breech; actually, only 365 are French; there are 189 Austrian, 123 Prussian, 40 Neapolitan, 36 Bavarian, 1 Westphalian, 12 Saxon, 1 Hanoverian, 70 Italian, 3 Wurtemburgian, 8 Spanish, 22 Dutch, and 5 Polish—in total, 875.

Before the great fire there were over 2500 brick or stone buildings in Moscow, and about 6600 of wood; the fire destroyed over 2000 of the brick buildings and some 4500 of the wooden dwellings. It may seem strange that so many of the old buildings escaped. Of course the old convents, monasteries and churches in the suburbs, like the Novo Devichi, Simonov, Petrovski Palace, etc., were beyond the limit of the fire; the remainder, many of them, stood in their own grounds or were isolated from other buildings, much as the Strastnoi Monastyr is now. At that time, although the town limits were practically the same as at present—the line of the Kammer College rampart—the houses were fewer and, outside the Kitai Gorod, few streets consisted of continuous rows of houses. If the visitor wishes to have a clear comprehension of the sort of town, in detail, the great village of Moscow was at the beginning of this century, a drive along the Sadovia or through the side streets between that thoroughfare and the boundary will help its acquisition. More, it will bring him face to face with the best of the buildings of “Skorodom” that sprang from among the cinders of the great conflagration. A pleasant, bungalow-like, garden-town; spacious houses, with pretentious façades in the pseudo-classic style of the first empire; mostly squat and inconvenient, irregular, bright with native carpentry, stucco, painted metal roofs, and clean washed walls. It is this Moscow that is so picturesque and so{302} rapidly disappearing before the march of industrialism, sanitation, and an increasing population. When Alexander I. visited the town in 1816, great haste was made to present a fair show of dwellings in the vast open spaces; some, painted and distempered, were without windows, roofs, staircases, or even floors; these walls, then little more than the semblances of buildings, just such as now put on the stage, were later utilised by fitting dwellings, of a sort, to them. Some have long served their purpose; others, curious, quaint and singular, still remain—but he who would see them must not long delay.

Before the big fire, there were over 2,500 brick or stone buildings in Moscow, and about 6,600 wooden ones; the fire destroyed more than 2,000 brick buildings and around 4,500 wooden homes. It might seem odd that so many old buildings survived. Naturally, the old convents, monasteries, and churches in the suburbs, like Novo Devichi, Simonov, and Petrovski Palace, were outside the fire's reach; many others were on their own grounds or separated from other buildings, much like the Strastnoi Monastyr is now. At that time, even though the town limits were almost the same as they are now—the line of the Kammer College rampart—the houses were fewer, and outside Kitai Gorod, few streets had continuous rows of houses. If a visitor wants to get a clear understanding of what the great village of Moscow was like at the beginning of this century, a drive along Sadovia or through the side streets between that main road and the boundary will help with that. Furthermore, it will introduce them to the best buildings of "Skorodom" that emerged from the ashes of the great fire. It is a charming, bungalow-like garden town; spacious houses with flashy facades in the pseudo-classic style of the early empire; mostly squat and awkward, irregular, bright with local carpentry, stucco, painted metal roofs, and freshly washed walls. This is the Moscow that is so picturesque and so{302} quickly disappearing due to industrialization, sanitation, and a growing population. When Alexander I visited the city in 1816, there was a rush to show off a good number of homes in the vast open spaces; some, painted and with decorative plaster, had no windows, roofs, staircases, or even floors; these walls, barely resembling buildings, like those used on stage, were later fixed up to create livable homes, of a sort. Some have long served their purpose; others, curious, quaint, and unique, still remain—but anyone who wants to see them should not wait too long.

With reference to the historic and sacred buildings, those answerable for their keeping sought only to restore, enrich, and preserve. At no time has Moscow possessed more or better memorials of the past than she does at present. The risk of destruction by fire has greatly lessened; of further demolition by ruthless invaders there is, happily, no longer a possibility, and the slower but not less certain destruction from the inroad of industrialism may be stayed by the timely awakening of the Moscow citizens to the value of the relics they possess, and the desire not only to preserve them for their own sake, but also as ornaments to the old town of which all are so fond and now anxious to beautify.{303}

With regard to the historic and sacred buildings, those responsible for their care aimed only to restore, enhance, and protect them. At no point has Moscow had more or better memorials of its past than it does now. The threat of destruction by fire has significantly decreased; thankfully, there is no longer a risk of further demolition by ruthless invaders, and the gradual but certain destruction from the rise of industrialism may be halted by the timely awareness of Moscow's citizens about the value of their heritage, along with their desire to preserve these relics not just for themselves but also as beautiful features of the beloved old town that everyone wants to enhance.{303}

CHAPTER XV

Itinerary and Miscellaneous Information

“Some few particulars I have set down fit to be known of your crude traveller.”—Ben Jonson.

“Here are a few details I thought you should

TO many Moscow seems so far distant, and Russia so unknown, that a few hints to intending travellers may be welcome. In the first place as to the best season for the journey; notwithstanding all the claims advanced in favour of winter—and they are not inconsiderable—for a first visit, or an only visit, the summer is preferable. Moscow, the brilliant and gorgeous is seen at its best in the bright sunlight; it is more picturesque and more conveniently to be viewed in detail or entirety. The latter part of June is the best period for then is the season of the “white nights” when there is no need of street lamps and the days are more than long enough for sight-seeing.

To many, Moscow seems far away, and Russia feels so unfamiliar that some advice for potential travelers might be helpful. First, let’s talk about the best time to visit; despite all the arguments for winter— which are definitely valid—for a first or only trip, summer is a better choice. Moscow, vibrant and stunning, is at its best in bright sunlight; it’s more picturesque and easier to explore in detail or as a whole. The end of June is the ideal time to go because that’s when the “white nights” occur, meaning there’s no need for street lamps and the days are long enough for plenty of sightseeing.

The shortest and best route is by way of Flushing, Berlin, Warsaw and Smolensk: distance from London 1800 miles; time 65 hours. Return tickets available for six weeks may be purchased at any London terminus: first class £16, 13s. 9d., second class £10, 19s. 7d. Through travellers should start by the night service from London, and change trains in Berlin at the Zoologischer Garten station; leave Moscow by the 5 P.M. train and in Berlin change at the{304} Alexanderplatz station; by these through services the drive across Warsaw is avoided.

The quickest and best route is through Flushing, Berlin, Warsaw, and Smolensk: the distance from London is 1800 miles, taking about 65 hours. You can buy return tickets valid for six weeks at any London train station: first class costs £16, 13s. 9d., and second class costs £10, 19s. 7d. Travelers should take the night service from London and change trains in Berlin at the Zoologischer Garten station; leave Moscow on the 5 P.M. train and switch trains in Berlin at the{304} Alexanderplatz station; taking these direct services allows you to skip the drive through Warsaw.

Of the many other routes that recommended as the most enjoyable is via Gothenburg, by the canal to Stockholm and thence by the excellent steamers to Abo, Hango, Helsingfors or direct to St Petersburg and on to Moscow by the Nikolai railway. By all routes a Foreign Office passport, visé by the Russian Consul, is indispensable.

Of the many other routes that are recommended as the most enjoyable is via Gothenburg, along the canal to Stockholm, and then by the excellent steamers to Abo, Hango, Helsingfors, or directly to St. Petersburg and on to Moscow by the Nikolai railway. For all routes, a Foreign Office passport, visa by the Russian Consul, is essential.

Compared with the leading hotels in other great towns, those of Moscow leave much to be desired. Hotel Billo on the Great Lubianka is centrally situated and much frequented by the English visitors, who there find adequate accommodation and the greatest courtesy. Hotel Dresden, on the Tverskaya, is upon even higher ground, opposite the residence of the Governor-General; Hotel Continental facing the Grand Theatre, and the Moskovski Traktir, opposite the Vosskresenski Gate, are also well kept and are near the Kremlin; the Slavianski Bazaar is in the Kitai Gorod. The Russian custom, which it is advisable should be followed if a long stay is made, is to take rooms in a hotel or elsewhere; the rent includes heating in winter, and the use of the samovar twice daily. The Kokoref Hotel, on the south side of the river, is one of the largest establishments on this plan and many of its rooms command superb views of the Kremlin (see p. 13) and are in demand by English visitors on this account. The restaurants are good; in summer the visitor should not fail to lunch in the lofty court of the Slavianski Bazaar which, like the Bolshoi Moskovski Traktir, is much used by business men. For native dishes the Praga, on the Arbat, and Tyestov’s, on the Vosskresenski Place, are the best; the Ermitage, on the Trubaya is more ostentatious, but the cuisine is good; the Saratov (Srietenka{305} Boulevard) is favoured by university students. At all the service is excellent, and the old-fashioned attire of the waiters unconventional and pleasing. The peculiarly local dishes comprise: ikra (fresh caviare), batvennia and okroshka (iced soups), shchee (cabbage soup with sour cream), ukha (fish soup), beluga, osternia, etc. (different varieties of sturgeon), porosianok (cold boiled sucking pig with horse-radish sauce), rasolnik, yazu and barannybok are made dishes; the appropriate beverage is one of the many varieties of kvas, which will be served iced in fine old silver beakers or tankards of native workmanship. Tea with lemon at the Café Philipov, on the Tverskaya.

Compared to the best hotels in other major cities, those in Moscow have quite a bit of room for improvement. Hotel Billo on the Great Lubianka is centrally located and popular among English visitors, who find decent accommodations and excellent service there. Hotel Dresden on Tverskaya is even better positioned, right across from the Governor-General’s residence; Hotel Continental faces the Grand Theatre, while the Moskovski Traktir is across from the Vosskresenski Gate. Both are well-maintained and close to the Kremlin; the Slavianski Bazaar is located in Kitai Gorod. For longer stays, it's advisable to rent a room in a hotel or other place, which usually includes heating in winter and access to a samovar twice daily. The Kokoref Hotel, on the south side of the river, is one of the largest hotels that works this way, and many of its rooms offer stunning views of the Kremlin (see p. 13), making it popular with English visitors. The restaurants are good; in summer, visitors shouldn’t miss lunching in the spacious courtyard of the Slavianski Bazaar, which, like the Bolshoi Moskovski Traktir, is a favorite among business people. For traditional Russian dishes, Praga on the Arbat and Tyestov's on Vosskresenski Place are the top choices. The Ermitage on Trubaya is more flashy, but the food is good; the Saratov on Srietenka Boulevard is popular with university students. Service is excellent everywhere, and the old-fashioned outfits worn by the waiters are charming and unique. Local specialties include ikra (fresh caviar), batvennia, and okroshka (cold soups), shchee (cabbage soup with sour cream), ukha (fish soup), various types of sturgeon like beluga and osternia, porosianok (cold boiled pig with horse-radish sauce), rasolnik, yazu, and barannybok. The perfect drink to accompany these dishes is one of the many types of kvas, typically served cold in beautiful old silver beakers or native tankards. For tea with lemon, Café Philipov on Tverskaya is a great option.

Many tourists whilst on a yachting cruise in the Baltic avail themselves of the steamer’s stay in the Neva to make a hurried visit to Moscow. To them, and others whose stay is necessarily of short duration, the following itinerary may be useful:—

Many tourists on a yacht cruise in the Baltic take advantage of the steamer's stop in the Neva to make a quick visit to Moscow. For them, and others who have a limited amount of time, the following itinerary may be helpful:—

(1) Drive through the Kitai Gorod, the Grand Square, across the Moskvoretski bridge, along the quay to the Kammeny Most; cross the river and enter the Kremlin by the Troitski Gate and alight at Ivan Veliki. Visit the cathedrals and monasteries of the Kremlin (Chs. viii., ix.); the Great Palace and Terem (Ch. vii.); Potieshni Dvorets (Ch. viii.). Later drive out to the Novo Devichi Convent (Ch. xii.); thence to the ferry before sunset, dine at the Restoran Krinkin, return to the Mala Kammeny Most by steamer—or by tram to the Kaluga Place—see the Kremlin by moonlight from the Kokoref.

(1) Drive through Kitai Gorod, the Grand Square, across the Moskvoretski Bridge, along the quay to the Kammeny Most; cross the river and enter the Kremlin through the Troitski Gate and get off at Ivan Veliki. Visit the cathedrals and monasteries of the Kremlin (Chs. viii., ix.); the Great Palace and Terem (Ch. vii.); Potieshni Dvorets (Ch. viii.). Later, drive out to the Novodevichy Convent (Ch. xii.); then head to the ferry before sunset, dine at the Restoran Krinkin, and return to the Mala Kammeny Most by steamer—or by tram to Kaluga Place—see the Kremlin by moonlight from the Kokoref.

(2) Iberian Chapel (Ch. vii.); Historical Museum (Ch. ii.); Treasury (Orujni Palata) in the Kremlin (Ch. vii.); Spass na Boru (Ch. ix.); Ascension Convent (Ch. xii.); through the Redeemer Gate (Ch. xiii.); Vasili Blajenni (Ch. iv.); Old Gostinni Dvor, Dom Romanovykh (Ch. xi.); walk up the{306} Starai Ploshchad, inside wall of the Kitai Gorod, to Church of St Nicholas of the Great Cross. Then up through the market, or outside the wall to the Vladimirski Vorot (Ch. ix.); the churches and monasteries in the Nikolski to St Mary of Kazan behind the Town Hall. Later up the Lubianka to the church and monastery of the Srietenka (Ch. x.); the Sukharev Bashnia, along the boulevard to the Strastnoi Monastery (Ch. xii.); drive past the Triumphalnia to Khodinski Pole, the Petrovski Palace, Park, etc.

(2) Iberian Chapel (Ch. vii.); Historical Museum (Ch. ii.); Treasury (Orujni Palata) in the Kremlin (Ch. vii.); Spass na Boru (Ch. ix.); Ascension Convent (Ch. xii.); through the Redeemer Gate (Ch. xiii.); Vasili Blajenni (Ch. iv.); Old Gostinni Dvor, Dom Romanovykh (Ch. xi.); walk up the{306} Starai Ploshchad, inside the wall of the Kitai Gorod, to the Church of St Nicholas of the Great Cross. Then go up through the market, or outside the wall to the Vladimirski Vorot (Ch. ix.); visit the churches and monasteries in the Nikolski to St Mary of Kazan behind the Town Hall. Later, head up the Lubianka to the church and monastery of the Srietenka (Ch. x.); to the Sukharev Bashnia, along the boulevard to the Strastnoi Monastery (Ch. xii.); drive past the Triumphalnia to Khodinski Pole, the Petrovski Palace, Park, etc.

Note.—The Dom Romanovykh is usually open from 11 until 2 on Tuesdays, Thursdays and Saturdays; the Treasury on the same days; and the Great Palace, Terem, etc., on alternate days with these.

Note.—The Dom Romanovykh is usually open from 11 AM to 2 PM on Tuesdays, Thursdays, and Saturdays; the Treasury has the same schedule; and the Great Palace, Terem, etc., are open on alternating days.

(3) English Church, Conservatorium, old and new Universities, Manege, Rumiantsev Museum (Ch. x.); New Cathedral (Ch. xiv.). Later to the Tretiakov Gallery (Ch. x.); the Danilovski and Donskoi Monastyrs (Ch. xii.); drive home across the Krimski Bridge, Skorodom and the Sadovia.

(3) English Church, Conservatorium, old and new Universities, Manege, Rumiantsev Museum (Ch. x.); New Cathedral (Ch. xiv.). Then to the Tretiakov Gallery (Ch. x.); the Danilovski and Donskoi Monasteries (Ch. xii.); drive home across the Krimski Bridge, Skorodom, and the Sadovia.

(4) Matveiev memorial (Ch. x.); Church of St Nicholas, Church of the Nativity (Ch. viii.); Foundling Hospital, Novo Spasski Monastyr (Ch. xii.); Krutitski Vorot (p. 142); Simonov Monastyr (Ch. xii.) and return. Later to Krasnoe Vorot and Prud, and Sokolniki.

(4) Matveiev memorial (Ch. x.); Church of St Nicholas, Church of the Nativity (Ch. viii.); Foundling Hospital, Novo Spasski Monastyr (Ch. xii.); Krutitski Vorot (p. 142); Simonov Monastyr (Ch. xii.) and return. Later to Krasnoe Vorot and Prud, and Sokolniki.

(5) Taininskoe; Church, Palace and Park at Ostankina, Mordva (Ch. xi.); Petrovski-Razoomovski, etc.

(5) Taininskoe; Church, Palace, and Park at Ostankina, Mordva (Ch. xi.); Petrovski-Razoomovski, etc.

Drives from the City

(a) Over the Dragomilov Bridge to the village of Fili, memorial church, and izba with a museum of memorials of the Council of War held there by Napoleon in 1812 (Ch. xiv.).

(a) Over the Dragomilov Bridge to the village of Fili, memorial church, and izba with a museum of memorials from the Council of War held there by Napoleon in 1812 (Ch. xiv.).

(b) By the Krestovski Zastava to the old church{307} of the regency at Taininskoe; the seventeenth century church at Ostankina; near by is the “Palace,” a wooden mansion belonging to the Sheremetiev family; beyond the park and village of Sirlovo is the Mordva hamlet, (Ch. xii.).

(b) By the Krestovski Zastava to the old church{307} of the regency at Taininskoe; the seventeenth-century church at Ostankina; nearby is the “Palace,” a wooden mansion owned by the Sheremetiev family; beyond the park and village of Sirlovo is the Mordva hamlet, (Ch. xii.).

(c) By the Preobrajenski Zastava to the suburb of that name (Ch. vii.), and Transfiguration Cemetery, and principal establishment of the Bezpopovtsi sect of Old Believers (Ch. ix.).

(c) By the Preobrajenski Zastava to the suburb of that name (Ch. vii.), and Transfiguration Cemetery, and main site of the Bezpopovtsi sect of Old Believers (Ch. ix.).

(d) By the Rogojski Zastava to the cemetery and church of that name for the religious services of the Old Believers, (Ch. ix.).

(d) By the Rogojski Zastava to the cemetery and church of that name for the religious services of the Old Believers, (Ch. ix.).

Train Trips

Few visitors to Moscow leave Russia without seeing the Troitsa Monastery (67 versts on the Yaroslav Railway), mentioned in Chapter v. and elsewhere, but although closely connected with the history of Moscow not within the scope of this book. Other places of like or different interest are: the New Jerusalem Monastery near Krukova, 36 versts on the Nikolai Railway and about 14 miles thence by road; the battlefield of Borodino, (114 versts on the Smolensk Railway); Nijni-Novgorod, 410 versts, but the pleasure fair has been discontinued and the celebrated yearly market is now exclusively commercial.

Few visitors to Moscow leave Russia without seeing the Troitsa Monastery (67 versts on the Yaroslav Railway), mentioned in Chapter v. and elsewhere. However, while it's closely tied to Moscow's history, it's not included in this book. Other places of similar or different interest are: the New Jerusalem Monastery near Krukova, 36 versts on the Nikolai Railway and about 14 miles from there by road; the battlefield of Borodino (114 versts on the Smolensk Railway); and Nijni-Novgorod, which is 410 versts away, but the pleasure fair has been discontinued and the famous yearly market is now strictly commercial.

References

Of the English books treating of Old Muscovy the best contemporaneous accounts have been reprinted in the five volumes of the Hakluyt Society’s publications devoted to early travels in Russia. The best contemporary Life of Peter I. in English is that by Alex. Gordon; among the best recently published,{308} the translation of K. Waliszewski’s study, and Eugene Scuyler’s account of the Life and Times of Peter the Great. For matters ecclesiastical Albert F. Heard’s Russian Church and Russian Dissent will be found most informing, and Mr W. J. Birkbeck’s history of the Eastern Church Society’s work of more particular interest to Anglicans. In another field Mr Alfred Maskell’s “Russian Art” may be found useful, and the antiquary will find much that is curious and suggestive in “L’Art Russe: ses origines,” etc., by E. E. Viollet le Duc (Paris, 1877).

Of the English books about Old Muscovy, the best contemporary accounts are reprinted in the five volumes of the Hakluyt Society’s publications focused on early travels in Russia. The best contemporary biography of Peter I in English is by Alex. Gordon; among the best recent publications,{308} are the translation of K. Waliszewski’s study and Eugene Scuyler’s account of the Life and Times of Peter the Great. For ecclesiastical matters, Albert F. Heard’s Russian Church and Russian Dissent is very informative, and Mr. W. J. Birkbeck’s history of the Eastern Church Society’s work is particularly relevant for Anglicans. In a different area, Mr. Alfred Maskell’s “Russian Art” is useful, and the antiquarian will find much that is interesting and thought-provoking in “L’Art Russe: ses origines,” etc., by E. E. Viollet le Duc (Paris, 1877).

Photography

Amateur photographers should join the Russian Photographic Society, whose members alone have the right to photograph throughout the empire. Otherwise it will be necessary to obtain permission of the chief of the police in each town or district. The Kremlin is technically a fortress, and the use of the camera within the walls forbidden, but leave is given—on personal application to the Governor—to those who are already furnished with the police permit, or are members of the Photographic Society. Application for membership should be made, prior to visiting Russia, to the Secretary, Russian Photographic Society, Dom Djamgarof, Kusnetski Most, Moscow.{309}

Amateur photographers should join the Russian Photographic Society, as only its members have the right to take photos throughout the empire. Otherwise, you'll need to get permission from the local police chief in each town or area. The Kremlin is actually a fortress, and taking photos within its walls is not allowed, but those who have a police permit or are members of the Photographic Society can apply to the Governor for special permission. To join the society, you should apply before visiting Russia by contacting the Secretary, Russian Photographic Society, Dom Djamgarof, Kusnetski Most, Moscow.{309}


{146kb} {489kb}
Plan of MOSCOW


{146kb} __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__{489kb}
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__

INDEX

A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, J, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_14__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_15__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_16__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_17__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_18__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_19__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_20__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_21__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_22__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_23__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_24__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_25__

A
Adashef, 50, 52.
Alarm Tower, 58.
Aleviso, Fioraventi, 44, 148.
Alexander Gardens, 15, 153, 224.
Alexandrina Palace, 264.
Alexis, St, 23, 176, 253 ff.
Alexis, Tsar, 116, 120 ff, 134, 137.
All Saints’ Church, 205.
All Saints’ Day, Fire on, 257.
Ambrose, Archbishop, 257.
Amusements, 237.
Annunciation, Cath. of, 293 ff. and see Blagovieshchenski Sobor, Church of, 149.
Arbat, 49, 82, 225, 295.
Archangelski Sobor, 190 ff.
Architecture, Muscovite, 3, 223, 302;
arches, 168;
Church, 181,
diversity of, 225;
Domestic, 169, 225, 228;
Ecclesiastical, 177;
Origin of Muscovite, 168;
of “Skorodom,” 220, 301.
Arms of Moscow, 36, 125.
—— of Romanofs, 125.
—— of Russia, 36.
Art, Bookbinders’, 192;
Byzantine examples, 122, 142, 261;
church, 192, 194;
decorative, 246;
ecclesiastic, 182;
frescoes, 192;
gems and jewellery, 198;
Gothic influence on Muscovite, 141, 280;
ikon-portraiture, 183;
metal work, 243;
pictorial, 221;
wall-paintings, 188, 195.
Askold and Dyr, 5.
Ascension Convent, 257, and see Vossnesenski.
Assumption, Cath. of, 185 ff;
and see Uspenski Sobor.
—— Church of, 89.

B
Baati, 16.
Balaam, Metrop., 253.
Barmi, 140.
Basmanovs, 74, 91, 98.
Beards and Fines, 216.
Belskis, 81, 91.
Best, Harry, 240.
Bells, Founding, 159.
—— Moscow, 157 ff.
Belvederes, 41, 117, 154.
Bibliography, 307.
Bielo-Gorod, 40, 82, 207.
Bielo-Ozersk, 52, 92.
Black Clergy, 253.
Blagovieshchenski Sobor, 44, 130, 193 ff.
Blessed Willie,” 67.
Blessing the Water, 150.
Bogoloobski, Andrew, 15, 87.
Bogoyavlenni Monastyr, 27, 255.
Bomel, Dr E., 72, 278.
Borodino, Battle of, 286.
Borovitski Vorot, 41, 291, 299.
Bowes, Jeremy, 43, 62.
Boyards, 63;
customs of, 227;
duma of, 81, 134.
Brides of the Tsars, 118, 120.
Bruce, Field-Marshal, 210;
Tomb of, 261.
Byzantium and Moscow, 32.
—— Style of in, 261.
—— Symbols of, 140.

C
Cannon, 96, 160, 300.
Carriages and Harness, 140.
Caspian, Jenkinson on the, 273.
Cathedrals, Location of, 164;
see Sobor and Xram.
Chancellor, R., 132, 276.
Chani-Bek, 253.
Chapel of St Dmitri, 189.
—— St Gabriel, 196.
—— St George, 196.
—— Sts. Peter and Paul, 189.
—— St Samon, 197.
see also Church.
Characteristics of boyards, 100, 115, 237.
—— Ivan IV., 78.{310}
Characteristics of Peter I., 206.
—— Moscow, 1, 141, 301.
—— Moscow Citizens, 237.
—— Moscow Princes, 10, 47.
Charm of Moscow, 225, 252.
Chasovia, see Chapels.
Chastok, 245.
Chemiaki, 28, 31, 145.
Chibanov, 53.
Christianity in Russia, 3, 6, 32, 86-95, 174 ff.
Chudov Monastyr, 92, 253 ff.
Church, Russian, 172 ff;
feasts of, 263, and Tsar, 55, 69, 116, 215;
and Western Church, 32, 95;
saves Moscow, 23, 101.
Church of St Ambrose, 266.
—— St Balaam, 266.
—— St Catherine, 259.
—— Sts Constantine and Helen, 174.
—— St George, 259.
—— St James, 266.
—— St Jehosaphat, 266.
—— St John the Baptist, 130, 148.
—— St Lazarus, 41, 45, 127.
—— St Nikanor, 266.
—— St Nikolas, 209.
—— St Prokhor, 266.
—— St Saviour’s, 161.
—— the Apostles, 188.
—— Nativity and Flight, 127.
—— Our Saviour on High, 128, 161.
—— Vasili Blajenni, 47, 65, 179.
Churches of the Bielo-Gorod, 205, 209, 225.
—— Kitai-Gorod, 204.
—— Kremlin, 185.
—— Palace, 127 ff.
—— Suburbs, 246, 249, 307.
—— Zemlianni-Gorod, 181, 209, 225.
Citizens and Tsar, 34, 54.
City of Churches, 138.
Constantinople, see Byzantium.
Convent, Ascension, 257.
—— Conception, 260.
—— Nativity, 251.
—— Nikitski, 224.
—— Novo Devichi, 265.
—— Strastnoi (Passion), 260, 301.
—— Zachatievski, 260.
Convent-Life, 258, 269.
Cossacks, 91, 263.
Crimean War and English in Moscow, 282.
Cross, Pre-Christian, 7;
Russian, 182, 196.
Cruelties, 33, 49 ff, 150, 212, 215, 232, 240, 246, see also Ivan IV. and Peter I.
Customs, of early Slavs, 7;
of Mediæval Moscow, 132;
curious, 248, 265.

D
Daniel Mikhailovich, 17.
Danilovski Monastyr, 17, 264.
Delagardie, General, 100.
Dissent and Dissenters, 202, 204 ff.
Diversity of Moscow, 225.
Dmitri Donskoi, 23, 139 ff.
—— “first false,” 91 ff.
—— Ivanovich, 51, 85.
—— “second false,” 101, 103, 107.
—— of the “terrible eyes,” 19.
Dogma and Ritual, 177, 200.
Dolgoruki, family, 15, 118.
—— Yuri, 12.
Dom Chukina, 223.
Dom Romanovykh, 108.
—— Usupov, 219.
Domostroi, 50, 235.
Don Cossacks, 91, 105.
Donskoi Monastyr, 82, 263.
Drinking habits, 235-236.
Dukhobortsi, 203.
Duma of the boyards, 134.

E
Ediger, 27.
English in Moscow, 54, 58, 62, 210, 270 ff.
Epiphany, 255, and see Bogoyavlenni.
Etiquette, Muscovite, 43, 97.
Eudoxia, (Donskoi), 258.
—— Striechnev, 119.
—— Lapunov, 216.
Euphrosina, 258.
Express trains, 303.

F
Fairs, 38, 238.
Famine, 38, 106.
Fioraventi, Aleviso, 44, 148.{311}
Fire, The great, 290 ff.
Fires in Moscow, 16, 23, 25, 49, 50, 104, 227.
Florence, Council of, 32.
Florovski, v. Spasski Vorot.
Food of Muscovites, 234, 305.
Foreigners in Moscow, 23, 33, 52, 54, 58, 62, 64, 73, 99, 139, 274 ff, 295.
Foundling Hospital, 269.
French cannon captured, 160, 297.
—— Invasion, 284 ff; settlers, 295.

G
Gaden, Dr, 212.
Galitzin, Kniaz, 145.
Galloway, Chris, 157, 280.
Gates, see Vorot.
George, Prince, 17.
—— St. 125, 259.
Glinski, Helena, 38, 47.
Gluiski, 49, 71.
Godunov, Boris, 73, 80 ff, 85.
—— Theodore, 92.
Golden Gates, 133.
—— Hall, 131.
—— Horde, see Tartars.
—— Palace, 82, 128.
—— —— Lesser, 82, 112, 127.
Good Companions,” 26.
Gordon, Patrick, 281.
—— Alexander, 282.
Gostinnoi Dvok, 293.
Granovitaia Palata, 38, 43, 124, 131.
Greeting, Manner of, 242, 244.
Griffins, Heraldic, 125.

H
Hamilton, Miss, 278.
Herberstein, 43, 231.
Hermogen, Patriarch, 103.
Historical Museum, 6, 178.
Holy Bread,” 255, 260.
—— Coat, 189.
—— Corridor, 131.
—— Moscow, 205.
—— Vestments, 165.
Horsey, Jerom, 47, 58, 64, 71, 79, 85, 88, 274.
—— Adventures of, 276 ff.
Hotels, 304.
Houses, early dwellings, 7;
in Skorodom, 223;
of Russia Company, 277,
see also Dom.

I
Iberian Chapel, 143, and see Vosskresenski Vorot.
Igor, 5.
Ikonostas, 129, 187, 191, 254.
Ikons, 129.
—— in relievo, 184.
—— miraculous, 257, 259, 288.
—— “Nerukotvorenni,” 182 ff, 201, 262.
—— “Not made with hands,” 182 ff, 201.
—— private and personal, 245.
—— remarkable, 196.
—— trimorphic, 254, 257.
—— Varieties of, 183.
—— Virgin of Pechersk, 196.
—— Virgin of Vladimir, 187, 257.
—— Wonder-working, 259.
Ilyinka, Vorot, 39.
Irene, Princess, 80-82, 87.
Ivan I., 21 ff.
Ivan II., 23.
Ivan III., 32-36.
Ivan IV., 47 et seq.,
anecdotes of, 53, 61 ff;
atrocities of, 49 ff, 57 ff., 241;
tricks of, 53, 69;
victims of, 76;
wives, 77;
wizards, 77.
Ivan V., 241.
Ivan “Groznoiv. Ivan IV.
Ivan the idiot, 68.
Ivan Kalita v. Ivan I.
Ivan Krestitel v. St John the Baptist.
Ivan “the Terrible” v. Ivan IV.
Ivan Veliki, 88, 155.

J
Jenkinson, Anthony, 272.
Jerusalem Gate, 151.
Jitny Dvor, 149.
John v. Ivan.
John the Baptist, 22, 128.

K
Kammer College Rampart, 209, 307.
Karamzin, 145.
Kazak v. Cossack.
Kazan, 32, 38, 51.
—— Virgin of, 259.
Kazi-Ghiree, Khan, 82, 88.
Khingiz, Khan, 16, 25.{312}
Khlysti, 203.
Kholmogori, 271.
Kief, 5, 9, 22, 253.
Kitai-Gorod, 38, 82, 104, 147, 205, 238, 277, 301.
Kontchaka, 19.
Kourbski, Prince, 53.
Krasnœ Kriltso, 126, 164.
—— Ploshchad, 110, 238.
—— Vorot, 219.
—— Ugol, 132.
Kremlin, 13, 22, 40;
derivation of, 22;
dwellings in, 40;
sights of, 147 ff;
view of, 13;
walls, 23, 149.
Krim-Tartars, 82.
Krimski-Brode, 265.
Krimski-val, 265.
Krutitski Vorot, 122, 142.
Kulikovo, 139.
Kutaifa, 154.
Kutchko, Stephen, 12.
Kuznetski Most, 208.

L
Latin in Moscow, 145.
Lazarus, Church of St, 41, 45, 127.
Le Bruyn, 232.
Legal Procedure, 239.
Libraries, 257.
Life for the Tsar,” 110.
Lithuania, 52, 76, 82.
Lobnœ Mesto, 93, 152, 251.

M
Mahommedans and Muscovites, 17, 23, 28, 34, 38, 64, 182, 265.
Maiden’s Field, 265, and see Novo Devichi.
Mamai, Khan, 23 ff.
Marina-Roshcha, 209.
Marosseika, 218.
Marriage customs, 232, 241, 250.
Mary of Vladimir, 187, 257.
—— Church of, 204.
Matvievs, 121, 130.
Medich, 147.
Miaschanska, 209.
Michael, Tsar, 109, 111 ff.
Milosavskis, 120, 259.
Minin, Cosma, 106, 114.
Mniszek, Maria, 97, 100, 113, 258.
Monasteries, early, 27;
existing, 253 ff;
see also Convents.
Monks and Monasticism, 253 ff.
Mordva, 249.
Morozof, Boyard, 73.
—— Boyarina, 202, 222.
Moscow, Arms of, 36;
charm of, 2, 226, 251;
derivation of name, 11;
fires in, 16, 23, 25, 49, 104, 227;
the golden, 141;
looted by the French, 293;
sieges of, 25, 27, 91, 105, 152;
unconventionality of, 2;
views in, 1, 251;
winter in, 226.
Moshi, 177, 255.
Moskva river, 100, 150, 153, 264.
Most (Bridge), Kuznetski, 208;
Kammeni, 305;
Krasnœ Kholmski, 262;
Krimski, 265.
Mstislavskis, 82, 91.
Muscovy and Britain, 73, 270.
—— Lithuania, 37.
—— Livonia, 33.
—— Poland, 81 ff, 132.
—— Tartary, 23 ff, 132.
Muscovites of British descent, 283.
—— allied with Tartars, 21.
Museums, 220.
Mystery Plays, 142.

N
Napoleon, 124, 290 ff.
Naryshkin, Family of, 121.
Natalia, Tsaritsa, 121, 130.
Nativity, see Rojdestva, 181.
—— Church of 181.
—— Convent of, 251.
Neglinnaia, 15, 49, 153.
New Rows, 238.
Nicholas, patron saint, 184.
—— of Galstun, 157.
—— Stylite, 218.
Nijni-Novgorod, 38, 307.
Nikita, Saint, 224.
—— the preacher, 203.
—— Romanof, 277.
Nikolskava, 153.
Nikolski Vorot, 24, 153, 297.
Nikon, 177, 201.
Nobles, Muscovite, 42, 81, 87, 114.
Novgorod the Great, 5, 38, 57.
Novi Riadi, 238.
Novo Devichi Convent, 87, 265.
Novo Spasski Monastyr, 262.{313}

O
Oddities, 208, 248.
Old Believers,” 203.
Oleg, 5.
Olga, 6.
Opritchniks, 56, 59 ff.
Orthodoxy and Dissent, 95, 202, 204.
Orujenia Palata, 139.
Osliabia, 24.
Osman and Ahmed, 13.
Ostankina, 209.
Otrepief, 92.
Our Saviour on High,” Ch. of, 128, 161, 280.

P
Pageantry, Church, 243.
—— State, 123, 137, 243.
Palace, Chequered, 38.
—— Golden, 82, 128.
—— Granovitaia, 43, 124, 131.
—— Great, 124.
—— Irene’s, 80-82, 87.
—— Lesser Golden, 127.
Palaces, early, 40;
site of, 124.
Paleologus, Thomas, 32.
—— Sophia, 33, 128, 232.
Panagies, 257.
Passport, 304.
—— “to St Nicholas,” 246.
Patriarchs, Passage of the, 127.
—— Sacristy of, 197.
—— 86, 96, 106, 177 ff, 215.
Patriarshia Riznitsa, 197 ff.
Pecherski, 165, 253.
Peresvet, 24.
Peter I., 111, 121, 206, 209 ff, 215.
Petrovski Monastery, 250.
—— Palace, 301, 306.
—— Razoomovski, 209.
Philaret, Patriarch, 109, 116.
Philip, Metropolitan, 55.
—— Church of, 197.
Plague Riots, 257.
Plate, 140.
Pleasure Palace, 154, 166.
Pojarski, Prince, 107, 114.
Poland and Muscovy, 81, 132.
Poles in Moscow, 101.
Polish Invasion, 99 ff.
Potieshni Dvorets, 154, 166.
Prince and Peasant, 107, 114.
Processions, 126, 243 ff.
Proverbs, Muscovite, 216.
Prud, Chisty, 12, 251.
—— Krasnœ, 306.
—— Lizin, 261.
Public Buildings, 224.
—— Clocks, 195.

Q
Quaint survivals, 244 ff, 249, 276.
Queen Elizabeth, 77, 85.

R
Ramparts, Kitai-Gorod, 38, 238.
—— Kremlin, 148;
town, 209, 306.
Red,” see Krasnœ.
Redeemer Gate, 181;
and see Spasski Vorot.
Regalia, 140.
Relics, 189, 192, 196, 255; and see Moshi.
Restaurants, 252, 304.
Riding-School, 224.
Rites, Funeral, 246;
Marriage, 38, 77, 250.
Ritual of Russian Church, 184, 199.
Rojdestva, 181, 251.
Roman Church and Orthodoxy, 86, 95.
Romanof, Anastasia, 49, 109.
—— Dynasty, 109 ff;
House, 108, 228.
See also Alexis, Peter, Philaret, etc.
Rostopchin, Count, 287.
Royal Doors,” 180, 197.
Ruffo, Marco, 131.
Rumiantsev Museums, 220.
Rurik, 5.
Russia Company, 271 ff.

S
Sacristy of the Patriarchs, 197.
Saints, Russian, 184 ff.
St Saviour’s, see Spass Na Boru, Xram, etc.
Sakkos, 256.
Sanctuary, 188.
Scandinavian influence, 8.
Schlitte, John, 64.
Schools in Moscow, 123, 205, 210, 257.{314}
Scots in Moscow, 273, 281.
Scythians, 5, 294.
Semiradski’s Pictures, 7.
Serfdom, 86.
Sergius, Saint, 175.
Servants’ etiquette, 238.
Shalkan, 277.
Shein, Captain, 105.
Shooiski, family, 48, 81;
Vasili, 95 ff;
Michael, 99.
Shrines, 256.
Simeon Bekbulatov, 69, 262.
—— The Proud, 22.
Simonov Monastyr, 260 ff.
Skopin, Shooiski, 99, 192.
Skoptsi, 203.
Skorodom, 301.
Skutarov, Maluta, 56, 72.
Slavery, 265.
Slavs, Early, 5.
Smolensk, 101, 105.
Sneguirev, 151, 188.
Sobornia Ploshchad, 163.
Solarius, P. A., 151.
Soltikovs, 118, 241.
Sophia, Paleologus, 32, 128.
—— Tsarevna, 145, 211 ff, 255.
Sorcery in Moscow, 77, 121, 247.
Sparrow Hills, 1, 38, 42, 50, 251, 305.
Spass na Boru, 15, 22, 26, 29, 124, 196.
Spasski Vorot, 24, 58, 151, 279.
Srietenka (Meeting);
street, 209.
—— Monastyr, 208.
Standards,” Army, 140;
church, 243.
Stenki-Razin, 145.
Streltsi, 152, 207, 211-215.
Striechnev, family of, 120.
Stoves, 95, 128, 230.
Sukharev Bashnia, 208, 251.
Sussanin, 110.
Sweedes, 113.
Sylvester, 50.
Symbols, 35, 36, 140;
Cross, 182;
George and Dragon, 36;
Two Headed Eagle, 35.

T
Tainitski Gate, 150.
Taking the Veil, 38, 266.
Tamerlane, 25.
Tartars, allied with Muscovites, 21;
cause of the invasions, 16;
defeats of, 23, 32, 35;
insult, Ivan Vasili, 38;
Ivan IV., 64;
invasions, 9, 16, 25, 26, 34, 38, 63, 82.
Taylor, John, 166, 280.
Tea, 235, 305.
Terem, 41, 112, 117, 126;
Life in, 234.
Theodore I., 80 ff.
—— II., 123 ff.
—— Godunov, 92 ff.
—— Romanof, 123, 128.
—— St. 259.
Thrones, State, 140;
church, 189.
Thronos, 181.
Thurifers, 129.
Tokhta, 19.
Tokhtamysh, Khan, 25.
Tomb of Eudoxia, Tsaritsa, 266.
—— of Dmitri, 191.
—— Ivan IV., 192.
—— Simeon, 262.
—— Sophia, Tsarevna, 266.
Tombs of boyards, 263;
of Matvievs, 219;
of Romanofs, 263;
of Tsars, 191;
of Tsaritsas, 238;
of Varægers, 191.
Tongues,” 216.
Torture, 150, 239;
v. Cruelties.
Tower, see also Bashnia.
—— Alarm, 58.
—— Chastok, 245.
—— of Constantine, 150.
—— Ivan Veliki, 88, 155.
—— Kutaifa, 154.
—— Philaret, 156.
—— Sukharev, 208.
—— Traitors’, 150.
—— Tsaritsa’s, 150.
—— Watch, 245.
Traders, Muscovite, 237.
“Tranquil” Tsar, 145.
Treasury, 139; and see Orujenia Palata.
Treasury, Churches, used as, 41.
Tretiakov Art Gallery, 221.
Trial by Combat, 240.
Trinity Church, 154, 294.
Triumfalnia, 223.
Troitsa Monastery, 12, 24, 27, 31, 101.
Troitski Vorot, 154, 291.
Turberville, 232.
Tver and Moscow, 18, 21, 57.
Twenty Nations,” Invasion of, 286 ff.{315}

U
Uglitch, 21, 85, 97.
Ugol, Krasnœ, 132.
Universities, 224.
Urusov, Princess, 202.
Usbek, Khan, 22.
Uspenski Sobor, 22, 117, 130, 158, 185 ff.
Usupov House, 219.

V
Val, Krimski, 265.
—— Zemlianni, 289.
Varœgers, 5.
Varvarka, 228.
—— Vorot, 238.
Vasili I., 26.
Vasili II., 28, 31.
Vasili III., 37.
Vasili Blajenni, 67.
—— —— Ch. of, 47, 65, 67, 179.
Vasili the Blind, 26;
“the squint-eyed,” 28.
Vassian, Archbishop, 34, 52.
Vehicles, Primitive, 247.
Vereshchagin, 221.
Vekkhospasski Church, 128, 161, 280.
Vestments, Sacerdotal, 198.
Views of Moscow, 251.
Virgin of Jerusalem, 187.
—— of Kazan, 205.
—— of Pechersk, 165.
—— of Smolensk, 141, 244.
—— of Vladimir, 187 ff.
Vissotski, 251.
Vladimir, the Great, 6, 139;
the Brave, 28;
Town of, 23.
Vladimirski Vorot, 205.
Vladislas, Tsar, 101.
Voievodes, 35, 42, 63.
Vorot, or Gate,
—— Arbatski, 82.
—— Borovitski, 41, 149, 291, 299.
—— Florovski, 24, 151.
—— Ilyinski, 39.
—— Jerusalem, 151.
—— Krasnœ, 219.
—— Krutitski, 122, 142.
—— Nikolski, 24, 153, 297.
—— Prechistenski, 41, 149, 291.
—— “Red,” 219.
Vorot Redeemer, 24, 58, 151.
—— Spasski, 58, 151.
—— Sukharev, 208.
—— Tainitski, 150.
—— Troitski, 154.
—— Varvarka, 238.
—— Vladimirski, 205, 207.
—— Vosskresenski, 141.
Vosskresenski Vorot, 141 ff., 201, 244.
Vossnesenski Monastyr, 44, 257 ff.
Vsevolojskis, 120.
Vsevoloshski, 28.

W
Walls of Bielo-Gorod, 82.
—— of Kitai-Gorod, 38, 238.
—— of Kremlin, 23, 148.
—— of Zemlianni-Gorod, 209.
Watch Towers, 245.
Weapons, Muscovite, 139.
Winter in Moscow, 226.
Wives of Ivan IV., 77.
—— of Peter I., 213, 216.
Wizards, 77, 121.
Women in Mediæval Moscow, 8, 33, 48, 61, 62, 72, 81, 86, 118, 121, 137, 213, 216, 231 ff, 269, 278.

X
Xenia, Princess, 94.
Xram, 298, 299.

Y
Yauza, 249.
Yermak, 63, 81.
Yuri Dmitrovich, 28.
—— Dolgoruki, 28, 36.

Z
Zabielin’s private life of Tsars, 134.
Zachatievski, 260.
Za-ikono-spasski Monastyr, 205.
Zamoskvoretski, 264, 293.
Zapieha, 101.
Zaporogians, 91 ff.
Zariadi, 205.
Zarutski, 113.
Zemlianni Gorod, 209.
Zlatoustinski, 219.
Znamia, 243.

A
Adashef, 50, 52.
Alarm Tower, 58.
Aleviso, Fioraventi, 44, 148.
Alexander Park, 15, 153, 224.
Alexandrina Palace, 264.
Alex, St, 23, 176, 253 ff.
Alex, Tsar, 116, 120 ff, 134, 137.
All Saints Church, 205.
All Saints' Day, Fire on, 257.
Ambrose, Archbishop, 257.
Entertainment, 237.
Announcement, Cath. of, 293 ff. and see Blagoveshchensky Cathedral, Church of, 149.
Arbat Street, 49, 82, 225, 295.
Archangel Cathedral, 190 ff.
Architecture, Muscovite, 3, 223, 302;
arches, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Church, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__,
diversity of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Domestic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
Religious, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Origin of Muscovite, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
of "Skorodom," __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Limbs of Moscow, 36, 125.
—— of Romanovs, 125.
—— of Russia, 36.
Art, Bookbinders’, 192;
Byzantine examples, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
church, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
decorative, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
church, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
frescoes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
gems and jewelry, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Gothic influence on Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
iconic portrait, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
metalworking, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
visual, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
wall art, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Askold and Dyr, 5.
Ascension Convent, 257, and see Vossnesenski.
Assumption, Cath. of, 185 ff;
and check out Uspenski Sobor.
—— Church of, 89.

B
Baati, 16.
Balaam, Metrop., 253.
Barmi, 140.
Basmanovs, 74, 91, 98.
Facial hair and Fines, 216.
Belskis, 81, 91.
Best, Harry, 240.
Bells, Founding, 159.
—— Moscow, 157 ff.
Lookouts, 41, 117, 154.
References, 307.
Bielo-Gorod, 40, 82, 207.
Bielo-Ozersk, 52, 92.
Black Clergy, 253.
Blagoveshchensk Cathedral, 44, 130, 193 ff.
Blessed Willie,” 67.
Blessing the Water, 150.
Bogoloobski, Andrew, 15, 87.
Baptism Monastery, 27, 255.
Bomel, Dr E., 72, 278.
Borodino, Battle of, 286.
Borovitski Gate, 41, 291, 299.
Bowes, Jeremy, 43, 62.
Boyars, 63;
customs of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
duma of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Brides-to-be of the Tsars, 118, 120.
Bruce, Field-Marshal, 210;
Tomb of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Constantinople and Moscow, 32.
—— Style of in, 261.
—— Symbols of, 140.

C
Cannon, 96, 160, 300.
Carts and Harness, 140.
Caspian Sea, Jenkinson on the, 273.
Cathedrals, Location of, 164;
check out Sobor and Xram.
Chancellor, R., 132, 276.
Chani-Bek, 253.
Chapel of St Dmitri, 189.
—— St Gabriel, 196.
—— St George, 196.
—— Sts. Peter and Paul, 189.
—— St Samon, 197.
see also Church.
Traits of boyards, 100, 115, 237.
—— Ivan IV., 78.{310}
Characteristics of Peter I., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
—— Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.
—— Moscow Citizens, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__.
—— Moscow Princes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__.
Charm of Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__.
Chasovia, see Chapels.
Chastok, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__.
Chemiaki, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__.
Chibanov, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__.
Christianity in Russia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_14__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_15__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_16__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_17__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_18__ ff.
Chudov Monastyr, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_19__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_20__ ff.
Church, Russian, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_21__ ff;
feasts of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_22__, and Tsar, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_23__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_24__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_25__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_26__;
and Western Church, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_27__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_28__;
saves Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_29__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_30__.
Church of St Ambrose, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_31__.
—— St Balaam, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_32__.
—— St Catherine, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_33__.
—— Sts Constantine and Helen, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_34__.
—— St George, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_35__.
—— St James, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_36__.
—— St Jehosaphat, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_37__.
—— St John the Baptist, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_38__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_39__.
—— St Lazarus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_40__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_41__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_42__.
—— St Nikanor, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_43__.
—— St Nikolas, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_44__.
—— St Prokhor, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_45__.
—— St Saviour’s, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_46__.
—— the Apostles, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_47__.
—— Nativity and Flight, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_48__.
—— Our Saviour on High, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_49__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_50__.
—— Vasili Blajenni, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_51__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_52__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_53__.
Churches of the Bielo-Gorod, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_54__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_55__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_56__.
—— Kitai-Gorod, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_57__.
—— Kremlin, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_58__.
—— Palace, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_59__ ff.
—— Suburbs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_60__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_61__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_62__.
—— Zemlianni-Gorod, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_63__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_64__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_65__.
Citizens and Tsar, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_66__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_67__.
City of Churches, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_68__.
Constantinople, see Byzantium.
Convent, Ascension, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_69__.
—— Conception, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_70__.
—— Nativity, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_71__.
—— Nikitski, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_72__.
—— Novo Devichi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_73__.
—— Strastnoi (Passion), __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_74__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_75__.
—— Zachatievski, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_76__.
Convent-Life, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_77__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_78__.
Cossacks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_79__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_80__.
Crimean War and English in Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_81__.
Cross, Pre-Christian, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_82__;
Russian, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_83__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_84__.
Cruelties, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_85__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_86__ ff, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_87__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_88__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_89__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_90__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_91__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_92__, see also Ivan IV. and Peter I.
Customs, of early Slavs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_93__;
of Medieval Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_94__;
curious, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_95__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_96__.

D
Daniel Mikhailovich, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_97__.
Danilovski Monastyr, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_98__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_99__.
Delagardie, General, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_100__.
Dissent and Dissenters, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_101__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_102__ ff.
Diversity of Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_103__.
Dmitri Donskoi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_104__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_105__ ff.
—— “first false,” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_106__ ff.
—— Ivanovich, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_107__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_108__.
—— “second false,” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_109__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_110__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_111__.
—— of the “terrible eyes,” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_112__.
Dogma and Ritual, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_113__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_114__.
Dolgoruki, family, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_115__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_116__.
—— Yuri, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_117__.
Dom Chukina, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_118__.
Dom Romanovykh, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_119__.
—— Usupov, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_120__.
Domostroi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_121__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_122__.
Don Cossacks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_123__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_124__.
Donskoi Monastyr, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_125__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_126__.
Drinking habits, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_127__.
Dukhobortsi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_128__.
Duma of the boyards, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_129__.

E
Ediger, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_130__.
English in Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_131__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_132__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_133__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_134__, 2__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_135__ ff.
Epiphany, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_136__, and see Bogoyavlenni.
Etiquette, Muscovite, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_137__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_138__.
Eudoxia, (Donskoi), __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_139__.
—— Striechnev, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_140__.
—— Lapunov, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_141__.
Euphrosina, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_142__.
Express trains, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_143__.

F
Fairs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_144__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_145__.
Famine, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_146__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_147__.
Fioraventi, Aleviso, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_148__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_149__.{311}
Fire, The great, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_150__ ff.
Fires in Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_151__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_152__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_153__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_154__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_155__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_156__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_157__.
Florence, Council of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_158__.
Florovski, v. Spasski Vorot.
Food of Muscovites, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_159__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_160__.
Foreigners in Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_161__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_162__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_163__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_164__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_165__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_166__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_167__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_168__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_169__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_170__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_171__ ff, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_172__.
Foundling Hospital, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_173__.
French cannon captured, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_174__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_175__.
—— Invasion, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_176__ ff; settlers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_177__.

G
Gaden, Dr, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_178__.
Galitzin, Kniaz, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_179__.
Galloway, Chris, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_180__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_181__.
Gates, see Vorot.
George, Prince, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_182__.
—— St. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_183__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_184__.
Glinski, Helena, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_185__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_186__.
Gluiski, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_187__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_188__.
Godunov, Boris, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_189__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_190__ ff, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_191__.
—— Theodore, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_192__.
Golden Gates, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_193__.
—— Hall, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_194__.
—— Horde, see Tartars.
—— Palace, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_195__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_196__.
—— —— Lesser, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_197__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_198__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_199__.
Good Companions,” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_200__.
Gordon, Patrick, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_201__.
—— Alexander, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_202__.
Gostinnoi Dvok, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_203__.
Granovitaia Palata, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_204__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_205__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_206__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_207__.
Greeting, Manner of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_208__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_209__.
Griffins, Heraldic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_210__.

H
Hamilton, Miss, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_211__.
Herberstein, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_212__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_213__.
Hermogen, Patriarch, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_214__.
Historical Museum, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_215__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_216__.
Holy Bread,” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_217__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_218__.
—— Coat, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_219__.
—— Corridor, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_220__.
—— Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_221__.
—— Vestments, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_222__.
Horsey, Jerom, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_223__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_224__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_225__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_226__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_227__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_228__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_229__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_230__.
—— Adventures of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_231__ ff.
Hotels, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_232__.
Houses, early dwellings, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_233__;
in Skorodom, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_234__;
of Russia Company, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_235__,
see also Dom.

I
Iberian Chapel, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_236__, and see Vosskresenski Vorot.
Igor, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_237__.
Ikonostas, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_238__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_239__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_240__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_241__.
Ikons, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_242__.
—— in relievo, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_243__.
—— miraculous, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_244__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_245__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_246__.
—— “Nerukotvorenni,” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_247__ ff, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_248__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_249__.
—— “Not made with hands,” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_250__ ff, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_251__.
—— private and personal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_252__.
—— remarkable, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_253__.
—— trimorphic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_254__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_255__.
—— Varieties of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_256__.
—— Virgin of Pechersk, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_257__.
—— Virgin of Vladimir, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_258__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_259__.
—— Wonder-working, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_260__.
Ilyinka, Vorot, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_261__.
Irene, Princess, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_262__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_263__.
Ivan I., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_264__ ff.
Ivan II., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_265__.
Ivan III., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_266__.
Ivan IV., 47 et seq.,
anecdotes of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_267__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_268__ ff;
atrocities of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_269__ ff, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_270__ ff., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_271__;
tricks of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_272__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_273__;
victims of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_274__;
wives, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_275__;
wizards, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_276__.
Ivan V., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_277__.
Ivan “Groznoi” v. Ivan IV.
Ivan the idiot, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_278__.
Ivan Kalita v. Ivan I.
Ivan Krestitel v. St John the Baptist.
Ivan “the Terrible” v. Ivan IV.
Ivan Veliki, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_279__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_280__.

J
Jenkinson, Anthony, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_281__.
Jerusalem Gate, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_282__.
Jitny Dvor, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_283__.
John v. Ivan.
John the Baptist, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_284__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_285__.

K
Kammer College Rampart, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_286__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_287__.
Karamzin, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_288__.
Kazak v. Cossack.
Kazan, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_289__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_290__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_291__.
—— Virgin of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_292__.
Kazi-Ghiree, Khan, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_293__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_294__.
Khingiz, Khan, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_295__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_296__.{312}
Khlysti, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_297__.
Kholmogori, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_298__.
Kief, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_299__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_300__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_301__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_302__.
Kitai-Gorod, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_303__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_304__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_305__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_306__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_307__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_308__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_309__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_310__.
Kontchaka, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_311__.
Kourbski, Prince, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_312__.
Krasnœ Kriltso, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_313__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_314__.
—— Ploshchad, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_315__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_316__.
—— Vorot, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_317__.
—— Ugol, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_318__.
Kremlin, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_319__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_320__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_321__;
derivation of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_322__;
dwellings in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_323__;
sights of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_324__ ff;
view of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_325__;
walls, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_326__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_327__.
Krim-Tartars, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_328__.
Krimski-Brode, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_329__.
Krimski-val, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_330__.
Krutitski Vorot, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_331__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_332__.
Kulikovo, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_333__.
Kutaifa, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_334__.
Kutchko, Stephen, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_335__.
Kuznetski Most, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_336__.

L
Latin in Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_337__.
Lazarus, Church of St, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_338__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_339__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_340__.
Le Bruyn, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_341__.
Legal Procedure, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_342__.
Libraries, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_343__.
Life for the Tsar,” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_344__.
Lithuania, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_345__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_346__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_347__.
Lobnœ Mesto, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_348__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_349__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_350__.

M
Mahommedans and Muscovites, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_351__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_352__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_353__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_354__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_355__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_356__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_357__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_358__.
Maiden’s Field, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_359__, and see Novo Devichi.
Mamai, Khan, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_360__ ff.
Marina-Roshcha, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_361__.
Marosseika, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_362__.
Marriage customs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_363__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_364__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_365__.
Mary of Vladimir, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_366__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_367__.
—— Church of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_368__.
Matvievs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_369__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_370__.
Medich, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_371__.
Miaschanska, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_372__.
Michael, Tsar, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_373__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_374__ ff.
Milosavskis, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_375__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_376__.
Minin, Cosma, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_377__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_378__.
Mniszek, Maria, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_379__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_380__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_381__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_382__.
Monasteries, early, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_383__;
existing, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_384__ ff;
see also Convents.
Monks and Monasticism, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_385__ ff.
Mordva, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_386__.
Morozof, Boyard, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_387__.
—— Boyarina, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_388__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_389__.
Moscow, Arms of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_390__;
charm of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_391__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_392__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_393__;
derivation of name, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_394__;
fires in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_395__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_396__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_397__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_398__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_399__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_400__;
the golden, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_401__;
looted by the French, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_402__;
sieges of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_403__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_404__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_405__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_406__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_407__;
unconventionality of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_408__;
views in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_409__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_410__;
winter in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_411__.
Moshi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_412__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_413__.
Moskva river, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_414__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_415__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_416__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_417__.
Most (Bridge), Kuznetski, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_418__;
Kammeni, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_419__;
Krasnœ Kholmski, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_420__;
Krimski, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_421__.
Mstislavskis, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_422__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_423__.
Muscovy and Britain, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_424__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_425__.
—— Lithuania, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_426__.
—— Livonia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_427__.
—— Poland, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_428__ ff, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_429__.
—— Tartary, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_430__ ff, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_431__.
Muscovites of British descent, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_432__.
—— allied with Tartars, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_433__.
Museums, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_434__.
Mystery Plays, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_435__.

N
Napoleon, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_436__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_437__ ff.
Naryshkin, Family of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_438__.
Natalia, Tsaritsa, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_439__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_440__.
Nativity, see Rojdestva, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_441__.
—— Church of __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_442__.
—— Convent of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_443__.
Neglinnaia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_444__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_445__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_446__.
New Rows, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_447__.
Nicholas, patron saint, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_448__.
—— of Galstun, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_449__.
—— Stylite, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_450__.
Nijni-Novgorod, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_451__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_452__.
Nikita, Saint, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_453__.
—— the preacher, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_454__.
—— Romanof, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_455__.
Nikolskava, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_456__.
Nikolski Vorot, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_457__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_458__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_459__.
Nikon, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_460__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_461__.
Nobles, Muscovite, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_462__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_463__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_464__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_465__.
Novgorod the Great, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_466__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_467__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_468__.
Novi Riadi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_469__.
Novo Devichi Convent, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_470__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_471__.
Novo Spasski Monastyr, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_472__.{313}

O
Oddities, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_473__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_474__.
Old Believers,” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_475__.
Oleg, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_476__.
Olga, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_477__.
Opritchniks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_478__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_479__ ff.
Orthodoxy and Dissent, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_480__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_481__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_482__.
Orujenia Palata, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_483__.
Osliabia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_484__.
Osman and Ahmed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_485__.
Ostankina, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_486__.
Otrepief, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_487__.
Our Saviour on High,” Ch. of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_488__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_489__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_490__.

P
Pageantry, Church, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_491__.
—— State, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_492__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_493__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_494__.
Palace, Chequered, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_495__.
—— Golden, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_496__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_497__.
—— Granovitaia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_498__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_499__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_500__.
—— Great, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_501__.
—— Irene’s, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_502__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_503__.
—— Lesser Golden, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_504__.
Palaces, early, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_505__;
site of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_506__.
Paleologus, Thomas, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_507__.
—— Sophia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_508__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_509__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_510__.
Panagies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_511__.
Passport, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_512__.
—— “to St Nicholas,” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_513__.
Patriarchs, Passage of the, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_514__.
—— Sacristy of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_515__.
—— __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_516__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_517__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_518__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_519__ ff, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_520__.
Patriarshia Riznitsa, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_521__ ff.
Pecherski, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_522__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_523__.
Peresvet, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_524__.
Peter I., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_525__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_526__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_527__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_528__ ff, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_529__.
Petrovski Monastery, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_530__.
—— Palace, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_531__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_532__.
—— Razoomovski, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_533__.
Philaret, Patriarch, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_534__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_535__.
Philip, Metropolitan, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_536__.
—— Church of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_537__.
Plague Riots, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_538__.
Plate, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_539__.
Pleasure Palace, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_540__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_541__.
Pojarski, Prince, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_542__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_543__.
Poland and Muscovy, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_544__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_545__.
Poles in Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_546__.
Polish Invasion, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_547__ ff.
Potieshni Dvorets, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_548__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_549__.
Prince and Peasant, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_550__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_551__.
Processions, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_552__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_553__ ff.
Proverbs, Muscovite, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_554__.
Prud, Chisty, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_555__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_556__.
—— Krasnœ, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_557__.
—— Lizin, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_558__.
Public Buildings, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_559__.
—— Clocks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_560__.

Q
Quaint survivals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_561__ ff, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_562__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_563__.
Queen Elizabeth, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_564__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_565__.

R
Ramparts, Kitai-Gorod, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_566__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_567__.
—— Kremlin, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_568__;
town, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_569__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_570__.
Red,” see Krasnœ.
Redeemer Gate, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_571__;
and see Spasski Vorot.
Regalia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_572__.
Relics, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_573__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_574__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_575__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_576__; and see Moshi.
Restaurants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_577__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_578__.
Riding-School, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_579__.
Rites, Funeral, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_580__;
Marriage, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_581__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_582__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_583__.
Ritual of Russian Church, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_584__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_585__.
Rojdestva, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_586__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_587__.
Roman Church and Orthodoxy, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_588__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_589__.
Romanof, Anastasia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_590__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_591__.
—— Dynasty, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_592__ ff;
House, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_593__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_594__.
See also Alexis, Peter, Philaret, etc.
Rostopchin, Count, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_595__.
Royal Doors,” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_596__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_597__.
Ruffo, Marco, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_598__.
Rumiantsev Museums, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_599__.
Rurik, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_600__.
Russia Company, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_601__ ff.

S
Sacristy of the Patriarchs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_602__.
Saints, Russian, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_603__ ff.
St Saviour’s, see Spass Na Boru, Xram, etc.
Sakkos, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_604__.
Sanctuary, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_605__.
Scandinavian influence, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_606__.
Schlitte, John, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_607__.
Schools in Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_608__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_609__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_610__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_611__.{314}
Scots in Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_612__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_613__.
Scythians, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_614__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_615__.
Semiradski’s Pictures, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_616__.
Serfdom, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_617__.
Sergius, Saint, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_618__.
Servants’ etiquette, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_619__.
Shalkan, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_620__.
Shein, Captain, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_621__.
Shooiski, family, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_622__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_623__;
Vasili, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_624__ ff;
Michael, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_625__.
Shrines, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_626__.
Simeon Bekbulatov, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_627__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_628__.
—— The Proud, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_629__.
Simonov Monastyr, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_630__ ff.
Skopin, Shooiski, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_631__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_632__.
Skoptsi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_633__.
Skorodom, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_634__.
Skutarov, Maluta, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_635__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_636__.
Slavery, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_637__.
Slavs, Early, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_638__.
Smolensk, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_639__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_640__.
Sneguirev, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_641__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_642__.
Sobornia Ploshchad, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_643__.
Solarius, P. A., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_644__.
Soltikovs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_645__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_646__.
Sophia, Paleologus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_647__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_648__.
—— Tsarevna, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_649__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_650__ ff, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_651__.
Sorcery in Moscow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_652__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_653__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_654__.
Sparrow Hills, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_655__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_656__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_657__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_658__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_659__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_660__.
Spass na Boru, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_661__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_662__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_663__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_664__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_665__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_666__.
Spasski Vorot, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_667__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_668__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_669__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_670__.
Srietenka (Meeting);
street, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_671__.
—— Monastyr, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_672__.
Standards,”
church, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_673__.
Stenki-Razin, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_674__.
Streltsi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_675__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_676__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_677__.
Striechnev, family of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_678__.
Stoves, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_679__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_680__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_681__.
Sukharev Bashnia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_682__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_683__.
Sussanin, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_684__.
Sweedes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_685__.

{316} 

{316}

PRINTED BY
TURNBULL AND SPEARS,
EDINBURGH

PRINTED BY
TURNBULL AND SPEARS,
EDINBURGH

{317}

{317}

Typographical errors corrected by the etext transcriber:
the villiage of Palekh=> the village of Palekh {pg 132}
upon fete days=> upon fête days {pg 134}
timbers will sagg=> timbers will sag {pg 168}
as an old man=> as on old man {pg 175}
a raised dias=> a raised dais {pg 181}
orignal=> original {pg 182}
interest to Anglican’s=> interest to Anglicans {pg 308}
Россій=> Россіи {pg viii}
москва=> москва {pg 226}


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!